This is a modern-English version of The Works of Aristotle the Famous Philosopher: Containing his Complete Masterpiece and Family Physician; his Experienced Midwife, his Book of Problems and his Remarks on Physiognomy, originally written by unknown author(s). It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.


THE WORKS OF
ARISTOTLE
THE FAMOUS PHILOSOPHER


Containing his Complete Masterpiece and Family Physician; his Experienced Midwife, his Book of Problems and his Remarks on Physiognomy


COMPLETE EDITION, WITH ENGRAVINGS


Frontispiece

CONTENTS


On marriage and at what age young men and virgins are capable of it: and why so much desire it. Also, how long men and women are capable of it.

On marriage and at what age young men and women are ready for it: and why they desire it so much. Also, how long men and women remain able to do it.

How to beget a male or female child; and of the Embryo and perfect Birth; and the fittest time for the copula.

How to conceive a boy or girl; and about the embryo and perfect birth; and the best time for intercourse.

The reason why children are like their parents; and that the Mother's imagination contributes thereto; and whether the man or the woman is the cause of the male or female child.

The reason why children resemble their parents, and how the mother's imagination plays a role in this, as well as whether the father or the mother determines the sex of the child.

That Man's Soul is not propagated by their parents, but is infused by its Creator, and can neither die nor corrupt. At what time it is infused. Of its immortality and certainty of its resurrection.

A person's soul isn't passed down from their parents; instead, it's given by its Creator and cannot die or be corrupted. It is infused at a specific time. It is immortal and certain to be resurrected.

Of Monsters and Monstrous Births; and the several reasons thereof, according to the opinions of the Ancients. Also, whether the Monsters are endowed with reasonable Souls; and whether the Devils can engender; is here briefly discussed.

Of Monsters and Monstrous Births; and the various reasons for them, based on the views of the Ancients. Also, whether Monsters have rational Souls; and whether Devils can reproduce; is briefly discussed here.

Of the happy state of matrimony, as it is appointed by God, the true felicity that rebounds thereby to either sex; and to what end it is ordained.

About the joyful state of marriage, as it is ordained by God, the genuine happiness that reflects back to both partners; and the purpose for which it is intended.

Of Errors in Marriages; Why they are, and the Injuries caused by them.

Of Errors in Marriages; Why They Happen and the Harm They Cause.

The Opinion of the Learned concerning Children conceived and born within Seven Months; with Arguments upon the Subject to prevent Suspicion of Incontinency, and bitter Contest on that Account. To which are added Rules to Know the Disposition of Man's Body by the Genital Parts.

The Views of Experts on Children conceived and born within Seven Months; with Arguments on the Topic to Avoid Suspicions of Immodesty and Intense Disputes over It. Additionally, Guidelines to Understand the Condition of a Man's Body through the Genital Parts.

Of the Green-Sickness in Virgins, with its causes, signs and cures; together with the chief occasions of Barrenness in Women, and the Means to remove the Cause, and render them fruitful.

About the Green-Sickness in young women, including its causes, symptoms, and treatments; along with the main reasons for infertility in women and how to address the cause to make them fertile.

Virginity, what it is, in what it consists, and how vitiated; together with the Opinions of the Learned about the Change of Sex in the Womb, during the Operation of Nature in forming the Body.

Virginity, what it is, what it involves, and how it can be corrupted; along with the views of experts on the change of sex in the womb during the natural process of forming the body.

Directions and Cautions for Midwives; and, first, what ought to be the qualifications of a midwife.

Guidelines and Warnings for Midwives; and first, what the qualifications of a midwife should be.

Further Directions to Midwives, teaching them what they ought to do, and what to avoid.

Additional Guidance for Midwives, explaining what they should do and what to avoid.

The External, and Internal Organs of Generation in Women.

The External and Internal Reproductive Organs in Women.

A description of the Fabric of the Womb, the preparing Vessels and Testicles in Women. Also of the Different and Ejaculatory Vessels.

A description of the uterine structure, the preparing vessels and ovaries in women. Also regarding the various types of ejaculatory vessels.

A Description of the Use and Action of the several Generative Parts in Women.

A Description of the Use and Action of the Various Reproductive Parts in Women.

Of the Organs of Generation in Man.

Of the Reproductive Organs in Humans.

A word of Advice to both Sexes, consisting of several Directions with regard to Copulation.

A word of advice for everyone, including several tips about sex.

Treating of the several Maladies incident to the womb, with proper remedies for the cure of each.

Treating various issues related to the womb, along with suitable remedies for the treatment of each.

Of the Retention of the Courses.

About Maintaining the Courses.

Of Excessive Menstruation.

Heavy Menstrual Bleeding.

Of the Weeping of the Womb.

Of the Weeping of the Womb.

The false Courses, or Whites.

The misleading routes, or Whites.

The Suffocation of the Mother.

The Strangling of the Mother.

Of the Descending or Falling of the Womb.

About the Prolapse of the Uterus.

Of the Inflammation of the Womb.

Of the Inflammation of the Womb.

Of Scirrhous Tumours, or Hardness of the Womb.

Of Scirrhous Tumors, or Hardness of the Womb.

Of Dropsy of the Womb.

Of Uterine Edema.

Of Moles and False Conceptions.

Moles and Misconceptions.

Of Conception and its Signs, and How a Woman may know whether it be Male or Female.

About Conception and its Signs, and How a Woman Can Tell if it’s Male or Female.

Of Untimely Births.

Of Unexpected Births.

Directions for Pregnant Women.

Guidelines for Expecting Mothers.

Directions for Women when they are taken in Labour, to ensure their safe Delivery, and Directions for Midwives.

Guidelines for Women During Labor to Ensure Safe Delivery, and Guidelines for Midwives.

What ought to be done in cases of extremity, especially in women who, in labour, are attacked by a flux of blood, convulsions and fits of wind.

What should be done in extreme cases, particularly for women in labor who experience heavy bleeding, convulsions, and gas attacks.

How child-bearing Women ought to be ordered after Delivery.

How women who have given birth should be cared for after delivery.

Acute Pains after Delivery.

Postpartum Acute Pain.

Of Conception; what it is; how women are to order themselves after Conception.

About Conception; what it is; how women should arrange themselves after Conception.

Of the Parts proper to a Child in the womb; How it is formed there, and the manner of its Situation therein.

About the parts that belong to a fetus in the womb; how it's formed there and its position within.

A Guide for Women in Travail, showing what is to be done when they fall in Labour, in order to their Delivery.

A Guide for Women in Labor, outlining what to do when they go into labor to ensure safe delivery.

Of Natural Labour; What it is and what the Midwife is to do in such Labour.

About Natural Labor: What it Is and What the Midwife Should Do in Such Labor.

Of Unnatural Labour.

Of Unnatural Labor.

Directions for Child-bearing Women in their Lying-in.

Guidelines for Pregnant Women During Their Recovery.

Directions for the Nurses, in ordering Newly-born Children.

Instructions for Nurses on Caring for Newborns.

Of Barrenness; its several Kinds; with the proper Remedies for it; and the Signs of Insufficiency both in Men and Women.

Of Barrenness; its various Types; the appropriate Remedies for it; and the Signs of Insufficiency in both Men and Women.

The Diseases of the Womb.

Womb Diseases.

Of Diseases Relating to Women's Monthly Courses.

Of Diseases Related to Women's Monthly Cycles.

Of the Judgment of Physiognomy.

The Judgment of Physiognomy.

Of Judgments drawn from several other parts of Man's Body.

Of Judgments Taken from Different Parts of the Human Body.

Of Palmistry, showing the various Judgments drawn from the Hand.

About Palmistry, illustrating the different interpretations derived from the Hand.

Judgments according to Physiognomy, drawn from the several parts of the Body, from the Hands to the Feet.

Judgments based on Physiognomy, derived from different parts of the Body, from Hands to Feet.

Of the Power of the Celestial Bodies over Men and Women.

Of the Influence of Celestial Bodies on People.




THE MIDWIFE'S VADE-MECUM

Containing

PARTICULAR DIRECTIONS FOR MIDWIVES, NURSES, ETC.


SOME GENUINE RECIPES FOR CAUSING SPEEDY DELIVERY.


APPROVED DIRECTIONS FOR NURSES.


Medical Knowledge

PART I—BOOK I

THE MASTERPIECE

On marriage and at what age young men and virgins are capable of it: and why so much desire it. Also, how long men and women are capable of it.

On marriage and at what age young men and virgins can enter into it: and why they desire it so much. Also, how long men and women can engage in it.


There are very few, except some professional debauchees, who will not readily agree that "Marriage is honourable to all," being ordained by Heaven in Paradise; and without which no man or woman can be in a capacity, honestly, to yield obedience to the first law of the creation, "Increase and Multiply." And since it is natural in young people to desire the embraces, proper to the marriage bed, it behoves parents to look after their children, and when they find them inclinable to marriage, not violently to restrain their inclinations (which, instead of allaying them, makes them but the more impetuous) but rather provide such suitable matches for them, as may make their lives comfortable; lest the crossing of those inclinations should precipitate them to commit those follies that may bring an indelible stain upon their families. The inclination of maids to marriage may be known by many symptoms; for when they arrive at puberty, which is about the fourteenth or fifteenth year of their age, then their natural purgations begin to flow; and the blood, which is no longer to augment their bodies, abounding, stirs up their minds to venery. External causes may also incline them to it; for their spirits being brisk and inflamed, when they arrive at that age, if they eat hard salt things and spices, the body becomes more and more heated, whereby the desire to veneral embraces is very great, and sometimes almost insuperable. And the use of this so much desired enjoyment being denied to virgins, many times is followed by dismal consequences; such as the green weesel colonet, short-breathing, trembling of the heart, etc. But when they are married and their veneral desires satisfied by the enjoyment of their husbands, these distempers vanish, and they become more gay and lively than before. Also, their eager staring at men, and affecting their company, shows that nature pushes them upon coition; and their parents neglecting to provide them with husbands, they break through modesty and satisfy themselves in unlawful embraces. It is the same with brisk widows, who cannot be satisfied without that benevolence to which they were accustomed when they had their husbands.

There are very few, except for some professional party-goers, who won’t quickly agree that "Marriage is honorable for everyone," as it was ordained by Heaven in Paradise. Without it, no man or woman can genuinely fulfill the first command of creation, "Increase and Multiply." Since it’s natural for young people to desire the intimate connection that comes with marriage, parents ought to take care of their children. When they see their kids leaning toward marriage, they shouldn't harshly suppress these feelings (which often only makes them stronger) but rather find suitable partners to ensure their happiness. Otherwise, ignoring these urges might lead them to act foolishly, potentially staining their families’ reputations. A young woman's desire for marriage can be evident through various signs; for instance, when they reach puberty—around the ages of fourteen to fifteen—their natural cycles start, and the blood, which no longer serves to grow their bodies, begins to stir their minds toward sexual urges. External factors can also influence this; when they reach this age and eat things like salty foods and spices, their bodies heat up, making their desire for physical affection very intense, sometimes nearly overwhelming. When virgins are denied this much-desired fulfillment, they often face unfortunate consequences, such as anxiety, shortness of breath, and rapid heartbeats. But once married and enjoying the intimacy with their husbands, these issues disappear, and they become happier and more lively than before. Their eager glances at men and desire for their company show that nature drives them towards intimacy, and if their parents fail to arrange suitable husbands, they may compromise their modesty and seek out forbidden encounters. The same goes for vibrant widows, who can't find satisfaction without the affection they were used to having from their husbands.

At the age of 14, the menses, in virgins, begin to flow; then they are capable of conceiving, and continue generally until 44, when they cease bearing, unless their bodies are strong and healthful, which sometimes enables them to bear at 65. But many times the menses proceed from some violence done to nature, or some morbific matter, which often proves fatal. And, hence, men who are desirous of issue ought to marry a woman within the age aforesaid, or blame themselves if they meet with disappointment; though, if an old man, if not worn out with diseases and incontinency, marry a brisk, lively maiden, there is hope of him having children to 70 or 80 years.

At 14, girls typically start their periods, making them capable of becoming pregnant, which usually continues until they’re around 44, when they stop having children. However, if a woman's health is good, she might still be able to conceive even at 65. Sometimes, though, menstruation can be triggered by issues affecting her health, which can be dangerous. Therefore, men looking to have children should aim to marry a woman within that age range, or they have to accept the risk of disappointment. Yet, if an older man who isn’t suffering from illnesses and has maintained his health marries a young, energetic woman, there’s a chance he could father children even at 70 or 80 years old.

Hippocrates says, that a youth of 15, or between that and 17, having much vital strength, is capable of begetting children; and also that the force of the procreating matter increases till 45, 50, and 55, and then begins to flag; the seed, by degrees, becoming unfruitful, the natural spirits being extinguished, and the humours dried up. Thus, in general, but as to individuals, it often falls out otherwise. Nay, it is reported by a credible author, that in Swedland, a man was married at 100 years of age to a girl of 30 years, and had many children by her; but his countenance was so fresh, that those who knew him not, imagined him not to exceed 50. And in Campania, where the air is clear and temperate, men of 80 marry young virgins, and have children by them; which shows that age in them does not hinder procreation, unless they be exhausted in their youths and their yards be shrivelled up.

Hippocrates states that a young person between 15 and 17, with plenty of vitality, is capable of fathering children. He also notes that the ability to reproduce increases until around the ages of 45, 50, and 55, after which it begins to decline; gradually, fertility decreases, natural energy diminishes, and bodily fluids dry up. Generally speaking, this is the case, but for some individuals, it can be different. In fact, a reliable source reports that in Sweden, a man married a 30-year-old woman at the age of 100 and had many children with her; his appearance was so youthful that those who didn’t know him believed he was no older than 50. Similarly, in Campania, where the climate is clear and mild, men in their 80s marry young virgins and have children, demonstrating that age doesn’t impede reproduction unless they’ve been drained in their youth and their physical capabilities have diminished.

If any would know why a woman is sooner barren than a man, they may be assured that the natural heat, which is the cause of generation, is more predominant in the man than in the woman; for since a woman is more moist than a man, as her monthly purgations demonstrate, as also the softness of her body; it is also apparent that he does not much exceed her in natural heat, which is the chief thing that concocts the humours in proper aliment, which the woman wanting grows fat; whereas a man, through his native heat, melts his fat by degrees and his humours are dissolved; and by the benefit thereof are converted into seed. And this may also be added, that women, generally, are not so strong as men, nor so wise or prudent; nor have so much reason and ingenuity in ordering affairs; which shows that thereby the faculties are hindered in operations.

If anyone wants to know why women tend to be barren more often than men, they can be sure that the natural heat, which is essential for generation, is stronger in men than in women. Since women are generally more moist than men, as shown by their monthly cycles and the softness of their bodies, it is also clear that men do not have significantly more natural heat than women. This natural heat is crucial for properly processing the nutrients in food, and without it, women tend to gain weight. In contrast, men, thanks to their natural heat, gradually burn off their fat and break down their fluids, which then turn into seed. Additionally, it can be noted that women are generally not as strong as men, nor as wise or cautious; they also lack the same level of reasoning and skill in managing affairs, which suggests that their abilities are limited in their functions.


CHAPTER II

How to beget a male or female child; and of the Embryo and perfect Birth; and the fittest time for the copula.

How to conceive a boy or a girl; the embryo and successful delivery; and the best time for conception.


When a young couple are married, they naturally desire children; and therefore adopt the means that nature has appointed to that end. But notwithstanding their endeavours they must know that the success of all depends on the blessing of the Gods: not only so, but the sex, whether male or female, is from their disposal also, though it cannot be denied, that secondary causes have influence therein, especially two. First, the general humour, which is brought by the arteria praeparantes to the testes, in form of blood, and there elaborated into seed, by the seminifical faculty residing in them. Secondly, the desire of coition, which fires the imagination with unusual fancies, and by the sight of brisk, charming beauty, may soon inflame the appetite. But if nature be enfeebled, some meats must be eaten as will conduce to afford such aliment as makes the seed abound, and restores the exhaustion of nature that the faculties may freely operate, and remove impediments obstructing the procreating of children. Then, since diet alters the evil state of the body to a better, those subject to barrenness must eat such meats as are juicy and nourish well, making the body lively and full of sap; of which faculty are all hot moist meats. For, according to Galen, seed is made of pure concocted and windy superfluity of blood, whence we may conclude, that there is a power in many things, to accumulate seed, and also to augment it; and other things of force to cause desire, as hen eggs, pheasants, woodcocks, gnat-snappers, blackbirds, thrushes, young pigeons, sparrows, partridges, capons, almonds, pine nuts, raisins, currants, strong wines taken sparingly, especially those made of the grapes of Italy. But erection is chiefly caused by scuraum, eringoes, cresses, crysmon, parsnips, artichokes, turnips, asparagus, candied ginger, acorns bruised to powder and drank in muscadel, scallion, sea shell fish, etc. But these must have time to perform their operation, and must be used for a considerable time, or you will reap but little benefit from them. The act of coition being over, let the woman repose herself on her right side, with her head lying low, and her body declining, that by sleeping in that posture, the cani, on the right side of the matrix, may prove the place of conception; for therein is the greatest generative heat, which is the chief procuring cause of male children, and rarely fails the expectations of those that experience it, especially if they do but keep warm, without much motion, leaning to the right, and drinking a little spirit of saffron and juice of hissop in a glass of Malaga or Alicant, when they lie down and arise, for a week.

When a young couple gets married, they naturally want children; so they take the steps that nature has designed for that purpose. However, despite their efforts, they must understand that success ultimately relies on the blessings of the gods. Not only that, but the sex of the child, whether male or female, is also determined by them. It cannot be denied that secondary factors influence this, particularly two. First, the general humors carried by the arteries to the testes, which transform into seed through the reproductive capability residing in them. Second, the desire for intimacy, which can ignite the imagination with unusual thoughts, and the sight of lively, attractive beauty can quickly heighten desire. But if nature is weakened, certain foods must be consumed to provide the nourishment that makes the seed plentiful and restores the body's energy so that the reproductive functions can operate freely and remove obstacles to conceiving children. Since diet can improve the body's condition, those struggling with infertility should eat foods that are juicy and nourishing, making the body energetic and full of vitality; all hot, moist foods fit this description. According to Galen, seed is made from purified and well-digested excess blood, leading us to conclude that many foods have the power to increase seed production and to heighten desire, such as hen eggs, pheasants, woodcocks, gnat-snappers, blackbirds, thrushes, young pigeons, sparrows, partridges, capons, almonds, pine nuts, raisins, currants, and strong wines consumed in moderation, especially those made from Italian grapes. Erection is primarily stimulated by foods like scuraum, eringoes, cresses, crysmon, parsnips, artichokes, turnips, asparagus, candied ginger, acorns ground into powder and mixed with muscadine wine, scallions, shellfish, etc. However, these must be allowed time to work and should be consumed consistently, or they won’t provide much benefit. After intimacy, the woman should lie on her right side, with her head lowered and her body angled, as sleeping in this position allows for the best conditions for conception in the right side of the uterus, which generates the greatest heat—crucial for having male children—and it rarely disappoints those who try it, especially if they keep warm, remain still, lean to the right, and drink a little saffron extract and hyssop juice mixed with a glass of Malaga or Alicante wine when going to bed and getting up for a week.

For a female child, let the woman lie on her left side, strongly fancying a female in the time of procreation, drinking the decoction of female mercury four days from the first day of purgation; the male mercury having the like operation in case of a male; for this concoction purges the right and left side of the womb, opens the receptacles, and makes way for the seminary of generation. The best time to beget a female is, when the moon is in the wane, in Libra or Aquaries. Advicenne says, that when the menses are spent and the womb cleansed, which is commonly in five or seven days at most, if a man lie with his wife from the first day she is purged to the fifth, she will conceive a male; but from the fifth to the eighth a female; and from the eighth to the twelfth a male again: but after that perhaps neither distinctly, but both in an hermaphrodite. In a word, they that would be happy in the fruits of their labour, must observe to use copulation in due distance of time, not too often nor too seldom, for both are alike hurtful; and to use it immoderately weakens and wastes the spirits and spoils the seed. And this much for the first particular.

For a girl, a woman should lie on her left side, strongly wishing for a female child during conception, while drinking a herbal mix of female mercury for four days starting from the first day of cleansing; male mercury has the same effect if one is trying for a boy. This concoction clears the right and left sides of the womb, opens the channels, and prepares for conception. The best time to conceive a girl is when the moon is waning, particularly in Libra or Aquarius. Avicenna suggests that when the menstruation is over and the womb is cleaned, which usually happens in five to seven days, if a man has sex with his wife from the first day after her period ends until the fifth day, she will conceive a boy; from the fifth to the eighth day a girl; and from the eighth to the twelfth day, a boy again. After that, it might be neither distinctly, but both in a hermaphrodite form. In summary, those who want to be successful in the outcomes of their efforts should make sure to engage in sex at the right intervals, neither too often nor too rarely, as both can be harmful; excessive indulgence weakens and depletes energy and ruins the seed. And that's all for this first point.

The second is to let the reader know how the child is formed in the womb, what accidents it is liable to there, and how nourished and brought forth. There are various opinions concerning this matter; therefore, I shall show what the learned say about it.

The second is to inform the reader about how the child develops in the womb, what complications it might face there, and how it is nourished and born. There are different views on this topic; therefore, I will present what the experts say about it.

Man consists of an egg, which is impregnated in the testicles of the woman, by the more subtle parts of the man's seed; but the forming faculty and virtue in the seed is a divine gift, it being abundantly imbued with vital spirit, which gives sap and form to the embryo, so that all parts and bulk of the body, which is made up in a few months and gradually formed into the likely figure of a man, do consist in, and are adumbrated thereby (most sublimely expressed, Psalm cxxxix.: "I will praise Thee, O Lord, for I am fearfully and wonderfully made.")

Man consists of an egg, which is fertilized in the woman’s ovaries by the finer parts of the man’s seed. However, the ability and power in the seed to form life is a divine gift; it is richly filled with vital spirit, which gives life and shape to the embryo. In just a few months, all parts and the structure of the body are created and gradually develop into the form of a man, all of which is encompassed and hinted at (as beautifully expressed in Psalm 139: "I will praise You, O Lord, for I am fearfully and wonderfully made.").

Physicians have remarked four different times at which a man is framed and perfected in the womb; the first after coition, being perfectly formed in the week if no flux happens, which sometimes falls out through the slipperiness of the head of the matrix, that slips over like a rosebud that opens suddenly. The second time of forming is assigned when nature makes manifest mutation in the conception, so that all the substance seems congealed, flesh and blood, and happens twelve or fourteen days after copulation. And though this fleshy mass abounds with inflamed blood, yet it remains undistinguishable, without form, and may be called an embryo, and compared to seed sown in the ground, which, through heat and moisture, grows by degrees to a perfect form in plant or grain. The third time assigned to make up this fabric is when the principal parts show themselves plain; as the heart, whence proceed the arteries, the brain, from which the nerves, like small threads, run through the whole body; and the liver, which divides the chyle from the blood, brought to it by the vena porta. The two first are fountains of life, that nourish every part of the body, in framing which the faculty of the womb is bruised, from the conception of the eighth day of the first month. The fourth, and last, about the thirtieth day, the outward parts are seen nicely wrought, distinguished by joints, from which time it is no longer an embryo, but a perfect child.

Doctors have observed four different stages when a person is formed and developed in the womb. The first stage occurs after conception, when everything is perfectly formed within the first week, provided there are no complications, which can sometimes arise due to the slippery nature of the cervix, slipping away like a rosebud that suddenly opens. The second stage of formation happens when a change in the conception becomes apparent, usually around twelve or fourteen days after intercourse, causing all the substance to seem solidified—flesh and blood. Although this mass of flesh is filled with pulsing blood, it is still indiscernible and formless, resembling an embryo, similar to seeds planted in soil that gradually develop into a perfect plant or grain due to heat and moisture. The third stage is when the main organs begin to be clearly visible, like the heart, from which the arteries emerge, the brain, from which nerves extend throughout the body like fine threads, and the liver, which separates the chyle from the blood carried to it by the porta vein. The first two organs are the sources of life that nourish every part of the body, and the formation process begins around eight days from conception in the first month. The fourth and final stage happens around the thirtieth day, when the outer parts are clearly defined and shaped, with joints visible; from this point onward, it is no longer referred to as an embryo, but a fully formed child.

Most males are perfect by the thirtieth day, but females seldom before the forty-second or forty-fifth day, because the heat of the womb is greater in producing the male than the female. And, for the same reason, a woman going with a male child quickens in three months, but going with a female, rarely under four, at which time its hair and nails come forth, and the child begins to stir, kick and move in the womb, and then the woman is troubled with a loathing for meat and a greedy longing for things contrary to nutriment, as coals, rubbish, chalk, etc., which desire often occasions abortion and miscarriage. Some women have been so extravagant as to long for hob nails, leather, horse-flesh, man's flesh, and other unnatural as well as unwholesome food, for want of which thing they have either miscarried or the child has continued dead in the womb for many days, to the imminent hazard of their lives. But I shall now proceed to show by what means the child is maintained in the womb, and what posture it there remains in.

Most males are fully developed by the thirtieth day, but females seldom are before the forty-second or forty-fifth day, because the heat of the womb is more effective in producing males than females. For the same reason, a woman carrying a male child feels movement at three months, but with a female, it’s rarely before four months, when its hair and nails begin to grow, and the baby starts to stir, kick, and move in the womb. At this point, the woman often experiences a strong aversion to meat and an intense craving for unusual items like coals, garbage, chalk, etc., which can sometimes lead to abortion and miscarriage. Some women have been so irrational as to crave hob nails, leather, horse flesh, human flesh, and other unnatural as well as unhealthy foods, and their failure to obtain these cravings has resulted in either miscarriage or the child remaining dead in the womb for many days, putting their health at serious risk. Now, I will explain how the child is sustained in the womb and what position it maintains there.

The learned Hippocrates affirms that the child, as he is placed in the womb, has his hands on his knees, and his head bent to his feet, so that he lies round together, his hands upon his knees and his face between them, so that each eye touches each thumb, and his nose betwixt his knees. And of the same opinion in this matter was Bartholinus. Columbus is of opinion that the figure of the child in the womb is round, the right arm bowed, the fingers under the ear, and about the neck, the head bowed so that the chin touches the breast, the left arm bowed above both breast and face and propped up by the bending of the right elbow; the legs are lifted upwards, the right so much that the thigh touches the belly, the knee the navel, the heel touches the left buttock, and the foot is turned back and covers the secrets; the left thigh touches the belly, and the leg lifted up to the breast.

The knowledgeable Hippocrates states that the fetus, while in the womb, has its hands on its knees and its head bent toward its feet, creating a rounded position with its hands on its knees and its face between them, so that each eye is near each thumb, and its nose is between its knees. Bartholinus agrees with this view. Columbus believes that the shape of the fetus in the womb is round, with the right arm bent, fingers under the ear and around the neck, the head lowered so that the chin touches the chest, the left arm bent over both the chest and face, supported by the right elbow; the legs are raised, with the right leg lifted enough that the thigh touches the abdomen, the knee touches the navel, the heel resting on the left buttock, and the foot turned back to cover the private parts; the left thigh also touches the abdomen, and the leg is raised to the chest.


CHAPTER III

The reason why children are like their parents; and that the Mother's imagination contributes thereto; and whether the man or the woman is the cause of the male or female child.

The reason why kids resemble their parents; how the mother's imagination plays a role in this; and whether it’s the man or the woman who determines if the child is male or female.


In the case of similitude, nothing is more powerful than the imagination of the mother; for if she fix her eyes upon any object it will so impress her mind, that it oftentimes so happens that the child has a representation thereof on some part of the body. And, if in act of copulation, the woman earnestly look on the man, and fix her mind on him, the child will resemble its father. Nay, if a woman, even in unlawful copulation, fix her mind upon her husband, the child will resemble him though he did not beget it. The same effect has imagination in occasioning warts, stains, mole-spots, and dartes; though indeed they sometimes happen through frights, or extravagant longing. Many women, in being with child, on seeing a hare cross the road in front of them, will, through the force of imagination, bring forth a child with a hairy lip. Some children are born with flat noses and wry mouths, great blubber lips and ill-shaped bodies; which must be ascribed to the imagination of the mother, who has cast her eyes and mind upon some ill-shaped creature. Therefore it behoves all women with child, if possible, to avoid such sights, or at least, not to regard them. But though the mother's imagination may contribute much to the features of the child, yet, in manners, wit, and propension of the mind, experience tells us, that children are commonly of the condition with their parents, and possessed of similar tempers. But the vigour or disability of persons in the act of copulation many times cause it to be otherwise; for children begotten through the heat and strength of desire, must needs partake more of the nature and inclination of their parents, than those begotten at a time when desires are weaker; and, therefore, the children begotten by men in their old age are generally weaker than, those begotten by them in their youth. As to the share which each of the parents has in begetting the child, we will give the opinions of the ancients about it.

In terms of similarity, nothing is more powerful than a mother's imagination; if she focuses on an object, it can leave such a strong impression on her mind that often the child will have some representation of it on their body. Also, if during intercourse a woman intensely gazes at the man and concentrates on him, the child will take after its father. Moreover, if a woman, even in an illegitimate relationship, fixates on her husband, the child will resemble him even if he is not the biological father. The imagination can also cause warts, blemishes, birthmarks, and scars, although these can occasionally arise from fright or unusual cravings. Many pregnant women, upon seeing a hare cross their path, might, due to the power of their imagination, give birth to a child with a hairy lip. Some children are born with flat noses and crooked mouths, thick lips, and poorly shaped bodies; this can be attributed to the mother's imagination focusing on an oddly shaped creature. Therefore, it’s best for all pregnant women to avoid such sights whenever possible, or at least not to dwell on them. However, while a mother's imagination may influence the child's appearance, experience shows that children often share traits in behavior, intelligence, and inclinations with their parents. But the vitality or lack thereof in individuals during intercourse can alter this; children conceived during moments of strong desire are likely to inherit more of their parents’ nature and inclinations than those conceived when desires are weaker. Therefore, children conceived by older men are typically weaker than those conceived when they are younger. Regarding the contributions of each parent in creating a child, we will share the views of the ancients on this matter.

Though it is apparent that the man's seed is the chief efficient being of the action, motion, and generation: yet that the woman affords seed and effectually contributes in that point to the procreation of the child, is evinced by strong reasons. In the first place, seminary vessels had been given her in vain, and genital testicles inverted, if the woman wanted seminal excrescence, for nature does nothing in vain; and therefore we must grant, they were made for the use of seed and procreation, and placed in their proper parts; both the testicles and the receptacles of seed, whose nature is to operate and afford virtue to the seed. And to prove this, there needs no stronger argument, say they, than that if a woman do not use copulation to eject her seed, she often falls into strange diseases, as appears by young men and virgins. A second reason they urge is, that although the society of a lawful bed consists not altogether in these things, yet it is apparent the female sex are never better pleased, nor appear more blythe and jocund, than when they are satisfied this way; which is an inducement to believe they have more pleasure and titulation therein than men. For since nature causes much delight to accompany ejection, by the breaking forth of the swelling spirits and the swiftness of the nerves; in which case the operation on the woman's part is double, she having an enjoyment both by reception and ejection, by which she is more delighted in.

Though it's clear that a man's sperm is the primary force behind action, movement, and reproduction, strong reasons show that a woman also provides an essential contribution to creating a child. First, it would be pointless for her to have reproductive organs and internal structures if she didn't need to release her own fluids, since nature doesn’t do anything unnecessarily. Therefore, we should acknowledge that these organs were designed for reproduction and located appropriately; both the ovaries and the storage areas for sperm are meant to function and enhance the reproductive process. To support this, some argue that if a woman doesn’t engage in intercourse to release her fluids, she often suffers from various health issues, as seen in young men and virgins. A second argument they present is that although a lawful marriage encompasses more than just these functions, it’s clear that women are never happier or appear more joyful than when they find satisfaction this way, which suggests they may experience greater pleasure and stimulation than men do. Since nature tends to associate great pleasure with release, through a buildup of energy and rapid nerve responses, in this situation, a woman experiences dual pleasure, as she enjoys both receiving and releasing, which increases her enjoyment.

Hence it is, they say, that the child more frequently resembles the mother than the father, because the mother contributes more towards it. And they think it may be further instanced, from the endeared affection they bear them; for that, besides their contributing seminal matters, they feed and nourish the child with the purest fountain of blood, until its birth. Which opinion Galen affirms, by allowing children to participate most of the mother; and ascribes the difference of sex to the different operations of the menstrual blood; but this reason of the likeness he refers to the power of the seed; for, as the plants receive more nourishment from fruitful ground, than from the industry of the husbandman, so the infant receives more abundance from the mother than the father. For the seed of both is cherished in the womb, and then grows to perfection, being nourished with blood. And for this reason it is, they say, that children, for the most part, love their mothers best, because they receive the most of their substance from their mother; for about nine months she nourishes her child in the womb with the purest blood; then her love towards it newly born, and its likeness, do clearly show that the woman affords seed, and contributes more towards making the child than the man.

They say this is why children often resemble their mothers more than their fathers: because mothers contribute more to their development. They believe this can also be seen in the deep affection children have for their mothers; in addition to providing essential genetic material, mothers nourish the child with their own pure blood until birth. Galen supports this view by stating that children mostly inherit from their mothers and attributes the difference in gender to the distinct qualities of menstrual blood. However, he links similarity in appearance to the strength of the genetic contribution, suggesting that just as plants thrive more in fertile soil than through a farmer's efforts, infants gain more nourishment from their mothers than their fathers. Both parents' genetic material is nurtured in the womb, where it grows into a fully developed being, sustained by blood. This is why, they argue, children generally favor their mothers; they receive the bulk of their sustenance from them. For about nine months, a mother feeds her child in the womb with the finest blood, and her loving bond with the newborn, alongside its resemblance to her, clearly indicates that women provide the genetic material and contribute more to the child's formation than men do.

But in this all the ancients were very erroneous; for the testicles, so called in women, afford not only seed, but are two eggs, like those of fowls and other creatures; neither have they any office like those of men, but are indeed the ovaria, wherein the eggs are nourished by the sanguinary vessels disposed throughout them; and from thence one or more as they are fecundated by the man's seed is separated and conveyed into the womb by the ovaducts. The truth of this is plain, for if you boil them the liquor will be of the same colour, taste and consistency, with the taste of birds' eggs. If any object that they have no shells, that signifies nothing: for the eggs of fowls while they are on the ovary, nay, after they are fastened into the uterus, have no shell. And though when they are laid, they have one, yet that is no more than a defence with which nature has provided them against any outward injury, while they are hatched without the body; whereas those of women being hatched within the body, need no other fence than the womb, by which they are sufficiently secured. And this is enough, I hope, for the clearing of this point.

But in this, all the ancients were very mistaken; because the testicles, referred to in women, not only produce seed, but are actually two ovaries, like those of birds and other animals; they do not serve the same purpose as they do in men, but are indeed the ovaries where the eggs are nourished by blood vessels throughout them; and from there, one or more eggs, once fertilized by the man's seed, are separated and transported into the womb through the fallopian tubes. This is clear, because if you boil them, the liquid will have the same color, taste, and consistency as bird eggs. If anyone argues that they have no shells, that doesn't matter; because the eggs of birds, while they are still in the ovary, and even after they are attached to the uterus, have no shell. And although when they are laid, they do have one, it serves simply as a protective barrier provided by nature against any external harm while they develop outside of the body; while those of women, developing inside the body, only need the protection of the womb, which secures them adequately. And I believe this is sufficient to clarify this point.

As for the third thing proposed, as whence grow the kind, and whether the man or the woman is the cause of the male or female infant—the primary cause we must ascribe to God as is most justly His due, who is the Ruler and Disposer of all things; yet He suffers many things to proceed according to the rules of nature by their inbred motion, according to usual and natural courses, without variation; though indeed by favour from on high, Sarah conceived Isaac; Hannah, Samuel; and Elizabeth, John the Baptist; but these were all extraordinary things, brought to pass by a Divine power, above the course of nature. Nor have such instances been wanting in later days; therefore, I shall wave them, and proceed to speak of things natural.

As for the third point suggested, regarding how different kinds come to be, and whether it's the man or the woman who determines whether the baby is male or female—the ultimate cause must be credited to God, as is rightfully His due, who governs and manages all things; yet He allows many events to unfold according to the laws of nature through their inherent movements, following ordinary and natural processes without deviation. However, through divine intervention, Sarah bore Isaac; Hannah had Samuel; and Elizabeth gave birth to John the Baptist; these were all extraordinary occurrences, achieved by a divine power that surpassed the natural order. Such examples have also occurred in more recent times; therefore, I will set those aside and move on to discuss natural matters.

The ancient physicians and philosophers say that since these two principles out of which the body of man is made, and which renders the child like the parents, and by one or other of the sex, viz., seed common to both sexes and menstrual blood, proper to the woman only; the similitude, say they, must needs consist in the force of virtue of the male or female, so that it proves like the one or the other, according to the quantity afforded by either, but that the difference of sex is not referred to the seed, but to the menstrual blood, which is proper to the woman, is apparent; for, were that force altogether retained in the seed, the male seed being of the hottest quality, male children would abound and few of the female be propagated; wherefore, the sex is attributed to the temperament or to the active qualities, which consists in heat and cold and the nature of the matter under them—that is, the flowing of the menstruous blood. But now, the seed, say they, affords both force to procreate and to form the child, as well as matter for its generation; and in the menstruous blood there is both matter and force, for as the seed most helps the maternal principle, so also does the menstrual blood the potential seed, which is, says Galen, blood well concocted by the vessels which contain it. So that the blood is not only the matter of generating the child, but also seed, it being impossible that menstrual blood has both principles.

The ancient doctors and thinkers say that since these two elements make up the human body and determine how children resemble their parents, involving the reproductive material shared by both sexes and menstrual blood, which is unique to women; they argue that resemblance must come from the strength of the male or female influence, making the child take after one or the other based on how much influence each contributes. However, the difference in sex does not stem from the seed but rather from the menstrual blood exclusive to women. If all the influence were solely in the seed, since the male seed is the hottest, there would be many male children and few females. Thus, sex is linked to temperament or the active qualities related to heat and cold, along with the nature of the matter involved—specifically, the flow of menstrual blood. They also argue that the seed provides both the power to create and the material needed for forming the child, while menstrual blood contains both material and force. Just as the seed supports the maternal aspect, the menstrual blood supports the potential seed, which, according to Galen, is well-processed blood from the vessels that hold it. Therefore, blood serves not only as the matter for generating a child but also embodies seed, making it impossible for menstrual blood to have both principles.

The ancients also say that the seed is the stronger efficient, the matter of it being very little in quantity, but the potential quality of it is very strong; wherefore, if these principles of generation, according to which the sex is made were only, say they, in the menstrual blood, then would the children be all mostly females; as were the efficient force in the seed they would be all males; but since both have operation in menstrual blood, matter predominates in quantity and in the seed force and virtue. And, therefore, Galen thinks that the child receives its sex rather from the mother than the father, for though his seed contributes a little to the natural principle, yet it is more weakly. But for likeliness it is referred rather to the father than to the mother. Yet the woman's seed receiving strength from the menstrual blood for the space of nine months, overpowers the man's in that particular, for the menstrual blood rather cherishes the one than the other; from which it is plain the woman affords both matter to make and force and virtue to perfect the conception; though the female's be fit nutriment for the male's by reason of the thinness of it, being more adapted to make up conception thereby. For as of soft wax or moist clay, the artificer can frame what he intends, so, say they, the man's seed mixing with the woman's and also with the menstrual blood, helps to make the form and perfect part of man.

The ancients also say that the seed is the stronger force, even though it exists in very small quantities; its potential quality is quite powerful. They argue that if the principles of generation, which determine sex, were only present in menstrual blood, then most children would be female. Conversely, if the efficient force were solely in the seed, all children would be male. However, since both factors operate in menstrual blood, quantity is dominated by matter, while the seed brings force and virtue. Therefore, Galen believes that the child inherits its sex more from the mother than the father, because although the father's seed contributes to the natural principle, it is weaker. For resemblance, it is attributed more to the father than to the mother. Nevertheless, the woman's seed, which gains strength from menstrual blood over nine months, overpowers the man's in this respect, as the menstrual blood better nurtures one than the other. This makes it clear that the woman provides both the matter for creation and the force and virtue to complete conception. Moreover, the female's seed is more suitable for nourishing the male's due to its thinness, making it better for conception. Just as an artist can shape soft wax or moist clay into their desired form, they say the man's seed combines with the woman's and the menstrual blood to help create and perfect the form of a man.

But, with all imaginary deference to the wisdom of our fathers, give me leave to say that their ignorance of the anatomy of man's body have led them into the paths of error and ran them into great mistakes. For their hypothesis of the formation of the embryo from commixture of blood being wholly false, their opinion in this case must of necessity be likewise. I shall therefore conclude this chapter by observing that although a strong imagination of the mother may often determine the sex, yet the main agent in this case is the plastic or formative principle, according to those rules and laws given us by the great Creator, who makes and fashions it, and therein determines the sex, according to the council of his will.

But, with all due respect to the wisdom of our ancestors, let me say that their lack of understanding about the human body's anatomy has led them into mistakes and serious errors. Since their belief that the embryo forms from a mixture of blood is completely false, their views on this topic must also be incorrect. Therefore, I will wrap up this chapter by noting that while a mother's strong imagination can sometimes influence the sex of the child, the primary factor in this matter is the plastic or formative principle, following the rules and laws established by the Creator, who shapes and forms it, and in doing so determines the sex according to His will.


CHAPTER IV

That Man's Soul is not propagated by their parents, but is infused by its Creator, and can neither die nor corrupt. At what time it is infused. Of its immortality and certainty of its resurrection.

That a person's soul is not passed down from their parents, but is given by its Creator, and cannot die or decay. When it is given. About its immortality and the certainty of its resurrection.


Man's soul is of so divine a nature and excellency that man himself cannot comprehend it, being the infused breath of the Almighty, of an immortal nature, and not to be comprehended but by Him that gave it. For Moses, relating the history of man, tells us that "God breathed into his nostrils the breath of life, and he became a living soul." Now, as for all other creatures, at His word they were made and had life, but the creature that God had set over His works was His peculiar workmanship, formed by Him out of the dust of the earth, and He condescended to breathe into his nostrils the breath of life, which seems to denote both care and, if we may so term it, labour, used about man more than about all other living creatures, he only partaking and participating of the blessed divine nature, bearing God's image in innocence and purity, whilst he stood firm; and when, by his fall, that lively image was defaced, yet such was the love of the Creator towards him that he found out a way to restore him, the only begotten son of the Eternal Father coming into the world to destroy the works of the devil, and to raise up man from that low condition to which sin and his fall had reduced him, to a state above that of the angels.

Man's soul is so divine in nature and excellence that humanity itself cannot fully understand it, being the breathed spirit of the Almighty, immortal, and only comprehensible by the One who gave it. Moses recounts the story of humanity, stating that "God breathed into his nostrils the breath of life, and he became a living soul." Unlike all other creatures, which were created and given life with a word, the being that God placed over His creations was uniquely crafted by Him from the dust of the earth, and He chose to breathe into his nostrils the breath of life. This suggests a special care and effort expended on humanity more than on any other living beings, as humans are the only ones who share in the blessed divine nature, reflecting God's image in innocence and purity while standing firm. And even when that vibrant image was tarnished by his fall, the Creator's love for him was so profound that He found a way to restore him—His only begotten Son, the Eternal Father, came into the world to undo the works of the devil and elevate humanity from the low state to which sin and the fall had brought him, restoring him to a position above that of the angels.

If, therefore, man would understand the excellency of his soul, let him turn his eyes inwardly and look unto himself and search diligently his own mind, and there he shall see many admirable gifts and excellent ornaments, that must needs fill him with wonder and amazement; as reason, understanding, freedom of will, memory, etc., that clearly show the soul to be descended from a heavenly original, and that therefore it is of infinite duration and not subject to annihilation.

If a person wants to understand the greatness of their soul, they should look within themselves and carefully examine their own mind. There, they'll discover many amazing gifts and qualities that will surely fill them with wonder, such as reason, understanding, free will, memory, and more. These traits clearly indicate that the soul has a divine origin, suggesting it is everlasting and not capable of being destroyed.

Yet for its many operations and offices while in the body it goes under several denominations: for when it enlivens the body it is called the soul; when it gives knowledge, the judgment of the mind; and when it recalls things past, the memory; when it discourses and discerns, reason; when it contemplates, the spirit; when it is the sensitive part, the senses. And these are the principal offices whereby the soul declares its powers and performs its actions. For being seated in the highest parts of the body it diffuses its force into every member. It is not propagated from the parents, nor mixed with gross matter, but the infused breath of God, immediately proceeding from Him; not passing from one to another as was the opinion of Pythagoras, who held a belief in transmigration of the soul; but that the soul is given to every infant by infusion, is the most received and orthodox opinion. And the learned do likewise agree that this is done when the infant is perfected in the womb, which happens about the twenty- fourth day after conception; especially for males, who are generally born at the end of nine months; but in females, who are not so soon formed and perfected, through defect of heat, until the fiftieth day. And though this day in either case cannot be truly set down, yet Hippocrates has given his opinion, that it is so when the child is formed and begins to move, when born in due season. In his book of the nature of infants, he says, if it be a male and be perfect on the thirtieth day, and move on the seventieth, he will be born in the seventh month; but if he be perfectly formed on the thirty-fifth day, he will move on the seventieth and will be born in the eighth month. Again, if he be perfectly formed on the forty-fifth day, he will move on the ninetieth and be born in the ninth month. Now from these paring of days and months, it plainly appears that the day of forming being doubled, makes up the day of moving, and the day, three times reckoned, makes up the day of birth. As thus, when thirty-five perfects the form, if you double it, makes seventy the day of motion; and three times seventy amounts to two hundred and ten days; while allowing thirty days to a month makes seven months, and so you must consider the rest. But as to a female the case is different; for it is longer perfecting in the womb, the mother ever going longer with a girl than with a boy, which makes the account differ; for a female formed in thirty days does not move until the seventieth day, and is born in the seventh month; when she is formed on the fortieth day, she does not move till the eightieth and is born in the eighth month; but, if she be perfectly formed on the forty-fifth day she moves on the ninetieth, and the child is born in the ninth month; but if she that is formed on the sixtieth day, moves on the one hundred and tenth day, she will be born in the tenth month. I treat the more largely of love that the reader may know that the reasonable soul is not propagated by the parents, but is infused by the Almighty, when the child has its perfect form, and is exactly distinguished in its lineaments.

Yet for its many functions and roles while in the body, it goes by several names: when it enlivens the body, it’s called the soul; when it provides knowledge, it’s the judgment of the mind; when it recalls the past, it’s the memory; when it reasons and discerns, it’s reason; when it contemplates, it’s the spirit; and when it’s the sensitive part, it’s the senses. These are the main functions through which the soul expresses its powers and carries out its actions. Being situated in the highest parts of the body, it spreads its influence throughout every member. It is not passed down from parents, nor mixed with physical matter, but is the breathed-in spirit of God, coming directly from Him; it doesn’t transfer from one person to another, as Pythagoras believed in the idea of soul transmigration; instead, the most accepted and orthodox belief is that the soul is given to each infant by infusion. Scholars also agree that this happens when the infant is fully developed in the womb, which occurs around the twenty-fourth day after conception, especially for males, who are typically born at the end of nine months; females generally take longer to form and develop, which is due to a lack of heat, until the fiftieth day. Although this day cannot be precisely determined in either case, Hippocrates suggested that it occurs when the child is formed and begins to move, born at the right time. In his book on the nature of infants, he states that if a male is fully formed on the thirtieth day and moves on the seventieth, he will be born in the seventh month; but if he is perfected on the thirty-fifth day, he will move on the seventieth and be born in the eighth month. Similarly, if he is perfectly formed on the forty-fifth day, he will move on the ninetieth and be born in the ninth month. Based on these connections of days and months, it’s clear that doubling the day of formation gives the day of movement, and multiplying by three gives the day of birth. For instance, when thirty-five completes the form, doubling it gives seventy, the day of movement; and three times seventy amounts to two hundred and ten days; assuming thirty days per month, that totals to seven months, and you figure out the rest. In the case of females, it’s different; it takes longer for them to perfect in the womb, as mothers generally carry girls longer than boys, which affects the calculation. A female formed in thirty days doesn’t move until the seventieth day and is born in the seventh month; if formed on the fortieth day, she doesn’t move until the eightieth and is born in the eighth month; but if she is perfectly formed on the forty-fifth day, she will move on the ninetieth and the child will be born in the ninth month; if formed on the sixtieth day, moving on the one hundred and tenth day, she will be born in the tenth month. I discuss love in detail so that the reader understands that the reasonable soul is not passed down from parents, but is infused by the Almighty when the child has its perfect form and is clearly defined in its features.

Now, as the life of every other creature, as Moses shows, is in the blood, so the life of man consists in the soul, which although subject to passion, by reason of the gross composures of the body, in which it has a temporary confinement, yet it is immortal and cannot in itself corrupt or suffer change, it being a spark of the Divine Mind. And that every man has a peculiar soul plainly appears by the vast difference between the will, judgment, opinions, manners, and affections in men. This David observes when he says: "God hath fashioned the hearts and minds of men, and has given to every one his own being and a soul of its own nature." Hence Solomon rejoiced that God had given him a soul, and a body agreeable to it. It has been disputed among the learned in what part of the body the soul resides; some are of opinion its residence is in the middle of the heart, and from thence communicates itself to every part, which Solomon (Prov. iv. 23) seems to confirm when he says: "Keep thy heart with all diligence, for out of it are the issues of life." But many curious physicians, searching the works of nature in man's anatomy, do affirm that its chief seat is in the brain, from whence proceed the senses, the faculties, and actions, diffusing the operations of the soul through all parts of the body, whereby it is enlivened with heat and force to the heart, by the arteries, corodities, or sleepy arteries, which part upon the throat; which, if they happen to be broken or cut, they cause barrenness, and if stopped an apoplexy; for there must necessarily be ways through which the spirits, animal and vital, may have intercourse and convey native heat from the soul. For though the soul has its chief seat in one place, it operates in every part, exercising every member which are the soul's instruments, by which she discovers her power. But if it happen that any of the original parts are out of tune, its whole work is confused, as appears in idiots and mad men; though, in some of them, the soul, by a vigorous exertion of its power, recovers its innate strength and they become right after a long despondency in mind, but in others it is not recovered again in this life. For, as fire under ashes, or the sun obscured from our sight by thick clouds, afford not their native lustre, so the soul, overwhelmed in moist or morbid matter, is darkened and reason thereby overclouded; and though reason shines less in children than it does in such as are arrived at maturity, yet no man must imagine that the soul of an infant grows up with the child, for then would it again decay; but it suits itself to nature's weakness, and the imbecility of the body wherein it is placed, that it may operate the better. And as the body is more capable of recovering its influence, so the soul does more and more exert its faculties, having force and endowment at the time it enters the form of a child in the womb; for its substance can receive nothing less. And thus much to prove that the soul does not come from the parents, but is infused by God. I shall next prove its immortality and demonstrate the certainty of our resurrection.

Now, just as the life of every other creature, as Moses shows, is in the blood, the life of a person consists of the soul, which, although it is influenced by emotions because of the physical body it temporarily inhabits, is still immortal and cannot corrupt or change. It is a spark of the Divine Mind. The fact that each person has their own unique soul is evident in the vast differences in will, judgment, opinions, behavior, and feelings among people. David notes this when he says: "God has shaped the hearts and minds of people and has given each one their own being and a unique soul." That’s why Solomon celebrated that God gave him a soul and a body that matched it. Scholars have debated where in the body the soul is located; some believe it resides in the middle of the heart and communicates with every part from there, which Solomon seems to support when he says: "Guard your heart with all diligence, for from it flow the springs of life." However, many inquisitive physicians studying human anatomy argue that the primary seat of the soul is in the brain, from which the senses, faculties, and actions emanate, spreading the soul’s workings throughout the body. This enlivens the body with warmth and energy to the heart through the arteries, carotids, or jugular veins that branch out from the neck; if these are broken or severed, it results in infertility, and if they are blocked, a stroke occurs. There must be pathways through which the animal and vital spirits can interact and transmit life’s heat from the soul. While the soul's main seat is in one location, it operates in every part of the body, utilizing each member as instruments to demonstrate its power. If any of the essential parts become disordered, the entire function becomes chaotic, as seen in individuals with cognitive impairments; although some manage to recover their innate strength and regain their right mind after a long period of distress, others do not recover in this life. Just as fire beneath ashes or the sun obscured by thick clouds does not show its true brightness, the soul, when overwhelmed by damp or unhealthy matter, becomes dimmed and reason is clouded as a result. Even though reason is less prominent in children compared to adults, one should not assume that an infant's soul grows along with the child; that would mean it would eventually diminish. Instead, it adapts to the body’s frailties and weaknesses, allowing it to function more effectively. As the body becomes more capable of restoring its strength, the soul increasingly expresses its abilities, having power and gifts from the moment it enters a child's form in the womb; it cannot receive anything less. This supports the idea that the soul does not come from the parents, but is given by God. Next, I will prove its immortality and demonstrate the certainty of our resurrection.

OF THE IMMORTALITY OF THE SOUL

That the soul of man is a Divine ray, infused by the Sovereign Creator, I have already proved, and now come to show that whatever immediately proceeds from Him, and participates of His nature, must be as immortal as its original; for, though all other creatures are endowed with life and motion, they yet lack a reasonable soul, and from thence it is concluded that their life is in their blood, and that being corruptible they perish and are no more; but man being endowed with a reasonable soul and stamped with a Divine image, is of a different nature, and though his body is corruptible, yet his soul being of an immortal nature cannot perish; but at the dissolution of the body returns to God who gave it, either to receive reward or punishment. Now, that the body can sin of itself is impossible, because wanting the soul, which is the principle of life, it cannot act nor proceed to anything either good or evil; for could it do so, it might even sin in the grave. But it is plain that after death there is a cessation; for as death leaves us so judgment will find us.

That the human soul is a Divine spark given by the Supreme Creator, I have already demonstrated, and now I will show that anything that comes directly from Him and shares in His nature must be as eternal as its source; for while all other creatures have life and movement, they lack a rational soul, which leads to the conclusion that their life exists in their blood, and being perishable, they eventually die and cease to exist. However, since humans possess a rational soul and bear a Divine image, they are of a different nature. Although the body can decay, the soul, being immortal, cannot perish; instead, when the body dissolves, it returns to God who gave it, either to receive reward or punishment. It is impossible for the body to sin on its own because without the soul, which is the source of life, it cannot act or engage in good or evil; if it could, it might even commit sins in the grave. But it's clear that after death there is a pause; for as death leaves us, so judgment will find us.

Now, reason having evidently demonstrated the soul's immortality, the Holy Scriptures do abundantly give testimony of the truth of the resurrection, as the reader may see by perusing the 14th and 19th chapters of Job and 5th of John. I shall, therefore, leave the further discussion of this matter to divines, whose province it is, and return to treat of the works of nature.

Now that reason has clearly shown the soul's immortality, the Holy Scriptures provide ample evidence of the truth of the resurrection, as you can see by reading the 14th and 19th chapters of Job and the 5th chapter of John. Therefore, I will leave the further discussion of this matter to theologians, as it's their area of expertise, and return to discussing the works of nature.


CHAPTER V

Of Monsters and Monstrous Births; and the several reasons thereof, according to the opinions of the Ancients. Also, whether the Monsters are endowed with reasonable Souls; and whether the Devils can engender; is here briefly discussed.

Of Monsters and Monstrous Births; and the various reasons for them, based on the views of the Ancients. Additionally, whether the Monsters possess rational Souls; and if Devils can reproduce; is briefly discussed here.


By the ancients, monsters are ascribed to depraved conceptions, and are designated as being excursions of nature, which are vicious in one of these four ways: either in figure, magnitude, situation, or number.

By the ancients, monsters are seen as twisted ideas, and are described as unnatural occurrences that are flawed in one of these four ways: either in shape, size, location, or quantity.

In figure, when a man bears the character of a beast, as did the beast in Saxony. In magnitude, when one part does not equalise with another; as when one part is too big or too little for the other parts of the body. But this is so common among us that I need not produce a testimony.

In a way, when a man acts like a beast, as that beast did in Saxony. In size, when one part doesn’t match up with another; like when one part is too big or too small compared to the other parts of the body. But this happens so often among us that I don’t need to provide proof.

Monster at Ravenna

There was a Monster at Ravenna in Italy of this kind, in the year 1512.

There was a monster at Ravenna in Italy of this kind in the year 1512.

I now proceed to explain the cause of their generation, which is either divine or natural. The divine cause proceeds from God's permissive will, suffering parents to bring forth abominations for their filthy and corrupt affections, which are let loose unto wickedness like brute beasts which have no understanding. Wherefore it was enacted among the ancient Romans that those who were in any way deformed, should not be admitted into religious houses. And St. Jerome was grieved in his time to see the lame and the deformed offering up spiritual sacrifices to God in religious houses. And Keckerman, by way of inference, excludes all that are ill-shapen from this presbyterian function in the church. And that which is of more force than all, God himself commanded Moses not to receive such to offer sacrifice among his people; and he also renders the reason Leviticus, xxii. 28, "Lest he pollute my sanctuaries." Because of the outward deformity, the body is often a sign of the pollution of the heart, as a curse laid on the child for the incontinency of its parents. Yet it is not always so. Let us therefore duly examine and search out the natural cause of their generation, which (according to the ancients who have dived into the secrets of nature) is either in the mother or in the agent, in the seed, or in the womb.

I will now explain the reasons for their existence, which can be either divine or natural. The divine reason comes from God's permissive will, allowing parents to give birth to abnormalities due to their filthy and corrupt desires, which run wild like animals with no understanding. As a result, the ancient Romans decided that those who were deformed in any way should not be admitted into religious institutions. St. Jerome was saddened in his time to see the lame and deformed offering spiritual sacrifices to God in religious settings. Additionally, Keckerman suggests that those who are ill-shaped should be excluded from this presbyterian role in the church. More importantly, God commanded Moses not to allow such individuals to offer sacrifices among his people, explaining the reason in Leviticus 22:28, "Lest he pollute my sanctuaries." Because of physical deformities, the body is often seen as a sign of inner corruption, a curse passed down because of the irresponsibility of the parents. However, that’s not always the case. Therefore, let us carefully examine and investigate the natural reasons for their existence, which (according to the ancients who have explored the secrets of nature) can originate from the mother, the agent, the seed, or the womb.

The matter may be in default two ways—by defect or by excess: by defect, when the child has only one arm; by excess, when it has four hands or two heads. Some monsters are begotten by a woman's unnatural lying with beasts; as in the year 1603, there was a monster begotten by a woman's generating with a dog; which from the navel upwards had the perfect resemblance of its mother: but from its navel downwards it resembled a dog.

The issue can arise in two ways—by deficiency or by excess: by deficiency, when a child has only one arm; by excess, when it has four hands or two heads. Some monsters are born from a woman’s unnatural relations with animals; for instance, in 1603, there was a monster born from a woman mating with a dog; it had a perfect resemblance to its mother from the waist up, but from the waist down, it looked like a dog.

The agent or womb may be in fault three ways; firstly, the formative faculty, which may be too strong or too weak, by which is procured a depraved figure; secondly, to the instrument or place of conception, the evil confirmation or the disposition whereof will cause a monstrous birth; thirdly, in the imaginative power at the time of conception; which is of such a force that it stamps the character of the thing imagined on the child. Thus the children of an adulteress may be like her husband, though begotten by another man, which is caused through the force of imagination that the woman has of her own husband at the act of coition. And I have heard of a woman, who, at the time of conception, beholding the picture of a blackamoor, conceived and brought forth an Ethiopian. I will not trouble you with more human testimonies, but conclude with a stronger warrant. We read (Gen. xxx. 31) how Jacob having agreed with Laban to have all the spotted sheep for keeping his flock to augment his wages, took hazel rods and peeled white streaks on them, and laid them before the sheep when they came to drink, which coupling together there, whilst they beheld the rods, conceived and brought forth young.

The agent or womb can be at fault in three ways: firstly, through the formative ability, which can be either too strong or too weak, resulting in an abnormal figure; secondly, regarding the instrument or place of conception, where a poor condition or disposition can lead to a monstrous birth; thirdly, in the imaginative power at the time of conception, which is so potent that it impresses the characteristics of what is imagined onto the child. Thus, the children of an adulteress may resemble her husband, even though they’re conceived by another man, due to the strong imagination the woman has of her husband during intercourse. I’ve heard of a woman who, while conceiving, looked at a picture of a black person and ended up giving birth to an Ethiopian. I won’t burden you with more human examples, but I’ll conclude with a stronger reference. We read in Genesis 30:31 how Jacob, having made a deal with Laban to have all the spotted sheep to increase his wages, took hazel branches, peeled white stripes on them, and placed them in front of the sheep when they came to drink. While mating there, and seeing the rods, they conceived and gave birth to young.

"Where children thus are born with hairy coats Heaven's wrath unto the kingdom it denotes"
"Where children thus are born with hairy coats
"Where children are born with hairy coats
Heaven's wrath unto the kingdom it denotes"
Heaven's anger towards the kingdom it signifies.

Another monster representing a hairy child. It was all covered with hair like a beast. That which made it more frightful was, that its navel was in the place where its nose should stand, and its eyes placed where the mouth should have been, and its mouth placed in the chin. It was of the male kind, and was born in France, in the year 1597, at a town called Arles in Provence, and lived a few days, frightening all that beheld it. It was looked upon as a forerunner of desolations which soon after happened to that kingdom, in which men to each other were more like brutes than human creatures.

Another monster that looked like a hairy child. It was completely covered in hair like a beast. What made it even more terrifying was that its navel was where its nose should be, its eyes were where its mouth should have been, and its mouth was located on its chin. It was male and was born in France in 1597, in a town called Arles in Provence, and lived only a few days, scaring everyone who saw it. It was seen as a sign of the devastation that soon came to that kingdom, where people treated each other more like animals than human beings.

There was a monster born at Nazara in the year 1530. It had four arms and four legs.

There was a monster born at Nazara in 1530. It had four arms and four legs.

The imagination also works on the child, after conception, of which we have a pregnant instance.

The imagination also affects the child after conception, which we have a clear example of.

A worthy gentlewoman in Suffolk, who being with child and passing by a butcher who was killing his meat, a drop of blood sprung on her face, whereupon she said her child would have a blemish on its face, and at the birth it was found marked with a red spot.

A respectable woman in Suffolk, who was pregnant and walking by a butcher as he was slaughtering his animals, got a drop of blood splattered on her face. She then said her baby would have a mark on its face, and when the baby was born, it had a red spot.

Likewise in the reign of Henry III, there was a woman delivered of a child having two heads and four arms, and the bodies were joined at the back; the heads were so placed that they looked contrary ways; each had two distinct arms and hands. They would both laugh, both speak, and both cry, and be hungry together; sometimes the one would speak and the other keep silence, and sometimes both speak together. They lived several years, but one outlived the other three years, carrying the dead one (for there was no parting them) till the survivor fainted with the burden, and more with the stench of the dead carcase.

Likewise, during the reign of Henry III, there was a woman who gave birth to a child with two heads and four arms, with the bodies connected at the back; the heads were positioned so they faced opposite directions. Each head had two separate arms and hands. They would both laugh, both speak, and both cry, and feel hunger together; sometimes one would talk while the other stayed silent, and sometimes they would both speak at the same time. They lived for several years, but one survived three years longer than the other, carrying the deceased sibling (since they couldn't be separated) until the survivor fainted from the burden and even more from the smell of the dead body.

It is certain that monstrous births often happen by means of undue copulation; for some there are, who, having been long absent from one another, and having an eager desire for enjoyment, consider not as they ought, to do as their circumstances demand. And if it happen that they come together when the woman's menses are flowing, and notwithstanding, proceed to the act of copulation, which is both unclean and unnatural, the issue of such copulation does often prove monstrous, as a just punishment for doing what nature forbids. And, therefore, though men should be ever so eager for it, yet women, knowing their own condition, should at such times positively refuse their company. And though such copulations do not always produce monstrous birth, yet the children, thus begotten, are generally heavy, dull, and sluggish, besides defective in their understandings, lacking the vivacity and loveliness with which children begotten in proper season are endowed.

It’s clear that abnormal births often happen because of inappropriate sexual activity; some people, after being apart for a long time and feeling a strong desire for intimacy, may not consider what their situation requires. If they come together while the woman is on her period and still engage in sexual activity, which is both unclean and unnatural, the result of such encounters often tends to be abnormal, as a fitting consequence for defying nature. Therefore, even if men are very eager, women should firmly refuse their company during such times, knowing their own situation. While these encounters don’t always result in abnormal births, the children conceived in this way are generally heavy, dull, and sluggish, and they often have impaired understanding, lacking the liveliness and charm that children conceived at the right time possess.

In Flanders, between Antwerp and Mechlin, in a village called Uthaton, a child was born which had two heads, four arms, seeming like two girls joined together, having two of their arms lifted up between and above their heads, the thighs being placed as it were across one another, according to the figure on p. 39. How long they lived I had no account of.

In Flanders, between Antwerp and Mechlin, in a village called Uthaton, a child was born with two heads and four arms, resembling two girls joined together. They had two of their arms raised up between and above their heads, with their thighs positioned as if crossed over one another, according to the figure on p. 39. I have no information on how long they lived.

By the figure on p. 40 you may see that though some of the members are wanting, yet they are supplied by other members.

By the figure on p. 40, you can see that although some of the members are missing, they are compensated by other members.

It remains now that I make some inquiry whether those that are born monsters have reasonable souls, and are capable of resurrection. And here both divines and physicians are of opinion that those who, according to the order of generations deduced from our first parents, proceed by mutual means from either sex, though their outward shape be deformed and monstrous, have notwithstanding a reasonable soul, and consequently their bodies are capable of resurrection, as other men's and women's are; but those monsters that are not begotten by men, but are the product of women's unnatural lusts in copulating with other creatures shall perish as the brute beasts by whom they were begotten, not having a reasonable soul nor any breath of the Almighty infused into them; and such can never be capable of resurrection. And the same is also true of imperfect and abortive births.

It’s time for me to look into whether those born as monsters have rational souls and can be resurrected. Both theologians and medical professionals agree that those who, according to the order of generations tracing back to our first parents, are conceived through the usual means from both sexes, even if their appearance is deformed and monstrous, still have a rational soul. Consequently, their bodies can be resurrected like those of other men and women. However, monsters that aren't conceived by men but arise from women's unnatural desires through mating with other creatures will perish like the brute animals they come from. They lack a rational soul and any breath of the Almighty infused into them, meaning they will never be able to be resurrected. This also applies to incomplete and miscarried births.

Some are of opinion that monsters may be engendered by some infernal spirit. Of this mind was Adigus Fariur, speaking of a deformed monster born at Craconia; and Hieronimus Cardamnus wrote of a maid that was got with child by the devil, she thinking it had been a fair young man. The like also is recorded by Vicentius, of the prophet Merlin, that he was begotten by an evil spirit. But what a repugnance it would be both to religion and nature, if the devils could beget men; when we are taught to believe that not any was ever begotten without human seed, except the Son of God. The devil then being a spirit and having no corporeal substance, has therefore no seed of generation; to say that he can use the act of generation effectually is to affirm that he can make something out of nothing, and consequently to affirm the devil to be God, for creation belongs to God only. Again, if the devil could assume to himself a human body and enliven the faculties of it, and cause it to generate, as some affirm he can, yet this body must bear the image of the devil. And it borders on blasphemy to think that God should so far give leave to the devil as out of God's image to raise his own diabolical offspring. In the school of Nature we are taught the contrary, viz., that like begets like; therefore, of a devil cannot man be born. Yet, it is not denied, but the devils, transforming themselves into human shapes, may abuse both men and women, and, with wicked people, use carnal copulation; but that any unnatural conjunction can bring forth a human creature is contrary to nature and all religion.

Some people believe that monsters can be created by some evil spirit. Adigus Fariur shared this view when talking about a deformed monster born in Craconia; and Hieronimus Cardamnus wrote about a young woman who became pregnant by the devil, thinking he was a charming young man. Similar accounts are mentioned by Vicentius, regarding the prophet Merlin, who was said to be born from an evil spirit. However, it would be deeply contradictory to both faith and nature if devils could father humans, especially since we are taught to believe that none were ever conceived without human seed, except for the Son of God. The devil, being a spirit and lacking physical substance, therefore has no reproductive seed; claiming he can effectively engage in reproduction implies that he can create something from nothing, which would mean acknowledging the devil as God, as creation belongs solely to Him. Furthermore, even if the devil could take on a human body and animate its faculties to generate offspring, as some claim he can, that body would still reflect the devil's image. It borders on blasphemy to think that God would allow the devil to create his own diabolical offspring from God's image. Nature teaches us the opposite: that like begets like; hence, a devil cannot produce a human. Yet, it is acknowledged that devils can transform themselves into human forms to seduce both men and women, and engage in sexual acts with wicked individuals; however, the idea that any unnatural union could produce a human being contradicts nature and all religious beliefs.


CHAPTER VI

Of the happy state of matrimony, as it is appointed by God, the true felicity that rebounds thereby to either sex; and to what end it is ordained.

About the joyful situation of marriage, as it is designed by God, the genuine happiness that comes from it for both men and women; and the purpose for which it is intended.


Without doubt the uniting of hearts in holy wedlock is of all conditions the happiest; for then a man has a second self to whom he can reveal his thoughts, as well as a sweet companion in his labours, toils, trials, and difficulties. He has one in whose breast, as in a safe cabinet, he can confide his inmost secrets, especially where reciprocal love and inviolable faith is centred; for there no care, fear, jealousy, mistrust or hatred can ever interpose. For base is the man that hateth his own flesh! And truly a wife, if rightly considered, as Adam well observed, is or

Without a doubt, coming together in marriage is the happiest condition of all; a man gains a second self to whom he can share his thoughts, as well as a sweet companion in his work, struggles, trials, and challenges. He has someone in whose heart, like a secure vault, he can trust with his deepest secrets, especially where mutual love and unwavering faith reside; here, no worries, fears, jealousy, distrust, or hatred can ever come between them. It's shameful for a man to hate his own flesh! And truly, a wife, when viewed rightly, as Adam well observed, is or

"I take not that to be my dowry, which
"I don't consider that to be my dowry, which
The vulgar sort do wealth and honour call;
The rude people refer to wealth and honor as important;
That all my wishes terminate in this:——
That all my wishes end with this:——
I'll obey my husband and be chaste withall;
I will obey my husband and remain chaste as well;
To have God's fear, and beauty in my mind,
To have a sense of God's awe and beauty in my thoughts,
To do those good who are virtuously inclined."
"To do good for those who have virtuous inclinations."
ought to be esteemed of every honest man as "Bone of his bone and flesh of his flesh," etc. Nor was it the least care of the Almighty to ordain so near a union, and that for two causes; the first, for the increase of posterity; the second, to restrain man's wandering desires and affections; nay, that they might be yet happier, when God has joined them together, he "blessed them," as in Gen. ii. An ancient writer, contemplating this happy state, says, in the economy of Xenophon, "that the marriage bed is not only the most pleasant, but also profitable course of life, that may be entered on for the preservation and increase of posterity. Wherefore, since marriage is the most safe, and delightful situation of man he does in no ways provide amiss for his own tranquillity who enters into it, especially when he comes to maturity of years."


There are many abuses in marriage contrary to what is ordained, the which in the ensuing chapter I shall expose to view. But to proceed: Seeing our blessed Saviour and His holy apostles detested unlawful lusts, and pronounced those to be excluded the kingdom of heaven that polluted themselves with adultery and whoring, I cannot conceive what face people have to colour their impieties, who hating matrimony, make it their study how they may live licentiously: for, in so doing, they take in themselves torment, enmity, disquietude, rather than certain pleasure, not to mention the hazard of their immortal soul; and certain it is that mercenary love (or as the wise man called it harlot-smiles) cannot be true and sincere and therefore not pleasant, but rather a net laid to betray such as trust in them with all mischief, as Solomon observes of the young man void of understanding, who turned aside to the harlot's house, "as a bird to the snare of the fowler, or as an ox to the slaughter, till a dart was struck through his liver." Nor in this case can they have children, those endearing pledges of conjugal affection; or if they have, they will rather redound to their shame than comfort, bearing the odious brand of bastards. Harlots, likewise are like swallows, flying in the summer season of prosperity; but the black stormy weather of adversity coming, they take wing and fly into other regions—that is, seek other lovers; but a virtuous, chaste wife, fixing her entire love upon her husband, and submitting to him as her head and king, by whose directions she ought to steer in all lawful courses, will, like a faithful companion, share patiently with him in all adversities, run with cheerfulness through all difficulties and dangers, though ever so hazardous, to preserve and assist him, in poverty, sickness, or whatsoever misfortunes befall him, acting according to her duty in all things; but a proud, imperious harlot will do no more than she lists, in the sunshine of prosperity; and like a horse-leech, ever craving, and never satisfied; still seeming displeased, if all her extravagant cravings be not answered; not regarding the ruin and misery she brings on him by those means, though she seems to doat upon him, used to confirming her hypocrisy with crocodile tears, vows and swoonings, when her cully has to depart awhile, or seems but to deny immediate desires; yet this lasts no longer than she can gratify her appetite, and prey upon his fortune.

There are many problems in marriage that go against what is meant to be, and I will reveal them in the following chapter. But to continue: Since our blessed Savior and His holy apostles condemned unlawful desires and stated that those who engage in adultery and promiscuity will be excluded from the kingdom of heaven, I can’t understand how people can justify their wrongdoings. Those who dislike marriage often make it their goal to live recklessly; in doing so, they only invite torment, hostility, and unrest into their lives instead of real pleasure, not to mention the danger to their souls. It’s clear that mercenary love (or as the wise man called it, "harlot-smiles") cannot be genuine and sincere, and therefore not enjoyable, but rather a trap set to deceive those who trust these falsehoods, as Solomon pointed out about the foolish young man who strayed to the harlot’s house, “as a bird to the snare of the fowler, or as an ox to the slaughter, until a dart ran through his liver.” In this situation, they cannot have children, those cherished symbols of marital affection; or if they do, they are more likely to bring shame than comfort, carrying the stigma of being bastards. Harlots, like swallows, may thrive during prosperous times, but when adversity strikes, they take flight and seek out new lovers. On the other hand, a virtuous, chaste wife who gives her full love to her husband and submits to him as her head and guide, will, like a loyal partner, patiently endure all hardships, bravely face difficulties and dangers, no matter how risky, to support and help him through poverty, illness, or any misfortune he encounters, fulfilling her duty in all things. In contrast, a proud, domineering harlot will only do what she wants during good times and, like a leech, will always crave more and never be satisfied, appearing displeased if her extravagant demands are not met, disregarding the destruction and misery she causes him, even while pretending to care for him. She will reinforce her deception with fake tears, vows, and fainting fits whenever her victim has to leave or denies her immediate wants; however, this facade lasts only as long as she can satisfy her desires and feed off his fortune.

Now, on the contrary, a loving, chaste and even-tempered wife, seeks what she may to prevent such dangers, and in every condition does all she can to make him easy. And, in a word, as there is no content in the embraces of a harlot, so there is no greater joy in the reciprocal affection and endearing embraces of a loving, obedient, and chaste wife. Nor is that the principal end for which matrimony was ordained, but that the man might follow the law of his creation by increasing his kind and replenishing the earth; for this was the injunction laid upon him in Paradise, before his fall. To conclude, a virtuous wife is a crown and ornament to her husband, and her price is above all rubies: but the ways of a harlot are deceitful.

Now, on the other hand, a loving, faithful, and calm wife seeks to avoid any dangers and does everything she can to make her husband comfortable in every situation. In short, just as there's no satisfaction in the arms of a prostitute, there's no greater joy than the mutual love and affectionate embraces of a devoted, obedient, and faithful wife. Moreover, that’s not the primary purpose of marriage; instead, it was meant for the man to fulfill the command of his creation by having children and populating the earth, as instructed in Paradise before the fall. In conclusion, a virtuous wife is a crown and ornament to her husband, and her value is greater than all jewels; but the paths of a prostitute are deceitful.


CHAPTER VII

Of Errors in Marriages; Why they are, and the Injuries caused by them.

Of Errors in Marriages; Why They Happen, and the Harm They Cause.


By errors in marriage, I mean the unfitness of the persons marrying to enter into this state, and that both with respect to age and the constitution of their bodies; and, therefore, those who design to enter into that condition ought to observe their ability and not run themselves into inconveniences; for those that marry too young may be said to marry unseasonably, not considering their inability, nor examining the forces of nature; for some, before they are ripe for the consummation of so weighty a matter, who either rashly, of their own accord, or by the instigation of procurers or marriage-brokers, or else forced thereto by their parents who covet a large dower take upon them this yoke to their prejudice; by which some, before the expiration of a year, have been so enfeebled, that all their vital moisture has been exhausted; which had not been restored again without great trouble and the use of medicines. Therefore, my advice is: that it is not convenient to suffer children, or such as are not of age, to marry, or get children.

By errors in marriage, I mean the unfitness of the individuals getting married to enter into this relationship, considering both their age and physical constitution. Therefore, those who intend to marry should assess their readiness and avoid putting themselves in difficult situations. Marrying too young can be seen as marrying at the wrong time, as they may not recognize their own limitations or understand the natural consequences. Some, before they are truly ready for such an important commitment, may marry either impulsively, on their own initiative, influenced by matchmakers, or under pressure from parents seeking a large dowry. This can lead to negative consequences for them; indeed, some have become so weakened within a year that they've lost all their vital energy, which cannot be replenished easily and requires significant effort and medication. So, my advice is: it is not appropriate to allow children or those who are not of legal age to marry or have children.

He that proposes to marry, and wishes to enjoy happiness in that state, should choose a wife descended from honest and temperate parents, she being chaste, well bred, and of good manners. For if a woman has good qualities, she has portion enough. That of Alcmena, in Plautus, is much to the purpose, where he brings in a young woman speaking thus:—

He who intends to marry and wants to be happy in that life should choose a wife from honest and moderate parents, someone who is pure, well-raised, and has good manners. Because if a woman has good qualities, she has more than enough to offer. The example of Alcmena in Plautus is very relevant here, where he presents a young woman saying this:—

"I take not that to be my dowry, which
"I don't consider that to be my dowry, which
The vulgar sort do wealth and honour call;
The vulgar crowd refer to wealth and honor as important;
That all my wishes terminate in this:——
That all my wishes end here:——
I'll obey my husband and be chaste withall;
I will follow my husband’s guidance and remain chaste as well;
To have God's fear, and beauty in my mind,
To have a sense of God's awe and beauty in my thoughts,
To do those good who are virtuously inclined."
"To do good for those who have virtuous inclinations."

And I think she was in the right, for such a wife is more precious than rubies.

And I believe she was right because a wife like that is more valuable than rubies.

It is certainly the duty of parents to bring up their children in the ways of virtue, and to have regard to their honour and reputation; and especially to virgins, when grown to be marriageable. For, as has been noted, if through the too great severity of parents, they may be crossed in their love, many of them throw themselves into the unchaste arms of the first alluring tempter that comes in the way, being, through the softness and flexibility of their nature, and the strong desire they have after what nature strongly incites them to, easily induced to believe men's false vows of promised marriage, to cover their shame: and then too late, their parents repent of their severity which has brought an indelible stain upon their families.

It’s definitely the responsibility of parents to raise their children with strong values and to pay attention to their honor and reputation, especially when it comes to young women who are ready for marriage. As noted, if parents are too strict, their children might miss out on love and find themselves in the arms of the first charming person who comes along. Because of their natural sensitivity and strong desires, they can easily be convinced by false promises of marriage to hide their shame. By the time parents realize their harshness has led to a lasting stain on their family’s name, it’s often too late.

Another error in marriage is, the inequality of years in the parties married; such as for a young man, who, to advance his fortune, marries a woman old enough to be his grandmother: between whom, for the most part, strife, jealousies, and dissatisfaction are all the blessings which crown the genial bed, is being impossible for such to have any children. The like may be said, though with a little excuse, when an old doting widower marries a virgin in the prime of her youth and her vigour, who, while he vainly tries to please her, is thereby wedded to his grave. For, as in green youth, it is unfit and unseasonable to think of marriage, so to marry in old age is just the same; for they that enter upon it too soon are soon exhausted, and fall into consumptions and divers other diseases; and those who procrastinate and marry unseemingly, fall into the like troubles; on the other side having only this honour, if old men, they become young cuckolds, especially if their wives have not been trained up in the paths of virtue, and lie too much open to the importunity and temptation of lewd and debauched men. And thus much for the errors of rash and inconsiderate marriages.

Another mistake in marriage is the age difference between the partners. For example, a young man who marries a woman who could easily be his grandmother, often ends up with conflicts, jealousy, and dissatisfaction instead of happiness, especially since they are unlikely to have children. Similarly, when an old, love-struck widower marries a young, vibrant virgin, he may struggle to keep up with her while being closer to his own end. Just as it’s inappropriate to consider marriage too early in youth, it’s equally problematic to marry at an old age. Those who marry too soon can become exhausted and suffer from various illnesses, while those who delay too long can face similar issues. However, older men who marry younger women often find themselves in a tricky situation as they can end up being mocked, especially if their wives haven’t been raised with strong moral values and are susceptible to the advances of unscrupulous men. This highlights the pitfalls of hasty and thoughtless marriages.


CHAPTER VIII

The Opinion of the Learned concerning Children conceived and born within Seven Months; with Arguments upon the Subject to prevent Suspicion of Incontinency, and bitter Contest on that Account. To which are added Rules to Know the Disposition of Man's Body by the Genital Parts.

The Views of Experts on Children conceived and born within Seven Months; with Arguments on the Topic to Avoid Suspicions of Infidelity, and bitter Disputes on that Account. Included are Guidelines to Understand a Man's Physical Condition through the Genital Areas.


Many bitter quarrels happen between men and their wives upon the man's supposition that the child comes too soon, and by consequence, that he could not be the father; whereas, it is the want of understanding the secrets of nature which brings the man into that error; and which, had he known, might have cured him of his suspicion and jealousy.

Many bitter arguments occur between men and their wives when the man assumes that the child has come too soon, leading him to believe that he can't be the father. In reality, it's the lack of understanding of nature's secrets that causes the man to make that mistake; if he had known better, it could have prevented his suspicion and jealousy.

To remove which, I shall endeavour to prove, that it is possible, and has been frequently known, that children have been born at seven months. Paul, the Counsel, has this passage in the 19th Book of Pleadings, viz.: "It is now a received truth, that a perfect child may be born in the seventh month, by the authority of the learned Hippocrates; and therefore, we must believe that a child born at the end of the seventh month in lawful matrimony may be lawfully begotten."

To address this, I will try to show that it is possible—and has often been known—that children can be born at seven months. Paul, the Counsel, includes this in the 19th Book of Pleadings: "It’s now an accepted fact that a healthy child can be born in the seventh month, according to the authority of the learned Hippocrates; therefore, we should believe that a child born at the end of the seventh month from a lawful marriage can be lawfully conceived."

Galen is of opinion that there is no certain time set for the bearing of children; and that from Pliny's authority, who makes mention of a woman that went thirteen months with child; but as to what concerns the seventh month, a learned author says, "I know several married people in Holland that had twins born in the seventh month, who lived to old age, having lusty bodies and lively minds. Wherefore their opinion is absurd, who assert that a child at seven months cannot be perfect and long lived; and that it cannot in all parts be perfect until the ninth month." Thereupon the author proceeds to tell a passage from his own knowledge, viz.: " Of late there happened a great disturbance among us, which ended not without bloodshed; and was occasioned by a virgin, whose chastity had been violated, descending from a noble family of unspotted fame. Several charged the fact upon the Judge, who was president of a city in Flanders, who firmly denied it, saying he was ready to take his oath that he never had any carnal copulation with her, and that he would not father that, which was none of his; and farther argued, that he verily believed it was a child born in seven months, himself being many miles distant from the mother of it when it was conceived. Upon which the judges decreed that the child should be viewed by able physicians and experienced women, and that they should make their report. They having made diligent inquiry, all of them with one mind, concluded the child, without discussing who was the father, was born within the space of seven months, and that it was carried in the mother's womb but twenty-seven weeks and some odd days; but if she should have gone full nine months, the child's parts and limbs would have been more firm and strong, and the structure of the body more compact; for the skin was very loose, and the breast bone that defends the heart, and the gristles that lay over the stomach, lay higher than naturally they should be, not plain, but crooked and sharp, rigid or pointed, like those of a young chicken hatched in the beginning of spring. And being a female, it wanted nails upon the joints of the fingers; upon which, from the masculous cartilaginous matter of the skin, nails that are very smooth do come, and by degrees harden; she had, instead of nails, a thin skin or film. As for her toes, there were no signs of nails upon them, wanting the heat which was expanded to the fingers from the nearness of the heart. All this was considered, and above all, one gentlewoman of quality that assisted, affirming that she had been the mother of nineteen children, and that divers of them had been born and lived at seven months, though within the seventh month. For in such cases, the revolution of the month ought to be observed, which perfects itself in four bare weeks, or somewhat less than twenty-eight days; in which space of the revolution, the blood being agitated by the force of the moon, the courses of women flow from them; which being spent, and the matrix cleansed from the menstruous blood which happens on the fourth day, then, if a man on the seventh day lie with his wife, the copulation is most natural, and then the conception is best: and the child thus begotten may be born in the seventh month and prove very healthful. So that on this report, the supposed father was pronounced innocent; the proof that he was 100 miles distant all that month in which the child was begotten; as for the mother she strongly denied that she knew the father, being forced in the dark; and so, through fear and surprise, was left in ignorance."

Galen believes that there isn’t a set time for having children. He cites Pliny, who mentions a woman who was pregnant for thirteen months. Regarding the seventh month, a knowledgeable author states, “I know several married couples in Holland who had twins born in the seventh month, and they lived to old age, healthy and sharp-minded. Therefore, it’s ridiculous to say that a child born at seven months can’t be healthy and long-lived, and that it can’t be fully developed until the ninth month.” The author then shares from his own experience: Recently, a major disturbance happened among us, which ended in bloodshed and was sparked by a virgin from a noble family whose purity was compromised. Many blamed the Judge, who presided over a city in Flanders, but he denied the accusation, insisting he would swear he never had any sexual relations with her, and that he wouldn’t claim a child that wasn’t his. He further argued that he truly believed the child was born after seven months since he was many miles away from the mother when it was conceived. The judges then decided that the child should be examined by qualified doctors and experienced women, who would report their findings. After thorough examination, all of them unanimously concluded that the child was indeed born within seven months, having been carried in the mother’s womb for twenty-seven weeks and a few days. They noted that if the mother had gone the full nine months, the child’s body parts and limbs would have been stronger and more developed, as the skin was loose, and the breastbone protecting the heart, along with the cartilage over the stomach, were higher than they should have been—crooked and sharp, like those of a young chick hatched in early spring. Additionally, being a girl, the child lacked nails on the joints of her fingers, where smooth nails develop from the cartilaginous skin, and instead, she had just thin skin. As for her toes, there were no signs of nails either, lacking the heat that typically reaches the fingers from the heart. All these observations were taken into account, especially by one reputable woman who claimed to have given birth to nineteen children, mentioning that several were born at seven months, even within that timeframe. In such cases, the monthly cycle should be noted, which completes in just under four weeks or slightly less than twenty-eight days; during this time, blood is affected by the moon, and women experience their menstrual flow. Once this flow is finished and the uterus is cleansed by the fourth day, if a man has relations with his wife on the seventh day, the conception is most natural and optimal. A child conceived this way may be born in the seventh month and turn out to be healthy. Thus, based on this information, the alleged father was declared innocent, as it was proven he was 100 miles away during the entire month the child was conceived. As for the mother, she adamantly claimed she didn’t know who the father was, as she had been taken by surprise in the dark, leaving her without clarity.

As for coition, it ought not to be used unless the parties be in health, lest it turn to the disadvantage of the children so begotten, creating in them, through the abundance of ill humours, divers languishing diseases. Wherefore, health is no better discerned than by the genitals of the man; for which reasons midwives, and other skilful women, were formerly wont to see the testicles of children, thereby to conjecture their temperature and state of body; and young men may know thereby the signs and symptoms of death; for if the cases of the testicles be loose and feeble, which are the proofs of life, are fallen, but if the secret parts are wrinkled and raised up, it is a sign that all is well, but that the event may exactly answer the prediction, it is necessary to consider what part of the body the disease possesseth; for if it chance to be the upper part that is afflicted, as the head or stomach, then it will not so then appear by the members, which are unconnected with such grievances; but the lower part of the body exactly sympathising with them, their liveliness, on the contrary, makes it apparent; for nature's force, and the spirits that have their intercourse, first manifest themselves therein; which occasions midwives to feel the genitals of children, to know in what part the gulf is residing, and whether life or death be portended thereby, the symptoms being strongly communicated to the vessels, that have their intercourse with the principal seat of life.

As for sex, it shouldn't be engaged in unless both parties are healthy, or it could negatively affect the children conceived, leading to various chronic health issues due to an overload of bad humors. Health is best assessed by looking at a man's genitals; for this reason, midwives and knowledgeable women used to examine baby boys' testicles to determine their health and physical condition. Young men can also recognize signs of illness; if the testicles are loose and weak, which indicate life, it suggests a problem, but if the private parts are firm and elevated, it shows that things are fine. However, to accurately interpret this, it’s essential to consider where in the body the illness is located; if it affects the upper body, like the head or stomach, it won't be visible in the connected areas below. But issues in the lower body will be evident because they directly correlate with vitality; nature’s energy and the life force often show up first there. This leads midwives to examine children's genitals to determine if there’s a risk of illness or death, as symptoms are closely linked to the circulatory system that interacts with the heart of life.


CHAPTER IX

Of the Green-Sickness in Virgins, with its causes, signs and cures; together with the chief occasions of Barrenness in Women, and the Means to remove the Cause, and render them fruitful.

About Green-Sickness in Virgins, including its causes, symptoms, and treatments; along with the main reasons for Barrenness in Women, and ways to address the issue and make them fertile.


The green-sickness is so common a complaint amongst virgins, especially those of a phlegmatic complexion, that it is easily discerned, showing itself by discolouring the face, making it look green, pale, and of a dusty colour, proceeding from raw and indigested humours; nor doth it only appear to the eye, but sensibly affects the person with difficulty of breathing, pains in the head, palpitation of the heart, with unusual beatings and small throbbings of the arteries in the temples, back and neck, which often cast them into fevers when the humour is over vicious; also loathing of meat and the distention of the hypochondriac part, by reason of the inordinate effluxion of the menstruous blood of the greater vessels; and from the abundance of humours, the whole body is often troubled with swellings, or at least the thighs, legs and ankles, all above the heels; there is also a weariness of the body without any reason for it.

The green sickness is a common issue among young women, especially those with a calm temperament. It's easily noticeable as it makes the face look green, pale, and dusty due to unprocessed and undigested bodily fluids. It doesn't just appear visually; it also causes symptoms like difficulty breathing, headaches, heart palpitations, and unusual pulses in the temples, back, and neck, which can sometimes lead to fevers if the condition worsens. There is also a loss of appetite and bloating in the abdominal area due to the excessive flow of menstrual blood from the larger vessels. Because of the excess fluids, the whole body can often experience swelling, especially in the thighs, legs, and ankles, and there can be unexplained fatigue.

The Galenical physicians affirm, that this distemper proceeds from the womb; occasioned by the gross, vicious and rude humours arising from several inward causes; but there are also outward causes which have a share in the production of it; as taking cold in the feet, drinking of water, intemperance of diet, eating things contrary to nature, viz., raw or burnt flesh, ashes, coals, old shoes, chalk, wax, nutshells, mortar, lime, oatmeal, tobacco pipes, etc., which occasion both a suppression of the menses and obstructions through the whole body; therefore, the first thing necessary to vindicate the cause, is matrimonial conjunction, and such copulation as may prove satisfactory to her that is afflicted, for then the menses will begin to flow according to their natural and due course, and the humours being dispersed, will soon waste themselves; and then no more matter being admitted to increase them, they will vanish and a good temperament of body will return; but in case this best remedy cannot be had soon enough, then let blood in the ankles, and if she be about sixteen, you may likewise do it in the arm, but let her be bled sparingly, especially if the blood be good. If the disease be of any continuance, then it is to be eradicated by purging, preparation of the humour being first considered, which may be done by the virgin's drinking the decoction of guaiacum, with dittany of erete; but the best purge in this case ought to be made of aloes, agaric, senna, rhubarb; and for strengthening the bowels and removing obstructions, chaly-beate medicines are chiefly to be used. The diet must be moderate, and sharp things by all means avoided.

The Galenic physicians say that this condition comes from the womb, caused by the thick, unhealthy humors that arise from various internal factors. There are also external causes that contribute, such as getting cold in the feet, drinking water, overeating, and consuming things that go against nature, like raw or burnt meat, ashes, coal, old shoes, chalk, wax, nutshells, mortar, lime, oatmeal, tobacco pipes, etc. These lead to both the suppression of menstruation and blockages throughout the body. Therefore, the first necessary step to address the issue is marital intimacy, which should be satisfying for the affected woman. This will help her menstruation to resume its natural course, and the humors will soon dissipate. Once no more factors are introduced to increase them, they will disappear, and a healthy balance in the body will return. However, if this best remedy isn’t available quickly, then one should perform bloodletting in the ankles, and if she is about sixteen, you may also do it in the arm, but should only bleed her sparingly, especially if the blood is good. If the condition persists, it should be treated with purging, keeping in mind the preparation of the humor, which can be achieved by the young woman drinking a decoction of guaiacum mixed with dittany of erete. The best purgative in this case should contain aloes, agaric, senna, and rhubarb; and for reinforcing the bowels and eliminating blockages, iron-based medicines should primarily be used. The diet should be moderate, and sharp foods should be avoided at all costs.

And now, since barrenness daily creates discontent, and that discontent breeds indifference between man and wife, or, by immediate grief, frequently casts the woman into one or another distemper, I shall in the next place treat thereof.

And now, since infertility creates daily frustration, and that frustration leads to indifference between husband and wife, or, through immediate sadness, often pushes the woman into one kind of distress or another, I will address that next.


OF BARRENNESS.

Formerly, before women came to the marriage-bed, they were first searched by the mid-wife, and those only which she allowed of as fruitful were admitted. I hope, therefore, it will not be amiss to show you how they may prove themselves and turn barren ground into fruitful soil. Barrenness is a deprivation of the life and power which ought to be in the seed to procreate and propagate; for which end men and women were made. Causes of barrenness may be over much cold or heat, drying up the seed and corrupting it, which extinguishes the life of the seed, making it waterish and unfit for generation. It may be caused also, by the not flowing or over-flowing of the courses by swellings, ulcers, and inflammation of the womb, by an excrescence of flesh growing about the mouth of the matrix, by the mouth of the matrix being turned up to the back or side by the fatness of the body, whereby the mouth of the matrix is closed up, being pressed with the omentum or caul, and the matter of the seed is turned to fat; if she be a lean and dry body, and though she do conceive, yet the fruit of her body will wither before it come to perfection, for want of nourishment. One main cause of barrenness is attributed to want of a convenient moderating quality, which the woman ought to have with the man; as, if he be hot, she must be cold; if he be dry, she must be moist; as, if they be both dry or both moist of constitution, they cannot propagate; and yet, simply considering of themselves, they are not barren, for she who was before as the barren fig-tree being joined to an apt constitution becomes as the fruitful vine. And that a man and woman, being every way of like constitution, cannot create, I will bring nature itself for a testimony, who hath made man of a better constitution than woman, that the quality of the one, may moderate the quality of the other.

In the past, before women engaged in marriage, they were first examined by a midwife, and only those deemed capable of bearing children were accepted. Therefore, I think it’s important to show how they can prove their fertility and transform barren conditions into fertile ones. Barrenness is the lack of life and power that should be present in the seed for reproduction, which is the purpose of both men and women. Factors that contribute to barrenness may include excessive cold or heat, which can dry out and spoil the seed, extinguishing its life and rendering it watery and unfit for reproduction. It can also be caused by irregular menstrual flow, swelling, ulcers, or inflammation of the womb, by growths of flesh around the cervix, or if the cervix tilts backward or to the side due to excess body fat, which can close it off. In such cases, the seed's essence may turn to fat. If a woman is lean and dry, even if she conceives, the fetus may fail to thrive before reaching maturity due to lack of nourishment. A key reason for barrenness is the absence of a suitable balancing quality between the woman and the man; for instance, if he is hot, she should be cold; if he is dry, she should be moist. If both are dry or both are moist, reproduction cannot occur. However, on their own, they are not necessarily barren, as a woman who was once like a barren fig tree can become as fruitful as a vine when matched with the right constitution. To demonstrate that a man and woman with the same constitution cannot create life, I will point to nature itself, which has made man of a stronger constitution than woman, so that one’s qualities can balance the other’s.


SIGNS OF BARRENNESS.

If barrenness proceeds from overmuch heat, if she is a dry body, subject to anger, has black hair, quick pulse, and her purgations flow but little, and that with pain, she loves to play in the courts of Venus. But if it comes by cold, then the signs are contrary to the above mentioned. If through the evil quality of the womb, make a suffumigation of red styrax, myrrh, cassia-wood, nutmeg, and cinnamon; and let her receive the fumes into her womb, covering her very close; and if the odour so received passes through the body to the mouth and nostrils, she is fruitful. But if she feels not the fumes in her mouth and nostrils, it argues barrenness one of these ways—that the spirit of the seed is either extinguished through cold, or dissipated through heat. If any woman be suspected to be unfruitful, cast natural brimstone, such as is digged out of mines, into her urine, and if worms breed therein, she is not barren.

If infertility is caused by too much heat, and she has a dry body, is prone to anger, has black hair, a fast pulse, and her menstruation is minimal and painful, she enjoys romantic pursuits. But if it's due to cold, then the signs are the opposite of those mentioned above. If the issue is related to a poor condition of the womb, create a mixture of red styrax, myrrh, cassia wood, nutmeg, and cinnamon; let her inhale the fumes closely into her womb. If the scent reaches her mouth and nostrils, she is fertile. However, if she doesn't feel the fumes in her mouth and nostrils, it indicates infertility in one of two ways: either the seed's spirit has been extinguished by cold, or has dissipated by heat. If a woman is suspected of being infertile, add natural brimstone, sourced from mines, to her urine; if worms develop there, she is not infertile.


PROGNOSTICS.

Barrenness makes women look young, because they are free from those pains and sorrows which other women are accustomed to. Yet they have not the full perfection of health which other women enjoy, because they are not rightly purged of the menstruous blood and superfluous seed, which are the principal cause of most uterine diseases.

Barrenness makes women look younger because they are free from the pains and sorrows that other women deal with. However, they don’t have the same level of health that other women enjoy because they haven't properly expelled the menstrual blood and excess seed, which are the main causes of most uterine diseases.

First, the cause must be removed, the womb strengthened, and the spirits of the seed enlivened. If the womb be over hot, take syrup of succory, with rhubarb, syrup of violets, roses, cassia, purslain. Take of endive, water-lilies, borage flowers, of each a handful; rhubarb, mirobalans, of each three drachms; make a decoction with water, and to the straining of the syrup add electuary violets one ounce, syrup of cassia half an ounce, manna three drachms; make a potion. Take of syrup of mugwort one ounce, syrup of maiden-hair two ounces, pulv-elect triasand one drachm; make a julep. Take prus. salt, elect. ros. mesua, of each three drachms, rhubarb one scruple, and make a bolus; apply to the loins and privy parts fomentations of the juice of lettuce, violets, roses, malloes, vine leaves and nightshade; anoint the secret parts with the cooling unguent of Galen.

First, the cause must be eliminated, the uterus strengthened, and the spirits of the seed revived. If the uterus is too warm, take syrup of succory with rhubarb, syrup of violets, roses, cassia, and purslane. Take a handful each of endive, water lilies, and borage flowers; three drachms each of rhubarb and myrobalans; make a decoction with water, and to the strained syrup add one ounce of violet electuary, half an ounce of cassia syrup, and three drachms of manna; create a potion. Take one ounce of mugwort syrup, two ounces of maidenhair syrup, and one drachm of powdered electuary triasand; prepare a julep. Take three drachms each of prussic salt, elect. ros. mesua, and one scruple of rhubarb, and make a bolus; apply compresses to the lower back and genital areas using the juice of lettuce, violets, roses, mallows, vine leaves, and nightshade; anoint the private areas with Galen's cooling ointment.

If the power of the seed be extinguished by cold, take every morning two spoonfuls of cinnamon water, with one scruple of mithridate. Take syrup of calamint, mugwort and betony, of each one ounce; waters of pennyroyal, feverfew, hyssop and sage, of each two ounces; make a julep. Take oil of aniseed two scruples and a half; diacimini, diacliathidiamosei and diagla-ongoe, of each one drachm, sugar four ounces, with water of cinnamon, and make lozenges; take of them a drachm and a half twice a day, two hours before meals; fasten cupping glasses to the hips and belly. Take of styrax and calamint one ounce, mastick, cinnamon, nutmeg, lign, aloes, and frankincense, of each half ounce; musk, ten grains, ambergris, half a scruple; make a confection with rosewater, divide it into four equal parts; one part make a pomatum oderation to smell at if she be not hysterical; of the second, make a mass of pills, and let her take three every other night: of the third make a pessary, dip it in oil of spikenard, and put it up; of the fourth, make a suffumigation for the womb.

If the power of the seed is diminished by cold, take two spoonfuls of cinnamon water and one dose of mithridate every morning. Prepare a syrup using one ounce each of calamint, mugwort, and betony; and two ounces each of pennyroyal, feverfew, hyssop, and sage; mix them into a julep. Take two and a half scruples of aniseed oil; one drachm each of diacimini, diacliathidiamosei, and diagla-ongoe; four ounces of sugar mixed with cinnamon water to make lozenges; take one and a half drachms of these twice a day, two hours before meals; apply cupping glasses to the hips and abdomen. Take one ounce each of styrax and calamint; half an ounce each of mastic, cinnamon, nutmeg, lign, aloes, and frankincense; ten grains of musk, half a scruple of ambergris; make a confection with rosewater and divide it into four equal parts. With one part, make a pomatum or scent to use if she isn't hysterical; from the second part, make a batch of pills, and let her take three every other night; from the third part, make a pessary, dip it in spikenard oil, and insert it; from the fourth part, create a suffumigation for the womb.

If the faculties of the womb be weakened, and the life of the seed suffocated by over much humidity flowing to those parts: take of betony, marjoram, mugwort, pennyroyal and balm, of each a handful; roots of alum and fennel, of each two drachms; aniseed and cummin, of each one drachm, with sugar and water a sufficient quantity; make a syrup, and take three ounces every morning.

If the functions of the womb are weakened and the life of the seed is suffocated by too much moisture in that area, take a handful each of betony, marjoram, mugwort, pennyroyal, and balm; two drachms each of alum and fennel roots; one drachm each of aniseed and cumin, along with enough sugar and water; make a syrup and take three ounces every morning.

Purge with the following things; take of the diagnidium, two grains, spicierum of castor, a scruple, pill foedit two scruples, with syrup of mugwort, make six pills. Take apeo, diagem. diamoser, diamb. of each one drachm; cinnamon, one drachm and a half; cloves, mace and nutmeg, of each half a drachm; sugar six ounces, with water of feverfew; make lozenges, to be taken every morning. Take of decoction of sarsaparilla and virga aurea, not forgetting sage, which Agrippa, wondering at its operation, has honoured with the name of sacra herba, a holy herb. It is recorded by Dodonoeus in the History of Plants, lib. ii. cap. 77, that after a great mortality among the Egyptians, the surviving women, that they might multiply quickly, were commanded to drink the juice of sage, and to anoint the genitals with oil of aniseed and spikenard. Take mace, nutmeg, cinnamon, styrax and amber, of each one drachm; cloves, laudanum, of each half a drachm; turpentine, a sufficient quantity; trochisks, to smooth the womb. Take roots of valerian and elecampane, of each one pound; galanga, two ounces; origan lavender, marjoram, betony, mugwort, bay leaves, calamint, of each a handful; make an infusion with water, in which let her sit, after she hath her courses.

Purge using the following ingredients: take two grains of diagnidium, a scruple of castor spice, and two scruples of pill foedit, mixing with mugwort syrup to create six pills. Take one drachm each of apeo, diagem, and diamoser; one and a half drachms of cinnamon; and half a drachm each of cloves, mace, and nutmeg; six ounces of sugar mixed with feverfew water to make lozenges, which should be taken every morning. Also, take a decoction of sarsaparilla and virga aurea, remembering sage, which Agrippa praised for its qualities and called sacra herba, or holy herb. According to Dodonoeus in the History of Plants, book ii, chapter 77, after a significant loss of life among the Egyptians, the surviving women were instructed to drink sage juice and apply aniseed and spikenard oil to their genitals to help them multiply quickly. Take one drachm each of mace, nutmeg, cinnamon, styrax, and amber; half a drachm each of cloves and laudanum; and enough turpentine to create trochisks to soothe the womb. Take one pound each of valerian and elecampane roots; two ounces of galanga; and a handful each of origan, lavender, marjoram, betony, mugwort, bay leaves, and calamint; create an infusion with water for her to sit in after her menstrual cycle.

If barrenness proceed from dryness, consuming the matter of the seed; take every day almond milk, and goat's milk extracted with honey, but often of the root satyrion, candied, and electuary of diasyren. Take three wethers' heads, boil them until all the flesh comes from the bones, then take melilot, violets, camomiles, mercury, orchia with their roots, of each a handful; fenugreek, linseed, valerian roots, of each one pound; let all these be decocted in the aforesaid broth, and let the woman sit in the decoction up to the navel.

If infertility is caused by dryness that affects the seed's matter, drink almond milk and goat's milk mixed with honey every day, along with the candied root of satyrion and a sweet mixture of diasyren. Take three sheep heads, boil them until all the meat comes off the bones, then add a handful each of melilot, violets, chamomile, mercury, and orchis with their roots. Also, add one pound each of fenugreek, linseed, and valerian roots; let all these ingredients simmer in the broth, and have the woman sit in the mixture up to her navel.

If barrenness be caused by any proper effect of the womb, the cure is set down in the second book. Sometimes the womb proves barren where there is no impediment on either side, except only in the manner of the act; as when in the emission of the seed, the man is quick and the woman is slow, whereby there is not an emission of both seeds at the same instant as the rules of conception require. Before the acts of coition, foment the privy parts with the decoction of betony, sage, hyssop and calamint and anoint the mouth and neck of the womb with musk and civet.

If infertility is caused by a specific issue with the womb, the treatment is outlined in the second book. Sometimes the womb is infertile even when there’s no obstruction on either side, except for the way the act is performed; for instance, when the man is quick to release his seed while the woman is slow, which prevents both seeds from being released simultaneously as needed for conception. Before sexual intercourse, warm the private parts with a brew of betony, sage, hyssop, and calamint, and apply musk and civet to the mouth and neck of the womb.

The cause of barrenness being removed, let the womb be strengthened as follows; Take of bay berries, mastic, nutmeg, frankincense, nuts, laudanum, giapanum, of each one drachm, styracis liquid, two scruples, cloves half a scruple, ambergris two grains, then make a pessary with oil of spikenard.

The cause of infertility being addressed, let the womb be strengthened as follows: Take bay berries, mastic, nutmeg, frankincense, nuts, laudanum, giapanum, one drachm of each, two scruples of liquid storax, half a scruple of cloves, and two grains of ambergris, then create a pessary with oil of spikenard.

Take of red roses, lapididis hoematis, white frankincense, of each half an ounce. Dragon's blood, fine bole, mastic, of each two drachms; nutmeg, cloves, of each one drachm; spikenard, half a scruple, with oil of wormwood; make a plaster for the lower part of the belly, then let her eat candied eringo root, and make an injection only of the roots of satyrion.

Take red roses, lapididis hoematis, and white frankincense, each half an ounce. Dragon's blood, fine bole, and mastic, each two drachms; nutmeg and cloves, each one drachm; spikenard, half a scruple, along with oil of wormwood; create a plaster for the lower part of the belly. Then, let her eat candied eringo root and prepare an injection using only the roots of satyrion.

The aptest time for conception is instantly after the menses have ceased, because then the womb is thirsty and dry, apt both to draw the seed and return it, by the roughness of the inward surface, and besides, in some, the mouth of the womb is turned into the back or side, and is not placed right until the last day of the courses.

The best time for conception is right after menstruation has ended, because at that point the uterus is eager and dry, ready to accept and retain the sperm due to the rough texture of its inner surface. Additionally, in some individuals, the opening of the uterus is tilted back or to the side, and it doesn't align properly until the last day of their period.

Excess in all things is to be avoided. Lay aside all passions of the mind, shun study and care, as things that are enemies to conception, for if a woman conceive under such circumstances, however wise the parents may be, the children, at best, will be but foolish; because the mental faculties of the parents, viz., the understanding and the rest (from whence the child derives its reason) are, as it were, confused through the multiplicity of cares and thought; of which we have examples in learned men, who, after great study and care, having connection with their wives, often beget very foolish children. A hot and moist air is most suitable, as appears by the women in Egypt, who often bring forth three or four children at one time.

Avoid excess in everything. Put aside all mental passions, and avoid study and worry, as they are obstacles to conception. If a woman conceives under these conditions, no matter how wise the parents are, the children will likely be foolish. This is because the parents' mental faculties, like their understanding and others (from which the child inherits its reasoning), are overwhelmed by the many cares and thoughts they have. We see this with educated men who, after intense study and worry, often have very foolish children with their wives. A warm and humid climate is most favorable, as seen in the women of Egypt, who frequently give birth to three or four children at once.


CHAPTER X

Virginity, what it is, in what it consists, and how vitiated; together with the Opinions of the Learned about the Change of Sex in the Womb, during the Operation of Nature in forming the Body.

Virginity: what it is, what it's made of, and how it's affected; along with the views of scholars on the change of sex in the womb during the process of nature in forming the body.


There are many ignorant people that boast of their skill in the knowledge of virginity, and some virgins have undergone harsh censures through their ignorant conclusions; I therefore thought it highly necessary to clear up this point, that the towering imaginations of conceited ignorance might be brought down, and the fair sex (whose virtues are so illustriously bright that they excite our wonder and command our imitation), may be freed from the calumnies and detractions of ignorance and envy; and so their honour may continue as unspotted, as they have kept their persons uncontaminated and free from defilement.

There are many ignorant people who brag about their knowledge of virginity, and some virgins have faced harsh criticism because of their misguided beliefs. I felt it was important to clarify this issue, so that the overblown ideas of arrogant ignorance can be brought down, and women (whose virtues shine so brightly that they inspire awe and deserve our respect) can be protected from the slanders and jealousy of ignorance. This way, their honor can remain as unblemished as they have kept their bodies uncontaminated and pure.

Virginity, in a strict sense, signifies the prime, the chief, the best of anything; and this makes men so desirous of marrying virgins, imagining some secret pleasure is to be enjoyed in their embraces, more than in those of widows, or of such as have been lain with before, though not many years ago, a very great personage thought differently, and to use his own expression:—"The getting a maidenhead was such a piece of drudgery, that it was fitter for a coal heaver than a prince." [1] But this was only his opinion, for I am sure that other men think differently.

Virginity, in its strictest sense, means the first, the foremost, the best of anything; and this makes men eager to marry virgins, thinking there’s some hidden pleasure to be found in their embraces compared to those of widows or women who have been with someone before. However, not long ago, a very prominent person had a different view and, to quote him: “Taking a maidenhead was such a hassle that it was more suited for a coal heaver than a prince.” But that was just his opinion, as I know many other men see it differently.

The curious inquirers into the secrets of Nature, have observed, that in young maidens in the sinus pudoris, or in what is called the neck of the womb, is that wonderful production usually called the hymen, but in French bouton de rose, or rosebud, because it resembles the expanded bud of a rose or a gilly flower. From this the word defloro, or, deflower, is derived, and hence taking away virginity is called deflowering a virgin, most being of the opinion that the virginity is altogether lost when this membrane is fractured and destroyed by violence; when it is found perfect and entire, however, no penetration has been effected; and in the opinion of some learned physicians there is neither hymen nor expanded skin which contains blood in it, which some people think, flows from the ruptured membrane at the first time of sexual intercourse.

The curious inquirers into the secrets of Nature have noticed that in young women, in the sinus pudoris, or in what is called the neck of the womb, there is a remarkable structure usually referred to as the hymen, but in French, it’s called bouton de rose, or rosebud, because it looks like the opened bud of a rose or a gillyflower. From this, the term defloro, or deflower, is derived, and therefore, losing virginity is called deflowering a virgin. Most people believe that virginity is completely lost when this membrane is ruptured and destroyed by force; however, if it is found intact, no penetration has occurred. According to some learned physicians, there is neither hymen nor expanded skin that contains blood, which some believe flows from the ruptured membrane during the first sexual intercourse.

Now this claustrum virginale, or flower, is composed of four little buds like myrtle berries, which are full and plump in virgins, but hang loose and flag in women; and these are placed in the four angles of the sinus pudoris, joined together by little membranes and ligatures, like fibres, each of them situated in the testicles, or spaces between each bud, with which, in a manner, they are proportionately distended, and when once this membrane is lacerated, it denotes Devirgination. Thus many ignorant people, finding their wives defective in this respect on the first night, have immediately suspected their chastity, concluding that another man had been there before them, when indeed, such a rupture may happen in several ways accidentally, as well as by sexual intercourse, viz. by violent straining, coughing, or sneezing, the stoppage of the urine, etc., so that the entireness or the fracture of that which is commonly taken for a woman's virginity or maidenhead, is no absolute sign of immorality, though it is more frequently broken by copulation than by any other means. [2]

Now this claustrum virginale, or flower, consists of four small buds that look like myrtle berries, which are full and plump in virgins, but hang loose and limp in women. These are positioned at the four corners of the sinus pudoris, connected by small membranes and ligaments, similar to fibers, each located in the testicles or spaces between each bud, with which they are somewhat proportionately stretched. When this membrane is torn, it indicates Devirgination. Many uninformed people, finding their wives lacking in this respect on the wedding night, immediately suspect their fidelity, concluding that another man had been there before them. In reality, such a rupture can occur in several ways accidentally, as well as through sexual intercourse—such as from violent straining, coughing, sneezing, urinary blockage, and so on. Therefore, the integrity or damage of what is commonly considered a woman’s virginity or maidenhead is not an absolute indication of immorality, although it is more often broken by copulation than by any other means. [2]

And now to say something of the change of the sexes in the womb. The genital parts of the sexes are so unlike each other in substance, composition, situation, figure, action and use that nothing is more unlike to each other than they are, and the more, all parts of the body (the breasts excepted, which in women swell, because Nature ordained them for suckling the infant) have an exact resemblance to each other, so much the more do the genital parts of one sex differ, when compared with the other, and if they be thus different in form, how much more are they so in their use.

Now let's talk about the differences between the sexes in the womb. The reproductive organs of males and females are so different in their substance, structure, location, shape, function, and purpose that nothing else compares to their differences. While most body parts (except for breasts, which in women develop to feed infants as Nature intended) closely resemble each other, the reproductive organs of one sex are even more distinct when compared to those of the other. If their shapes are so different, just imagine how much more different their functions are.

The venereal feeling also proceeds from different causes; in men from the desire of emission, and in women from the desire of reception. All these things, then, considered I cannot but wonder, he adds, how any one can imagine that the female genital organs can be changed into the male organ, since the sexes can be distinguished only by those parts, nor can I well impute the reason for this vulgar error to anything but the mistake of inexpert midwives, who have been deceived by the faulty conformation of those parts, which in some males may have happened to have such small protrusions that they could not be seen, as appears by the example of a child who was christened in Paris under the name of Ivan, as a girl, and who afterwards turned out to be a boy, and on the other hand, the excessive tension of the clytoris in newly-born female infants may have occasioned similar mistakes. Thus far Pliny in the negative, and notwithstanding what he has said, there are others, such as Galen, who assert the affirmative. "A man," he says, "is different from a woman, only by having his genitals outside his body, whereas a woman has them inside her." And this is certain, that if Nature having formed a male should convert him into a female, she has nothing else to do but to turn his genitals inward, and again to turn a woman into a man by a contrary operation. This, however, is to be understood of the child whilst it is in the womb and not yet perfectly formed, for Nature has often made a female child, and it has remained so for a month or two, in its mother's womb; but afterwards the heat greatly increasing in the genital organs, they have protruded and the child has become a male, but nevertheless retained some things which do not befit the masculine sex, such as female gestures and movements, a high voice, and a more effeminate temper than is usual with men; whilst, on the other hand, the genitals have become inverted through cold humours, but yet the person retained a masculine air, both in voice and gesture. Now, though both these opinions are supported by several reasons, yet I think the latter are nearer the truth, for there is not that vast difference between the genitals of the two sexes as Pliny asserts; for a woman has, in a way, the same pudenda as a man, though they do not appear outwardly, but are inverted for the convenience of generation; one being solid and the other porous, and that the principal reason for changing sexes is, and must be attributed to heat or cold, which operates according to its greater or lesser force.

The feeling of sexual desire comes from different reasons: in men, it stems from the urge to ejaculate, while in women, it's about the desire to receive. Given all this, I can't help but question how anyone could think that female genital organs could transform into male organs. The two sexes can only be distinguished by those parts, and I can only attribute this common misconception to the errors of inexperienced midwives, who may be misled by the unusual shape of those organs. In some males, the external features might be so small that they go unnoticed, as shown by a case of a child christened in Paris as Ivan, thought to be a girl but later identified as a boy. Similarly, the overly pronounced clitoris in newborn girls could lead to similar mistakes. So far, Pliny has maintained a negative stance, yet others, like Galen, advocate for the opposite view. He claims, "A man is different from a woman only in that his genitals are outside his body, while a woman's are inside." It’s clear that if Nature were to transform a male into a female, she would simply need to turn the genitals inward, and vice versa to change a female into a male. However, this applies to a child while it is still in the womb and not yet fully formed. Nature has often created a female child, which can remain that way for a month or two in its mother's womb, but later, as heat increases in the genital area, they can protrude and the child can develop into a male. Even then, some traits that don't fit typical masculinity may persist, such as feminine gestures, a higher voice, and a more delicate temperament than usual for men. Conversely, a person's genitals may become inverted due to cold humors, yet they can still maintain a masculine presence in their voice and gestures. Though both perspectives have their supporters, I believe the latter aligns more closely with reality. The difference between the genital structures of the two sexes isn't as vast as Pliny claims; a woman essentially has the same pudenda as a man, though they're not visible externally but are inverted for reproductive purposes. One is solid, while the other is porous, and the primary reason behind sex changes can be attributed to heat or cold, which acts according to its intensity.


FOOTNOTES:

FOOTNOTES:

Attributed to George IV (Translator).

Attributed to George IV (Translator).

A young man was once tried at Rutland Assizes for violating a virgin, and after close questioning, the girl swearing positively in the matter, and naming the time, place and manner of the action, it was resolved that she should be examined by a skilful surgeon and two midwives, who were to report on oath, which they did, and declared that the membranes were intact and unlacerated, and that, in their opinion, her body had not been penetrated. This had its due effect upon the jury, and they acquitted the prisoner, and the girl afterwards confessed that she swore it against him out of revenge, as he had promised to marry her, and had afterwards declined.

A young man was once tried at Rutland Assizes for assaulting a virgin, and after thorough questioning, the girl testified confidently, naming the time, place, and details of the incident. It was decided that she should be examined by a skilled surgeon and two midwives, who were to provide a sworn report. They did so, stating that the membranes were intact and unbroken, and that, in their opinion, her body had not been penetrated. This had a significant impact on the jury, leading to the acquittal of the defendant. Later, the girl admitted that she had lied about him out of revenge because he had promised to marry her and then backed out.


CHAPTER XI

Directions and Cautions for Midwives; and, first, what ought to be the qualifications of a midwife.

Instructions and Warnings for Midwives; and, first, what the qualifications of a midwife should be.


A midwife who wishes to acquit herself well in her employment, ought certainly not to enter upon it rashly or unadvisedly, but with all imaginable caution, remembering that she is responsible for any mischief which may happen through her ignorance or neglect. None, therefore, should undertake that duty merely because of their age or because they themselves have had many children, for, in such, generally, many things will be found wanting, which she should possess. She ought to be neither too old nor too young, neither very fat, nor so thin, as to be weak, but in a good habit of body; not subject to illness, fears, nor sudden frights; well-made and neat in her attire, her hands small and smooth, her nails kept well-trimmed and without any rings on her fingers whilst she is engaged in her work, nor anything upon her wrists that may obstruct her. And to these ought to be added activity, and a due amount of strength, with much caution and diligence, nor should she be given to drowsiness or impatience.

A midwife who wants to do a good job in her role should definitely not jump into it hastily or thoughtlessly, but with as much caution as possible, keeping in mind that she is accountable for any problems that arise from her lack of knowledge or carelessness. So, no one should take on this responsibility just because of their age or because they have had many children themselves, as this usually means they may be missing many qualities she needs to have. She should be neither too old nor too young, not significantly overweight or so underweight that she is weak, but in good physical shape; not prone to illnesses, fears, or sudden scares; well-presented and tidy in her clothing, with small, smooth hands, nails well-trimmed, and without any rings on her fingers while she is working, nor anything on her wrists that could get in the way. Added to this should be energy and a proper level of strength, with plenty of caution and diligence, and she should not be prone to drowsiness or impatience.

She should be polite and affable in her manners, sober and chaste, not given to passion, liberal and compassionate towards the poor, and not greedy of gain when she attends the rich. She should have a cheerful and pleasant temper, so that she may be the more easily able to comfort her patients during labour. She must never be in a hurry, though her business may call her to some other case, lest she should thereby endanger the mother or the child.

She should be polite and friendly, composed and modest, not prone to strong emotions, generous and caring towards those in need, and not greedy when she assists the wealthy. She should have a cheerful and pleasant demeanor so that she can more easily comfort her patients during labor. She must never rush, even if her work requires her attention elsewhere, to avoid putting the mother or child at risk.

She ought to be wary, prudent, and intelligent, but above all, she ought to be possessed by the fear of God, which will give her both "knowledge and discretion," as the wise man says.

She should be cautious, sensible, and smart, but above all, she should have a fear of God, which will give her both "knowledge and discernment," as the wise man says.


CHAPTER XII

Further Directions to Midwives, teaching them what they ought to do, and what to avoid.

Additional Instructions for Midwives, outlining what they should do and what to avoid.


Since the duties of a midwife have such a great influence on the well-doing or the contrary of both women and children, in the first place, she must be diligent in gaining all such knowledge as may be useful to her in her practice, and never to think herself so perfect, but that it may be possible for her to add to her knowledge by study and experience. She should, however, never try any experiments unless she has tried them, or knows that they can do no harm; practising them neither upon rich nor poor, but freely saying what she knows, and never prescribing any medicines which will procure abortion, even though requested; for this is wicked in the highest degree, and may be termed murder. If she be sent for to people whom she does not know, let her be very cautious before she goes, lest by attending an infectious woman, she runs the danger of injuring others, as sometimes happens. Neither must she make her dwelling a receiving-house for big-bellied women to discharge their load, lest it get her a bad name and she by such means loses her practice.

Since the responsibilities of a midwife significantly affect the well-being of both women and children, she must be committed to gathering all knowledge that may benefit her in her practice. She should never believe she's completely perfect, as there's always room to learn more through study and experience. However, she should avoid trying out any new methods unless she has tested them or knows they won't cause harm; she shouldn't apply them to either wealthy or poor clients without being transparent about her knowledge, and she must never prescribe any medications that could induce an abortion, even if asked. This is extremely unethical and can be considered murder. If she's called to assist people she doesn't know, she should exercise caution before going, as attending to someone with an infectious condition can put others at risk. Additionally, she shouldn't turn her home into a place for pregnant women to come and give birth, as this could tarnish her reputation and lead to losing her clients.

In attending on women, if the birth happens to be difficult, she must not seem to be anxious, but must cheer the woman up and do all she can to make her labour easy. She will find full directions for this, in the second part of this book.

In helping women, if the birth is difficult, she should not appear anxious but should encourage the woman and do everything possible to make her labor easier. She will find complete instructions for this in the second part of this book.

She must never think of anything but doing well, seeing that everything that is required is in readiness, both for the woman and for receiving the child, and above all, let her keep the woman from becoming unruly when her pains come on, lest she endanger her own life, and the child's as well.

She should only focus on doing well, since everything needed is prepared, both for the woman and for the arrival of the child. Most importantly, she needs to keep the woman calm when her labor starts to prevent her from putting her own life and the child's at risk.

She must also take care not to be hurried over her business but wait God's time for the birth, and she must by no means allow herself to be upset by fear, even if things should not go well, lest that should make her incapable of rendering that assistance which the woman in labour stands in need of, for where there is the most apparent danger, there the most care and prudence are required to set things right.

She also needs to be careful not to rush through her work but to wait for the right time for the birth. She must not allow herself to be overwhelmed by fear, even if things don’t go as planned, because that could make her unable to provide the support that a woman in labor needs. In situations where there is obvious danger, it’s crucial to exercise the most care and caution to fix things.

And now, because she can never be a skilful midwife who knows nothing but what is to be seen outwardly, I do not think it will be amiss but rather very necessary, modestly to describe the generative parts of women as they have been anatomised by learned men, and to show the use of such vessels as contribute to generation.

And now, since she can never be a skilled midwife who only knows what’s visible on the surface, I think it’s not only appropriate but also very important to modestly describe the female reproductive organs as they have been examined by knowledgeable men and to explain the function of the structures that are involved in reproduction.


CHAPTER XIII

The External, and Internal Organs of Generation in Women.

The external and internal reproductive organs in women.


If it were not for the public benefit, especially for that of the professors and practitioners of the art of midwifery, I would refrain from treating the secrets of Nature, because they may be turned to ridicule by lascivious and lewd people. But as it is absolutely necessary that they should be known for the public good, I will not omit them because some may make a wrong use of them. Those parts which can be seen at the lowest part of the stomach are the fissure magna, or the great cleft, with its labia or lips, the Mons Veneris, or Mountain of Venus, and the hair. These together are called the pudenda, or things to be ashamed of because when they are exposed they cause a woman pudor, or shame. The fissure magna reaches from the lower part of the os pubis, to within an inch of the anus, but it is less and closer in virgins than in those who have borne children, and has two lips, which grow thicker and fuller towards the pubis, and meeting on the middle of the os pubis, form that rising hill which is called the Mons Veneris, or the Hill of Venus.

If it weren't for the public good, especially for the benefit of those who teach and practice midwifery, I would avoid discussing the secrets of Nature, since they could be mocked by immoral and crude individuals. However, since it's essential for the public benefit that these secrets are known, I won't hold back just because some might misuse them. The areas visible at the lowest part of the abdomen are the fissure magna, or the great cleft, along with its labia or lips, the Mons Veneris, or Mountain of Venus, and the hair. Together, these are referred to as the pudenda, or things to be ashamed of, because exposing them causes a woman pudor, or shame. The fissure magna extends from the lower part of the os pubis to within an inch of the anus, but it is smaller and tighter in virgins than in those who have given birth, and it has two lips that become thicker and fuller toward the pubis, meeting at the center of the os pubis to form the raised area known as the Mons Veneris, or the Hill of Venus.

Next come the Nymphae and the Clitoris, the former of which is a membrany and moist substance, spongy, soft and partly fleshy, of a red colour and in the shape of two wings, which are joined at an acute angle at their base, producing a fleshy substance there which covers the clitoris, and sometimes they extend so far, that an incision is required to make room for a man's instrument of generation.

Next come the Nymphae and the Clitoris, the former of which is a membranous and moist substance, spongy, soft, and partly fleshy, red in color and shaped like two wings that connect at a sharp angle at their base, creating a fleshy area that covers the clitoris. Sometimes they extend so far that a cut is needed to make space for a man's genitalia.

The Clitoris is a substance in the upper part of the division where the two wings meet, and the seat of venereal pleasure, being like a man's penis in situation, substance, composition and power of erection, growing sometimes to the length of two inches out of the body, but that never happens except through extreme lustfulness or some extraordinary accident. This clitoris consists of two spongy and skinny bodies, containing a distinct original from the os pubis, its tip being covered with a tender skin, having a hole or passage like a man's yard or penis, although not quite through, in which alone, and in its size it differs from it.

The Clitoris is a structure located at the top where the two sides meet, and it is the center of sexual pleasure. It's similar to a man's penis in terms of its location, material, structure, and ability to become erect, sometimes extending about two inches outside the body, though this usually only happens due to extreme arousal or some unusual circumstance. This clitoris is made up of two spongy, thin bodies, originating from the os pubis, with its tip covered by sensitive skin and featuring an opening similar to a man's penis, although it's not completely through and differs in size.

The next things are the fleshy knobs of the great neck of the womb, and these knobs are behind the wings and are four in number, resembling myrtle berries, and being placed quadrangularly one against the other, and here the orifice of the bladder is inserted, which opens into the fissures, to evacuate the urine, and one of these knobs is placed before it, and closes up the passage in order to secure it from cold, or any suchlike inconvenience.

The next features are the fleshy knobs at the base of the womb, located behind the wings and numbering four. They look like myrtle berries and are arranged in a square pattern, facing each other. This is where the bladder opening is located, allowing urine to exit through the fissures. One of these knobs is positioned in front to seal the passage, protecting it from cold or similar discomforts.

The lips of the womb, which appear next, disclose its neck, if they are separated, and two things may be observed in them, which are the neck itself and the hymen, or more properly, the claustrum virginale, of which I have spoken before. By the neck of the womb we must understand the channel that lies between the above-mentioned knobs and the inner bone of the womb, which receives the penis like a sheath, and so that it may be more easily dilated by the pleasure of procreation, the substance is sinewy and a little spongy. There are several folds or pleats in this cavity, made by tunicles, which are wrinkled like a full blown rose. In virgins they appear plainly, but in women who are used to copulation they disappear, so that the inner side of the neck of the womb appears smooth, but in old women it is more hard and gristly. But though this channel is sometimes crooked and sinks down yet at the times of copulation, labour, or of the monthly flow, it is erected or distended, which overtension occasions the pain in childbirth.

The lips of the cervix, which appear next, reveal its neck when they are separated, and you can notice two things in it: the neck itself and the hymen, or more accurately, the virginal cloister, as I mentioned earlier. By the neck of the cervix, we refer to the channel that lies between the aforementioned bumps and the inner wall of the cervix, which receives the penis like a sheath. To enable easier dilation during the act of procreation, this tissue is sinewy and slightly spongy. There are several folds in this cavity, created by layers that are wrinkled like a fully bloomed rose. In virgins, these folds are clearly visible, but in women who are accustomed to intercourse, they fade away, making the inner side of the cervix appear smooth. However, in older women, it becomes tougher and more cartilaginous. Although this channel can sometimes be crooked or sagging, during intercourse, childbirth, or menstruation, it straightens or expands, which can lead to pain during childbirth.

The hymen, or claustrum virginale, is that which closes the neck of the womb, and is broken by the first act of copulation; its use being rather to check the undue menstrual flow in virgins, rather than to serve any other purpose, and usually when it is broken, either by copulation, or by any other means, a small quantity of blood flows from it, attended with some little pain. From this some observe that between the folds of the two tunicles, which constitute the neck of the womb there are many veins and arteries running along, and arising from, the vessels on both sides of the thighs, and so passing into the neck of the womb, being very large; and the reason for this is, that the neck of the bladder requires to be filled with great vigour, so as to be dilated, in order that it may lay hold of the penis better; for great heat is required in such motions, and that becomes more intense by the act of friction, and consumes a considerable amount of moisture, for supplying which large vessels are absolutely necessary.

The hymen, or claustrum virginale, is what closes the entrance of the womb, and it gets broken during the first sexual intercourse; its primary function is to limit excessive menstrual flow in virgins rather than serving any other role. Usually, when it breaks, whether through intercourse or another means, a small amount of blood is released, often accompanied by some pain. From this, some note that between the layers of the two membranes that make up the entrance to the womb, there are many veins and arteries that extend from the blood vessels on both sides of the thighs, flowing into the neck of the womb, which are quite large. The reason for this is that the neck of the bladder needs to be filled with a strong flow in order to expand and grip the penis better; significant heat is needed during such activities, and this heat intensifies with friction, consuming a lot of moisture, which is why large blood vessels are necessary.

Another cause of the largeness of the vessels is, that menses make their way through them, which often occasions pregnant women to continue menstruating: for though the womb be shut up, yet the passages in the neck of the womb through which these vessels pass, are open. In this case, we may further observe, that as soon as the pudenda are penetrated, there appear two little pits or holes which contain a secretion, which is expelled during copulation, and gives the woman great pleasure.

Another reason the vessels are so large is that menstrual fluid passes through them, which often causes pregnant women to keep experiencing menstruation. Even though the womb is closed off, the openings in the neck of the womb where these vessels go through remain open. In this situation, we can also notice that as soon as the pudenda are penetrated, two small pits or holes show up that hold a secretion. This secretion is released during intercourse and provides great pleasure to the woman.


CHAPTER XIV

A description of the Fabric of the Womb, the preparing Vessels and Testicles in Women. Also of the Different and Ejaculatory Vessels.

A description of the structure of the womb, the preparing vessels, and the ovaries in women. Also of the different and ejaculatory vessels.


The womb is joined to its neck in the lower part of the Hypogastrium where the hips are the widest and broadest, as they are greater and broader there than those of men, and it is placed between the bladder and the straight gut, which keeps it from swaying, and yet gives it freedom to stretch and dilate, and again to contract, as nature requires. Its shape is somewhat round and not unlike a gourd, growing smaller and more acute towards one end, being knit together by its own ligaments; its neck likewise is joined by its own substance and by certain membranes that fasten into the os sacrum and the share-bone. Its size varies much in different women, and the difference is especially great between those who have borne children and those who have had none. Its substance exceeds a thumb's breadth in thickness, and so far from decreasing conception, it rather increases; and in order to strengthen it it is interwoven with fibres which cross it from side to side, some of which are straight and some winding, and its proper vessels are veins, arteries and nerves. Amongst these there are two small veins which pass into the womb from the spermatic vessels, and two larger ones from the neck: the mouth of these veins pierces as far as the inward cavity.

The womb connects to its neck at the lower part of the Hypogastrium, where the hips are widest and broadest, larger than those of men. It lies between the bladder and the rectum, preventing it from swaying while allowing it to stretch, expand, and contract as needed by nature. Its shape is somewhat round, resembling a gourd, tapering to a smaller, sharper end, held together by its own ligaments. The neck is also attached by its own tissue and certain membranes that connect to the os sacrum and the pubic bone. Its size varies greatly among women, especially between those who have given birth and those who haven't. Its thickness is more than a thumb's breadth, and rather than hindering conception, it actually promotes it. To strengthen it, it is woven with fibers that cross it horizontally, some straight and some winding, and its main vessels are veins, arteries, and nerves. Among these are two small veins that go into the womb from the spermatic vessels, and two larger ones coming from the neck; these veins extend into the inner cavity.

Position of a Child in the Womb just before delivery.
The action of quickening

The womb has two arteries on both sides of the spermatic vessels and the hypogastric, which accompany the veins; and besides these, there are several little nerves in the form of a net, which extend throughout it, from the bottom of the pudenda; their chief function is sensibility and pleasure, as they move in sympathy between the head and the womb.

The womb has two arteries on each side of the spermatic vessels and the hypogastric, which run alongside the veins; in addition to these, there are several small nerves that form a network, extending throughout it from the base of the pudenda; their main role is sensation and pleasure, as they connect sympathetically between the brain and the womb.

It may be further noted that the womb is occasionally moveable by means of the two ligaments that hang on either side of it, and often rises and falls. The neck of the womb is extremely sensitive, so that if it be at any time out of order through over fatness, moisture or relaxation, it thereby becomes subject to barrenness. With pregnant women, a glutinous matter is often found at the entrance to the womb so as to facilitate the birth; for at the time of delivery, the mouth of the womb is opened as wide as the size of the child requires, and dilates equally from top to bottom.

It’s worth mentioning that the womb can occasionally move because of the two ligaments attached to either side, and it often rises and falls. The neck of the womb is very sensitive, so if it’s ever not functioning properly due to excess weight, moisture, or looseness, it can lead to infertility. In pregnant women, a thick substance is often found at the entrance of the womb to help with childbirth; during delivery, the opening of the womb expands as wide as needed for the baby and stretches evenly from top to bottom.

The spermatic vessels in women, consist of two veins and two arteries, which differ from those of men only in size and the manner of their insertion; for the number of veins and arteries is the same as in men, the right vein issuing from the trunk of the hollow vein descending and besides them there are two arteries, which flow from the aorta.

The spermatic vessels in women consist of two veins and two arteries, which differ from those in men only in size and how they are attached; the number of veins and arteries is the same as in men, with the right vein coming from the trunk of the inferior vena cava, and in addition, there are two arteries that branch off from the aorta.

These vessels are narrower and shorter in women than in men; but it must be noticed that they are more intertwined and contorted than in men, and shrink together by reason of their shortness that they may, by their looseness, be better stretched out when necessary: and these vessels in women are carried in an oblique direction through the lesser bowels and testicles but are divided into two branches half way. The larger goes to the stones and forms a winding body, and wonderfully inoculates the lesser branches where it disperses itself, and especially at the higher part of the bottom of the womb, for its nourishment, and that part of the courses may pass through the vessels; and seeing that women's testicles are situated near the womb, for that cause those vessels do not fall from the peritoneum, nor do they make so much passage as in men, as they do not extend to the share-bone.

These blood vessels are narrower and shorter in women than in men; however, it's important to note that they are more intertwined and twisted compared to those in men. They are also closer together due to their shortness, allowing them to be more easily stretched out when needed. In women, these vessels run at an angle through the lower abdomen and uterus but split into two branches halfway down. The larger branch goes to the ovaries and forms a winding structure, effectively spreading out its smaller branches where it disperses itself, especially at the upper part of the lower uterus, for nourishment. This also allows menstrual flow to move through the vessels. Since women's ovaries are located near the uterus, these vessels don't veer away from the peritoneum, and they don't travel as far as in men since they don't extend down to the pelvic bone.

The stones of woman, commonly called testicles, do not perform the same function as in men, for they are altogether different in position, size, temperature, substance, form and covering. They are situated in the hollow of the muscles of the loins, so that, by contracting greater heat, they may be more fruitful, their office being to contain the ova or eggs, one of which, being impregnated by the man's seed engenders the child. They are, however, different from those of the male in shape, because they are smaller and flatter at each end, and not so round or oval; the external superficies is also more unequal, and has the appearance of a number of knobs or kernels mixed together.

The stones of a woman, commonly known as testicles, don't serve the same purpose as they do in men, as they differ in position, size, temperature, substance, shape, and covering. They are located in the hollow of the muscles in the lower back, allowing for greater heat through contraction to enhance fertility. Their role is to hold the ova or eggs, one of which, after being fertilized by the man's sperm, develops into a child. However, they differ from those of males in shape because they are smaller and flatter at both ends, rather than being round or oval. The outer surface is also more uneven and resembles a collection of knobs or kernels mixed together.

There is a difference, also, in the substance, as they are much softer and more pliable, and not nearly so compact. Their size and temperature are also different for they are much colder and smaller than in men, and their covering or enclosure is likewise quite different; for as men's are wrapped in several covers, because they are very pendulous and would be easily injured unless they were so protected by nature, so women's stones, being internal and thus less subject to being hurt, are covered by only one membrane, and are likewise half covered by the peritoneum.

There’s also a difference in their substance; they are much softer, more flexible, and not nearly as solid. Their size and temperature vary too, as they are colder and smaller compared to men, and their surrounding structure is quite different as well. While men’s are wrapped in multiple layers to protect them since they are very exposed and could easily be harmed, women’s are internal and less prone to injury, so they’re covered by just one membrane and partially surrounded by the peritoneum.

The ejaculatory vessels are two small passages, one on either side, which do not differ in any respect from the spermatic veins in substance. They rise in one place from the bottom of the womb, and do not reach from their other extremity either to the stones or to any other part, but are shut up and impassable, and adhere to the womb as the colon does to the blind gut, and winding half way about; and though the testicles are not close to them and do not touch them, yet they are fastened to them by certain membranes which resemble the wing of a bat, through which certain veins and arteries passing from the end of the testicles may be said to have their passages going from the corners of the womb to the testicles, and these ligaments in women are the cremasters [3] in men, of which I shall speak more fully when I come to describe the male parts of generation.

The ejaculatory ducts are two small pathways, one on each side, that are similar in structure to the spermatic veins. They arise from the base of the uterus and do not connect at the other end to the testes or any other area; instead, they are closed off and blocked, adhering to the uterus like the colon does to the cecum, wrapping around halfway. Although the testicles aren't directly adjacent to them and don’t touch them, they are connected by certain membranes resembling a bat's wing. Through these membranes, various veins and arteries extending from the ends of the testicles run, effectively linking the uterus to the testicles. In women, these ligaments are the cremasters [3] in men, which I will discuss in detail when I describe male reproductive anatomy.


FOOTNOTES:

FOOTNOTES:

Muscles by which the testicles are drawn up.

Muscles that pull up the testicles.


CHAPTER XV

A Description of the Use and Action of the several Generative Parts in Women.

A Description of the Use and Function of the Various Reproductive Parts in Women.


The external parts, commonly called the pudenda, are designed to cover the great orifice and to receive the man's penis or yard in the act of sexual intercourse, and to give passage to the child and to the urine. The use of the wings and knobs, like myrtle berries, is for the security of the internal parts, closing the orifice and neck of the bladder and by their swelling up, to cause titillation and pleasure in those parts, and also to obstruct the involuntary passage of the urine.

The outer parts, usually referred to as the pudenda, are meant to cover the main opening and to receive the man's penis during sexual intercourse, while also allowing for childbirth and urination. The function of the folds and protrusions, resembling myrtle berries, is to protect the internal organs, seal the opening and neck of the bladder, and by swelling up, create stimulation and pleasure in those areas, as well as to block the involuntary release of urine.

The action of the clitoris in women is similar to that of the penis in men, viz., erection; and its lower end is the glans of the penis, and has the same name. And as the glans of man are the seat of the greatest pleasure in copulation, so is this in the woman.

The clitoris in women functions similarly to the penis in men, specifically regarding erection; its lower end is the glans of the penis and shares the same name. Just as the glans in men is the center of the greatest pleasure during intercourse, the same is true for women.

The action and use of the neck on the womb is the same as that of the penis, viz., erection, brought about in different ways: first, in copulation it becomes erect and made straight for the passage of the penis into the womb; secondly, whilst the passage is filled with the vital blood, it becomes narrower for embracing the penis; and the uses of this erection are twofold:—first, because if the neck of the womb were not erected, the man's yard could find no proper passage to the womb, and, secondly, it hinders any damage or injury that might ensue through the violent striking of the penis during the act of copulation.

The action and function of the cervix is similar to that of the penis, specifically regarding erection, which happens in different ways: first, during intercourse, it becomes erect and straightens to allow the penis to enter the cervix; secondly, when filled with vital blood, it narrows to grip the penis; and the reasons for this erection are twofold: first, if the cervix weren’t erect, the penis wouldn’t have a proper passage to enter; and second, it prevents any damage or injury that might occur from the forceful thrusting of the penis during intercourse.

The use of the veins that pass through the neck of the womb, is to replenish it with blood and vigour, that so, as the moisture is consumed by the heat engendered by sexual intercourse, it may be renewed by those vessels; but their chief business is to convey nutriment to the womb.

The veins that run through the neck of the womb are there to supply it with blood and vitality, so that as the moisture is used up by the heat generated during sex, it can be replaced by those vessels; but their main purpose is to deliver nourishment to the womb.

The womb has many properties belonging to it: first, the retention of the impregnated egg, and this is conception, properly so called; secondly, to cherish and nourish it, until Nature has fully formed the child, and brought it to perfection, and then it operates strongly in expelling the child, when the time of its remaining has expired, becoming dilated in an extraordinary manner and so perfectly removed from the senses that they cannot injuriously affect it, retaining within itself a power and strength to eject the foetus, unless it be rendered deficient by any accident; and in such a case remedies must be applied by skilful hands to strengthen it, and enable it to perform its functions; directions for which will be given in the second book.

The womb has several functions: first, to hold the fertilized egg, which is what we call conception; second, to nurture and support it until nature has fully developed the baby and brought it to completion. When the time is right, the womb works powerfully to expel the baby, stretching in an extraordinary way and becoming so detached from the senses that they cannot harm it. It retains within itself the power and strength to push out the fetus unless something goes wrong. In such cases, remedies must be applied by skilled practitioners to strengthen it and help it function properly; instructions for this will be provided in the second book.

The use of the preparing vessels is this; the arteries convey the blood to the testicles; some part of it is absorbed in nourishing them, and in the production of these little bladders (which resemble eggs in every particular), through which the vasa preparantia run, and which are absorbed in them; and the function of the veins is to bring back whatever blood remains from the above mentioned use. The vessels of this kind are much shorter in women than in men, because they are nearer to the testicles; this defect is, however, made good by the many intricate windings to which those vessels are subject; for they divide themselves into two branches of different size in the middle and the larger one passes to the testicles.

The function of the preparing vessels is this: the arteries carry blood to the testicles; some of it is absorbed to nourish them and to produce these little sacs (which look just like eggs) through which the vasa preparantia run, and these are absorbed there; the role of the veins is to return any leftover blood from the uses mentioned above. These types of vessels are much shorter in women than in men because they are closer to the testicles; however, this shortcoming is compensated by the many complex twists and turns that these vessels undergo; they split into two branches of different sizes in the middle, with the larger one going to the testicles.

The stones in women are very useful, for where they are defective, the work of generation is at an end. For though those bladders which are on the outer surface contain no seed, as the followers of Galen and Hippocrates wrongly believed, yet they contain several eggs, generally twenty in each testicle; one of which being impregnated by the animated part of the man's seed in the act of copulation, descends through the oviducts into the womb, and thus in due course of time becomes a living child.

The stones in women are very important because if they're not functioning properly, reproduction cannot occur. Although those bladders on the outer surface don't hold any seed, as Galen and Hippocrates incorrectly thought, they actually contain several eggs, usually about twenty in each ovary. One of these eggs gets fertilized by the active part of the man's sperm during sex, travels through the fallopian tubes into the uterus, and eventually develops into a living child.


CHAPTER XVI

Of the Organs of Generation in Man.

About the Reproductive Organs in Men.


Having given a description of the organs of generation in women, with the anatomy of the fabric of the womb, I shall now, in order to finish the first part of this treatise, describe the organs of generation in men, and how they are fitted for the use for which Nature intended them.

Having described the reproductive organs in women and the anatomy of the uterus, I will now, in order to complete the first part of this treatise, describe the reproductive organs in men and how they are designed for their intended use by Nature.

The instrument of generation in men (commonly called the yard, in Latin, penis, from pendo, to hang, because it hangs outside the belly), is an organic part which consists of skin, tendons, veins, arteries, sinews and great ligaments; and is long and round, and on the upper side flattish, seated under the os pubis, and ordained by Nature partly for the evacuation of urine, and partly for conveying the seed into the womb; for which purpose it is full of small pores, through which the seed passes into it, through the vesicula seminalis, [4] and discharges the urine when they make water; besides the common parts, viz., the two nervous bodies, the septum, the urethra, the glans, four muscles and the vessels. The nervous bodies (so called) are surrounded with a thick white, penetrable membrane, but their inner substance is spongy, and consists chiefly of veins, arteries, and nervous fibres, interwoven like a net. And when the nerves are filled with animal vigour and the arteries with hot, eager blood, the penis becomes distended and erect; also the neck of the vesicula urinalis, [5] but when the influx of blood ceases, and when it is absorbed by the veins, the penis becomes limp and flabby. Below those nervous bodies is the urethra, and whenever they swell, it swells also. The penis has four muscles; two shorter ones springing from the Cox endix and which serve for erection, and on that account they are called erectores; two larger, coming from sphincters ani, which serve to dilate the urethra so as to discharge the semen, and these are called dilatantes, or wideners. At the end of the penis is the glans, covered with a very thin membrane, by means of which, and of its nervous substance, it becomes most extremely sensitive, and is the principal seat of pleasure in copulation. The outer covering of the glans is called the preputium (foreskin), which the Jews cut off in circumcision, and it is fastened by the lower part of it to the glans. The penis is also provided with veins, arteries and nerves.

The male reproductive organ (commonly known as the penis, derived from the Latin word penis, meaning to hang, because it hangs outside the body) is a biological structure made up of skin, tendons, veins, arteries, ligaments, and connective tissues; it is long and cylindrical, with a flatter top, located beneath the pubic bone. Nature designed it partly for urine expulsion and partly for delivering sperm into the womb. For this purpose, it contains many tiny pores that allow sperm to pass through from the seminal vesicle and release urine when needed. In addition to the common structures, it has two erectile tissues, a septum, the urethra, the glans, four muscles, and blood vessels. The erectile tissues, encased in a thick, flexible membrane, have a spongy inner structure primarily comprised of veins, arteries, and nerve fibers, creating a net-like formation. When the nerves fill with blood and the arteries are filled with warm, active blood, the penis becomes engorged and erect. When blood flow decreases and is absorbed by the veins, it becomes soft and flaccid. Below these erectile tissues lies the urethra, which also enlarges when they swell. The penis has four muscles; two shorter ones originate from the coccyx and help with erection, known as the erectores, and two larger ones come from the anal sphincters, which help widen the urethra to discharge semen, called dilatantes or wideners. At the tip of the penis is the glans, covered by a very thin membrane that, along with its nerve tissue, makes it extremely sensitive and the main source of pleasure during sexual intercourse. The outer covering of the glans is called the preputium (foreskin), which is removed during circumcision among Jews, and it attaches to the glans at its lower part. The penis also has veins, arteries, and nerves.

The testiculi, stones or testicles (so called because they testify one to be a man), turn the blood, which is brought to them by the spermatic arteries into seed. They have two sorts of covering, common and proper; there are two of the common, which enfold both the testes. The outer common coat, consists of the cuticula, or true skin, and is called the scrotum, and hangs from the abdomen like a purse; the inner is the membrana carnosa. There are also two proper coats—the outer called cliotrodes, or virginales; the inner albugidia; in the outer the cremaster is inserted. The epididemes, or prostatae are fixed to the upper part of the testes, and from them spring the vasa deferentia, or ejaculatoria, which deposit the seed into the vesicule seminales when they come near the neck of the bladder. There are two of these vesiculae, each like a bunch of grapes, which emit the seed into the urethra in the act of copulation. Near them are the prostatae, about the size of a walnut, and joined to the neck of the bladder. Medical writers do not agree about the use of them, but most are of the opinion that they produce an oily and sloppy discharge to besmear the urethra so as to defend it against the pungency of the seed and urine. But the vessels which convey the blood to the testes, from which the seed is made, are the arteriae spermaticae and there are two of them also. There are likewise two veins, which carry off the remaining blood, and which are called venae spermaticae.

The testicles, also known as stones or testiculi (named so because they confirm one's masculinity), transform the blood that the spermatic arteries carry to them into semen. They have two types of coverings: common and proper; there are two common coverings that envelop both testicles. The outer common layer, made up of the cuticula or true skin, is called the scrotum and hangs from the abdomen like a pouch; the inner layer is the membrana carnosa. There are also two proper layers—the outer one is called cliotrodes or virginales; the inner one is albugidia, where the cremaster is attached. The epididymis or prostate are attached to the upper part of the testicles, and from them, the vasa deferentia or ejaculatory ducts arise, which release the semen into the seminal vesicles when they approach the neck of the bladder. There are two of these vesicles, each resembling a bunch of grapes, that discharge the semen into the urethra during copulation. Nearby are the prostates, about the size of a walnut, which are connected to the neck of the bladder. Medical experts disagree on their function, but most believe they produce a slippery oily discharge that lubricates the urethra to protect it from the harshness of semen and urine. The blood vessels supplying the testes, which are responsible for semen production, are the arteriae spermaticae, and there are also two of them. Additionally, there are two veins that carry away the leftover blood, referred to as venae spermaticae.


FOOTNOTES:

FOOTNOTES:

Seminal vesicle.

Seminal vesicle.

Urinary vesicle.

Urinary bladder.


CHAPTER XVII

A word of Advice to both Sexes, consisting of several Directions with regard to Copulation.

A word of advice for everyone, with several guidelines about sex.


As Nature has a mutual desire for copulation in every creature, for the increase and propagation of its kind, and more especially in man, the lord of creation and the masterpiece of Nature, in order that such a noble piece of divine workmanship should not perish, something ought to be said concerning it, it being the foundation of everything that we have hitherto been treating of, since without copulation there can be no generation. Seeing, therefore, so much depends upon it, I have thought it necessary, before concluding the first book, to give such directions to both sexes, for the performance of that act, as may appear efficacious to the end for which nature designed it, but it will be done with such caution as not to offend the chastest ear, nor to put the fair sex to the blush when they read it.

As nature has a mutual desire for reproduction in every creature, for the increase and continuation of its kind, especially in humans, the lords of creation and the pinnacle of nature, something needs to be discussed about it so that such a remarkable piece of divine craftsmanship doesn't vanish. This topic is the foundation of everything we've covered so far, since without reproduction, there can be no creation. Therefore, since so much depends on it, I thought it was important, before finishing the first book, to provide guidance to both genders on how to engage in this act effectively for the purpose for which nature intended it. I will approach this with care to ensure that it doesn't offend the most modest sensibilities or embarrass women when they read it.

In the first place, then, when a married couple from the desire of having children are about to make use of those means that Nature has provided for that purpose, it is well to stimulate the body with generous restoratives, that it may be active and vigorous. And the imagination should be charmed with sweet music, and if all care and thoughts of business be drowned in a glass of rosy wine, so that their spirit may be raised to the highest pitch of ardour, it would be as well, for troubles, cares or sadness are enemies to the pleasures of Venus. And if the woman should conceive when sexual intercourse takes place at such times of disturbance, it would have a bad effect upon the child. But though generous restoratives may be employed for invigorating nature, yet all excess should be carefully avoided, for it will check the briskness of the spirits and make them dull and languid, and as it also interferes with digestion, it must necessarily be an enemy to copulation; for it is food taken moderately and that is well digested, which enables a man to perform the dictates of Nature with vigour and activity, and it is also necessary, that in their mutual embraces they meet each other with equal ardour, for, if not, the woman either will not conceive, or else the child may be weak bodily, or mentally defective. I, therefore, advise them to excite their desires mutually before they begin their conjugal intercourse, and when they have done what nature requires, a man must be careful not to withdraw himself from his wife's arms too soon, lest some sudden cold should strike into the womb and occasion miscarriage, and so deprive them of the fruits of their labour.

First of all, when a married couple wants to have children and is about to use the natural means for that, it's good to energize the body with nourishing supplements so it can be lively and strong. They should enjoy soothing music, and if they can set aside worries and business thoughts with a glass of sweet wine, it will help lift their spirits to a high level of passion because troubles, worries, or sadness get in the way of romantic pleasures. If a woman conceives during times of stress or disturbance, it could negatively affect the child. However, while using nourishing supplements to boost vitality is fine, they should be careful to avoid excess, as it can dull the spirits and impact digestion, making it a hindrance to intimacy; it's well-digested food taken in moderation that allows a man to fulfill his natural role with energy and enthusiasm. It's also important for both partners to engage with equal passion; otherwise, the woman might not conceive or the child could end up physically weak or intellectually impaired. Therefore, I suggest they mutually stimulate their desires before starting their intimate moments. After they’ve fulfilled their natural needs, a man should be cautious not to pull away from his wife too quickly, as a sudden chill could affect the womb and lead to miscarriage, depriving them of their efforts' results.

And when the man has withdrawn himself after a suitable time, the woman should quietly go to rest, with all calmness and composure of mind, free from all anxious and disturbing thoughts, or any other mental worry. And she must, as far as possible, avoid turning over from the side on which she was first lying, and also keep from coughing and sneezing, because as it violently shakes the body, it is a great enemy to conception.

And when the man has left after a reasonable time, the woman should calmly go to bed, with a peaceful and relaxed mind, free from any anxious or troubling thoughts, or any mental stress. She should, as much as possible, avoid rolling over from the side she was lying on at first, and also refrain from coughing and sneezing, because these actions shake the body significantly and can be a big obstacle to conception.


A
PRIVATE LOOKING-GLASS
FOR THE
FEMALE SEX


PART II


CHAPTER I

Treating of the several Maladies incident to the womb, with proper remedies for the cure of each.

Discussing the various conditions affecting the womb, along with suitable treatments for each.


The womb is placed in the hypogastrium, or lower part of the body, in the cavity called the pelvis, having the straight gut on one side to protect it against the hardness of the backbone, and the bladder on the other side to protect it against blows. Its form or shape is like a virile member, with this exception, that the man's is outside, and the woman's inside.

The womb is located in the hypogastrium, or lower part of the body, within the space known as the pelvis. The straight intestine is on one side to protect it from the hardness of the spine, and the bladder is on the other side to shield it from impacts. Its shape resembles a male organ, with the difference that the male's is external while the female's is internal.

It is divided into the neck and body. The neck consists of a hard fleshy substance, much like cartilage, and at the end of it there is a membrane placed transversely, which is called the hymen. Near the neck there is a prominent pinnacle, which is called the door of the womb, because it preserves the matrix from cold and dust. The Greeks called it clitoris, and the Latins praeputium muliebre, because the Roman women abused these parts to satisfy their mutual unlawful lusts, as St. Paul says, Romans 1. 26.

It is divided into the neck and body. The neck is made of a hard fleshy material, similar to cartilage, and at the end of it, there is a membrane positioned horizontally, known as the hymen. Near the neck, there is a noticeable peak called the door of the womb, which protects the matrix from cold and dust. The Greeks referred to it as clitoris, while the Latins called it praeputium muliebre, because Roman women misused these parts to indulge their mutual forbidden desires, as St. Paul mentions in Romans 1:26.

The body of the womb is where the child is conceived, and this is not altogether round, but dilates itself into two angles; the outward part is full of sinews, which are the cause of its movements, but inside it is fleshy. It is wrongly said, that in the cavity of the womb there are seven divided cells or receptacles for the male seed, but anatomists know that there are only two, and also that those two are not divided by a partition, but only by a line or suture running through the middle of it.

The uterus is where the child is conceived, and it’s not completely round; it expands into two angles. The outer part is made up of muscles that create its movements, while the inside is fleshy. It's a misconception that there are seven separate compartments for the male sperm in the cavity of the uterus, but anatomists know there are only two, and those two are not divided by a wall, but simply by a line or suture running down the middle.

At the bottom of the cavity there are little holes called cotyledones, which are the ends of certain veins or arteries, and serve breeding women to convey nourishment to the child, which is received by the umbilical and other veins, to carry the courses to the matrix.

At the bottom of the cavity, there are small holes called cotyledones, which are the endings of specific veins or arteries. They help pregnant women provide nourishment to the child, which is absorbed through the umbilical and other veins to transport it to the matrix.

As to menstruation, it is defined as a monthly flow of bad and useless blood, and of the super-abundance of it, for it is an excrement in quality, though it is pure and incorrupt, like the blood in the veins. And that the menstruous blood is pure in itself, and of the same quality as that in the veins, is proved in two ways.—First, from the final object of the blood, which is the propagation and preservation of mankind, that man might be conceived; and that, being begotten, he might be comforted and preserved both in and out of the womb, and all allow that it is true that a child in the matrix is nourished by the blood. And it is true that when it is out of it, it is nourished by the same; for the milk is nothing but the menstruous blood made white in the breast. Secondly, it is proved to be true by the way it is produced, as it is the superfluity of the last aliment of the fleshy parts.

Menstruation is described as a monthly release of excess blood that isn't needed, considered waste in its nature, though it's clean and uncontaminated, similar to the blood in our veins. It's shown that menstrual blood is pure and the same as that in our veins in two ways. First, the ultimate purpose of blood is to support human reproduction and survival, so that a man can be conceived; and once conceived, he can be nurtured and protected both inside and outside the womb. Everyone acknowledges that a baby in the womb is nourished by blood. It's also true that once outside, a baby is fed in the same way, as milk is essentially menstrual blood transformed to white in the breast. Second, the purity of menstrual blood is demonstrated by its production, as it results from the excess of the last food taken in by the body's flesh.

The natural end of man and woman's being is to propagate. Now, in the act of conception one must be an active agent and the other passive, for if both were similarly constituted, they could not propagate. Man, therefore, is hot and dry, whilst woman is cold and moist: he is the agent, and she the passive or weaker vessel, that she may be subject to the office of the man. It is necessary that woman should be of a cold constitution, because a redundancy of Nature for the infant that depends on her is required of her; for otherwise there would be no surplus of nourishment for the child, but no more than the mother requires, and the infant would weaken the mother, and like as in the viper, the birth of the infant would be the death of the parent.

The natural purpose of a man and woman's existence is to reproduce. In the process of conception, one must take an active role while the other is passive, because if both were the same, they wouldn't be able to reproduce. Therefore, man is hot and dry, while woman is cold and moist: he is the active one, and she is the passive or weaker partner, which means she must submit to the role of the man. It’s essential for a woman to have a cold nature because she needs to provide a surplus for the infant that depends on her; otherwise, there wouldn't be enough nourishment for the child, just what the mother needs, and the child would drain the mother’s strength, similar to how a viper's offspring can lead to the mother’s death.

The monthly purgations continue from the fifteenth to the forty-sixth or fiftieth year; but a suppression often occurs, which is either natural or morbid: the courses are suppressed naturally during pregnancy, and whilst the woman is suckling. The morbid suppression remains to be spoken of.

The monthly cycles continue from the fifteenth to the forty-sixth or fiftieth year; however, there are often instances of suppression, which can be either natural or abnormal: the cycles are naturally suppressed during pregnancy and while the woman is breastfeeding. The abnormal suppression will be discussed next.


CHAPTER II

Of the Retention of the Courses.

On Keeping the Courses.


The suppression of the menstrual periods, is an interruption of that accustomed evacuation of blood, which comes from the matrix every month, and the part affected is the womb.

The stopping of menstrual periods is a pause in the regular release of blood that happens from the uterus every month, and the area impacted is the womb.


CAUSE.

The cause of this suppression is either external or internal. The external cause may be heat or dryness of air, want of sleep, too much work, violent exercise, etc., whereby the substance is so consumed, and the body so exhausted that nothing is left over to be got rid of, as is recorded of the Amazons who, being active and constantly in motion, had their courses very little, if at all. Or it may be brought about by cold which is very frequent, as it vitiates and thickens the blood, and binds up the passages, so that it cannot flow out.

The reason for this suppression can be either external or internal. The external factors could be heat or dry air, lack of sleep, excessive work, intense exercise, etc., which can wear down the body to the point where there's nothing left to eliminate, similar to what is noted about the Amazons, who were active and always on the move and had very little to no menstrual flow. Alternatively, it could be caused by cold, which is quite common, as it corrupts and thickens the blood and constricts the passages, preventing it from flowing out.

The internal cause is either instrumental or material; in the womb or in the blood. In the womb, it may be in various ways; by humours, and abscesses and ulcers, by the narrowness of the veins and passages, or by the adipose membrane in fat bodies, pressing on the neck of the matrix, but then they must have hernia, zirthilis, for in men the membrane does not reach so low; by too much cold or heat, the one vitiating the action, and the other consuming the matter through the wrong formation of the uterine parts; by the neck of the womb being turned aside, and sometimes, though rarely, by a membrane or excrescence of the flesh growing at the mouth or neck of the womb. The blood may be in fault in two ways, in quantity and in quality; in quantity, when it is so consumed that no surplus is left over, as in viragoes or virile women, who, through their heat and natural strength, consume it all in their last nourishment; as Hippocrates writes of Prethusa, for when her husband praised her overmuch, her courses were suppressed, her voice changed and she got a beard with a manly face. But I think, rather that these must be Gynophagi, or woman-eaters, rather than women-breeders, because they consume one of the principles of generation, which gives a being to the world, viz., the menstruous blood. The blood may likewise be lost, and the courses checked by nosebleeding, by bleeding piles, by dysentery, commonly called the bloody flux, by many other discharges, and by chronic diseases. Secondly, the matter may be vitiated in quality, and if it be sanguineous, sluggish, bilious or melancholy, and any of these will cause an obstruction in the veins.

The internal cause is either instrumental or material; in the womb or in the blood. In the womb, it can occur in various ways: through humors, abscesses, and ulcers, through the narrowness of the veins and passages, or through the fatty membrane in obese bodies pressing on the neck of the matrix. However, they must have a hernia, because in men the membrane does not reach so low; through excessive cold or heat, where one disrupts the function, and the other depletes the matter due to abnormal formation of the uterine parts; through the neck of the womb being tilted, and sometimes, though rarely, through a membrane or excess flesh growing at the opening or neck of the womb. The blood can also be problematic in two ways: in quantity and in quality. In quantity, when it is consumed so completely that nothing remains, as in viragoes or women with male characteristics, who due to their heat and natural strength deplete it all in their final nourishment; as Hippocrates mentions about Prethusa, for when her husband excessively praised her, her menstrual cycle stopped, her voice changed, and she grew a beard with a masculine face. But I think these should be Gynophagi, or woman-eaters, rather than women-breeders, because they consume one of the essential sources of generation, which provides life to the world, namely, the menstrual blood. The blood can also be lost, and the flow can be interrupted by nosebleeds, by bleeding hemorrhoids, by dysentery, commonly known as the bloody flux, by many other discharges, and by chronic diseases. Secondly, the matter can also be diminished in quality; if it becomes sanguine, sluggish, bilious, or melancholic, any of these can cause an obstruction in the veins.


SIGNS.

Signs which manifest the disease are pains in the head, neck, back and loins; weariness of the whole body (but especially of the hips and legs, because the womb is near those parts); palpitation of the heart. The following are particular signs:—If the suppression arises from a cold, the woman becomes heavy, sluggish, pale and has a slow pulse; Venus' combats are neglected, the urine is thick, the blood becomes watery and great in quantity, and the bowels become constipated. If it arises from heat, the signs are just the opposite. If the retention be natural and arises from conception, this may be known by drinking hydromel, i.e., water and honey, after supper, before going to bed, by the effect which it has; for if after taking it, she feels a heating pain about the navel and the lower parts of the abdomen, it is a sign that she has conceived, and that the suppression is natural.

Signs of the disease include headaches, neck pain, back pain, and discomfort in the lower back; overall fatigue, especially in the hips and legs due to the womb's proximity; and heart palpitations. Specific signs include: if the suppression is caused by cold, the woman feels heavy, sluggish, pale, and has a slow pulse; she neglects intimate relationships, has thick urine, her blood becomes watery and abundant, and she experiences constipation. If it’s caused by heat, the signs are the opposite. If the retention is natural and due to conception, this can be identified by drinking hydromel, which is a mix of water and honey, after dinner and before bed. If she feels warmth and discomfort around the navel and lower abdomen after drinking it, it indicates that she has conceived and that the retention is natural.


PROGNOSTICS.

The whole body is affected by any disorder of the womb, and especially the heart, the liver and the brain, and there is a singular sympathy between the womb and those three organs. Firstly, the womb communicates with the heart by the mediation of those arteries which come from the aorta. Hence, when menstruation is suppressed, fainting, swooning, a very low pulse, and shortness of breath will ensue. Secondly, it communicates with the liver by the veins derived from the hollow vein. Obstructions, jaundice, dropsy, induration of the spleen will follow. Thirdly, it communicates with the brain by the nerves and membranes of the back; hence arise epilepsy, madness, fits of melancholy, pains in the back of the head, unaccountable fears and inability to speak. I may, therefore, well agree with Hippocrates that if menstruation be suppressed, many dangerous diseases will follow.

The entire body is impacted by any issue with the womb, especially the heart, liver and brain, and there is a unique connection between the womb and those three organs. First, the womb communicates with the heart through the arteries that branch off from the aorta. As a result, when menstruation is delayed, symptoms like fainting, dizziness, a very weak pulse, and shortness of breath can occur. Second, it connects to the liver via veins that come from the vena cava. This can lead to problems like blockages, jaundice, swelling, and hardening of the spleen. Third, it communicates with the brain through the nerves and membranes along the spine; this can cause issues like epilepsy, madness, depression, pain in the back of the head, irrational fears, and difficulty speaking. Therefore, I can agree with Hippocrates that if menstruation is disrupted, many serious illnesses may follow.


CURE.

In the cure of this, and of all the other following cases, I shall observe the following order:—The cures will be taken from surgical, pharmaceutical and diuretical means. The suppression has a plethoric effect, and must be removed by the evacuation; therefore we begin with bleeding. In the middle of the menstrual period, open the liver vein, and two days before, open the saphena in both feet; if the repletion is not very great apply cupping glasses to the legs and thighs, although there may be no hope of removing the suppression. As in some women, the cotyledones are so closed up that nothing but copulation will open them, yet it will be well to relieve the woman as much as possible by opening the hemoroid veins by applying a leech. After bleeding let the place be prepared and made flexible with syrup of stychas, calamint, betony, hyssop, mugwort, horehound, fumitary, maidenhair. Bathe the parts with camomiles, pennyroyal, savias, bay-leaves, juniper-berries, rue, marjoram, feverfew. Take a handful each of nep, maidenhair, succory and betony leaves and make a decoction, and take three ounces of it, syrup of maidenhair, mugwort and succory, half an ounce of each. After she comes out of her bath, let her drink it off. Purge with Pill agaric, fleybany, corb, feriae. In this case, Galen recommends pilulae of caberica coloquintida; for, as they are good for purging the bad humours, so also they open the passages of the womb, and strengthen it by their aromatic qualities.

In treating this and all the other upcoming cases, I will follow this approach: the treatments will involve surgical, pharmaceutical, and diuretic methods. The suppression has a congestive effect and must be relieved through evacuation; thus, we start with bleeding. In the middle of the menstrual cycle, open the liver vein, and two days prior, open the saphena in both feet; if the congestion isn't too severe, apply cupping glasses to the legs and thighs, even if there may be little hope of removing the suppression. In some women, the cotyledons are so tightly closed that only intercourse will open them, but it’s still beneficial to relieve the woman as much as possible by opening the hemorrhoid veins with a leech. After bleeding, prepare the area and make it pliable with a syrup made from stychas, calamint, betony, hyssop, mugwort, horehound, fumitory, and maidenhair. Wash the area with chamomile, pennyroyal, sage, bay leaves, juniper berries, rue, marjoram, and feverfew. Take a handful each of nep, maidenhair, succory, and betony leaves to make a decoction, and consume three ounces of it, along with syrup of maidenhair, mugwort, and succory, half an ounce of each. After bathing, have her drink it all. Purge with Pill agaric, fleybany, corb, feriae. In this case, Galen suggests pilulae of caberica coloquintida; as they are effective for purging bad humors, they also open the passages of the womb and strengthen it with their aromatic properties.

If the stomach be over-loaded, let her take an emetic, yet such a one as may work both ways, lest if it only works upwards, it should check the humours too much. Take two drachms of trochisks of agaric, infuse this in two ounces of oxymel in which dissolve one scruple and a half of electuary dissarum, and half an ounce of benedic laxit. Take this as a purge.

If the stomach is overloaded, she should take an emetic, but one that works both ways, so that if it only works upwards, it doesn't upset the body's humors too much. Take two drachms of agaric lozenges, infuse them in two ounces of oxymel, and dissolve one and a half scruples of electuary dissarum and half an ounce of benedic laxit. Take this as a laxative.

After the humour has been got rid of, proceed to more suitable and stronger remedies. Take a drachm and a half of trochisk of myrrh; ten grains of musk with the juice of smallage; make twelve pills and take six every morning, or after supper, on going to bed. Take half an ounce of cinnamon, two drachms each of smirutium, or rogos, valerin aristolochia; two scruples each of astrumone root and saffron; two drachms of spec. diambia; four scruples of trochisk of myrrh; two scruples tartari vitriolari; make half into a powder; make lozenges with mugwort water and sugar, and take one drachm of them every morning; or mix a drachm of the powder with one drachm of sugar, and take it in white wine. Take two drachms each of prepared steel and spec. hair; one scruple each of borax and spec. of myrrh, with savine juice; make it up into eighty-eight lozenges and take three every other day before dinner. Take one scruple of castor, half a drachm of wild carrot seed with syrup of mugwort, and make four pills, take them in the morning fasting, for three days following, before the usual time of purging. Take five drachms each of agaric, aristolochia, and juice of horehound; six drachma each of rhubarb, spikenard, aniseed, guidanum, asafoetida, mallow-root, gentian, of the three peppers and of liquorice: make an electuary with honey, and take three drachms for a dose. For phlegmatic constitutions nothing can be better than the decoction of guaiacum wood with a little disclaim, taken fasting in the morning, for twelve days consecutively, without producing sweating.

After getting rid of the humor, move on to more effective and stronger remedies. Take one and a half drachms of myrrh lozenges; ten grains of musk with the juice of celery; make twelve pills and take six every morning or after dinner, before bed. Take half an ounce of cinnamon, two drachms each of smirutium or rogos, valerian, and aristolochia; two scruples each of astral root and saffron; two drachms of spec. diambia; four scruples of myrrh lozenges; two scruples of tartar vitriol; make half into a powder; create lozenges with mugwort water and sugar, and take one drachm every morning; or mix one drachm of the powder with one drachm of sugar and take it with white wine. Take two drachms each of prepared steel and spec. hair; one scruple each of borax and spec. myrrh, with savine juice; form eighty-eight lozenges and take three every other day before dinner. Take one scruple of castor, half a drachm of wild carrot seed with mugwort syrup, and make four pills; take them on an empty stomach for three consecutive days, before the usual purging time. Take five drachms each of agaric, aristolochia, and horehound juice; six drachms each of rhubarb, spikenard, aniseed, guaiacum, asafoetida, mallow root, gentian, the three peppers, and liquorice: make an electuary with honey, and take three drachms as a dose. For phlegmatic types, nothing works better than a decoction of guaiacum wood with a little disclaim, taken on an empty stomach in the morning for twelve consecutive days, without causing sweating.

Treat the lower parts of the body to suffumigating, pessaries, ointments and injections; for fumigating use cinnamon, nutmeg, the berries of the bay tree, mugwort, galbanum, molanthium, amber, etc. Make pessaries of figs and the bruised leaves of dog's mercury, rolled up in lint, and if a stronger one is required, make one of myrrh, opopanax, ammoniac, galbanum, sagepanum, mithridate, agaric, coloquintida, tec. Make injections of a decoction of origane mugwort, dog's mercury, betony, and eggs; inject into the womb with a female syringe. Take half an ounce each of oil of almonds, lilies, capers, camomiles; two drachms each of laudanum and oil of myrrh; make a salve with wax, with which anoint the place; make injections of fenugreek, camomiles, melilot, dill, marjoram, pennyroyal, feverfew, juniper berries and calamint; but if the suppression arises from a lack of matter, then the courses ought not to be brought on until the spirits be raised and the amount of blood increased; or if it arises from affections of the womb itself, as dropsy or inflammation, then particular care must be used; but I will not lay stress on this here, but will mention the remedies in their order.

Treat the lower parts of the body with steaming, pessaries, ointments, and injections; for steaming, use cinnamon, nutmeg, bay tree berries, mugwort, galbanum, molanthiun, amber, and so on. Make pessaries using figs and crushed dog's mercury leaves, wrapped in lint, and if a stronger one is needed, create one with myrrh, opopanax, ammoniac, galbanum, sagepanum, mithridate, agaric, coloquintida, etc. Prepare injections using a decoction of oregano, mugwort, dog's mercury, betony, and eggs; inject into the womb with a female syringe. Combine half an ounce each of almond oil, lily oil, caper oil, and chamomile oil; add two drachms each of laudanum and myrrh oil; mix into a salve with wax and anoint the area. Create injections with fenugreek, chamomiles, melilot, dill, marjoram, pennyroyal, feverfew, juniper berries, and calamint; however, if the suppression is due to a lack of substance, then menstruation should not be induced until the spirits are lifted and blood volume increased. If it results from conditions of the womb itself, like dropsy or inflammation, then special care must be taken; but I won't focus on that here and will mention the remedies in their proper order.

If the retention comes from repletion or fullness, if the air be hot and dry, take moderate exercise before meals, and very light diet and drinks, and with your food take garden savory—thyme and origane, if it arises from emptiness and defect of matter: if the weather be moist and moderately hot, avoid exercise and late hours; let your food be nourishing and easy of digestion, such as raw eggs, lamb, chickens, almonds, milk and the like.

If the retention is due to fullness, and the air is hot and dry, get some light exercise before meals, and stick to a very light diet and drinks. With your food, use garden herbs like thyme and oregano if it's happening because of emptiness and lack of substance. If the weather is humid and moderately warm, skip exercise and late nights; focus on nourishing, easy-to-digest foods like raw eggs, lamb, chicken, almonds, milk, and similar items.


CHAPTER III

Of Excessive Menstruation.

Heavy Menstrual Bleeding.


The learned say, that truth is manifested by comparing contraries, and so, as I have above spoken of the suppression of menstruation, it is now necessary that I should treat of excessive menstruation, which is no less dangerous than the former. This immoderate monthly flow is defined as a sanguineous discharge, as it consists merely of blood, wherein it differs from the false courses or whites, of which I shall speak further on. Secondly, it is said to proceed from the womb; for there are two ways in which the blood issues forth; one by the internal veins of the body of the womb (and this is properly called the monthly flow), the other is by those veins which terminate in the neck of the matrix, which Aetius calls haemorrhoids of the womb. In quantity, Hippocrates said, it should be about eighteen ounces, and they should last about three days: and when the faculties of the body are weakened by their flow, we may take it that the discharge is inordinate. In bodies which abound in gross humours, this immoderate flow sometimes unburdens nature of her load and ought not to be checked without a physician's advice.

The experts say that the truth is revealed by comparing opposites, and since I previously discussed the suppression of menstruation, it's now important to address excessive menstruation, which is just as dangerous as the former. This heavy monthly flow is defined as a discharge of blood, as it consists solely of blood, which sets it apart from false courses or whites, topics I will discuss later. Additionally, it's said to come from the womb; there are two ways in which blood can be expelled: one through the internal veins of the womb (this is what we refer to as the monthly flow), and the other through the veins that lead to the cervix, which Aetius refers to as hemorrhoids of the womb. According to Hippocrates, the amount should be about eighteen ounces and should last around three days; if the body's functions are weakened by the flow, we can assume the discharge is excessive. In individuals with a lot of thick humors, this heavy flow can sometimes relieve the body of its burden and shouldn't be halted without a doctor’s guidance.


CAUSE.

The cause is either internal or external. The internal cause is threefold; in the substance, the instrument or the power. The matter, which is the blood, may be vitiated in two ways; first, by the heat of the constitution, climate or season, heating the blood, whereby the passages are dilated, and the power weakened so that it cannot retain the blood. Secondly, by falls, blows, violent motions, rupture of the veins, etc. The external cause may be the heat of the air, heavy burdens, unnatural childbirth, etc.

The cause can be either internal or external. The internal cause has three aspects: the substance, the instrument, or the power. The matter, which is the blood, can be compromised in two ways: first, by the heat from the body's constitution, climate, or season, which heats the blood, causing the passages to expand and weakening the power to retain the blood. Second, by injuries, blows, extreme movements, ruptured veins, etc. The external cause can include the heat of the environment, heavy loads, unnatural childbirth, etc.


SIGNS.

In this excessive flow the appetite is lessened, conception is checked and all the functions weakened; the feet swell, the colour of the face changes, and the whole body is weakened. If the flow comes from the rupture of a vein, the body is sometimes cold, the blood flows out in streams, suddenly, and causes great pain. If it arises from heat, and the orifice of the vein is dilated, there is little or no pain, but yet the blood flows faster than it does when caused by erosion, but not so fast as it does in a rupture. If caused by erosion, the woman feels a scalding of the passage, and it differs from the other two, in so much as it does not flow so quickly or so freely as they do. If it is caused by weakness of the womb, the woman feels a dislike for sexual intercourse. Lastly, if it proceeds from the defective quality of the blood let some of it drop into a cloth, and when it is dry, you may judge, of the quality by the colour. If it be passionate it will be yellow; if melancholy, it will be black, and if phlegmatic, it will be waterish and whitish.

In this excessive flow, the appetite decreases, conception is hindered, and all bodily functions weaken. The feet swell, the facial color changes, and the entire body is weakened. If the flow results from a vein rupture, the body can become cold, blood flows out rapidly and causes severe pain. If it’s due to heat and the vein's opening is widened, there's little to no pain, but blood flows faster than in cases of erosion, though not as quickly as in a rupture. If it’s caused by erosion, the woman experiences a burning sensation in the passage, which is different from the other two because it doesn’t flow as quickly or freely. If it’s due to weakness of the womb, the woman may feel a lack of desire for sexual intercourse. Lastly, if it’s due to poor blood quality, let some of it drop onto a cloth, and once it dries, you can assess its quality by its color. If it’s passionate, it will be yellow; if melancholic, it will be black; and if phlegmatic, it will be watery and whitish.


PROGNOSTICS.

If convulsions are joined to the flow, it is dangerous, because that intimates that the noble parts are affected, convulsions caused by emptiness are deadly. If they continue long, they will be very difficult to cure, and it was one of the miracles which our Saviour Christ wrought, to cure a woman of this disease of twelve years standing.

If convulsions accompany the discharge, it’s serious because that indicates that the vital organs are impacted; convulsions caused by emptiness are lethal. If they last for a long time, they will be very hard to treat, and it was one of the miracles that our Savior Christ performed to heal a woman suffering from this condition for twelve years.

To conclude, if the flow be excessive, many diseases will follow, which will be almost impossible to cure; the blood, being consumed together with the innate heat, either morbid, dropsical, or paralytical diseases will follow.

To conclude, if the flow is too much, many diseases will follow that will be almost impossible to cure; the blood, being depleted along with the body's natural heat, will lead to either illnesses like dropsy or paralysis.


CURE.

The cure consists in three particulars. First, in expelling and carrying away the blood. Secondly, in connecting and removing the fluxibility of the matter. Thirdly, in incorporating the veins and faculties. For the first, to get rid of the superfluous blood, open a vein in the arm, and draw off as much blood as the strength of the patient will allow; not all at one time, but at intervals, for by those means the spirits are less weakened, and the reaction so much the greater.

The cure involves three key steps. First, get rid of and remove the excess blood. Second, connect and eliminate the looseness of the material. Third, incorporate the veins and functions. For the first step, to eliminate the extra blood, open a vein in the arm and draw as much blood as the patient's strength can handle; not all at once, but in stages, as this way the spirits are less weakened, and the reaction is much stronger.

Apply cupping glasses to the breasts and also over the liver, and to correct the flexibility of the matter, purgative means, moderated by astringents, may be employed.

Apply cupping glasses to the breasts and over the liver. To improve flexibility, you can use purgatives balanced with astringents.

If it is caused by erosion, and salt phlegm, prepare with syrup of violets, wormwood, roses, citron peel, succory, etc. Then make the following purge:—mirabolans, half an ounce; trochisks of agaric, one drachm; make a decoction with the plantain-water, and add syrup of roses lax. three ounces, and make a draught.

If it's due to erosion and salt phlegm, prepare a syrup with violets, wormwood, roses, citron peel, succory, etc. Then make the following laxative:—half an ounce of mirabolans; one drachm of agaric troches; make a decoction with plantain water, add three ounces of rose syrup, and prepare a drink.

If caused by any mental excitement, prepare the body by syrup of roses, myrtles, sorrel and parsley, mixed with plantain-water, knot-grass and endive. Then purge with the following draught:—Take one drachm each of the void of mirabolans, and rhubarb, cinnamon fifteen grains; infuse for a night in endive water; add to the strained water half an ounce of pulp of tamarinds and of cassia, and make a draught. If the blood be waterish as it is in dropsical subjects and flows out easily on account of its thinness, it will be a good plan to draw off the water by purging with agaric, elaterium and coloquintida. Sweating is also useful in this case, as by it the noxious matter is carried off, and the motion of the blood to other parts. To produce sweating, employ cardus water, and mithridate, or a decoction of guaiacum and sarsaparilla. Gum guaiacum is also a great producer of perspiration, and sarsaparilla pills, taken every night before going to bed are also highly to be recommended. If the blood pours out, without any evil quality in itself, then strengthening means only should be employed, which is a thing to be done in cases of inordinate discharge.

If caused by any mental stimulation, prepare the body with a mix of rose syrup, myrtles, sorrel, and parsley combined with plantain water, knot grass, and endive. Then cleanse with the following drink: Take one drachm each of the void of mirabolans and rhubarb, along with fifteen grains of cinnamon; steep overnight in endive water. After straining, add half an ounce of tamarind pulp and cassia to the water to make a drink. If the blood is watery, like in patients with dropsy, and flows easily due to its thinness, it's a good idea to remove the excess fluid by purging with agaric, elaterium, and coloquintida. Sweating is also beneficial in this case since it helps eliminate harmful substances and redistributes blood flow. To induce sweating, use cardus water and mithridate, or a decoction of guaiacum and sarsaparilla. Gum guaiacum is also a strong sweat inducer, and taking sarsaparilla pills every night before bed is highly recommended. If the blood flows out without any harmful qualities, then only strengthening treatments should be used, which is important in cases of excessive discharge.

Take one scruple of ol. ammoniac, one drachm of treacle, half an ounce of conserve of roses and make an electuary with syrup of myrtle, or if the discharge be of long standing take two drachms of matrix, one drachm of olilanum troch. de carbara, a scruple of balustium; make into a powder and form into pills with syrup of quinces, and take one before every meal. Take two scruples each of troch. dechambede, scoriaferri, coral and frankincense; pound these to a fine powder, and make into lozenges with sugar and plantain water. Asses' dung is also approved of, whether taken inwardly with syrup of quinces or applied outwardly with steeled water. Galen by sending the juice of it into the womb by means of a syringe for four days consecutively, cured this immediate flow, which could not be checked in any other way. Let the patient take one scruple and a half of pilon in water before going to bed; make a fumigation for the womb of mastic, frankincense and burnt frogs, adding the hoof of a mule. Take an ounce each of the juice of knot-grass, comfoly and quinces; a drachm of camphor; dip a piece of silk or cotton into it and apply it to the place. Take half an ounce each of oil of mastic, myrtle, and quinces; a drachm each of fine bole and troch. decardas, and a sufficient quantity of dragon's blood, make an ointment and apply it before and behind. Take an ounce and a half each of plantain, shepherd's purse and red rose leaves; an ounce of dried mint, and three ounces of bean flour; boil all these in plantain water and make two plasters:—apply one before and one behind. If the blood flows from those veins which are terminated at the neck of the matrix, then it is not called an undue discharge of the menses, but haemorrhoids of the womb. The same remedy, however, will serve for both, only the instrumental cure will be a little different; for in uterine haemorrhoids, the ends of the veins hang over like teats, which must be removed by cutting, and then the veins closed with aloes, fine bole, burnt alum, myrrh, mastic, with comfoly-juice and knot grass, laid upon it like a plaster.

Take one scruple of ammoniac oil, one drachm of treacle, and half an ounce of rose conserve, and mix them into an electuary with myrtle syrup. If the discharge has been going on for a long time, take two drachms of matrix, one drachm of olibanum troch. de carbara, and a scruple of balustium; grind these into a powder and form it into pills with quince syrup, taking one before each meal. Combine two scruples each of troch. dechambede, scoriaferri, coral, and frankincense; grind these to a fine powder and make lozenges using sugar and plantain water. Asses' dung is also approved of, whether taken internally with quince syrup or applied externally with steeled water. Galen treated an immediate flow by using a syringe to send the juice into the womb for four consecutive days, which could not be resolved any other way. Have the patient take one and a half scruples of pilon in water before bed; create a fumigation for the womb using mastic, frankincense, and burnt frogs, adding a mule's hoof. Take one ounce each of knot-grass juice, comfoly, and quinces; add a drachm of camphor; soak a piece of silk or cotton in it and apply it to the area. Mix half an ounce each of mastic oil, myrtle, and quinces; a drachm each of fine bole and troch. decardas, and enough dragon's blood to make an ointment, then apply it in the front and back. Combine one and a half ounces each of plantain, shepherd's purse, and red rose leaves; one ounce of dried mint; and three ounces of bean flour; boil everything in plantain water and create two plasters: apply one in the front and one in the back. If the blood flows from the veins that end at the neck of the uterus, it is not considered an undue discharge of the menses, but rather uterine hemorrhoids. The same remedy, however, will work for both conditions, though the method of treatment will differ slightly; for in uterine hemorrhoids, the ends of the veins hang down like teats, which must be removed by cutting, and then the veins should be closed with aloes, fine bole, burnt alum, myrrh, mastic, along with comfoly juice and knot grass, applied like a plaster.

Position of the Embryos in a plural conception
Process of Delivery.

The air should be cold and dry, and all motion of the body should be prohibited. Her diet should consist of pheasants, partridges, grouse, rabbits, calves' feet, etc., and her drink should be mixed with the juice of pomegranates and quinces.

The air should be cold and dry, and any movement of the body should be avoided. Her diet should include pheasants, partridges, grouse, rabbits, calves' feet, etc., and her drink should be mixed with the juice of pomegranates and quinces.


CHAPTER IV

Of the Weeping of the Womb.

Of the Crying of the Womb.


The weeping of the womb is an unnatural flow of blood, coming from it in drops, like tears, and causing violent pains in it, and occurring at no fixed period or time. By some it is supposed to be produced by the excessive flow of the courses, as they flow copiously and freely; this is continued, though only little at a time, and accompanied by great pain and difficulty of passing it, and on this account it is compared to the strangury.

The bleeding from the womb is an abnormal loss of blood, dripping out like tears and causing severe pain, happening at random times without a set schedule. Some believe it results from a heavy menstrual flow, as it can be abundant and continuous, even if it's just a little at a time, and it's accompanied by intense pain and difficulty in passing it. For this reason, it's compared to a painful urinary condition.

The cause is in the power, instrument or matter; in the power, on account of its being enfeebled so that it cannot expel the blood, and which, remaining there, makes that part of the womb grow hard, and distends the vessels, and from that, pains in the womb arise. In the instrument, from the narrowness of the passage. Lastly, it may be the matter of the blood which is at fault, and which may be in too great quantities; or the quality may be bad, so that it is thick and gross and cannot flow out as it ought to do, but only in drops. The signs will best be ascertained by the patient's own account, but there will be pains in the head, stomach and back, with inflammation, difficulty of breathing and excoriation of the matrix. If the patient's strength will permit it, first open a vein in the arm, rub the upper parts and let a cord be fastened tightly round the arm, so that the force of the blood may be carried backward; then apply such things as may relax the womb, and assuage the heat of the blood, as poultices made of bran, linseed, mallows, dog's mercury and artiplex. If the blood be viscous and thick, add mugwort, calamint, dictain and betony to it, and let the patient take about the size of a nutmeg of Venic treacle, and syrup of mugwort every morning; make an injection of aloes, dog's mercury, linseed, groundsel, mugwort, fenugreek, with sweet almond oil.

The issue lies in the power, tool, or blood itself; regarding the power, it may be weakened, preventing it from pushing out the blood. When this happens, the affected area of the womb becomes hard, the blood vessels stretch, and this results in pain in the womb. Concerning the tool, it may be due to the narrowness of the passage. Lastly, the blood itself might be the problem, either produced in excess or of poor quality, making it thick and unable to flow properly, but only in drops. The best way to identify the signs is through the patient’s own description, but expect to see pain in the head, stomach, and back, along with inflammation, breathing difficulties, and irritation of the uterus. If the patient's strength allows it, first open a vein in the arm, massage the upper parts, and tie a cord tightly around the arm to help push the blood backward. Then use things that can relax the womb and cool the blood, like poultices made of bran, linseed, mallows, dog’s mercury, and artiplex. If the blood is thick and sticky, add mugwort, calamint, dictamnus, and betony, and have the patient take a piece about the size of a nutmeg of Venetian treacle and syrup of mugwort every morning. Make an injection of aloes, dog’s mercury, linseed, groundsel, mugwort, and fenugreek mixed with sweet almond oil.

Sometimes it is caused by wind, and then bleeding must not be had recourse to, but instead take one ounce of syrup of feverfew; half an ounce each of honey, syrup of roses, syrup of stachus; an ounce each of calamint water, mugwort, betony and hyssop, and make a julep. If the pain continues, use this purge:—Take a drachm of spec. Hitrae, half an ounce of diacatholicon, one ounce of syrup of roses and laxative, and make a draught with a decoction of mugwort and the four cordial flowers. If it proceeds from weakness, she must be strengthened, but if from grossness of blood, let the quality of it be altered, as I have shown in the preceding chapter. Lastly, if her bowels are confined, move them by an injection of a decoction of camomiles, betony, feverfew, mallows, linseed, juniper-berries, cumminseed, aniseed, melilot, and add to it half an ounce of diacatholicon; two drachms of hiera piera, an ounce each of honey and oil and a drachm and a half of sol. nitre. The patient must abstain from salt, acid and windy food.

Sometimes it's caused by wind, and in that case, bleeding shouldn't be done. Instead, take one ounce of feverfew syrup; half an ounce each of honey, rose syrup, and stachus syrup; one ounce each of calamint water, mugwort, betony, and hyssop, and make a julep. If the pain persists, use this purge: Take a drachm of spec. Hitrae, half an ounce of diacatholicon, one ounce of rose syrup, and make a drink with a decoction of mugwort and the four cordial flowers. If it comes from weakness, she needs to be strengthened, but if it's due to thick blood, modify its quality, as I described in the previous chapter. Lastly, if her bowels are blocked, stimulate them with an injection of a decoction of chamomiles, betony, feverfew, mallows, linseed, juniper berries, cumin seeds, aniseed, milk-vetch, and add half an ounce of diacatholicon; two drachms of hiera piera, one ounce each of honey and oil, and a drachm and a half of saltpeter. The patient should avoid salty, acidic, and gas-producing foods.


CHAPTER V

The false Courses, or Whites.

The fake Courses, or Whites.


From the womb, not only the menstruous blood proceeds, but many evacuations, which were summed up by the ancients under the title of rhoos gunaikeios, [6] which is the distillation of a variety of corrupt humours through the womb, which flow from the whole body or a part of it, varying both in courses and colour.

From the womb, not just menstrual blood is produced, but various discharges that the ancients referred to as rhoos gunaikeios, [6] which is the result of different unhealthy fluids being filtered through the womb. These can come from the entire body or a part of it and can vary in both consistency and color.


CAUSE.

The cause is either promiscuously in the whole body, by a cacochymia; or weakness of it, or in some of its parts, as in the liver, which by a weakness of the blood producing powers, cause a production of corrupt blood, which then is reddish. Sometimes, when the fall is sluggish in its action, and does not get rid of those superfluities engendered in the liver, the matter is yellowish. Sometimes it is in the spleen when it does not cleanse the blood of the dregs and rejected particles, and then the matter which flows forth is blackish. It may also come from a cold in the head, or from any other decayed or corrupted member, but if the discharge be white, the cause lies either in the stomach or loins. In the stomach, by some crude substance there, and vitiated by grief, melancholy or some other mental disturbance; for otherwise, if the matter were only crude phlegm and noways corrupt, being taken into the liver it might be converted into the blood; for phlegm in the ventricle is called nourishment half digested; but being corrupt, though sent into the liver it cannot be turned into nutriment, for the second decoction in the stomach cannot correct that which the first corrupted; and therefore the liver sends it to the womb, which can neither digest nor reject it, and so it is voided out with the same colour which it had in the ventricle. The cause may also be in the veins being overheated whereby the spermatical matter flows out because of its thinness. The external causes may be moistness of the air, eating bad food, anger, grief, sloth, too much sleep, costiveness.

The cause can either be widespread throughout the body due to an imbalance, or it can be the body's weakness or an issue with specific parts, such as the liver. If the liver is weak in its ability to produce blood, it results in the generation of corrupted blood that is reddish in color. Sometimes, if the body's systems are sluggish and fail to eliminate the excess produced in the liver, the discharge is yellowish. It might also originate in the spleen when it doesn’t clear the blood of impurities, resulting in a blackish fluid. Other causes could include a cold in the head or issues stemming from any decayed or corrupted part of the body, but if the discharge is white, the cause is likely in the stomach or lower back. In the stomach, it could be due to some crude substance affected by grief, melancholy, or another mental disturbance because otherwise, if it was just crude phlegm and not harmful, it could be turned into blood after processing in the liver. Phlegm in the stomach is considered partially digested nourishment; however, if it's corrupted, even if it reaches the liver, it can't be transformed into nutrients since the second stage of digestion can't fix what was ruined in the first stage. Therefore, the liver sends it to the womb, which cannot digest or reject it, so it is expelled with the same color it had in the stomach. The problem may also lie in the veins being overheated, causing the reproductive fluid to leak due to its thinness. External factors may include humid air, bad food, anger, grief, laziness, excessive sleep, and constipation.

The signs are bodily disturbances, shortness of breathing, and foul breath, a distaste for food, swollen eyes and feet, and low spirits; discharges of different colours, as red, black, green, yellow and white from the womb. It differs from the flowing of the courses and from too abundant menstruation, in so far as it keeps no certain period, and is of many colours, all of which spring from blood.

The signs include physical discomfort, difficulty breathing, bad breath, a lack of appetite, swollen eyes and feet, and feeling down; discharges of various colors, such as red, black, green, yellow, and white from the womb. It is different from regular menstrual flow and excessive menstruation because it doesn’t follow a specific cycle and varies in color, all of which comes from blood.

If the flux be phlegmatic, it will last long and be hard to cure, but if sickness or diarrhoea supervene, it carries off the humour and cures the disease. If it is abundant it does not last so long, but it is more dangerous, for it will cause a cleft in the neck of the womb, and sometimes also an excoriation of the matrix; if melancholy, it must be dangerous and obstinate. The flux of the haemorrhoids, however, assists the cure.

If the discharge is slow and thick, it will last a long time and be difficult to treat, but if illness or diarrhea occurs, it can remove the excess fluid and help cure the condition. If it’s abundant, it doesn’t last as long, but it’s more dangerous because it can create a tear in the cervix and sometimes even cause irritation of the uterus; if it’s related to sadness, it must be troubling and persistent. However, the discharge from hemorrhoids can aid in the healing process.

If the matter which flows out be reddish, open a vein in the arm; if not, apply ligatures to the arms and shoulders. Galen boasts that he cured the wife of Brutus, who was suffering from this disease, by rubbing the upper part with honey.

If the fluid that comes out is reddish, open a vein in the arm; if not, tie off the arms and shoulders. Galen claims he cured Brutus's wife, who had this condition, by applying honey to the upper part.

If it is caused by the brain, take syrup of betony and marjoram. Give as a purgative Pill. coch. or Agaric; make nasalia of sage, or hyssop juice, betony, flagella, with one drop of oil of Elect. Dianth. Rosat. Diambrae, diamosci dulus, one drachm of each, and make lozenges to be taken every morning and evening. Auri Alexandrina, half a drachm at night on going to bed. If these things have no effect, try suffumigation and plasters, as they are prescribed above.

If it's caused by the brain, take syrup made from betony and marjoram. Use a purgative like Pill. coch. or Agaric; prepare nasal drops with sage or hyssop juice, betony, and flagella, adding one drop of Elect. Dianth. Rosat. Diambrae, diamosci dulus, one drachm of each, and make lozenges to take every morning and evening. Take Auri Alexandrina, half a drachm at night before bed. If these don't work, try inhalation and plasters, as described above.

If it arises from crudities of the stomach or from a cold, disordered liver, take a decoction of lignum sanctum every morning, purge with pill de agaric, de hermadact, de hiera, diacolinthis, foetid-agrigatio; take two drachms of elect. aromet-roses, one scruple each of dried citron peel, nutmeg, long pepper; one drachm of draglanga; half a scruple each of fantalum album, ling, aloes; six ounces of sugar, with mint water: make lozenges of it, and take them before meals. If there be repletion besides the rigidity of the liver, purging by means of an emetic is to be recommended, for which take three drachms of the electuary diasatu. Galen allows diuretical remedies, such as aqua petrofolma.

If it arises from stomach issues or a cold, disordered liver, drink a decoction of lignum sanctum every morning, use pill de agaric, de hermadact, de hiera, diacolinthis, foetid-agrigatio to purge; take two drachms of elect. aromet-roses, one scruple each of dried citron peel, nutmeg, long pepper; one drachm of draglanga; half a scruple each of fantalum album, ling, aloes; six ounces of sugar, mixed with mint water: make lozenges from it, and take them before meals. If there's fullness along with liver rigidity, purging with an emetic is recommended, for which take three drachms of the electuary diasatu. Galen allows for diuretic remedies like aqua petrofolma.

If the discharge be angry, treat it with syrup of roses, violets, endive and succory; give a purge of mirabolans, manna, rhubarb, and cassia. Take two drachms of rhubarb, one of aniseed, and one scruple and a half of cinnamon; infuse them into six ounces of syrup of prunes, and add one ounce of strained manna, and take it in the morning as required. Take one drachm each of the following drugs: diatonlanton, diacorant, diarthod, abbaris, dyacydomei, four ounces of sugar, and make into lozenges with plantain water. If the gall be sluggish, and does not stir the bowels, give warm injections of a decoction of the four mollifying herbs, with honey of roses and aloes.

If the discharge is angry, treat it with rose syrup, violets, endive, and chicory; give a laxative of mirabolans, manna, rhubarb, and cassia. Take two drams of rhubarb, one of aniseed, and one and a half scruples of cinnamon; infuse them into six ounces of prune syrup, add one ounce of strained manna, and take it in the morning as needed. Take one dram each of the following substances: diatonlanton, diacorant, diarthod, abbaris, dyacydomei, four ounces of sugar, and make into lozenges with plantain water. If the bile is sluggish and doesn't move the bowels, give warm injections of a decoction of the four soothing herbs, with rose honey and aloes.

If the flow be bilious, treat the patient with syrup of maiden-hair; epithynium, polypody, borage, buglos, fumitary, hart's tongue and syrups, bisantius, which must be made without vinegar, else it will assist the disease instead of nature, for melancholy is increased by the use of vinegar, and both Hippocrates, Silvius and Avenzoar reject it as injurious for the womb, and therefore not to be used internally in uterine diseases. Pilulae sumariae, pilulae lud. delupina, lazuli diosena and confetio hamec are purges of bile. Take two ounces of pounded prunes, one drachm of senna, a drachm and a half each of epithimium, polypody and fumitary, and an ounce of sour dates, and make a decoction with endive water; take four ounces of it and add three drachms of hamesech and three of manna. Or take a scruple each of pil. indic. foetid, agarici, trochis ati; one scruple of rhubarb pills, six grains of lapis lazuli, make into pills with epithimium, and take them once a week. Take three drachms of elect. loetificans. Galen three drachms, a drachm each of diamargaritum, calimi, diamosci dulus; a drachm of conserve of borage, violets and burglos; one drachm of candied citron peel, seven ounces of sugar, and make into lozenges with rose water.

If the flow is bilious, treat the patient with a syrup made from maiden-hair fern, epithymium, polypody, borage, bugloss, fumitory, and hart's tongue, along with syrups of bisantius, which should be made without vinegar, as vinegar can worsen the condition instead of helping it. This is because melancholy worsens with vinegar consumption, and both Hippocrates, Silvius, and Avenzoar consider it harmful for the womb, so it shouldn't be used internally for uterine issues. Pilulae sumariae, pilulae lud. delupina, lazuli diosena, and confetio hamec are bile purges. Take two ounces of pounded prunes, one drachm of senna, and one and a half drachms each of epithymium, polypody, and fumitory, along with an ounce of sour dates, and make a decoction with endive water; take four ounces of this and add three drachms of hamesech and three of manna. Alternatively, take a scruple each of pil. indic. foetid, agarici, trochis ati; one scruple of rhubarb pills, and six grains of lapis lazuli, and make them into pills with epithymium, taking them once a week. Take three drachms of elect. loetificans. Galen recommends three drachms, and a drachm each of diamargaritum, calimi, diamosci dulus; a drachm of conserve of borage, violets, and bugloss; one drachm of candied citron peel, seven ounces of sugar, and make into lozenges with rose water.

Lastly let the womb be cleansed of all corrupt matter, and then be strengthened. In order to purify it, make injections of the decoction of betony, feverfew, spikenard, bismust, mercury and sage, and add two ounces each of sugar and sweet almond oil; pessaries may also be made of silk or cotton, softened in the juice of the above mentioned herbs.

Lastly, let the womb be cleared of all harmful substances and then fortified. To purify it, use injections of a herbal blend made from betony, feverfew, spikenard, bismuth, mercury, and sage, along with two ounces each of sugar and sweet almond oil; you can also create pessaries from silk or cotton soaked in the juice of these herbs.

You must prepare trochisks, thus, to strengthen the womb. Take one ounce each of mugwort, feverfew, myrrh, amber, mace, storax, ling aloes and red roses, and make lozenges or troches with mucilage of tragacanth; throw one of them on to hot coals and fumigate the womb with red wine, in which mastic, fine bole, malustia and red roots have been decocted; anoint the matrix with oil of quinces and myrtles, and apply a plaster to it, for the womb; and let the woman take diamosdum dulco, aract, and slemoticum every morning.

You need to prepare lozenges to strengthen the uterus. Combine one ounce each of mugwort, feverfew, myrrh, amber, mace, storax, sweet aloe, and red roses, and make lozenges with tragacanth gum; place one on hot coals and use the smoke to fumigate the uterus with red wine that has been mixed with mastic, fine clay, malustia, and red roots; apply oil of quinces and myrtle to the area, and put on a plaster for the uterus; also, the woman should take diamosdum dulco, aract, and slemoticum every morning.

A drying diet is recommended as best, because in these cases the body abounds with phlegmatic and crude humours. On this account, Hippocrates advises the patient to go to bed supperless. Her food should consist of partridges, pheasant and grouse, roasted rather than boiled, too much sleep must be prohibited whilst moderate exercise is very advisable.

A drying diet is recommended as the best option because, in these cases, the body is full of thick and unrefined fluids. For this reason, Hippocrates suggests that the patient goes to bed without dinner. Her diet should include partridges, pheasant, and grouse, preferably roasted instead of boiled. Too much sleep should be avoided, while moderate exercise is strongly encouraged.


FOOTNOTES:

FOOTNOTES:

The female flowing.

The woman is flowing.


CHAPTER VI

The Suffocation of the Mother.

The Mother’s Suffocation.


This, which if simply considered, will be found to be merely the cause of an effect, is called in English, "the suffocation of the mother," not because the womb is strangled, but because by its retraction towards the midriff and stomach, which presses it up, so that the instrumental cause of respiration, the midriff, is suffocated, and acting with the brain, cause the animating faculty, the efficient cause of respiration, also to be interrupted, when the body growing cold, and the action weakened, the woman falls to the ground as if she were dead.

This, when simply considered, will be seen as just the cause of an effect, is called in English, "the suffocation of the mother," not because the womb is strangled, but because its retraction towards the diaphragm and stomach presses it up, which suffocates the diaphragm, the main muscle for breathing. This, in conjunction with the brain, also disrupts the life-giving function that is essential for breathing. As the body cools down and the actions weaken, the woman collapses as if she were dead.

Some women remain longer in those hysterical attacks than others, and Rabbi Moses mentions some who lay in the fit for two days. Rufus writes of one who continued in it for three days and three nights, and revived at the end of the three days. And I will give you an example so that we may take warning by the example of other men. Paroetus mentions a Spanish woman who was suddenly seized with suffocation of the womb, and was thought to be dead. Her friends, for their own satisfaction, sent for a surgeon in order to have her opened, and as soon as he began to make an incision, she began to move, and come to herself again with great cries, to the horror and surprise of all those present.

Some women experience those hysterical episodes longer than others, and Rabbi Moses notes some who were in the fit for two days. Rufus writes about one who was in it for three days and three nights, reviving at the end of those three days. I’ll give you an example so that we can learn from the experiences of others. Paroetus mentions a Spanish woman who was suddenly struck with a womb suffocation and was thought to be dead. Her friends, wanting to satisfy their own curiosity, called for a surgeon to perform an autopsy, and as soon as he started making an incision, she began to stir and came back to consciousness with loud cries, shocking and surprising everyone present.

In order that the living may be distinguished from the dead, old writers prescribe three experiments. The first is, to lay a feather on the mouth, and by its movements you may judge whether the patient be alive or dead; the second is, to place a glass of water on the breast, and if it moves, it betokens life; the third is, to hold a bright, clean, looking-glass to the mouth and nose, and if the glass be dimmed with a little moisture on it, it betokens life. These three experiments are good, but you must not depend upon them too much, for though the feather and the glass do not move, and the looking-glass continues bright and clear, yet it is not a necessary consequence that she is dead. For the movement of the lungs, by which breathing is produced, may be checked, so that she cannot breathe, and yet internal heat may remain, which is not evident by the motion of the breast or lungs, but lies hidden in the heart and arteries.

To tell the living from the dead, old writers suggest three tests. The first is to place a feather on the mouth; its movements can help you determine if the person is alive or dead. The second is to set a glass of water on the chest; if it moves, that indicates life. The third is to hold a bright, clean mirror to the mouth and nose; if the mirror fogs up with moisture, that suggests life. These three tests are useful, but don't rely on them too much, because even if the feather and the glass remain still, and the mirror stays bright and clear, it doesn’t necessarily mean the person is dead. The lungs, which facilitate breathing, might be inactive, preventing breath, but internal warmth can still exist, which may not be visible through the movement of the chest or lungs, but exists quietly in the heart and arteries.

Examples of this we find in flies and swallows, who seem dead to all outward appearances, breathless and inanimate, and yet they live by that heat which is stored up in the heart and inward arteries. At the approach of summer, however, the internal heat, being restored to the outer parts, they are then brought to life again, out of their sleeping trance.

Examples of this can be seen in flies and swallows, which appear lifeless, breathless, and motionless, yet they are alive thanks to the warmth stored in their hearts and inner arteries. As summer approaches, this internal heat returns to their outer bodies, reviving them from their dormant state.

Those women, therefore, who apparently die suddenly, and from no visible cause, should not be buried until the end of three days, lest the living be buried instead of the dead.

Those women who seemingly die suddenly and without any obvious cause shouldn't be buried until three days have passed, to avoid burying the living instead of the dead.


CURE.

The part affected is the womb, of which there are two motions—natural and symptomatic. The natural motion is, when the womb attracts the male seed, or expels the infant, and the symptomatical motion, of which we are speaking, is a convulsive drawing up of the womb.

The affected area is the womb, which has two movements—natural and symptomatic. The natural movement occurs when the womb draws in the male seed or pushes out the infant, while the symptomatic movement we’re discussing is a convulsive tightening of the womb.

The cause is usually in the retention of the seed, or in the suppression of the menses, which causes a repletion of the corrupt humours of the womb, from which a windy refrigeration arises, which produces a convulsion of the ligaments of the womb. And just as it may arise from humidity or repletion, so also, as it is a convulsion, it may be caused by dryness or emptiness. Lastly also, it may arise from abortion or from difficult childbirth.

The cause is usually due to the retention of the seed or the stopping of menstruation, which leads to a buildup of unhealthy fluids in the uterus, resulting in a cold, windy sensation that triggers a convulsion of the uterine ligaments. Just like it can happen from excess moisture or buildup, it can also be caused by dryness or emptiness since it's a convulsion. Finally, it can also result from miscarriage or difficult labor.


SIGNS.

On the approach of suffocation of the womb the face becomes pale, there is a weakness of the legs, shortness of breathing, frigidity of the whole body, with a spasm in the throat, and then the woman falls down, bereft of sense and motion; the mouth of the womb is closed up, and feels hard when touched with the finger. When the paroxysm or the fit is over, she opens her eyes, and as she feels an oppression of the stomach, she tries to vomit. And lest any one should be deceived into taking one disease for another, I will show how it may be distinguished from those diseases which most resemble it.

As the womb approaches suffocation, the face turns pale, the legs feel weak, breathing becomes short, the entire body feels cold, and there's a tightness in the throat. Eventually, the woman collapses, unconscious and motionless; the opening of the womb is closed and feels hard to the touch. After the episode or fit passes, she opens her eyes, and feeling pressure in her stomach, she tries to vomit. To ensure that no one mistakes this condition for another, I will explain how to distinguish it from similar diseases.

It differs from apoplexy, as it comes without the patient crying out; in hysterical fits also the sense of feeling is not altogether destroyed and lost, as it is in apoplexy; and it differs from epilepsy, as the eyes are not distorted, and there is spongy froth from the mouth. That convulsive motion also, which is frequently accompanied by symptoms of suffocation, is not universal, as it is in epilepsy, but there is some convulsion, but that without any violent agitation. In syncope both breathing and the pulse fail, the face grows pale, and the woman faints suddenly; but in hysterical attacks there are usually both breathing and pulse, though these are indistinct; the face is red and she has a forewarning of the approaching fit. It cannot, however, be denied that syncope may accompany this feeling of suffocation. Lastly, it can be distinguished from lethargy by the pulse, which is rapid in the former, but weak in the latter.

It differs from a stroke because the patient doesn’t cry out. In hysterical episodes, the sense of feeling isn't completely gone like it is in a stroke, and it’s also different from epilepsy because the eyes aren’t distorted and there’s no foamy saliva coming from the mouth. The convulsive movements, which often come with signs of choking, aren’t as common as in epilepsy; there’s some convulsion, but it’s not intense. In fainting, both breathing and pulse stop, the face turns pale, and the woman suddenly faints. But in hysterical attacks, breathing and pulse are usually present, although weak; the face is red, and she gets a warning sign before the episode starts. It’s important to note that fainting can sometimes happen along with the choking sensation. Lastly, it can be told apart from lethargy by the pulse; it’s rapid in fainting but weak in lethargy.


CURE.

In the cure of this affection, two things must be taken care of:—In the first place, nature must be stimulated to expel these hurtful humours which obscure the senses, so that the woman may be brought back from that sleepy fit. Secondly, during the intervals of the attack, proper remedies must be employed, in order to remove the cause.

In treating this condition, two things need to be addressed: First, we must encourage the body to flush out these harmful substances that cloud the senses, allowing the woman to recover from her drowsiness. Second, during the breaks between episodes, appropriate treatments should be used to eliminate the underlying cause.

To stimulate nature, apply cupping-glasses to the hips and navel: apply ligatures to the thighs, rub the extremities with salt, mustard and vinegar, and shout and make a great noise in her ears. Hold asafoetida to the nose, or sacopenium steeped in vinegar; make her sneeze by blowing castor-powder, white pepper and hellebore up her nose; hold burnt feathers, hair, leather, or anything else with a strong, stinking smell under her nose, for bad odours are unpleasant to nature, and the animal spirits so strive against them, that the natural heat is restored by their means. The brain is sometimes so oppressed, that it becomes necessary to burn the outer skin of the head with hot oil, or with a hot iron, and strong injections and suppositories are useful. Take a handful each of sage, calamint, horehound, feverfew, marjoram, betony and hyssop; half an ounce of aniseed; two drachma each of coloquintida, white hellebore and salgem; boil these in two quarts of water till reduced to half; add two ounces of castor oil and two drachms of hiera piera and make an injection of it. Or take two ounces of boiled honey, half a scruple of spurge, four grains of coloquint, two grains of hellebore and drachm of salt; make a suppository. Hippocrates mentions a hysterical woman who could only be relieved of the paroxysms by pouring cold water on her: yet this is a strange cure, and should only be administered in the heat of summer, when the sun is in the tropic of Cancer.

To stimulate nature, use cupping glasses on the hips and belly button: tie ligatures around the thighs, rub the extremities with salt, mustard, and vinegar, and shout to make a lot of noise in her ears. Hold asafoetida to her nose, or sacopenium soaked in vinegar; make her sneeze by blowing castor powder, white pepper, and hellebore up her nose; hold burnt feathers, hair, leather, or anything else that has a strong, unpleasant smell under her nose, as bad odors are bothersome to nature, and the animal spirits fight against them, helping to restore natural heat. Sometimes the brain is so overwhelmed that it requires burning the outer skin of the head with hot oil or a hot iron, and strong injections and suppositories can be helpful. Take a handful each of sage, calamint, horehound, feverfew, marjoram, betony, and hyssop; half an ounce of aniseed; two drachmas each of coloquintida, white hellebore, and salgem; boil these in two quarts of water until reduced by half; add two ounces of castor oil and two drachms of hiera piera and create an injection from it. Alternatively, take two ounces of boiled honey, half a scruple of spurge, four grains of coloquint, two grains of hellebore, and a drachm of salt; make a suppository. Hippocrates mentions a woman with hysteria who could only be relieved of her episodes by having cold water poured on her: however, this is an unusual remedy and should only be used in the heat of summer when the sun is in the tropic of Cancer.

If it be caused by the retention and corruption of the seed, let the mid-wife take oil of lilies, marjoram and bay leaves, and dissolve two grains of civet in them, and the same quantity of musk, and at the moment of the paroxysm let her dip her finger into the mixture and put it into the neck of the womb, and tickle and rub it with it.

If it's caused by the retention and corruption of the seed, the midwife should take lily oil, marjoram, and bay leaves, and dissolve two grains of civet in them, along with the same amount of musk. At the moment of the paroxysm, she should dip her finger into the mixture and apply it to the neck of the womb, gently tickling and rubbing it.

When the fit is over, proceed to remove the cause. If it arises from suppression of the menses, look in Chapter XI, p. 102, for the cure. If it arises from the retention of the seed, a good husband will administer the cure, but those who cannot honourably obtain that remedy, must use such means as will dry up and diminish the seed, as diaciminum, diacalaminthes, etc. The seed of the agnus castus is highly valued as a draught, whether taken inwardly, applied outwardly or used as a suffumigation. It was held in high esteem by the Athenian women, for by its means they remained as pure vessels and preserved their chastity, by only strewing it on the bed on which they lay, and hence the name of agnus castus, which was given to it, as denoting its effects. Make an issue on the inside of each leg, four inches below the knee, and then make lozenges of two scruples of agric, half a scruple each of wild carrot seed and ligne aloes; three drachms of washed turpentine, and make a bolus with a conserve of flowers. Eight drachms of castor taken in white wine are very useful in this case, or you may make pills of it with dog's tooth, and take them on going to bed. Take an ounce of white briony root dried and cut up like carrots, put it into a little wine and place it on the fire, and drink when warm. Take one scruple each of myrrh, castor and asafoetida; four grains each of saffron and rue-seed, and make eight pills and take two every night on going to bed.

When the fit is over, move on to remove the cause. If it comes from stopping the menstrual cycle, look in Chapter XI, p. 102 for the remedy. If it comes from holding onto the seed, a good husband will provide the cure, but those who cannot honorably obtain that remedy must use means that will dry up and reduce the seed, like diaciminum, diacalaminthes, etc. The seed of the agnus castus is highly valued as a drink, whether taken internally, applied externally, or used as a fumigation. It was highly regarded by Athenian women because it helped them remain pure and maintain their chastity by simply sprinkling it on the bed they slept on, which is how it got the name agnus castus based on its effects. Create an issue on the inside of each leg, four inches below the knee, then make lozenges with two scruples of agric, half a scruple each of wild carrot seed and ligne aloes; three drachms of washed turpentine, and form a bolus with a flower conserve. Eight drachms of castor taken in white wine are very effective in this case, or you can make pills with it using dog's tooth and take them at bedtime. Take an ounce of dried white briony root, cut it like carrots, put it in a little wine, heat it, and drink it warm. Take one scruple each of myrrh, castor, and asafoetida; four grains each of saffron and rue-seed, make eight pills and take two every night before bed.

Galen, from his own experience, recommends powdered agaric, of which he frequently gave one scruple in white wine. Put a head of bruised garlic on the navel at bed time, and fasten it with a swathing band. Make a girdle for the waist of galbanum, and also a plaster for the stomach, and put civet and musk on one part of it, which must be applied to the navel. Take two drachms each of pulvis benedict, and of troches of agaric, a sufficient quantity of mithridate, and make two pessaries, and that will purge the matrix of wind and phlegm; foment the private parts with salad oil in which some feverfew and camomiles have been boiled. Take a handful of roseleaves and two scruples of cloves, sew them in a little cloth and boil them for ten minutes in malmsey; then apply them, as hot as they can be borne, to the mouth of the womb, but do not let the smell go up her nose. A dry diet must still be adhered to and the moderate use of Venus is advisable. Let her eat aniseed biscuits instead of bread, and roast meat instead of boiled.

Galen, based on his own experience, suggests using powdered agaric, which he often gave in a dose of one scruple mixed with white wine. Place a crushed clove of garlic on the navel at bedtime and secure it with a bandage. Create a waist girdle using galbanum and also apply a plaster to the stomach, adding civet and musk to a section of it, which should be applied to the navel. Take two drachms each of pulvis benedict and troches of agaric, along with a suitable amount of mithridate, and make two pessaries; this will help clear the uterus of gas and phlegm. Soak the intimate areas with salad oil that has been infused with feverfew and chamomile. Take a handful of rose leaves and two scruples of cloves, sew them in a small cloth, and boil them for ten minutes in malmsey; then apply them, as hot as tolerable, to the cervix, but avoid letting the smell reach her nose. A dry diet should still be followed, and moderate sexual activity is recommended. She should eat aniseed biscuits instead of bread, and choose roasted meat over boiled.


CHAPTER VII

Of the Descending or Falling of the Womb.

About the Descending or Falling of the Womb.


The descent of the womb is caused by a relaxation of the ligatures, whereby the matrix is carried backward, and in some women it protrudes to the size of an egg, and there are two kinds of this, distinguished by a descending and a precipitation. The descending of the womb is, when it sinks down to the entrance of the private parts, and appears either very little or not at all, to the eye. Its precipitation is when it is turned inside out like a purse, and hangs out between the thighs, like a cupping glass.

The descent of the womb happens when the ligaments loosen, causing the uterus to shift backward, and in some women, it can stick out as much as the size of an egg. There are two types of this condition: descending and precipitation. The descending womb occurs when it drops down to the opening of the private parts and may be hardly visible or not visible at all. In contrast, precipitation is when it turns inside out like a purse and hangs between the thighs, resembling a suction cup.


CAUSE.

This is either external or internal. The external cause is difficult childbirth, violent pulling away, or inexperience in drawing away the child, violent coughing, sneezing, falls, blows, and carrying heavy burdens. The internal cause, is generally the flow of too much moisture into these parts, which hinders the operation of the womb, whereby the ligaments by which the womb is supported are relaxed. The particular cause, however, lies in the retention of the semen, or in the suppression of the monthly courses.

This can be caused by external or internal factors. The external causes include difficult childbirth, forceful pulling away, a lack of experience in handling the child, severe coughing, sneezing, falls, blows, and carrying heavy loads. The internal cause usually involves an excess of moisture in these areas, which disrupts the functioning of the womb, leading to the relaxation of the ligaments that support it. However, the specific cause often relates to the retention of semen or the disruption of the menstrual cycle.


SIGNS.

The principal gut and the bladder are often so crushed, that the passage of both evacuations is hindered. If the urine flows out white and thick, and the midriff is interfered with, the loins suffer, the private parts are in pain, and the womb descends to them, or else comes clean out.

The main intestines and bladder are often so compressed that the passage for both waste and urine is blocked. If the urine comes out white and thick, and there’s pressure on the diaphragm, the lower back hurts, there’s pain in the genital area, and the uterus either drops down towards them or even comes out completely.


PROGNOSTICS.

If an old woman is thus affected, the cure is very difficult, because it weakens the womb, and therefore, though it may be put back into its proper place, yet it is apt to get displaced again, by a very slight amount of illness. And also with younger women, if this disease is inveterate, and if it is caused by putrefaction of the nerves, it is incurable.

If an older woman is affected this way, the treatment is quite challenging because it weakens the uterus. So, even if it can be restored to its correct position, it can easily become displaced again with a minor illness. Similarly, with younger women, if this condition is chronic and is caused by nerve decay, it cannot be cured.


CURE.

The womb, being placed by nature between the straight gut and the bladder, ought not to be put back again until the powers of both are excited. Now that nature is relieved of her burden, let the woman be laid on her back so that her legs may be higher than her head; let her feet be drawn up towards her private parts, and her knees spread open. Then apply oil of sweet almonds and lilies, or a decoction of mallows, beet, fenugreek and linseed, to the swelling; when the inflammation is reduced, let the midwife rub her hand with oil of mastic, and restore the womb to its proper place. When the matrix is up, the patient's position must be changed. Her legs must be put out quite straight and laid together, and apply six cupping glasses to her breast and navel. Boil feverfew, mugwort, red rose leaves and comfrey in red wine; make a suffumigation for the matrix, and apply sweet scents to her nose. When she comes out of her bath, give her an ounce of syrup of feverfew with a drachm of dog's tooth (mithridate). Take three drachms each of laudanum and mastic, and make a plaster for the navel of it, and then make pessaries of asafoetida, saffron, comfrey, and mastic, adding a little castor oil.—Parius in such cases makes his pessaries only of cork, shaped like a small egg; he covered them with wax and mastic dissolved together, and fastening them to a thread, he put them into the womb.

The womb, situated by nature between the intestines and the bladder, shouldn’t be put back in place until both are properly stimulated. Now that nature has been relieved of its burden, the woman should be laid on her back with her legs elevated above her head; her feet should be drawn up towards her private parts, and her knees spread apart. Next, apply almond and lily oil or a mixture of mallows, beet, fenugreek, and linseed to the swelling; once the inflammation decreases, the midwife should rub her hand with mastic oil and gently reposition the womb. After the womb is in place, the patient’s position should be changed. Her legs must be extended straight and placed together, and six cupping glasses should be applied to her breast and navel. Boil feverfew, mugwort, red rose leaves, and comfrey in red wine; prepare a steam treatment for the womb and apply pleasant scents to her nose. When she finishes her bath, give her an ounce of feverfew syrup with a drachm of dog's tooth (mithridate). Take three drachms each of laudanum and mastic to create a plaster for the navel, and then make pessaries using asafoetida, saffron, comfrey, and mastic, adding a bit of castor oil. —Parius in such cases makes his pessaries solely from cork, shaped like a small egg; he covered them with a mixture of wax and mastic, attached to a thread, and inserted them into the womb.

The immediate danger being now removed and the matrix returned to its natural place the remote cause must be got rid of. If she be of full habit of body open a vein, after preparing her with syrup of betony, calamint, hyssop and feverfew. Give a purge, and if the stomach be oppressed with any crude matter relieve it by emetics and by sudorifics of lignum sanctum and sassafras taken twenty days consecutively, which dry up the superfluous moisture, and consequently suppress the cause of the disease.

The immediate danger having passed and the matrix back in its natural position, the underlying cause needs to be addressed. If she has a robust constitution, draw some blood after preparing her with a syrup made from betony, calamint, hyssop, and feverfew. Administer a purge, and if her stomach is weighed down by any undigested matter, relieve it with emetics and sweat-inducing treatments of holy wood and sassafras taken for twenty consecutive days. These will dry up the excess moisture and, in turn, eliminate the cause of the illness.

The air should be hot and dry, and her diet hot and attenuating. Let her abstain from dancing, jumping, sneezing, as well as from all mental and bodily emotions, eat sparingly, not drink much, and be moderate in her sleep.

The air should be warm and dry, and her diet should be light and warming. She should avoid dancing, jumping, sneezing, and any strong emotions, eat sparingly, not drink much, and keep her sleep balanced.


CHAPTER VIII

Of the Inflammation of the Womb.

About Uterine Inflammation.


The phlegmon, or inflammation of the matrix, is a humour which affects the whole womb, and is accompanied by unnatural heat, by obstruction and by an accumulation of corrupt blood.

The phlegmon, or inflammation of the matrix, is a fluid that affects the entire womb, and is accompanied by unnatural heat, obstruction, and a buildup of contaminated blood.


CAUSE.

The cause of this affection is suppression of the courses, fullness of body, the immoderate use of sexual intercourse, frequent handling the genitals, difficult child-birth, violent motions of the body, falls, blows, to which may be added, the use of strong pessaries, whereby the womb is frequently inflamed, cupping glasses, also, fastened to the pubis and hypogastrium, draw the humours of the womb.

The reason for this condition is a suppression of menstrual cycles, excess body weight, excessive sexual activity, frequent manipulation of the genitals, difficult childbirth, intense physical movements, falls, and blows. Additionally, the use of strong pessaries can often lead to inflammation of the uterus, and cupping glasses applied to the pubis and hypogastrium draw fluids from the womb.


SIGNS.

The signs are pains in the lower parts of the body and head, humours, sickness, coldness in the knees, throbbing in the neck, palpitation of the heart. Often, also, there is shortness of breath because of the heart which is close to the midriff, and the breasts sympathising with the swollen and painful womb. Besides this, if the front of the matrix be inflamed, the privates suffer, and the urine is suppressed, or only flows with difficulty. If the hinder part be inflamed, the loins and back suffer, and the bowels are very costive; if the right side be inflamed, the right hip suffers, and the right leg is heavy and moves slowly, so that at times she seems almost lame. If, however, the left side of the womb be inflamed, then the left hip suffers and the left leg is weaker than the right. If the neck of the womb is affected, by putting her finger in, the midwife feels that its mouth is contracted and closed up, and that it is hard round it.

The symptoms include pain in the lower body and head, fluids, illness, coldness in the knees, throbbing in the neck, and a racing heart. There’s often shortness of breath due to the heart being near the diaphragm, and the breasts reacting to the swollen and painful uterus. Additionally, if the front of the uterus is inflamed, it causes pain in the genitals and difficulty with urination. If the back part is inflamed, the lower back and loins hurt, and there’s significant constipation; if the right side is inflamed, the right hip aches, and the right leg feels heavy and moves slowly, making it seem like she’s almost limping. Conversely, if the left side of the uterus is inflamed, then the left hip hurts and the left leg is weaker than the right. If the cervix is affected, the midwife can feel that its opening is tight, closed, and firm when she checks with her finger.


CURE.

In the cure, first of all, let the humours which flow to the womb be expelled. To effect this, after the bowels have been loosened by cooling clysters bleeding will be necessary. Therefore, open a vein in the arm, if she is not with child; the day after strike the saphena in both feet, fasten ligatures and cupping glasses to the arm, and rub the upper part. Purge gently with cassia, rhubarb, senna and myrobalan. Take one drachm of senna, a scruple of aniseed, myrobalan, half an ounce, with a sufficient quantity of barley water. Make a decoction and dissolve syrup of succory in it, and two ounces of rhubarb; pound half an ounce of cassia with a few drops of oil of aniseed and make a draught. At the commencement of the disease, anoint the private parts and loins with oil of roses and quinces: make plasters of plantain, linseed, barley meal, melilot, fenugreek, white of eggs, and if the pain be intense, a little laudanum; foment the genitals with a decoction of poppy-heads, purslace, knot-grass and water-lilies. Make injections of goat's milk, rose water, clarified whey and honey of roses. When the disease is on a decline, use injections of sage, linseed, mugwort, pennyroyal, horehound, fenugreek, and anoint the lower parts of the stomach with oil of camomiles and violets.

In the treatment, first, get rid of the fluids that are flowing to the womb. To do this, after loosening the bowels with cooling enemas, bleeding will be necessary. Therefore, open a vein in the arm if she is not pregnant; the next day, strike the saphena in both feet, apply ligatures and cupping glasses to the arm, and massage the upper part. Gently purge with cassia, rhubarb, senna, and myrobalan. Take one drachm of senna, a scruple of aniseed, myrobalan, half an ounce, with a sufficient amount of barley water. Make a decoction and dissolve syrup of succory in it, along with two ounces of rhubarb; pound half an ounce of cassia with a few drops of oil of aniseed and prepare a drink. At the start of the illness, apply oil of roses and quince on the private parts and lower back: make plasters of plantain, linseed, barley meal, melilot, fenugreek, egg white, and if the pain is severe, a little laudanum; soak the genitals with a decoction of poppy heads, purslane, knotgrass, and water lilies. Use injections of goat's milk, rose water, clarified whey, and rose honey. When the illness is improving, use injections of sage, linseed, mugwort, pennyroyal, horehound, and fenugreek, and apply oil of chamomile and violets to the lower abdomen.

Take four ounces each of lily and mallow roots, a handful of dog's mercury, a handful and a half each of mugwort, feverfew, camomile flowers and melilot, bruise the herbs and roots, and boil them in a sufficient quantity of milk; then add two ounces each of fresh butter, oil of camomiles and lilies, with a sufficient quantity of bran, make two plasters, and apply one before and the other behind.

Take four ounces each of lily and mallow roots, a handful of dog's mercury, and a handful and a half each of mugwort, feverfew, chamomile flowers, and melilot. Crush the herbs and roots, and boil them in enough milk. Then add two ounces each of fresh butter, chamomile oil, and lily oil, along with a sufficient amount of bran. Make two plasters and apply one to the front and the other to the back.

If the tumour cannot be removed, but seems inclined to suppurate, take three drachms each of fenugreek, mallow roots, boiled figs, linseed, barley meal, dove's dung and turpentine; half a drachm of deer's suet, half a scruple of opium and make a plaster of wax.

If the tumor can't be removed but seems likely to ooze, take three drams each of fenugreek, mallow roots, boiled figs, linseed, barley flour, dove's dung, and turpentine; half a dram of deer fat, half a scruple of opium, and make a wax plaster.

Take bay leaves, sage, hyssop, camomiles, and mugwort, and make an infusion in water.

Take bay leaves, sage, hyssop, chamomile, and mugwort, and make an infusion in water.

Take half a handful of wormwood and betony and half a pint each of white wine and milk, boil them until reduced to half; then take four ounces of this decoction and make an injection, but you must be careful that the humours are not brought down into the womb. Take three drachms each of roast figs, and bruised dog's mercury; three drachms each of turpentine and duck's grease, and two grains of opium; make a pessary with wax.

Take half a handful of wormwood and betony, and half a pint each of white wine and milk. Boil them down until you have half the original volume. Then take four ounces of this mixture and prepare an injection, but be careful not to let the fluids go into the womb. Take three drachms each of roasted figs and crushed dog's mercury; three drachms each of turpentine and duck's grease, and two grains of opium; use wax to form a pessary.

The room must be kept cool, and all motions of the body, especially of the lower parts, must be prohibited. Wakefulness is to be recommended, for humours are carried inward by sleep, and thus inflammation is increased. Eat sparingly, and drink only barley water or clarified whey, and eat chickens and chicken broth, boiled with endive, succory, sorrel, bugloss and mallows.

The room should be kept cool, and all movements of the body, especially the lower parts, should be avoided. Staying awake is advised, as sleep can lead to internal issues and increase inflammation. Eat lightly, and drink only barley water or clarified whey, and have chicken and chicken broth, boiled with endive, chicory, sorrel, borage, and mallows.


CHAPTER IX

Of Scirrhous Tumours, or Hardness of the Womb.

On Scirrhous Tumors, or Hardness of the Uterus.


A scirrhus, or a hard unnatural swelling of the matrix is generally produced by neglected, or imperfectly cured phlegm, which, insensibly, hinders the functions of the womb, and predisposes the whole body to listlessness.

A scirrhus, or a hard unnatural swelling of the tissue, is usually caused by ignored or poorly treated phlegm, which gradually disrupts the functions of the uterus and makes the entire body feel sluggish.


CAUSE.

One cause of this disease may be ascribed to want of judgment on the part of the physician, as many empirics when attending to inflammation of the womb, chill the humour so much that it can neither pass backward nor forward, and hence, the matter being condensed, turns into a hard, stony substance. Other causes may be suppression of the menses, retention of the Lochein, commonly called the after purging; eating decayed meat, as in the disordered longing after the pleia to which pregnant women are often subject. It may, however, also proceed from obstructions and ulcers in the matrix or from some evil affections of the stomach or spleen.

One reason for this disease could be attributed to the physician's lack of judgment, as many quacks, when treating inflammation of the uterus, cool the fluid so much that it can't move either backward or forward. As a result, the substance becomes thickened and turns into a hard, stony mass. Other reasons might include a stoppage of menstruation, retention of the lochia, commonly known as post-delivery discharge; eating spoiled meat, often related to the unusual cravings pregnant women experience. It can also arise from blockages and sores in the uterus or from some underlying issues with the stomach or spleen.

If the bottom of the womb be affected, she feels, as it were, a heavy burden representing a mole, [7] yet differing from it, in that the breasts are attenuated, and the whole body grows less. If the neck of the womb be affected, no outward humours will appear; its mouth is retracted and feels hard to the touch, nor can the woman have sexual intercourse without great pain.

If the bottom of the uterus is affected, she feels what seems like a heavy burden, similar to a lump, yet different because her breasts are smaller and her whole body is shrinking. If the neck of the uterus is affected, there won’t be any visible symptoms; its opening is tight and feels hard to the touch, and the woman cannot have sex without intense pain.


PROGNOSTICS.

Confirmed scirrhus is incurable, and will turn to cancer or incurable dropsy, and when it ends in cancer it proves fatal, because as the innate heat of these parts is almost smothered, it can hardly be restored again.

Confirmed scirrhus is incurable and will lead to cancer or untreatable dropsy, and when it turns into cancer, it becomes fatal because the natural heat of these areas is nearly extinguished, making it difficult to restore.


CURE.

Where there is repletion, bleeding is advisable, therefore open a vein in one arm and in both feet, more especially if the menses are suppressed.

Where there is fullness, bleeding is recommended; therefore, open a vein in one arm and both feet, especially if menstruation is suppressed.

Treat the humours with syrup of borage, succory made with a poultice, and then take the following pills, according to the patient's strength.

Manage the moods with borage syrup, a poultice of succory, and then take the following pills, based on the patient's strength.

Hiera piera six drachms, two and a half drachms each of black hellebore and polypody; a drachm and a half each of agaric, lapis lazuli, sal Indiae, coloquintida, mix them and make two pills. After purging, mollify the hardness as follows:—the privy parts and the neck of the womb with an ointment of decalthea and agrippa; or take two drachms each of opopanax, bdellium, ammoniac and myrrh, and half a drachm of saffron; dissolve the gum in oil of lilies and sweet almond and make an ointment with wax and turpentine. Apply diacatholicon ferellia below the navel, and make infusions of figs, mugwort, mallows, pennyroyal, althea, fennel roots, melilot, fenugreek and the four mollifying herbs, with oil of dill, camomiles and lilies dissolved in it. Take three drachms of gum bdellium, put the stone pyrites on the coals, and let her take the fumes into her womb. Foment the privy parts with a decoction of the roots and leaves of dane wort. Take a drachm each of gum galbanum and opopanax, half an ounce each of juice of dane wort and mucilage of fenugreek, an ounce of calve's marrow, and a sufficient quantity of wax, and make a pessary. Or make a pessary of lead only, dip it in the above mentioned things, and put it up.

Hiera piera, six drachms; two and a half drachms each of black hellebore and polypody; one and a half drachms each of agaric, lapis lazuli, sal Indiae, and coloquintida. Mix these and form two pills. After purging, soften the hardness as follows: apply an ointment of decalthea and agrippa to the private parts and the cervix; or take two drachms each of opopanax, bdellium, ammoniac, and myrrh, and half a drachm of saffron. Dissolve the gums in oil of lilies and sweet almond, then create an ointment with wax and turpentine. Apply diacatholicon ferellia below the navel, and make infusions of figs, mugwort, mallows, pennyroyal, althea, fennel roots, melilot, fenugreek, and the four soothing herbs, with oil of dill, chamomile, and lilies dissolved into it. Take three drachms of gum bdellium, heat stone pyrites on the coals, and allow her to inhale the fumes into her womb. Warm the private parts with a decoction of the roots and leaves of dane wort. Take one drachm each of gum galbanum and opopanax, half an ounce each of juice of dane wort and mucilage of fenugreek, one ounce of calf's marrow, and a sufficient amount of wax to create a pessary. Alternatively, make a pessary of lead only, dip it in the aforementioned substances, and insert it.

The atmosphere must be kept temperate, and gross and salt meats such as pork, bull beef, fish and old cheese, must be prohibited.

The environment should be kept moderate, and fatty and salty meats like pork, beef, fish, and aged cheese should be avoided.


FOOTNOTES:

FOOTNOTES:

Mole: "A somewhat shapeless, compact fleshy mass occurring in the uterus, due to the retention and continued life of the whole or a part of the foetal envelopes, after the death of the foetus (a maternal or true mole); or being some other body liable to be mistaken for this, or perhaps a polypus or false mole." (Whitney's Century Dictionary.)

Mole: "A somewhat shapeless, compact mass of tissue found in the uterus, caused by the retention and ongoing existence of all or part of the fetal membranes after the fetus has died (a maternal or true mole); or it could be another type of tissue that might be confused for this, or possibly a polyp or false mole." (Whitney's Century Dictionary.)


CHAPTER X

Of Dropsy of the Womb.

Uterine Dropsy.


Uterine dropsy is an unnatural swelling, caused by the collection of wind or phlegm in the cavity, membranes or substance of the womb, on account of the want of innate heat and of sufficient alimentation, and so it turns into an excrescence. The causes are, too much cold and moisture of the milt and liver, immoderate drinking, eating insufficiently cooked meat, all of which by causing repletion, overpower the natural heat. It may likewise be caused by undue menstruation, or by any other immoderate evacuation. To these may be added abortions, subcutaneous inflammations and a hardened swelling of the womb.

Uterine dropsy is an abnormal swelling caused by the buildup of gas or mucus in the cavity, membranes, or tissue of the womb due to a lack of natural heat and proper nutrition, leading to its abnormal growth. The causes include excessive cold and moisture from the spleen and liver, heavy drinking, and eating inadequately cooked meat, all of which overwhelm the natural heat. It can also be triggered by irregular menstruation or other excessive bodily discharges. Additionally, abortions, superficial inflammations, and a hard swelling of the womb can contribute to this condition.


SIGNS.

The signs of this affection are as follows:—The lower parts of the stomach, with the genitals, are swollen and painful; the feet swell, the natural colour of the face is lost, the appetite becomes depraved, and there is a consequent heaviness of the whole body. If the woman turns over in bed a noise like flowing water is heard, and sometimes water is discharged from the womb. If the swelling is caused by wind and the stomach feels hot, it sounds like a drum; the bowels rumble, and the wind escapes through the neck of the womb with a murmuring noise. This affection may be distinguished from true conception in many ways, as will be shown in the chapter on conception. It is distinguished from common dropsy, by the lower parts of the stomach being most swollen. Again, it does not appear so injurious in this blood-producing capability, nor is the urine so pale, nor the face so altered. The upper parts are also not so reduced, as in usual dropsy.

The signs of this condition are as follows:—The lower parts of the abdomen, along with the genitals, are swollen and painful; the feet swell, the natural color of the face fades, the appetite becomes poor, and there is a general heaviness in the body. When the woman turns over in bed, a noise like flowing water can be heard, and sometimes fluid is discharged from the womb. If the swelling is caused by gas and the abdomen feels hot, it sounds like a drum; the intestines rumble, and gas escapes from the cervix with a gurgling noise. This condition can be differentiated from true pregnancy in several ways, which will be discussed in the chapter on conception. It can be distinguished from regular edema by the fact that the lower parts of the abdomen are most swollen. Additionally, it does not seem to be as harmful regarding blood production, the urine is not as pale, and the face does not change as much. The upper parts of the body are also not as diminished as in typical edema.


PROGNOSTICS.

This affection foretells the ruin of the natural functions, by that peculiar sympathy it has with the liver, and that, therefore, kathydria, or general dropsy will follow.

This affection predicts the failure of natural functions due to its unique connection with the liver, and as a result, kathydria, or general dropsy, will occur.


CURE.

In the cure of this disease, imitate the practice of Hippocrates, and first mitigate the pain with fomentations of melilot, dog's mercury, mallows, linseed, camomiles and althoea. Then let the womb be prepared with syrup of stoebis, hyssop, calamint, mugwort, with distilled water, a decoction of elder, marjoram, sage, origan, spearage, pennyroyal, and betony. Purge with senna, agaric, rhubarb, and claterium. Take spicierum hier, a scruple each of rhubarb, agaric lozenges, and make into pills with iris juice.

In treating this disease, follow the approach of Hippocrates. Start by easing the pain with warm compresses made from melilot, dog's mercury, mallows, linseed, chamomile, and althea. Then prepare the uterus with a syrup made from stoebis, hyssop, calamint, mugwort, along with distilled water, a brew of elder, marjoram, sage, oregano, spearmint, pennyroyal, and betony. Use senna, agaric, rhubarb, and claterium for purging. Take spicierum hier, a scruple each of rhubarb and agaric lozenges, and roll them into pills using iris juice.

When diseases arise from moistness, purge with pills, and in those affections which are caused by emptiness or dryness, purge by means of a draught. Apply cupping glasses to the stomach and also to the navel, especially if the swelling be flatulent. Put a seton on to the inside of each leg, the width of a hand below the knee. Take two drachms each of sparganium, diambrae, diamolet, diacaliminti, diacinamoni, myrrh lozenges, and a pound of sugar; make these into lozenges with betony water, and take them two hours before meals. Apply a little bag of camomiles, cummin and melilot boiled in oil of rue, to the bottom of the stomach as hot as it can be borne; anoint the stomach and the privates with unguent agripp, and unguent aragon. Mix iris oil with it, and cover the lower part of the stomach with a plaster of bay berries, or a cataplasm made of cummin, camomiles, briony root, adding cows' and goats' dung.

When diseases come from excess moisture, use pills to cleanse, and for issues caused by emptiness or dryness, cleanse with a drink. Use cupping glasses on the stomach and navel, especially if the swelling is due to gas. Place a seton on the inside of each leg, about a hand's width below the knee. Take two drachms each of sparganium, diambrae, diamolet, diacaliminti, diacinamoni, myrrh lozenges, and a pound of sugar; mix these into lozenges with betony water, and take them two hours before meals. Apply a small bag of chamomile, cumin, and melilot boiled in rue oil to the bottom of the stomach as hot as it's comfortable; rub the stomach and the privates with unguent agripp and unguent aragon. Blend iris oil with it, and cover the lower part of the stomach with a plaster of bay berries, or a poultice made of cumin, chamomile, briony root, adding cow and goat dung.

Our modern medical writers ascribe great virtues to tobacco-water, injected into the womb by means of a clyster. Take a handful each of balm of southernwood, origanum, wormwood, calamint, bay berries and marjoram, and four drachms of juniper berries; make a decoction of these in water, and use this for fomentations and infusions. Make pessaries of storax, aloes, with the roots of dictam, aristolochia and gentian, but instead of this you may use the pessary prescribed at the end of Chapter XVII. Let her take aromatic electuary, disatyrion and candied eringo roots, every morning.

Our current medical writers attribute significant benefits to tobacco-water, which is injected into the uterus using an enema. Take a handful each of Southernwood balm, oregano, wormwood, calamint, bay berries, and marjoram, along with four ounces of juniper berries; create a decoction of these in water, and use it for compresses and infusions. Make pessaries from storax, aloes, and the roots of dictam, aristolochia, and gentian; however, you can use the pessary mentioned at the end of Chapter XVII instead. She should take an aromatic electuary, disatyrion, and candied eringo roots every morning.

The air must be hot and dry, moderate exercise is to be taken and too much sleep prohibited. She may eat the flesh of partridges, larks, grouse, hares, rabbits, etc., and let her drink diluted urine.

The air should be hot and dry, light exercise is recommended, and excessive sleeping should be avoided. She can eat the meat of partridges, larks, grouse, hares, rabbits, etc., and she should drink diluted urine.


CHAPTER XI

Of Moles [8] and False Conceptions.

Of Moles __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ and Misconceptions.


This disease may be defined as an inarticulate shapeless piece of flesh, begotten in the womb as if it were true conception. In this definition we must note two things: (1) because a mole is said to be inarticulate or jointless, and without shape, it differs from monstrosities which are both formata and articulata; (2) it is said to be, as it were a true conception, which makes a difference between a true conception, and a mole, and this difference holds good in three ways. First, in its genus, because a mole cannot be said to be an animal: secondly, in the species, because it has not a human figure and has not the character of a man; thirdly, in the individual, for it has no affinity to the parent, either in the whole body, or in any particular part of it.

This disease can be described as a formless, shapeless mass of tissue, created in the womb as if it were a genuine conception. In this description, we should highlight two points: (1) since a mole is considered formless or jointless and lacking shape, it is different from monstrosities, which are both formed and jointed; (2) it is referred to as a true conception, which distinguishes it from a genuine conception, and this distinction applies in three ways. First, in its type, because a mole cannot be classified as an animal; second, in its kind, because it lacks a human form and does not possess the characteristics of a human; third, in the individual, as it has no connection to the parent, either in the entire body or in any specific part.


CAUSE.

There is a great difference of opinion amongst learned writers as to the cause of this affection. Some think, that if the woman's seed goes into the womb, and not the man's, that the mole is produced thereby. Others declare that it springs from the menstruous blood, but if these two things were granted, then virgins, by having their courses or through nocturnal pollutions, might be liable to the same things, which none have ever been yet. The true cause of this fleshy mole is due both to the man and from the menstruous blood in the woman both mixing together in the cavity of the womb. Nature finding herself weak there (and yet wishing to propagate her species), labours to bring forth a defective conception rather than nothing and instead of a living creature produces a lump of flesh.

There’s a big difference of opinion among knowledgeable writers about the cause of this condition. Some believe that if the woman’s egg enters the womb without the man's sperm, it leads to the formation of a mole. Others claim it originates from menstrual blood, but if we accepted those two ideas, then virgins, due to menstruation or night emissions, could also experience this, which has never happened. The true cause of this fleshy mole comes from a combination of the man’s contribution and the woman’s menstrual blood mixing in the womb. When nature finds itself at a disadvantage (yet still wanting to reproduce), it tries to create something rather than nothing, resulting in a flawed conception instead of a living being, leading to the formation of a lump of flesh.


SIGNS.

The signs of a mole are these. The menses are suppressed, the appetite becomes depraved, the breasts swell and the stomach becomes inflated and hard. So far the symptoms in a pregnant woman and in one that has a mole are the same, but now this is how they differ. The first sign of difference is in the movements of a mole. It may be felt moving in the womb before the third month, whereas an infant cannot be so felt; yet this motion cannot proceed from any intelligent power in the mole, but from the capabilities of the womb, and of the seminal vigour, distributed through the substance of the mole, for it does not live an animal, but a vegetable life, like a plant. Secondly, in a mole the stomach swells suddenly, but in true conception it is first contracted, and then rises by degrees. Thirdly, if the stomach is pressed with the hand, the mole gives way, and returns to its former position as soon as the hand is removed. But a child in the womb does not move immediately though pressed with the hand, and when the hand is removed it returns slowly or not at all. Lastly, no child continues in the womb more than eleven months, but a mole continues for four or five years, more or less, sometimes according as it is fastened to the matrix; and I have known a mole pass away in four or five months. If, however, it remains until the eleventh month, the woman's legs grow weak and the whole body wastes away, but the stomach still increases, which makes some women think that they are dropsical, though there is no reason for it, for in dropsy the legs swell and grow big, but in a mole they wither and fall away.

The signs of a mole are as follows. The periods are missed, the appetite becomes abnormal, the breasts swell, and the stomach becomes bloated and hard. Up to this point, the symptoms in a pregnant woman and in someone with a mole are the same, but here’s how they differ. The first sign of difference is in the movements of a mole. It can be felt moving in the womb before the third month, while a fetus cannot be felt that early; however, this motion does not stem from any intelligent function in the mole, but rather from the characteristics of the womb and the reproductive vigor distributed throughout the mole's tissue, as it does not have an animal life, but rather a plant-like existence. Secondly, in a mole the stomach swells suddenly, whereas in a true pregnancy it first contracts and then gradually expands. Thirdly, if you press on the stomach, the mole will yield and return to its original position as soon as you remove your hand. But a baby in the womb does not move immediately when pressed, and it returns slowly, if at all, when the pressure is released. Lastly, no child can stay in the womb for more than eleven months, while a mole can last four to five years, depending on its attachment to the uterus; I’ve seen a mole disappear in four or five months. If, however, it remains until the eleventh month, the woman’s legs become weak and her entire body wastes away, although her stomach continues to grow, which leads some women to believe they have dropsy, although that’s not the case, because in dropsy the legs swell and become large, whereas with a mole they shrink and waste away.


CURE.

In the school of Hippocrates we are taught that bleeding causes abortion, by taking all the nourishment which should preserve the life of the embryo. In order, therefore, that this faulty conception may be deprived of that nourishing sap by which it lives, open the liver vein and saphena in both feet, apply cupping glasses to the loins and sides of the stomach, and when that has been done, let the uterine parts be first softened, and then the expulsive powers be stimulated to get rid of the burden.

In the Hippocratic school, we learn that bleeding leads to abortion by removing all the nutrients needed to keep the embryo alive. Therefore, to deprive this flawed conception of the nourishment it needs to survive, open the liver vein and saphena in both legs, use cupping glasses on the lower back and sides of the stomach, and after that, soften the uterine areas first, then encourage the body to get rid of the burden.

In order to relax the ligatures of the mole, take three handfuls of mallows with their roots, two handfuls each of camomiles, melilot, pellitory of the wall, violet leaves, dog's mercury, fennel roots, parsley, and one pound each of linseed and fenugreek; boil them in oil and let the patient sit in it up to her navel. When she comes out of her bath, she should anoint her private parts and loins with the following ointment:—"Take one ounce each of oil of camomiles, lilies and sweet almonds: half an ounce each of fresh butter, laudanum and ammoniac, and make an ointment with oil of lilies. Or, instead of this, you may use unguentum agrippae or dialthea. Take a handful of dog's mercury and althea roots; half a handful of flos brochae ursini; six ounces of linseed and barley meal. Boil all these together in honey and water and make a plaster, and make pessaries of gum galbanum, bdellium, ammoniac, figs, pig's fat and honey.

To relax the ligaments of the mole, take three handfuls of mallows with their roots, two handfuls each of chamomile, sweet clover, pellitory of the wall, violet leaves, dog’s mercury, fennel roots, parsley, and one pound each of flaxseed and fenugreek; boil them in oil and have the patient sit in it up to her navel. When she gets out of the bath, she should apply the following ointment to her private parts and lower back: "Take one ounce each of chamomile oil, lily oil, and sweet almond oil; half an ounce each of fresh butter, laudanum, and ammoniac, and make an ointment with lily oil. Alternatively, you can use agrippa ointment or dialthea. Take a handful of dog’s mercury and marshmallow roots; half a handful of ursine flower; six ounces of flaxseed and barley meal. Boil all of these together in honey and water to make a plaster, and prepare pessaries using galbanum gum, bdellium, ammoniac, figs, pig’s fat, and honey.

After the ligaments of the mole are loosened, let the expulsive powers be stimulated to expel the mole, and for doing this, all those drugs may be used which are adapted to bring on the courses. Take one ounce of myrrh lozenges, half an ounce each of castor, astrolachia, gentian and dittany and make them into a powder, and take one drachm in four ounces of mugwort water. Take calamint, pennyroyal, betony, hyssop, sage, horehound, valerian, madder and savine; make a decoction in water and take three ounces of it, with one and a half ounces of feverfew. Take three scruples each of mugwort, myrrh, gentian and pill. coch.; a drachm each of rue, pennyroyal and opopanax, and the same of asafoetida, cinnamon, juniper-berries and borage, and make into pills with savine juice, to be taken every morning. Make an infusion of hyssop, bay leaves, bay berries, calamint, camomiles, mugwort and savine. Take two scruples each of sacopenium, mugwort, savine, cloves, nutmeg, bay berries; one drachm of galbanum; one scruple each of hiera piera and black hellebore, and make a pessary with turpentine.

After the ligaments of the mole are loosened, stimulate the body's natural ability to expel the mole by using any medications that can induce menstruation. Take one ounce of myrrh lozenges, half an ounce each of castor, astrolachia, gentian, and dittany, and grind them into a powder. Take one drachm of this powder mixed in four ounces of mugwort water. Take calamint, pennyroyal, betony, hyssop, sage, horehound, valerian, madder, and savine; make a decoction in water and drink three ounces of it, along with one and a half ounces of feverfew. Take three scruples each of mugwort, myrrh, gentian, and pills of cochineal; one drachm each of rue, pennyroyal, and opopanax, along with the same amounts of asafoetida, cinnamon, juniper berries, and borage, and form them into pills with savine juice to be taken every morning. Create an infusion of hyssop, bay leaves, bay berries, calamint, chamomiles, mugwort, and savine. Take two scruples each of sacopenium, mugwort, savine, cloves, nutmeg, and bay berries; one drachm of galbanum; one scruple each of hiera piera and black hellebore, and make a pessary with turpentine.

But if these medicaments are not procurable, then the mole must be pulled out by means of an instrument called the pes gryphis, [9] which may be done without much danger if it be performed by a skilful surgeon. After she has been delivered of the mole (because the woman will have lost much blood already), let the flow of blood be stopped as soon as possible.

But if these medications aren't available, then the mole must be removed using a tool called the pes gryphis, [9] which can be done safely if performed by a skilled surgeon. Once she has delivered the mole (since the woman will have already lost a lot of blood), the bleeding should be stopped as soon as possible.

Apply cupping glasses to the shoulders and ligatures to the arms, and if this be not effective, open the liver vein in the arm.

Apply cupping glasses to the shoulders and bands to the arms, and if this isn't effective, open the liver vein in the arm.

The atmosphere of the room must be kept tolerably dry and warm, and she must be put on a dry diet, to soothe the system; she must, however, drink white wine.

The room should be kept reasonably dry and warm, and she should be on a dry diet to calm her system; however, she must drink white wine.


FOOTNOTES:

FOOTNOTES:

Mole: "A somewhat shapeless, compact fleshy mass occurring in the uterus, due to the retention and continued life of the whole or a part of the foetal envelopes, after the death of the foetus (a maternal or true mole); or being some other body liable to be mistaken for this, or perhaps a polypus or false mole." (Whitney's Century Dictionary.)

Mole: "A somewhat shapeless, compact mass of flesh found in the uterus, resulting from the retention and continued existence of all or part of the fetal membranes after the fetus has died (a maternal or true mole); or it can refer to another type of body that could be confused with this, such as a polyp or false mole." (Whitney's Century Dictionary.)

Griffin's claw, a peculiar hooked instrument.

Griffin's claw, a strange hooked tool.


CHAPTER XII

Of Conception and its Signs, and How a Woman may know whether it be Male or Female.

About Conception and its Signs, and How a Woman Can Tell if it’s Male or Female.


Ignorance often makes women the murderesses of the fruit of their own body, for many, having conceived and finding themselves out of order, and not rightly knowing the cause, go to the shop of their own conceit and take whatever they think fit, or else (as the custom is) they send to the doctor for a remedy, and he, not perceiving the cause of their trouble, for nothing can be diagnosed accurately by the urine, prescribes what he thinks best; perhaps some diuretic or cathartic, which destroy the embryo. Therefore Hippocrates says, it is necessary that women should be instructed in the signs of conception, so that the parent as well as the child may be saved from danger. I shall, therefore, lay down some rules, by which every woman may know whether she is pregnant or not, and the signs will be taken from the woman, from her urine, from the child and from experiments.

Ignorance often leads women to harm their own unborn children. Many, upon finding themselves unwell after becoming pregnant and not understanding the cause, turn to their own misguided solutions or (as is usually done) contact a doctor for help. The doctor, unable to accurately identify the issue through urine analysis, prescribes what he believes is best; this could be a diuretic or laxative that ends up harming the embryo. Hippocrates therefore states that women need to be educated about the signs of pregnancy, so that both the mother and the child can be protected from harm. I will lay out some guidelines that will help every woman determine if she is pregnant, with signs derived from the woman herself, her urine, the child, and various tests.


SIGNS.

The first day after conception, she feels a slight quivering and chilliness throughout her body; there is a tickling of the womb and a little pain in the lower parts of her stomach. Ten or twelve days after she feels giddy and her eyes dim and with circles round them; the breasts swell and grow hard, with some pain and pricking in them, whilst the stomach rises and sinks again by degrees, and there is a hardness about the navel. The nipples grow red, the heart beats unusually strongly, the natural appetite abates, and the woman has a craving after strange food. The neck of the womb is contracted, so that it can scarcely be felt when the finger is put in. And the following is an infallible sign; she is alternately in high spirits and melancholy; the monthly courses cease without any apparent cause, the evacuations from the bowels are retained unusually long, by the womb pressing on the large gut, and her desire for sexual intercourse is diminished. The surest sign is taken from the infant, which begins to move in the womb in the third or fourth month, and not in the manner of a mole, mentioned above, from side to side like a stone, but gently, as may be perceived by applying the hand cold upon the stomach.

The day after conception, she feels a slight trembling and chill throughout her body; there's a tickling sensation in her womb and a bit of pain in her lower abdomen. About ten to twelve days later, she experiences dizziness and her vision becomes blurry with dark circles under her eyes; her breasts swell and become firm, with some pain and prickling sensations, while her stomach fluctuates in size and there’s a hardness near her navel. The nipples turn red, her heart beats unusually strongly, her usual appetite decreases, and she craves unusual foods. The cervix tightens, making it hard to feel when she checks. An unmistakable sign is her mood swings, alternating between happiness and sadness; her menstrual cycle stops without any obvious reason, she has longer than usual bowel retention due to the pressure of the womb on her intestines, and her desire for sex diminishes. The clearest sign comes from the baby, which starts to move in the womb around the third or fourth month, not like a mole shifting side to side, but gently, which can be felt by placing a cold hand on her abdomen.


SIGNS TAKEN FROM THE URINE.

The best writers affirm that the water of a pregnant woman is white and has little specks in it, like those in a sunbeam, ascending and descending in it, of an opal colour, and when the sediment is disturbed by shaking the urine, it looks like carded wool. In the middle of gestation it turns yellow, then red and lastly black, with a red film. At night on going to bed, let her drink water and honey, and if afterwards she feels a beating pain in her stomach and about the navel, she has conceived. Or let her take the juice of cardius, and if she brings it up again, that is a sign of conception. Throw a clean needle into the woman's urine, put it into a basin and let it stand all night. If it is covered with red spots in the morning, she has conceived, but if it has turned black and rusty, she has not.

The best writers say that a pregnant woman's urine is clear and has tiny specks in it, like those seen in a sunbeam, moving up and down, with an opal color. When the sediment is disturbed by shaking the urine, it resembles carded wool. In the middle of pregnancy, it changes to yellow, then red, and finally black, with a red film. At night, before going to bed, she should drink water mixed with honey; if she later feels a throbbing pain in her stomach and around her navel, it means she has conceived. Alternatively, she can drink the juice of carduus; if she vomits it, that indicates conception. Throw a clean needle into her urine, place it in a basin, and let it sit overnight. If it's covered with red spots in the morning, she has conceived; if it has turned black and rusty, she has not.


SIGNS TAKEN FROM THE SEX, TO SHOW WHETHER IT BE A MALE OR FEMALE.

If it is a male, the right breast swells first, the right eye is brighter than the left, the face is high-coloured, because the colour is such as the blood is, and as the male is conceived of purer blood and of more perfect seed than the female, red specks in the urine, and making a sediment, show that a male has been conceived, but if they are white, a female. Put the urine of the woman into a glass bottle, let it stand tightly stoppered for two days, then strain it through a fine cloth, and you will find little animals in it. If they are red, it is a male, but if white, it is a female.

If it's a boy, the right breast swells first, the right eye is brighter than the left, and the face has a flushed color because it resembles the color of blood. Since a boy is conceived from purer blood and better seed than a girl, red specks in the urine that settle indicate a male conception, while white specks suggest a female. Take the woman's urine and put it in a glass bottle, seal it tightly, and let it sit for two days. Then strain it through a fine cloth, and you'll find tiny creatures in it. If they're red, it's a boy; if they're white, it's a girl.

The belly is rounder and lies higher with a boy than with a girl, and the right breast is harder and plumper than the left, and the right nipple redder, and the woman's colour is clearer than when she has conceived a girl.

The belly is rounder and sits higher with a boy than with a girl, and the right breast is firmer and fuller than the left, with the right nipple being redder, and a woman's skin tone is brighter than when she is pregnant with a girl.

To conclude, the most certain sign to give credit to, is the motion of the child, for the male moves in the third month, and the female not until the fourth.

To conclude, the most reliable indication to trust is the movement of the fetus; the male begins to move in the third month, while the female does not start moving until the fourth month.


CHAPTER XIII

Of Untimely Births.

Of Untimely Births


When the fruit of the womb comes forth before the seventh month (that is, before it comes to maturity), it is said to be abortive; and, in effect, the children prove abortive, that is, do not live, that are born in the eighth month. Why children born in the seventh or ninth month should live, and not those born in the eighth, may seem strange, and yet it is true. The cause of it is ascribed by some to the planet under which the child is born; for every month, from conception to birth, is governed by its own planet, and in the eighth month Saturn predominates, which is dry and cold; and coldness, being an utter enemy to life, destroys the natural constitution of the child. Hippocrates gives a better reason, viz.:—The infant, being every way perfect and complete in the seventh month, wants more air and nourishment than it had before, and because it cannot obtain this, it tries for a passage out. But if it have not sufficient strength to break the membranes and to come out as ordained by nature, it will continue in the womb until the ninth month, so that by that time it may be again strengthened. But if it returns to the attempt in the eighth month and be born, it cannot live, because the day of its birth is either past or is to come. For in the eighth month Avicunus says, it is weak and infirm, and therefore on being brought into the cold air, its vitality must be destroyed.

When a baby is born before the seventh month (meaning before it is fully developed), it is considered abortive; and indeed, babies born in the eighth month do not survive. It might seem odd that babies born in the seventh or ninth months can live while those born in the eighth cannot, but it is a fact. Some people attribute this to the planet that influences the child at birth; each month from conception to delivery is associated with a specific planet, and in the eighth month, Saturn is in control, which is dry and cold. Cold is completely hostile to life and harms the natural development of the baby. Hippocrates offers a better explanation: by the seventh month, the infant is fully developed and needs more air and nourishment than it received earlier. When it cannot get that, it attempts to be born. However, if it doesn't have enough strength to break through the membranes and emerge as nature intends, it will stay in the womb until the ninth month to gain strength. If it tries to be born in the eighth month and actually comes out, it won't survive because its birth day is either past or still to come. Avicunus points out that in the eighth month, the baby is weak and frail, so when exposed to cold air, its vitality is compromised.


CURE.

Untimely births may be caused by cold, for as it causes the fruit of the tree to wither and fall before it is ripe, so it nips the fruit of the womb before it comes to perfection, or makes it abortive;—sometimes by humidity, which weakens its power, so that the fruit cannot be retained until the proper time. It may be caused by dryness or emptiness, which rob the child of its nourishment, or by an alvine discharge, by bleeding or some other evacuation, by inflammation of the womb, and other severe disease. Sometimes it is caused by joy, anger, laughter and especially by fear, for then the heat forsakes the womb, and goes to the heart, and so the cold sinks into the womb, whereby the ligaments are relaxed, and so abortion follows. On this account, Plato recommended that the woman should avoid all temptations to excessive joy and pleasure, as well as all occasions for fear and grief. Abortion may also be caused by the pollution of the air by filthy odours, and especially by the smell of the smouldering wick of a candle, and also by falls, blows, violent exercise, jumping, dancing, etc.

Untimely births can happen due to cold because, just like how cold causes fruit on trees to wither and drop before it's ripe, it can also affect the fetus, leading to premature birth or miscarriage. Sometimes humidity weakens its strength, preventing the fetus from staying until the right time. It could also be due to dryness or lack of resources, which deprive the baby of its nourishment, or from discharges, bleeding, or other evacuations, inflammation of the womb, and other serious illnesses. Joy, anger, laughter, and especially fear can also trigger this. When fear strikes, heat leaves the womb and moves to the heart, allowing cold to enter the womb, which relaxes the ligaments and can result in miscarriage. For this reason, Plato advised that women should avoid excessive joy and pleasure, as well as situations that might cause fear or sadness. Miscarriages can also be caused by polluted air with unpleasant odors, particularly the smell of a burning candle wick, as well as by falls, blows, intense exercise, jumping, dancing, and so on.


SIGNS.

Signs of coming abortion are a falling away of the breast, with a flow of watery milk, pains in the womb, heaviness in the head, unusual weariness in the hips and thighs, and a flowing of the courses. Signs denoting that the fruit is dead in the womb are sunken eyes, pains in the head, frights, paleness of the face and lips, gnawing at the stomach, no movements of the infant; coldness and looseness of the mouth of the womb. The stomach falls down, whilst watery and bloody discharges come from the womb.

Signs of an impending miscarriage include breast changes, such as a decrease in firmness and a discharge of watery milk, along with cramps in the abdomen, a heavy feeling in the head, unusual fatigue in the hips and thighs, and a change in menstrual flow. Indicators that the fetus has died in the womb are sunken eyes, headaches, anxiety, paleness of the face and lips, stomach discomfort, absence of fetal movements, coldness, and looseness of the cervix. The abdomen drops, while watery and bloody discharge occurs from the uterus.


CHAPTER XIV

Directions for Pregnant Women.

Guidelines for Expecting Mothers.


The prevention of untimely births consists in removing the aforementioned causes, which must be effected both before and after conception.

The prevention of early births involves eliminating the previously mentioned causes, which must be addressed both before and after conception.

Before conception, if the body be too hot, dry or moist, employ such treatment as to counteract the symptoms; if the blood be vitiated purify it, if plethoric, open the liver vein; if gross, reduce it; if too thin strengthen and nourish it. All the diseases of the womb must be removed as I have shown.

Before conception, if the body is too hot, dry, or damp, use treatments to address those symptoms; if the blood is unhealthy, purify it; if there's too much blood, drain the liver vein; if it’s too thick, thin it out; if it’s too thin, strengthen and nourish it. All issues related to the womb must be treated as I have explained.

After conception, let the atmosphere be kept temperate, do not sleep too much, avoid late hours, too much bodily exercise, mental excitement, loud noises and bad smells, and sweet smells must also be avoided by those who are hysterical. Refrain from all things that may provoke either urine or menstruation, also salt, sour, and windy food, and keep to a moderate diet.

After conception, keep the environment comfortable, don’t sleep too much, avoid staying up late, excessive physical activity, mental stress, loud noises, and unpleasant odors. People who are prone to hysteria should also avoid sweet smells. Stay away from anything that might trigger urination or menstruation, as well as salty, sour, and gassy foods, and stick to a balanced diet.

If the bowels are confined, relieve the stomach with injections made of a decoction of mallows and violets, with sugar and salad oil; or make a broth with borage, buglos, beetroot, and mallows, and add a little manna to it. If, on the other hand, she be troubled with looseness of the bowels, do not check it with medical advice, for all the uterine fluxes have some bad qualities in them, which must be evacuated before the discharge is stopped.

If the bowels are blocked, help the stomach with injections made from a decoction of mallows and violets, along with sugar and salad oil; or prepare a broth with borage, bugloss, beetroot, and mallows, adding a little manna. Conversely, if there’s diarrhea, don’t suppress it with medication, since all uterine discharges have some negative qualities that need to be cleared out before stopping the flow.

A cough is another thing to which pregnant women are frequently liable, and which causes them to run great danger of miscarrying, by the shock and continual drain upon the vein. To prevent this shave off the hair from the coronal commissures, and apply the following plaster to the place.

A cough is another issue that pregnant women often experience, and it puts them at a high risk of miscarriage due to the stress and continuous strain on the veins. To prevent this, shave off the hair from the crown areas, and apply the following plaster to the spot.

Take half an ounce of resin, a drachm of laudanum, a drachm each of citron peel, lignaloes and galbanum, with a sufficient quantity of liquid and dry styrax. Dissolve the gum in vinegar and make a plaster, and at night let her inhale the fumes of these lozenges, thrown upon bright coals. Take also a drachm and a half each of frankincense, styrax powder and red roses: eight drachms of sandrich, a drachm each of mastic, benjamin and amber; make into lozenges with turpentine, and apply a cautery to the nape of the neck. And every night let her take the following pills:—Half an ounce each of hypocistides, terrae sigilatae and fine bole; two drachms each of bistort, alcatia, styrax and calamint, and one drachm of cloves, and make into pills with syrup of myrtles.

Take half an ounce of resin, a drachm of laudanum, a drachm each of citron peel, lignaloes, and galbanum, along with enough liquid and dry styrax. Dissolve the gum in vinegar to create a paste, and at night, let her breathe in the fumes from these lozenges placed on glowing coals. Also, take a drachm and a half each of frankincense, styrax powder, and red roses; eight drachms of sandrich, a drachm each of mastic, benjamin, and amber; mix these into lozenges with turpentine, and apply a cautery to the back of the neck. Every night, have her take the following pills:—Half an ounce each of hypocistides, terrae sigilatae, and fine bole; two drachms each of bistort, alcatia, styrax, and calamint, and one drachm of cloves, all mixed into pills with syrup of myrtles.

In pregnant women, a corrupt matter is generated which, flowing to the ventricle, spoils the appetite and causes sickness. As the stomach is weak, and cannot digest this matter, it sometimes sends it to the bowels which causes a flux of the stomach, which greatly adds to the weakness of the womb. To prevent all these dangers the stomach must be strengthened by the following means:—Take one drachm each of lignaloes and nutmeg; a scruple each of mace, cloves, mastic, laudanum; an ounce of oil of spikenard; two grains of musk, half an ounce each of oil of mastic, quinces and wormwood, and make into an ointment for the stomach, to be applied before meals. Instead of this, however, you may use cerocum stomachile Galeni. Take half an ounce each of conserve of borage, buglos and atthos; two drachms each of confection of hyacinths, candied lemon peel, specierum, diamarg, pulo. de genunis: two scruples each of nutmeg and diambra; two drachma each of peony roots and diacoratum, and make into an electuary with syrup of roses, which she must take twice a day before meals. Another affection which troubles a pregnant woman is swelling of the legs, which happens during the first three months, by the superfluous humours descending from the stomach and liver. To cure this, take two drachms of oil of roses, and one drachm each of salt and vinegar; shake them together until the salt is dissolved, and anoint the legs with it hot, rubbing it well in with the hand. It may be done without danger during the fourth, fifth and sixth months of pregnancy; for a child in the womb is compared to an apple on the tree. For the first three months it is a weak and tender subject, like the apple, to fall away; but afterwards, when the membranes become strengthened, the fruit remains firmly fastened to the womb, and not subject to mischances, and so it remains, until the seventh month, until when it is near the time, the ligaments are again relaxed (like the apple that is almost ripe).

In pregnant women, a harmful substance develops that flows to the stomach, ruining the appetite and causing nausea. Since the stomach is weak and unable to digest this substance, it sometimes sends it to the intestines, leading to stomach upset, which significantly increases the weakness of the uterus. To prevent these issues, the stomach should be strengthened using the following methods:—Take one dram each of lignaloes and nutmeg; a scruple each of mace, cloves, mastic, and laudanum; an ounce of oil of spikenard; two grains of musk; half an ounce each of oil of mastic, quince, and wormwood, and create an ointment for the stomach to be applied before meals. Alternatively, you may use cerocum stomachile Galeni. Take half an ounce each of conserve of borage, borage, and atthos; two drams each of confection of hyacinths, candied lemon peel, specierum, diamarg, and pulo de genunis; two scruples each of nutmeg and diambra; and two drams each of peony roots and diacoratum, then mix it into an electuary with rose syrup for her to take twice a day before meals. Another issue that can bother a pregnant woman is swelling in the legs, which often occurs during the first three months due to excess fluids moving down from the stomach and liver. To treat this, take two drams of rose oil and one dram each of salt and vinegar; mix them together until the salt dissolves, and apply it hot to the legs, rubbing it in well with your hand. This can be done safely during the fourth, fifth, and sixth months of pregnancy; the baby in the womb is likened to an apple on the tree. During the first three months, it is delicate and prone to fall away, like an apple; but afterward, when the membranes strengthen, the fruit stays firmly attached to the womb and is less likely to experience accidents, which remains true until the seventh month. Near that time, the ligaments relax again, similar to an almost ripe apple.

They grow looser every day, until the appointed time for delivery; if, therefore, the body is in real need of purging, the woman may do it without danger in the fourth, fifth or sixth month, but neither before nor after that unless in the case of some violent illness, in which it is possible that both mother and child may perish. Apply plasters and ointments to the loins in order to strengthen the fruit in the womb. Take one drachm each of gum Arabic, galangale, bistort, hypocistid and storax, a drachm and a half each of fine bole, nutmeg, mastic, balaust, dragon's blood and myrtle berries, and a sufficient quantity of wax and turpentine and make into a plaster. Apply it to the loins in the winter, and remove it every twenty-four hours, lest the loins should become overheated by it. In the interim, anoint the private parts and loins with countess' balsam but if it be summer time and the loins hot, the following plaster will be more suitable. Take a pound of red roses, two drachms each of mastic and red Sanders, one drachm each of bole ammoniac and red coral, two drachms and a half each of pomegranate seed and prepared coriander seed, two scruples of barberries, one ounce each of oil of mastic and of quinces, and plantain-juice.

They get looser every day until the time for delivery. If the body really needs to be cleansed, the woman can do it safely in the fourth, fifth, or sixth month, but not before or after that unless there’s a serious illness, which could put both mother and child at risk. Use plasters and ointments on the lower back to strengthen the baby in the womb. Mix one drachm each of gum Arabic, galangal, bistort, hypocistid, and storax, along with a drachm and a half each of fine bole, nutmeg, mastic, balaust, dragon's blood, and myrtle berries, plus enough wax and turpentine to make a plaster. Apply it to the lower back in the winter and remove it every twenty-four hours to avoid overheating. In the meantime, apply countess' balsam to the private parts and lower back, but if it’s summer and the lower back is hot, this plaster will work better: take a pound of red roses, two drachms each of mastic and red sandalwood, one drachm each of ammoniac bole and red coral, two and a half drachms each of pomegranate seeds and prepared coriander seeds, two scruples of barberries, one ounce each of mastic oil and quince oil, and plantain juice.

Anoint the loins also with sandalwood ointment, and once a week wash them with two parts of rose-water and one of white wine mixed together and warmed at the fire. This will assuage the heat of the loins, get rid of the oil of the plaster from the pores of the skin, and cause the fresh ointment or plaster to penetrate more easily, and to strengthen the womb. Some think that a load-stone laid upon the navel, keeps a woman from abortion. The same thing is also stated of the stone called aetites or eagle-stone, if it is hung round the neck. Samian stone has the same virtue.

Anoint the lower back with sandalwood ointment, and once a week, wash it with a mixture of two parts rose-water and one part white wine, warmed by the fire. This will soothe the heat of the lower back, help remove the oil from the plaster out of the skin's pores, and allow the fresh ointment or plaster to absorb more easily, strengthening the womb. Some believe that placing a lodestone on the navel prevents a woman from having an abortion. The same is said of a stone called aetites or eagle-stone, if it is worn around the neck. Samian stone is thought to have the same effect.


CHAPTER XV

Directions for Women when they are taken in Labour, to ensure their safe Delivery, and Directions for Midwives.

Guidelines for Women in Labor to Ensure Their Safe Delivery, and Guidelines for Midwives.


Having thus given the necessary directions to pregnant women, how to manage their health during their pregnancy, I will now add what is necessary for them to do, in order that they may be safely delivered.

Having provided the necessary guidelines for pregnant women on how to take care of their health during pregnancy, I will now add what they need to do to ensure a safe delivery.

When the time of birth draws near, the woman must be sure to send for a skilful midwife, and that rather too soon than too late. She must have a pallet bed ready to place it near the fire, so that the midwife and those who are to help her, may be able to pass round it, and give assistance on either side, as may be required. A change of linen must be in readiness, and a small stool to rest her feet against, as she will have more power when her legs are bent, than when they are straight.

When it’s almost time to give birth, the woman should make sure to call a skilled midwife, and do so sooner rather than later. She needs to have a pallet bed set up near the fire, so that the midwife and any helpers can easily move around it and provide assistance on both sides as needed. Fresh linens should be ready, along with a small stool for her to rest her feet on, as she will have more strength with her legs bent than when they are straight.

When everything is thus ready, and when the woman feels the pains coming on, if the weather be not cold, she should walk about the room, rest on the bed occasionally, waiting for the breaking of the waters, which is a fluid contained in one of the outward membranes, and which flows out thence, when the membrane is broken by the struggles of the child. There is no special time for this discharge, though it generally takes place about two hours before the birth. Movements will also cause the womb to open and dilate, and when lying long in bed will be uncomfortable. If she be very weak she may take some mild cordial to give her strength, if her pain will permit her; and if the labour be tedious, she may be revived with chicken or mutton broth, or she may take a poached egg; but she must be very careful not to eat to excess.

When everything is ready and the woman starts feeling contractions, if it's not cold outside, she should walk around the room and occasionally lie down on the bed while waiting for her water to break. The water is a fluid that's held in one of the outer membranes, and it comes out when the membrane breaks as the baby moves. There's no specific time for this to happen, but it usually occurs about two hours before the birth. Moving around helps the cervix open and dilate, and staying in bed for too long can be uncomfortable. If she's feeling very weak, she can have a mild drink to regain some strength, as long as her pain allows it. If labor is taking a long time, she might benefit from some chicken or mutton broth, or a poached egg, but she needs to be careful not to overeat.

There are many postures in which women are delivered; some sitting in a chair, supported by others, or resting on the bed; some again upon their knees and resting on their arms; but the safest and most commodious way, is in the bed, and then the midwife ought to observe the following rules:—Let her lay the woman upon her back, with her head a little raised by means of a pillow, with similar supports for her loins and buttocks, which latter should also be raised, for if she lies low, she cannot be delivered so easily. Then let her keep her knees and thighs as far apart as she can, her legs bent inward towards each other, and her buttocks, the soles of her feet and her heels being placed upon a small rest, placed for the purpose, so that she may be able to strain the stronger. In case her back should be very weak, a swathing band should be placed under it, the band being doubled four times and about four inches broad. This must be held by two persons who must raise her up a little every time her pains come on, with steady hands and in even time, but if they be not exact in their movements, they had better leave her alone. At the same time two women must hold her shoulders so that she may strain out the foetus more easily; and to facilitate this let one stroke or press the upper part of her stomach gently and by degrees. The woman herself must not be nervous or downhearted, but courageous, and forcing herself by straining and holding her breath.

There are many positions in which women give birth; some sit in a chair, supported by others, or rest on the bed; others may be on their knees, resting on their arms. However, the safest and most comfortable way is in bed, and the midwife should follow these guidelines: Lay the woman on her back, with her head slightly elevated using a pillow, along with similar supports for her lower back and buttocks, which should also be raised, because if she lies too low, it will be harder for her to give birth. She should keep her knees and thighs as far apart as possible, with her legs bent inward toward each other, while her buttocks, the soles of her feet, and her heels rest on a small support meant for that purpose, so she can push more effectively. If her back is very weak, a support band should be placed underneath it, doubled four times and about four inches wide. This should be held by two people who will gently lift her a little every time she has a contraction, with steady hands and in rhythm. If they aren't precise with their movements, it’s better to let her be. At the same time, two women should hold her shoulders to help her push out the baby more easily, and one person should gently stroke or press the upper part of her stomach gradually to assist. The woman herself should remain calm and courageous, pushing and holding her breath as needed.

When delivery is near, the midwife must wait patiently until the child's head, or some limb, bursts the membranes, for if the midwife through ignorance, or through haste to go to some other woman, as some have done, tears the membrane with her nails, she endangers both the woman and the child; for by lying dry and lacking that slipperiness which should make it easy, it comes forth with severe pains.

When delivery is close, the midwife has to wait patiently until the baby’s head or a limb breaks through the membranes. If the midwife, either out of ignorance or eagerness to attend to another woman—as some have done—tears the membranes with her nails, she puts both the mother and the baby at risk. Without the necessary lubrication, the birth can happen with intense pain.

When the head appears, the midwife must hold it gently between her hands, and draw the child, whenever the woman's pains are upon her, but at no other times; slipping her forefingers under its armpits by degrees, and not using a rough hand in drawing it out, lest the tender infant might become deformed by such means. As soon as the child is taken out, which is usually with its face downwards,—it should be laid upon its back, that it may receive external respiration more freely; then cut the navel string about three inches from the body, tying the end which adheres to it with a silk string, as closely as you can; then cover the child's head and stomach well, allowing nothing to touch its face.

When the baby’s head appears, the midwife should gently hold it with both hands and pull the baby out only when the mother is having contractions; at no other times. Gradually slide her forefingers under the baby’s armpits, being careful not to pull too hard so that the delicate infant doesn’t get harmed. Once the baby is delivered, which is usually face down, it should be placed on its back to help it breathe better. Next, cut the umbilical cord about three inches from the body and tie the end that’s still attached to the baby with a silk string as tightly as possible. Finally, cover the baby's head and stomach well, making sure nothing touches its face.

When the child has been thus brought forth, if it be healthy lay it aside, and let the midwife attend to the patient by drawing out the afterbirth; and this she may do by wagging and stirring it up and down, and afterwards drawing it out gently. And if the work be difficult, let the woman hold salt in her hands, close them tightly and breathe hard into them, and by that she will know whether the membranes are broken or not. It may also be known by making her strain or vomit; by putting her fingers down her throat, or by straining or moving her lower parts, but let all be done immediately. If this should fail, let her take a draught of elder water, or the yolk of a new laid egg, and smell a piece of asafoetida, especially if she is troubled with a windy colic. If she happen to take cold, it is a great obstruction to the afterbirth; in such cases the midwife ought to chafe the woman's stomach gently, so as to break, not only the wind, but also to force the secundine to come down. But if these should prove ineffectual, the midwife must insert her hand into the orifice of the womb and draw it out gently.

When the child has been delivered, if it's healthy, set it aside and let the midwife take care of the mother by removing the afterbirth. She can do this by gently moving it up and down, then pulling it out carefully. If it’s a difficult process, the woman should hold salt in her hands, clench them tightly, and breathe hard into them; this will help her figure out if the membranes are broken. It can also be determined by making her strain or vomit, either by putting her fingers down her throat, or by straining or moving her lower body, but all of this should be done promptly. If these methods don’t work, she should drink elder water or the yolk of a freshly laid egg, and smell a piece of asafoetida, especially if she has gas pains. If she has caught a cold, it can hinder the afterbirth; in such cases, the midwife should gently massage the woman's stomach to relieve gas and help the afterbirth come out. But if none of these methods work, the midwife must insert her hand into the opening of the womb and carefully pull it out.

Having thus discussed common births, or such as are generally easy, I shall now give directions in cases of extremity.

Having talked about normal births, which are usually straightforward, I will now provide guidance for situations that are more difficult.


CHAPTER XVI

What ought to be done in cases of extremity, especially in women who, in labour, are attacked by a flux of blood, convulsions and fits of wind.

What should be done in extreme cases, especially for women who experience heavy bleeding, convulsions, and gas during labor.


If the woman's labour be hard and difficult, greater care must be taken than at other times. And, first of all, the situation of the womb and her position in lying must be across the bed, and she must be held by strong persons to prevent her from slipping down or moving during the surgeon's operations. Her thighs must be put as far apart as possible, and held so, whilst her head must rest upon a bolster, and her loins be supported in the same manner. After her rump and buttocks have been raised, be careful to cover her stomach, belly and thighs with warm clothes, to keep them from the cold.

If the woman's labor is hard and difficult, more care must be taken than usual. First, the position of the womb and her lying down setup should be across the bed, and she should be supported by strong individuals to prevent her from slipping or moving during the surgeon's procedures. Her thighs should be spread as far apart as possible and held in that position while her head rests on a cushion, and her lower back should be supported in the same way. Once her hips and rear are elevated, make sure to cover her stomach, abdomen, and thighs with warm cloths to protect them from the cold.

When the woman is in this position, let the operator put up his or her hand, if the neck of the womb be dilated, and remove the coagulated blood that obstructs the passage of the birth; and by degrees make way gently, let him remove the infant tenderly, having first anointed his hand with butter or some harmless salve. And if the waters have not come down, they may then be let out without difficulty. Then, if the infant should attempt to come out head foremost, or crosswise, he should turn it gently, to find the feet. Having done this, let him draw out one and fasten it with ribbon and then put it up again, and by degrees find the other, bringing them as close together and as even as possible, and between whiles let the woman breathe, and she should be urged to strain so as to help nature in the birth, that it may be brought forth. And to do this more easily, and that the hold may be surer, wrap a linen cloth round the child's thighs, taking care to bring it into the hand face downwards.

When the woman is in this position, the operator should raise their hand if the cervix is dilated and remove any clotted blood that’s blocking the birth canal. Gradually, they should create space gently and carefully remove the baby, having first coated their hand with butter or some gentle ointment. If the amniotic fluid hasn’t been released yet, it can be done without issue. If the baby tries to come out headfirst or sideways, they should gently turn it to locate the feet. After that, pull out one foot and tie it with a ribbon, then push it back in and gradually find the other foot, bringing them close together and aligned as much as possible. In the meantime, let the woman breathe, and encourage her to push to assist in the delivery. To make this easier and ensure a better grip, wrap a cloth around the baby's thighs, making sure to hold the baby face down.

In case of flux of blood, if the neck of the womb be open, it must be considered whether the infant or the secundine, generally called the afterbirth, comes first, and as the latter happens to do so occasionally, it stops the mouth of the womb and hinders the birth, and endangers both the woman's and the child's life. In this case the afterbirth must be removed by a quick turn. They have deceived many people, who, feeling their softness, have supposed that the womb was not dilated, and by that means the woman and child, or at least the latter, have been lost. When the afterbirth has been removed, the child must be sought for and drawn out, as directed above; and if the woman or the child die in such a case, the midwife or the surgeon are blameless because they have used their best endeavours.

In the case of heavy bleeding, if the cervix is open, it's important to determine whether the baby or the afterbirth is coming out first. Sometimes, the afterbirth comes first, which can block the cervix and complicate the delivery, putting both the woman's and the baby's lives at risk. If this happens, the afterbirth needs to be removed quickly. Many have been misled by its softness, assuming the cervix wasn't dilated, which has resulted in the loss of the woman or the baby, or at least the baby. Once the afterbirth is removed, the baby should be located and pulled out as explained earlier. If either the woman or the baby dies in this situation, the midwife or surgeon cannot be held responsible, as they have done everything possible.

If it appears upon examination that the afterbirth comes first, let the woman be delivered as quickly as possible, because a great flow of blood will follow, for the veins are opened, and on this account two things have to be considered.

If it seems upon examination that the afterbirth comes first, the woman should be delivered as quickly as possible because a significant amount of blood will follow, as the veins are opened. Therefore, two things need to be considered.

First:—The manner in which the afterbirth advances, whether it be much or little. If the former, and the head of the child appears first, it may be guided and directed towards the neck of the womb, as in the case of natural birth, but if there appears any difficulty in the delivery, the best way is to look for the feet, and draw it out by them; but if the latter, the afterbirth may be put back with a gentle hand, and the child taken out first. But if the afterbirth has come so far forward that it cannot be put back, and the child follows it closely, then the afterbirth must be removed very carefully, and as quickly as may be, and laid aside without cutting the entrail that is fastened to it; for you may be guided to the infant by it, which must be drawn out by the feet, whether it be alive or dead, as quickly as possible; though this is not to be done except in cases of great necessity, for in other cases the afterbirth ought to come last.

First:—The way the afterbirth is moving, whether it's a lot or a little. If it's a lot, and the baby's head is coming out first, it can be guided towards the neck of the womb like in a natural delivery. However, if there’s any trouble with the delivery, the best approach is to look for the feet and pull it out from there. If it's a little bit, you can gently push the afterbirth back and take the baby out first. But if the afterbirth has moved so far forward that it can't be pushed back, and the baby is right behind it, then the afterbirth must be removed very carefully and quickly, making sure not to cut the cord attached to it; you can use that cord to help guide the baby out by its feet, whether the baby is alive or dead, as fast as possible. However, this should only be done in cases of extreme necessity; otherwise, the afterbirth should typically come last.

In drawing out a dead child, these directions should be carefully followed by the surgeon, viz.—If the child be found to be dead, its head appearing first, the delivery will be more difficult; for it is an evident sign that the woman's strength is beginning to fail her, that, as the child is dead and has no natural power, it cannot be assisting in its own delivery in any way. Therefore the most certain and the safest way for the surgeon is, to put up his left hand, sliding it into the neck of the womb, and into the lower part of it towards the feet, as hollow in the palm as he can, and then between the head of the infant and the neck of the womb. Then, having a forceps in the right hand, slip it up above the left hand, between the head of the child and the flat of the hand, fixing it in the bars of the temple near the eye. As these cannot be got at easily in the occipital bone, be careful still to keep the hand in its place, and gently move the head with it, and so with the right hand and the forceps draw the child forward, and urge the woman to exert all her strength, and continue drawing whenever her pains come on. When the head is drawn out, he must immediately slip his hand under the child's armpits, and take it quite out, and give the woman a piece of toasted white bread, in a quarter of a pint of Hippocras wine.

In delivering a dead child, the surgeon should follow these instructions carefully: If the child’s head is found to be coming out first, the delivery will be more challenging. This indicates that the mother’s strength is waning since the child, being dead, cannot assist in the delivery. Therefore, the safest approach for the surgeon is to use his left hand to reach into the uterus, moving toward the feet as far as possible, and place the hand between the head of the baby and the cervix. Then, with the right hand holding the forceps, he should slip it above his left hand, positioning it between the baby’s head and his palm, securing it near the temple by the eye. Since accessing the occipital bone may be difficult, it’s important to keep the left hand steady while gently maneuvering the baby’s head. Using the forceps with the right hand, he should pull the child forward while encouraging the mother to push with all her strength during contractions. Once the head is out, he should quickly place his hand under the baby’s armpits to fully deliver it, and then give the mother a piece of toasted white bread along with a quarter pint of Hippocras wine.

If the former application fails let the woman take the following potion hot when she is in bed, and remain quiet until she begins to feel it operating.

If the previous application doesn't work, the woman should take the following potion while hot when she's in bed and stay still until she starts to feel it taking effect.

Take seven blue figs, cut them into pieces and add five grains each of fenugreek, motherwort and rue seed, with six ounces each of water of pennyroyal and motherwort; reduce it to half the quantity by boiling and after straining add one drachm of troches of myrrh and three grains of saffron; sweeten the liquor with loaf sugar, and spice it with cinnamon.—After having rested on this, let her strain again as much as possible, and if she be not successful, make a fumigation of half a drachm each of castor, opopanax, sulphur and asafoetida, pounding them into a powder and wetting the juice of rue, so that the smoke or fumes may go only into the matrix and no further.

Take seven blue figs, chop them up, and add five seeds each of fenugreek, motherwort, and rue, along with six ounces each of pennyroyal and motherwort water. Boil it down to half the amount, then strain it and mix in one drachm of myrrh troches and three grains of saffron. Sweeten the liquid with loaf sugar and add a bit of cinnamon for spice. After letting it rest, strain it again as much as possible. If that doesn't work, prepare a fumigation using half a drachm each of castor, opopanax, sulfur, and asafoetida. Grind them into a powder and moisten it with rue juice, so that the smoke goes only into the womb and nowhere else.

If this have not the desired effect, then the following plaster should be applied:—Take an ounce and a half of balganum, two drachms of colocynth, half an ounce each of the juice of motherwort and of rue, and seven ounces of virgin bees' wax: pound and melt them together, spreading them on a cere-cloth so that they may spread from the navel to the os pubis and extending to the flanks, at the same time making a pessary of wood, enclosing it in a silk bag, and dipping it in a decoction of one drachm each of sound birthwort, savin colocinthis, stavescare and black hellebore, with a small sprig or two of rue.

If this doesn't produce the desired result, then you should apply the following plaster:—Take one and a half ounces of balgamum, two drams of colocynth, half an ounce each of the juices of motherwort and rue, and seven ounces of virgin beeswax. Grind and melt them together, then spread the mixture on a cere-cloth so that it covers from the navel to the pubic bone and extends out to the sides. At the same time, make a wooden pessary, encase it in a silk bag, and dip it into a decoction made from one dram each of quality birthwort, savin colocinthis, stavesacre, and black hellebore, adding a small sprig or two of rue.

But if these things have not the desired effect, and the woman's danger increases, let the surgeon use his instruments to dilate and widen the womb, for which purpose the woman must be placed on a chair, so that she may turn her buttocks as far from its back as possible, at the same time drawing up her legs as close as she can and spreading her thighs open as wide as possible; or if she is very weak it may be better to lay her on the bed with her head downwards, her buttocks raised and both legs drawn up. Then the surgeon may dilate the womb with his speculum matrices and draw out the child and the afterbirth together, if it be possible, and when this is done, the womb must be well washed and anointed, and the woman put back to bed and comforted with spices and cordials. This course must be adopted in the case of dead children and moles, afterbirths and false births, which will not come out of themselves, at the proper time. If the aforementioned instrument will not widen the womb sufficiently, then other instruments, such as the drake's bill, or long pincers, ought to be used.

But if these actions don't achieve the intended results and the woman's condition worsens, the surgeon should use instruments to stretch and open the womb. For this procedure, the woman must be seated on a chair, positioning her buttocks as far from the backrest as possible while pulling her legs up close and spreading her thighs wide. If she's very weak, it may be better to lay her on the bed with her head down, her buttocks raised, and both legs drawn up. Then the surgeon can use his speculum matrices to dilate the womb and extract the child and the afterbirth, if possible. After this, the womb needs to be thoroughly washed and treated, and the woman should be returned to bed and comforted with spices and soothing drinks. This method should be used for stillborn children, moles, afterbirths, and false births that don’t come out on their own at the right time. If the aforementioned instrument doesn’t adequately widen the womb, then other tools, like the drake's bill or long pincers, should be used.

If any inflammation, swelling or congealed blood happens to be contracted in the womb under the film of these tumours, either before or after the birth, let the midwife lance it with a penknife or any suitable instrument, and squeeze out the matter, healing it with a pessary dipped in oil of red roses.

If any inflammation, swelling, or clotted blood occurs in the womb under these tumors, either before or after childbirth, the midwife should cut it open with a small knife or any appropriate tool and squeeze out the contents, then treat it with a pessary soaked in red rose oil.

If the child happens at any time to be swollen through cold or violence, or has contracted a watery humour, if it is alive, such means must be used as are least injurious to the child or mother; but if it be dead, the humours must be let out by incisions, to facilitate the birth.

If the child becomes swollen from cold or injury, or has developed a fluid buildup, and is alive, use the least harmful methods for the child or mother. However, if the child is dead, you must make incisions to release the fluids to ease the birth.

If, as often happens, the child is presented feet foremost, with the hands spreading out from the hips, the midwife must in such a case be provided with the necessary ointments to rub and anoint the child with, to help it coming forth, lest it should turn into the womb again, holding both the infant's arms close to the hips at the same time, that it may come out in this manner; but if it proves too big, the womb must be well anointed. The woman should also take a sneezing powder, to make her strain; the attendant may also stroke her stomach gently to make the birth descend, and to keep it from returning.

If, as is often the case, the baby is positioned feet first, with the arms extending from the hips, the midwife should have the necessary ointments ready to apply to the baby to assist in its delivery, ensuring it doesn’t retreat back into the womb. At the same time, she should hold the baby's arms close to the hips to help with the delivery; however, if the baby is too large, the womb should be well lubricated. The woman should also take a sneezing powder to encourage her to push; the attendant can gently rub her stomach to help the baby descend and prevent it from going back.

It happens occasionally, that the child presenting itself with the feet first, has its arms extended above its head; but the midwife must not receive it so, but put it back into the womb, unless the passage be extraordinarily wide, and then she must anoint both the child and the womb, and it is not safe to draw it out, which must, therefore, be done in this manner.—The woman must lie on her back with her head low and her buttocks raised; and then the midwife must compress the stomach and the womb with a gentle hand, and by that means put the child back, taking care to turn the child's face towards the mother's back, raising up its thighs and buttocks towards the navel, so that the birth may be more natural.

It sometimes happens that a baby is positioned feet first, with its arms stretched above its head; however, the midwife should not deliver the baby in this position but should push it back into the womb unless the birth canal is exceptionally wide. In that case, she must apply a lubricant to both the baby and the womb. It is not safe to pull the baby out, so it should be done this way: The woman should lie on her back with her head lower and her hips raised. The midwife should gently press on the abdomen and womb to push the baby back, ensuring that the baby's face is turned towards the mother's back, lifting its thighs and buttocks towards the belly, so the birth can be more natural.

If the child happens to come out with one foot, with the arm extended along the side and the other foot turned backwards; then the woman must be immediately put to bed and laid in the above-described position; when the midwife must immediately put back the foot which appears so, and the woman must rock herself from side to side, until she finds that the child has turned, but she must not alter her position nor turn upon her face. After this she may expect her pains and must have great assistance and cordials so as to revive and support her spirits.

If the baby comes out with one foot first, the arm extended along the side, and the other foot turned backward, the woman should be put to bed right away in the position described above. The midwife should then carefully push the foot back in, and the woman must gently rock from side to side until she feels the baby has turned. However, she shouldn't change her position or lie on her stomach. After this, she should prepare for her labor pains and receive plenty of support and soothing drinks to help lift her spirits.

At other times it happens that the child lies across in the womb, and falls upon its side; in this case the woman must not be urged in her labour; therefore, the midwife when she finds it so, must use great diligence to reduce it to its right form, or at least to such a form in the womb as may make the delivery possible and most easy by moving the buttocks and guiding the head to the passage; and if she be successful in this, let the woman rock herself to and fro, and wait with patience till it alters its way of lying.

At other times, the baby might lie sideways in the womb. In this case, the woman should not be pressured during labor. The midwife, noticing this, must work diligently to get the baby into the correct position or at least into a position that allows for an easier delivery by shifting the buttocks and guiding the head toward the birth canal. If she succeeds in this, the woman should rock herself gently back and forth and patiently wait for the baby to change its position.

Sometimes the child hastens simply by expanding its legs and arms; in which, as in the former case, the woman must rock herself, but not with violence, until she finds those parts fall to their proper station; or it may be done by a gentle compression of the womb; but if neither of them avail, the midwife must close the legs of the infant with her hand, and if she can get there, do the like by the arms, and so draw it forth; but if it can be reduced of itself to the posture of a proper birth it is better.

Sometimes the baby moves by stretching its legs and arms; in this situation, as in the previous one, the woman needs to rock herself gently, but not too forcefully, until those parts are positioned correctly; or this can also be done by gently compressing the womb. If neither method works, the midwife should hold the baby's legs together with her hand, and if she can reach, she should do the same with the arms, and then gently pull it out; however, if the baby can adjust itself to the right position for birth, that's better.

If the infant comes forward, both knees forward, and the hands hanging down upon the thighs, then the midwife must put both knees upward, till the feet appear; taking hold of which with her left hand let her keep her right hand on the side of the child, and in that posture endeavour to bring it forth. But if she cannot do this, then also the woman must rock herself until the child is in a more convenient posture for delivery.

If the baby comes out with both knees forward and their hands hanging down on their thighs, the midwife should push both knees up until the feet are visible. Then, she should grab the feet with her left hand while keeping her right hand on the side of the baby, and try to deliver the baby in that position. But if she can’t do that, the woman should rock herself until the baby is in a better position for delivery.

Sometimes it happens that the child presses forward with one arm extended on its thighs, and the other raised over its head, and the feet stretched out at length in the womb. In such case, the midwife must not attempt to receive the child in that posture, but must lay the woman on the bed in the manner aforesaid, making a soft and gentle compression on her belly, oblige the child to retire; which if it does not, then must the midwife thrust it back by the shoulder, and bring the arm that was stretched above the head to its right station; for there is most danger in these extremities; and, therefore, the midwife must anoint her hands and the womb of the woman with sweet butter, or a proper pomatum, and thrust her hand as near as she can to the arm of the infant, and bring it to the side. But if this cannot be done, let the woman be laid on the bed to rest a while; in which time, perhaps, the child may be reduced to a better posture; which the midwife finding, she must draw tenderly the arms close to the hips and so receive it.

Sometimes a child may push forward with one arm resting on its thighs, the other arm raised above its head, and its feet stretched out in the womb. In this situation, the midwife should not try to deliver the child in that position. Instead, she should lay the woman on the bed as mentioned before, gently pressing on her belly to encourage the child to move back. If the child doesn't move, the midwife should reposition it by pushing on the shoulder and bringing the arm that was raised above the head back to its proper place, as there is the most risk with these positions. Therefore, the midwife should apply sweet butter or a suitable ointment to her hands and the woman’s abdomen, then reach as close to the infant's arm as possible and guide it to the side. If this isn’t feasible, the woman should be allowed to rest on the bed for a while; during this time, the child might shift into a better position. If the midwife observes this, she should gently pull the arms close to the hips and then assist in the delivery.

If an infant come with its buttocks foremost, and almost double, then the midwife must anoint her hand and thrust it up, and gently heaving up the buttocks and back, strive to turn the head to the passage, but not too hastily, lest the infant's retiring should shape it worse: and therefore, if it cannot be turned with the hand, the woman must rock herself on the bed, taking such comfortable things as may support her spirits, till she perceives the child to turn.

If a baby arrives feet first and is almost folded in half, then the midwife should apply some lubricant to her hand and gently insert it, carefully lifting the baby’s bottom and back to try to turn the head towards the birth canal, but not too quickly, to avoid worsening the situation. If she can't turn the baby using her hands, the woman should rock herself on the bed, using anything that helps her feel comfortable and relaxed, until she feels the baby turn.

If the child's neck be bowed, and it comes forward with its shoulders, as it sometimes doth, with the hands and feet stretched upwards, the midwife must gently move the shoulders, that she may direct the head to the passage; and the better to effect it, the woman must rock herself as aforesaid.

If the child's neck is bent and it moves its shoulders forward, which can happen, with the hands and feet stretched out, the midwife should carefully adjust the shoulders to guide the head towards the passage. To help with this, the woman should rock herself as mentioned earlier.

These and other like methods are to be observed in case a woman hath twins, or three children at a birth, which sometimes happens: for as the single birth hath but one natural and many unnatural forms, even so it may be in a double and treble birth.

These and other similar methods should be noted in case a woman has twins or triplets at birth, which can happen sometimes. Just as a single birth has one natural form and many unnatural forms, the same can be true for a double or triple birth.

Wherefore, in all such cases the midwife must take care to receive the first which is nearest the passage; but not letting the other go, lest by retiring it should change the form; and when one is born, she must be speedy in bringing forth the other. And this birth, if it be in the natural way, is more easy, because the children are commonly less than those of single birth, and so require a less passage. But if this birth come unnaturally, it is far more dangerous than the other.

Therefore, in all such cases, the midwife must ensure to receive the first baby that comes closest to the birth canal; but she should not let the other one go, as that could change its position. Once one baby is born, she must quickly assist in bringing out the other. If this birth happens naturally, it is usually easier because the babies are generally smaller than those from a single birth, so they require less space. However, if the birth is not natural, it is much more dangerous than the other.

In the birth of twins, let the midwife be very careful that the secundine be naturally brought forth, lest the womb, being delivered of its burden, fall, and so the secundine continue longer there than is consistent with the woman's safety.

In the delivery of twins, the midwife should be very careful to ensure that the afterbirth comes out naturally, so that the uterus doesn’t collapse after the main delivery, which could cause the afterbirth to remain for longer than is safe for the woman.

But if one of the twins happens to come with the head, and the other with the feet foremost, then let the midwife deliver the natural birth first; and if she cannot turn the other, draw it out in the posture in which it presses forward; but if that with its feet downward be foremost, she may deliver that first, turning the other aside. But in this case the midwife must carefully see that it be not a monstrous birth, instead of twins, a body with two heads, or two bodies joined together, which she may soon know if both the heads come foremost, by putting up her hand between them as high as she can; and then, if she finds they are twins she may gently put one of them aside to make way for the other, taking the first which is most advanced, leaving the other so that it do not change its position. And for the safety of the other child, as soon as it comes forth out of the womb, the midwife must tie the navel-string, as has before been directed, and also bind, with a large, long fillet, that part of the navel which is fastened to the secundine, the more readily to find it.

But if one of the twins comes out head first and the other feet first, the midwife should deliver the head-first twin first. If she can't turn the other, she should pull it out in the position it's in. If the feet-first twin is coming first, she can deliver that twin first and move the other aside. However, the midwife must be careful to ensure it’s not a rare birth, such as a body with two heads or two bodies joined together. She can check for this by putting her hand between the heads as high as she can reach; if she confirms that they are twins, she should gently move one aside to make space for the other, grabbing the one that’s most advanced while leaving the other in place. To ensure the safety of the other child, as soon as it is born, the midwife must tie the umbilical cord as instructed earlier and also secure the part of the cord attached to the placenta with a long, wide band to make it easier to locate.

The second infant being born, let the midwife carefully examine whether there be not two secundines, for sometimes it falls out, that by the shortness of the ligaments it retires back to the prejudice of the woman. Wherefore, lest the womb should close, it is most expedient to hasten them forth with all convenient speed.

The second baby is being born, so the midwife should carefully check if there are two afterbirths, because sometimes the shortness of the ligaments can cause one to retract, which can be harmful to the woman. Therefore, to prevent the womb from closing, it's best to get them delivered as quickly as possible.

If two infants are joined together by the body, as sometimes it monstrously falls out, then, though the head should come foremost, yet it is proper, if possible, to turn them and draw them forth by the feet, observing, when they come to the hips, to draw them out as soon as may be. And here great care ought to be used in anointing and widening the passage. But these sort of births rarely happening, I need to say the less of them, and, therefore, shall show how women should be ordered after delivery.

If two babies are physically connected, which can happen in rare cases, it’s best, if possible, to turn them and pull them out by the feet, making sure to do so quickly once they reach the hips. It’s important to be careful when using lubrication and expanding the passage. Since these types of births are uncommon, I won’t say much more about them, and instead, I will explain how women should be taken care of after giving birth.


CHAPTER XVII

How child-bearing Women ought to be ordered after Delivery.

How women who have given birth should be treated after delivery.


If a woman has had very hard labour, it is necessary that she should be wrapped up in a sheep's skin, taken off before it is cold, applying the fleshy side to her veins and belly, or, for want of this, the skin of a hare or coney, flayed off as soon as killed, may be applied to the same parts, and in so doing, a dilation being made in the birth, and the melancholy blood being expelled in these parts, continue these for an hour or two.

If a woman has gone through a really difficult labor, she should be wrapped in a sheep's skin, taken off before it cools, with the flesh side against her veins and belly. If that's not available, the skin of a hare or rabbit, removed right after it's killed, can be used on the same areas. By doing this, it helps dilate during childbirth and expel the stagnant blood in those areas; continue this for an hour or two.

Let the woman afterwards be swathed with fine linen cloth, about a quarter of a yard in breadth, chafing the belly before it is swathed, with oil of St. John's wort; after that raise up the matrix with a linen cloth, many times folded: then with a linen pillar or quilt, cover the flanks, and place the swathe somewhat above the haunches, winding it pretty stiff, applying at the same time a linen cloth to her nipples; do not immediately use the remedies to keep back the milk, by reason the body, at such a time, is out of frame; for there is neither vein nor artery which does not strongly beat; and remedies to drive back the milk, being of a dissolving nature, it is improper to apply them to the breasts during such disorder, lest by doing so, evil humours be contracted in the breast. Wherefore, twelve hours at least ought to be allowed for the circulation and settlement of the blood, and what was cast on the lungs by the vehement agitation during labour, to retire to its proper receptacles.

Let the woman be wrapped in fine linen cloth, about a quarter of a yard wide, applying oil of St. John's wort to her belly before wrapping. Then, lift the abdomen with a folded linen cloth. Next, cover her sides with a linen pillow or quilt, positioning the wrap just above the hips, making it fairly snug, while also applying a linen cloth to her nipples. Do not use remedies to suppress milk production right away, because the body is not in balance at that time; every vein and artery is beating vigorously. Remedies meant to reduce milk flow are dissolving in nature, so it's inappropriate to apply them to the breasts during this state, as it may cause harmful issues in the breast. Therefore, at least twelve hours should be allowed for blood circulation and settling, and for anything agitated in the lungs during labor to return to its proper place.

Some time after delivery, you may take a restrictive of the yolks of two eggs, and a quarter of a pint of white wine, oil of St. John's wort, oil of roses, plantain and roses water, of each an ounce, mix them together, fold a linen cloth and apply it to the breast, and the pains of those parts will be greatly eased.

Some time after giving birth, you can take the yolks of two eggs, a quarter of a pint of white wine, and an ounce each of St. John's wort oil, rose oil, plantain, and rose water. Mix them together, fold a linen cloth, and apply it to your chest, and it will significantly relieve the pain in that area.

She must by no means sleep directly after delivery; but about four hours after, she may take broth, caudle or such liquid victuals as are nourishing; and if she be disposed to sleep it may be very safely permitted. And this is as much, in the case of a natural birth, as ought immediately to be done.

She definitely shouldn't sleep right after giving birth; however, about four hours later, she can have broth, a light drink, or other nourishing liquids. If she's feeling tired, it's perfectly fine for her to rest. This is all that needs to be done right after a natural birth.

But in case of an extremity or an unnatural birth, the following rules ought to be observed:—

But in case of an emergency or an unusual birth, the following rules should be followed:—

In the first place, let the-woman keep a temperate diet, by no means overcharging herself after such an extraordinary evacuation, not being ruled by giving credit to unskilful nurses, who admonish them to feed heartily, the better to repair the loss of blood. For that blood is not for the most part pure, but such as has been retained in the vessels or membrane better voided, for the health of the woman, than kept, unless there happen an extraordinary flux of the blood. For if her nourishment be too much, which curding, very often turns to imposthumes.

In the first place, the woman should maintain a balanced diet and not overindulge after such significant blood loss. She shouldn't be swayed by inexperienced nurses who advise her to eat a lot to replenish lost blood. Most of that blood is not pure but rather what has been held in the vessels or tissues, which is better expelled for the woman's health than retained, unless there's an extreme blood flow. If she eats too much, it can lead to curdling and often causes abscesses.

Therefore, it is requisite, for the first five days especially, that she take moderately panado broth, poached eggs, jelly of chickens or calves' feet or fresh barley broth; every day increasing the quantity a little.

Therefore, it is necessary, especially for the first five days, that she consumes moderate amounts of panado broth, poached eggs, jelly made from chickens or calves' feet, or fresh barley broth; increasing the amount slightly each day.

And if she intend to be a nurse to the child, she may take something more than ordinary, to increase the milk by degrees, which must be of no continuance, but drawn off by the child or otherwise. In this case likewise, observe to let her have coriander or fennel seeds boiled in barley broth; but by all means, for the time specified, let her abstain from meat. If no fever trouble her, she may drink now and then a small quantity of pure white wine or of claret, as also syrup of maidenhead or any other syrup that is of an astringent quality, taken in a little water well boiled.

And if she plans to nurse the child, she might need to take something more than usual to gradually increase her milk supply, but it shouldn’t be a permanent fix; it should be expressed by the baby or removed in some other way. In this situation, be sure to give her coriander or fennel seeds boiled in barley broth; however, she should definitely avoid meat during the specified time. If she doesn’t have a fever, she can occasionally drink a small amount of pure white wine or claret, as well as syrup of maidenhead or any other syrup that is astringent, taken in a little well-boiled water.

After the fear of fever or contraction of humour in the breast is over, she may be nourished more plentifully with the broth of capons, pullets, pigeons, mutton, veal, etc., which must not be until after eight days from the time of delivery; at which time the womb, unless some accident binds, has purged itself. It will then likewise be expedient to give cold meats, but let it be sparingly, so that she may the better gather strength. And let her, during the time, rest quietly and free from disturbance, not sleeping in the day time, if she can avoid it.

After the fear of fever or issues with her milk has passed, she can be fed more generously with broth made from capons, pullets, pigeons, mutton, veal, and so on, but this should not happen until eight days after giving birth; by that time, the womb, unless something unusual happens, has cleared itself. It will also be a good idea to give her cold meats, but in moderation, so she can regain her strength better. During this time, she should rest quietly and be free from disturbances, avoiding daytime naps if she can.

Take of both mallows and pellitory of the wall a handful; camomile and melilot flowers, of each a handful; aniseed and fennel of each two ounces; boil them in a decoction of sheep's head and take of this three quarts, dissolving in it common honey, coarse sugar and fresh butter and administer it clysterwise; but if it does not penetrate well take an ounce of catholicon.

Take a handful of both mallows and pellitory of the wall; a handful each of chamomile and melilot flowers; two ounces each of aniseed and fennel. Boil these in a broth made from a sheep's head and take three quarts of this, dissolving in it regular honey, coarse sugar, and fresh butter, and use it as an enema; if it doesn't penetrate well, take an ounce of catholicon.


CHAPTER XVIII

Acute Pains after Delivery.

Sharp Pain After Delivery.


These pains frequently afflict the woman no less than the pain of her labour, and are, by the more ignorant, many times taken the one for the other; and sometimes they happen both at the same instant; which is occasioned by a raw, crude and watery matter in the stomach, contracted through ill digestion; and while such pains continue, the woman's travail is retarded.

These pains often affect women just as much as the pain of childbirth, and many times, especially among those who are less informed, the two are mistaken for each other. Sometimes they occur at the same time, which can be caused by raw, unprocessed, and watery substances in the stomach, resulting from poor digestion; and while these pains persist, the woman’s labor is delayed.

Therefore, to expel fits of the cholic, take two ounces of oil of sweet almonds, and an ounce of cinnamon water, with three or four drops of syrup of ginger; then let the woman drink it off.

Therefore, to relieve episodes of colic, take two ounces of sweet almond oil, one ounce of cinnamon water, and three or four drops of ginger syrup; then have the woman drink it all.

If this does not abate the pain, make a clyster of camomile, balm-leaves, oil of olives and new milk, boiling the former in the latter. Administer it as is usual in such cases. And then, fomentation proper for dispelling the wind will not be amiss.

If this doesn’t ease the pain, make an enema with chamomile, balm leaves, olive oil, and fresh milk, boiling the chamomile and balm leaves in the milk. Administer it as is typically done in these situations. Then, a proper fomentation to relieve gas would also be helpful.

If the pain produces a griping in the guts after delivery, then take of the root of great comfrey, one drachm, nutmeg and peach kernels, of each two scruples, yellow amber, eight drachms, ambergris, one scruple; bruise them together, and give them to the woman as she is laid down, in two or three spoonfuls of white wine; but if she be feverish, then let it be in as much warm broth.

If the pain causes cramps in the stomach after giving birth, then take one drachm of the root of great comfrey, two scruples each of nutmeg and peach kernels, eight drachms of yellow amber, and one scruple of ambergris; crush them together and give the woman two or three spoonfuls mixed with white wine as she lies down. However, if she has a fever, then use the same amount in warm broth instead.


THE
FAMILY PHYSICIAN


BEING
CHOICE AND APPROVED
REMEDIES
FOR SEVERAL DISEASES
INCIDENTAL TO HUMAN BODIES


For the Apoplexy.

Take man's skull prepared, and powder of male peony, of each an ounce and a half, contrayerva, bastard dittany, angelica, zedvary, of each two drachms, mix and make a powder, add thereto two ounces of candied orange and lemon peel, beat all together to a powder, whereof you may take half a drachm or a drachm.

Take a prepared human skull and one and a half ounces of male peony powder, along with two drachms each of contrayerva, bastard dittany, angelica, and zedvary. Mix everything to create a powder, then add two ounces of candied orange and lemon peel. Blend it all together into a powder, and you can take half a drachm or a drachm of it.


A Powder for the Epilepsy or Falling Sickness.

Take of opopanax, crude antimony, castor, dragon's blood, peony seeds, of each an equal quantity; make a subtle powder; the dose, half a drachm of black cherry water. Before you take it, the stomach must be prepared with some proper vomit, as that of Mynficht's emetic tartar, from four grains to six; if for children, salts of vitrol, from a scruple to half a drachm.

Take equal amounts of opopanax, crude antimony, castor, dragon's blood, and peony seeds; grind them into a fine powder. The dose is half a drachm of black cherry water. Before taking it, you need to prepare the stomach with an appropriate emetic, like Mynficht's emetic tartar, using four to six grains; if for children, use vitriol salts from a scruple to half a drachm.


For a Headache of Long Standing.

Take the juice or powder in distilled water of hog lice and continue it.

Take the juice or powder of hog lice in distilled water and keep using it.


For Spitting of Blood.

Take conserve of comfrey and of hips, of each an ounce and a half; conserve of red roses, three ounces; dragon's blood, a drachm; spices of hyacinths, two scruples; red coral, a drachm; mix and with syrup of poppies make a soft electuary. Take the quantity of a walnut, night and morning.

Take conserve of comfrey and of hips, each an ounce and a half; conserve of red roses, three ounces; dragon's blood, one drachm; hyacinth spices, two scruples; red coral, one drachm; mix these and with poppy syrup make a soft electuary. Take the size of a walnut, morning and night.


For a Looseness.

Take Venice treacle and diascordium, of each half a drachm, in warm ale or water gruel, or what you like best, at night, going to bed.

Take Venice treacle and diascordium, half a drachm of each, in warm ale or water gruel, or whatever you prefer, at night before going to bed.


For the Bloody Flux.

First take a drachm of powder of rhubarb in a sufficient quantity of conserve of red roses, in the morning early; then at night, take of tornified or roasted rhubarb, half a drachm; diascordium, a drachm and a half; liquid laudanum cyclomated, a scruple: mix and make into a bolus.

First, take a gram of rhubarb powder mixed with enough rose petal conserve early in the morning; then at night, take half a gram of roasted rhubarb; one and a half grams of diascordium; and a scruple of liquid laudanum. Mix these together and form into a pill.


For an Inflammation of the Lungs.

Take of cherious water, ten ounces; water of red poppies, three ounces; syrup of poppies, an ounce; pearl prepared, a drachm; make julep, and take six spoonfuls every fourth hour.

Take 10 ounces of cherry water, 3 ounces of red poppy water, 1 ounce of poppy syrup, and 1 drachm of prepared pearl; mix to make a julep, and take six spoonfuls every four hours.


An Ointment for the Pleurisy.

Take oil of violets or sweet almonds, an ounce of each, with wax and a little saffron, make an ointment, warm it and bathe it upon the parts affected.

Take an ounce of violet oil or sweet almond oil, along with some wax and a bit of saffron. Make an ointment, warm it up, and apply it to the affected areas.


An Ointment for the Itch.

Take sulphur vive in powder, half an ounce, oil of tartar per deliquim, a sufficient quantity, ointment of roses, four ounces; make a liniment, to which add a scruple of rhodium to aromatize, and rub the parts affected with it.

Take sulfur in powder, half an ounce, enough oil of tartar to achieve a liquid state, four ounces of rose ointment; mix these to create a liniment, to which add a scruple of rhodium for fragrance, and apply it to the affected areas.


For Running Scab.

Take two pounds of tar, incorporate it into a thick mass with well-sifted ashes; boil the mass in fountain-water, adding leaves of ground-ivy, white horehound, fumitory roots, sharp-pointed dock and of flocan pan, of each four handfuls; make a bath to be used with care of taking cold.

Take two pounds of tar and mix it into a thick paste with sifted ashes; boil this mixture in spring water, adding four handfuls each of ground ivy, white horehound, fumitory roots, sharp-pointed dock, and flocan pan; prepare a bath to use carefully to avoid catching a cold.


For Worms in Children.

Take wormseed, half a drachm, flour of sulphur, a drachm; mix and make a powder. Give as much as will lie on a silver threepence, night and morning, in grocer's treacle or honey, or to grown up people, you may add a sufficient quantity of aloe rosatum and so make them up into pills; three or four may be taken every morning.

Take half a drachm of wormseed and one drachm of flour of sulfur; mix them to create a powder. Administer an amount that fits on a silver threepence, twice a day, in grocery store treacle or honey. For adults, you can add enough aloe rosatum to form them into pills; three or four pills can be taken each morning.


For Fevers in Children.

Take crab-eyes, a drachm, cream of tartar, half a drachm; white sugar-candy finely powdered, weight of both; mix all well together and give as much as will lie on a silver threepence, in a spoonful of barley-water or sack whey.

Take crab-eyes, a drachm, cream of tartar, half a drachm; white sugar-candy finely powdered, the weight of both; mix everything well together and give as much as will fit on a silver threepence, in a spoonful of barley-water or sack whey.


A Quieting Night-Draught, when the Cough is Violent.

Take water of green wheat, six ounces, syrup diascordium, three ounces, take two or three spoonfuls going to bed every night or every other night.

Take six ounces of green wheat water and three ounces of diascordium syrup. Take two or three spoonfuls before bed every night or every other night.


An Electuary for the Dropsy.

Take best rhubarb, one drachm, gum lac, prepared, two drachms, zyloaloes, cinnamon, long birthwort, half an ounce each, best English saffron, half a scruple; with syrup of chicory and rhubarb make an electuary. Take the quantity of a nutmeg or small walnut every morning fasting.

Take the best rhubarb, one drachm, prepared gum lac, two drachms, zedoary, cinnamon, and long birthwort, half an ounce each, and the best English saffron, half a scruple; mix with syrup of chicory and rhubarb to create an electuary. Take the amount equivalent to a nutmeg or a small walnut every morning on an empty stomach.


For a Tympany Dropsy.

Take roots of chervil and candied eringo roots, half an ounce of each, roots of butcher-broom, two ounces, grass-roots, three ounces, shavings of ivory and hartshorn, two drachms and a half each; boil them in two or three pounds of spring water. Whilst the strained liquor is hot, pour it upon the leaves of watercresses and goose-grass bruised, of each a handful, adding a pint of Rhenish wine. Make a close infusion for two hours, then strain out the liquor again, and add to it three ounces of magirtral water and earth worms and an ounce and a half of the syrup of the five opening roots. Make an apozen, whereof take four ounces twice a day.

Take roots of chervil and candied eringo roots, half an ounce each, roots of butcher's broom, two ounces, grass roots, three ounces, and two and a half drachms each of shavings from ivory and hartshorn; boil them in two or three pounds of spring water. While the strained liquid is hot, pour it over a handful each of bruised watercress and goosegrass, adding a pint of Rhenish wine. Let it steep for two hours, then strain the liquid again and add three ounces of magirtral water, earthworms, and an ounce and a half of syrup made from the five opening roots. Make an infusion, taking four ounces twice a day.


For an Inward Bleeding.

Take leaves of plantain and stinging nettles, of each three handfuls, bruise them well and pour on them six ounces of plantain water, afterwards make a strong expression and drink the whole off. Probatum est.

Take three handfuls each of plantain and stinging nettles, crush them well and pour six ounces of plantain water over them, then make a strong infusion and drink it all. Probatum est.


GENERAL OBSERVATIONS

Worthy of Notice.

Worth Noticing.


WHEN YOU FIND

A red man to be faithful, a tall man to be wise, a fat man to be swift of foot, a lean man to be a fool, a handsome man not to be proud, a poor man not to be envious, a knave to be no liar, an upright man not too bold and hearty to his own loss, one that drawls when he speaks not to be crafty and circumventing, one that winks on another with his eyes not to be false and deceitful, a sailor and hangman to be pitiful, a poor man to build churches, a quack doctor to have a good conscience, a bailiff not to be a merciless villain, an hostess not to over-reckon you, and an usurer to be charitable——

A red person should be loyal, a tall person should be wise, a heavy person should be quick on their feet, a thin person should be foolish, a good-looking person shouldn't be arrogant, a poor person shouldn't be envious, a trickster shouldn't lie, an honest person shouldn't be overly bold to their own detriment, someone who speaks slowly shouldn't be scheming or deceitful, someone who winks at another shouldn't be untrustworthy, a sailor and an executioner should be compassionate, a poor person should build churches, a phony doctor should have a clear conscience, a bailiff shouldn't be a heartless villain, a host shouldn't overcharge you, and a moneylender should be generous——

THEN SAY,

Ye have found a prodigy.

You have found a prodigy.

Men acting contrary to the common course of nature.

Men behaving in ways that go against the natural order.


PART II


THE
EXPERIENCED MIDWIFE


INTRODUCTION.


I have given this Part the title of The Experienced Midwife, because it is chiefly designed for those who profess Midwifery, and contains whatever is necessary for them to know in the practice thereof; and also, because it is the result of many years' experience, and that in the most difficult cases, and is, therefore, the more to be depended upon.

I have titled this section The Experienced Midwife because it is mainly intended for those who practice midwifery and includes everything essential for them to know in their work. Additionally, it is based on many years of experience, particularly in the most challenging cases, making it even more reliable.

A midwife is the most necessary and honourable office, being indeed a helper of nature; which therefore makes it necessary for her to be well acquainted with all the operations of nature in the work of generation, and instruments with which she works. For she that knows not the operations of nature, nor with what tool she works, must needs be at a loss how to assist therein. And seeing the instruments of operation, both in men and women, are those things by which mankind is produced, it is very necessary that all midwives should be well acquainted with them, that they may better understand their business, and assist nature, as there shall be occasion.

A midwife is one of the most essential and respected roles, truly a helper of nature. This means it’s crucial for her to be well-informed about all the processes of nature involved in childbirth, as well as the tools she uses. A midwife who doesn’t understand how nature operates or what tools she has will inevitably struggle to provide effective assistance. Since the tools used in the process, both in men and women, are what bring new life into the world, it is very important for all midwives to be familiar with them. This knowledge will help them understand their role better and assist nature whenever needed.

The first thing then necessary as introductory to this treatise, is an anatomical description of the several parts of generation both in men and women; but as in the former part of this work I have treated at large upon these subjects, being desirous to avoid tautology, I shall not here repeat anything of what was then said, but refer the reader thereto, as a necessary introduction to what follows. And though I shall be necessitated to speak plainly so that I may be understood, yet I shall do it with that modesty that none shall have need to blush unless it be from something in themselves, rather than from what they shall find here; having the motto of the royal garter for my defence, which is:—"Honi soit qui mal y pense,"—"Evil be to him that evil thinks."

The first thing that's needed as an introduction to this discussion is an anatomical overview of the reproductive parts in both men and women. However, since I’ve already covered these topics in detail in the earlier sections of this work, and to avoid repeating myself, I won’t restate anything here. Instead, I’ll direct the reader back to that section as a vital introduction to what comes next. Even though I’ll have to speak directly so that I can be understood, I’ll do so with enough modesty that no one should feel embarrassed unless it's due to something within themselves, rather than anything they find here; I have the motto of the royal garter to protect me, which is:—"Honi soit qui mal y pense,"—"Evil be to him that evil thinks."


A
GUIDE TO CHILDBEARING
WOMEN


BOOK I


CHAPTER I

SECTION I.—Of the Womb.

In this chapter I am to treat of the womb, which the Latins call matrix. Its parts are two; the mouth of the womb and the bottom of it. The mouth is an orifice at the entrance into it, which may be dilated and shut together like a purse; for though in the act of copulation it is big enough to receive the glans of the yard, yet after conception, it is so close and shut, that it will not admit the point of a bodkin to enter; and yet again, at the time of a woman's delivery, it is opened to such an extraordinary degree, that the child passeth through it into the world; at which time this orifice wholly disappears, and the womb seems to have but one great cavity from the bottom to the entrance of the neck. When a woman is not with child, it is a little oblong, and of substance very thick and close; but when she is with child it is shortened, and its thickness diminished proportionably to its distension; and therefore it is a mistake of anatomists who affirm, that its substance waxeth thicker a little before a woman's labour; for any one's reason will inform him, that the more distended it is, the thinner it must be; and the nearer a woman is to the time of her delivery the shorter her womb must be extended. As to the action by which this inward orifice of the womb is opened and shut, it is purely natural; for were it otherwise, there could not be so many bastards begotten as there are, nor would any married women have so many children. Were it in their own power they would hinder conception, though they would be willing enough to use copulation; for nature has attended that action with so pleasing and delightful sensations, that they are willing to indulge themselves in the use thereof notwithstanding the pains they afterwards endure, and the hazard of their lives that often follows it. And this comes to pass, not so much from an inordinate lust in woman, as that the great Director of Nature, for the increase and multiplication of mankind, and even all other species in the elementary world, hath placed such a magnetic virtue in the womb, that it draws the seed to it, as the loadstone draws iron.

In this chapter, I will discuss the womb, which the Latins call matrix. It has two parts: the opening of the womb and the body of the womb. The opening is an orifice at the entrance, which can stretch and close like a purse; during intercourse, it is wide enough to accommodate the head of the penis, yet after conception, it becomes so tight that not even the tip of a needle can fit through. Conversely, during childbirth, it opens to such an extent that the child passes through it into the world; at that time, the orifice completely disappears, and the womb appears to be one large cavity extending from the body to the entrance of the neck. When a woman is not pregnant, the womb is slightly elongated and very thick and compact. However, when she is pregnant, it shortens and becomes thinner in proportion to its stretching; thus, it is incorrect for anatomists to claim that its substance becomes thicker just before a woman's labor, as common sense indicates that the more it stretches, the thinner it must become, and the closer a woman is to delivering, the shorter her womb must be. Regarding the process by which this internal opening of the womb opens and closes, it is purely natural; if it were not, there wouldn't be so many illegitimate children born, nor would married women have so many kids. If women had control over it, they would prevent conception while still being willing to engage in intercourse, as nature has made that act accompanied by such pleasurable and delightful sensations that they willingly participate despite the pain and dangers that often follow. This happens not so much due to a woman's uncontrolled desire, but because the Grand Designer of Nature, for the purpose of increasing and multiplying mankind and all other species in the natural world, has endowed the womb with a magnetic quality that attracts the seed, much like a magnet draws iron.

The Author of Nature has placed the womb in the belly, that the heat might always be maintained by the warmth of the parts surrounding it; it is, therefore, seated in the middle of the hypogastrium (or lower parts of the belly between the bladder and the belly, or right gut) by which also it is defended from any hurt through the hardness of the bones, and it is placed in the lower part of the belly for the convenience of copulation, and of a birth being thrust out at full time.

The Creator of Nature has positioned the womb in the abdomen so that its warmth is consistently supported by the surrounding tissues. Consequently, it is located in the center of the lower abdomen (or the area under the belly between the bladder and the intestines) which protects it from injury thanks to the hardness of the bones. Additionally, the womb is situated in the lower abdomen to facilitate reproduction and ensure a smooth delivery when the time comes.

It is of a figure almost round, inclining somewhat to an oblong, in part resembling a pear; for being broad at the bottom, it gradually terminates in the point of the orifice which is narrow.

It has a shape that's nearly round, leaning a bit towards oblong, somewhat like a pear; it is wide at the bottom and gradually tapers to the narrow opening at the top.

The length, breadth and thickness of the womb differ according to the age and disposition of the body. For in virgins not ripe it is very small in all its dimensions, but in women whose terms flow in great quantities, and such as frequently use copulation, it is much larger, and if they have had children, it is larger in them than in such as have had none; but in women of a good stature and well shaped, it is (as I have said before), from the entry of the privy parts to the bottom of the womb usually about eight inches; but the length of the body of the womb alone, does not exceed three; the breadth thereof is near about the same, and of the thickness of the little finger, when the womb is not pregnant, but when the woman is with child, it becomes of a prodigious greatness, and the nearer she is to delivery, the more the womb is extended.

The length, width, and thickness of the womb vary depending on a person's age and body type. In young virgins, it’s quite small in all dimensions, but in women who have heavy menstrual flow and frequently have sex, it's much larger. If they have had children, their womb is larger than in those who haven't; however, in women with a good build and proportions, it’s (as I have said before) about eight inches from the entrance of the vagina to the bottom of the womb. The length of the body of the womb itself is no more than three inches, and its width is about the same, with a thickness similar to that of a little finger when not pregnant. However, when a woman is pregnant, it becomes very large, and the closer she gets to giving birth, the more the womb expands.

It is not without reason then, that nature (or the God of Nature) has made the womb of a membranous substance; for thereby it does the easier open to conceive, is gradually dilated by the growth of the foetus or young one, and is afterwards contracted or closed again, to thrust forth both it and the after-burden, and then to retire to its primitive seat. Hence also it is enabled to expel any noxious humours, which may sometimes happen to be contained within it.

It’s no accident that nature (or the God of Nature) has made the womb from a flexible material; this allows it to easily expand to accommodate the growing fetus and then contract again to push it out along with the afterbirth, returning to its original state. This design also helps it to expel any harmful substances that might occasionally be present.

Before I have done with the womb, which is the field of generation, and ought, therefore, to be the more particularly taken care of (for as the seeds of plants can produce no plants, nor sprig unless grown in ground proper to excite and awaken their vegetative virtue so likewise the seed of man, though potentially containing all the parts of the child, would never produce so admissible an effect, if it were not cast into that fruitful field of nature, the womb) I shall proceed to a more particular description of its parts, and the uses for which nature has designed them.

Before I finish talking about the womb, which is the place where life begins and should be taken care of more closely (just like seeds of plants can’t grow unless they’re in the right soil to bring out their growth potential, the same goes for human seeds; even though they hold all the parts of a child, they wouldn’t result in anything meaningful if they weren’t placed in the nurturing environment of the womb), I will move on to a more detailed description of its parts and the purposes nature has assigned to them.

The womb, then, is composed of various similar parts, that is of membranes, veins, arteries and nerves. Its membranes are two and they compose the principal parts of the body, the outermost of which ariseth from the peritoneum or caul, and is very thin, without it is smooth, but within equal, that it may the better cleave to the womb, as it is fleshier and thicker than anything else we meet with within the body, when the woman is not pregnant, and is interwoven with all sorts of fibres or small strings that it may the better suffer the extension of the child, and the water caused during pregnancy, and also that it may the easier close again after delivery.

The womb consists of several similar parts, specifically membranes, veins, arteries, and nerves. There are two membranes that make up the main parts of the body. The outer one comes from the peritoneum or caul and is very thin; it’s smooth on the outside but even on the inside, which helps it stick better to the womb. When a woman is not pregnant, the womb is fleshier and thicker than anything else found in the body. It's woven with all kinds of fibers or small strings that allow it to stretch for the baby and the fluid during pregnancy, and it also helps it close up more easily after giving birth.

The veins and arteries proceed both from the hypogastric and the spermatic vessels, of which I shall speak by and by; all these are inserted and terminated in the proper membranes of the womb. The arteries supply it with food and nourishment, which being brought together in too great a quantity, sweats through the substance of it, and distils as it were a dew at the bottom of the cavity; from thence proceed the terms in ripe virgins, and the blood which nourisheth the embryo in breeding women. The branches which issue from the spermatic vessels, are inserted on each side of the bottom of the womb, and are much less than those which proceed from the hypogastrics, those being greater and bedewing the whole substance of it. There are some other small vessels, which arising the one from the other are conducted to the internal orifice, and by these, those that are pregnant purge away the superfluity of the terms when they happen to have more than is used in the nourishment of the infant: by which means nature has taken so much care of the womb, that during pregnancy it shall not be obliged to open itself for passing away those excrementitious humours, which, should it be forced to do, might often endanger abortion.

The veins and arteries arise from both the hypogastric and spermatic vessels, which I will discuss shortly; all of these connect and terminate in the membranes of the womb. The arteries provide it with nutrients and nourishment, which, when accumulated in excess, seeps through its substance and collects like dew at the bottom of the cavity; from there come the menstrual flow in healthy young women, as well as the blood that nourishes the embryo in pregnant women. The branches that come from the spermatic vessels are located on either side at the bottom of the womb and are much smaller than those from the hypogastric vessels, which are larger and supply moisture to the entire structure. There are also smaller vessels that branch off from one another leading to the internal opening, and through these vessels, pregnant women eliminate any excess menstrual flow when there's more than necessary for the nourishment of the baby. This way, nature has taken such care of the womb that during pregnancy, it does not need to open itself to expel waste fluids, which, if it were compelled to do so, could frequently lead to miscarriage.

As touching the nerves, they proceed from the brain, which furnishes all the inner parts of the lower belly in them, which is the true reason it hath so great a sympathy with the stomach, which is likewise very considerably furnished from the same part; so that the womb cannot be afflicted with any pain, but that the stomach is immediately sensible thereof, which is the cause of those loathings or frequent vomitings which happen to it.

As for the nerves, they come from the brain, which supplies all the inner parts of the lower belly. This is the real reason there’s such a strong connection with the stomach, which also receives a significant supply from the same area. Therefore, whenever the womb experiences pain, the stomach is immediately aware of it, leading to the feelings of nausea or frequent vomiting that occur.

But beside all these parts which compose the womb, it has yet four ligaments, whose office it is, to keep it firm in its place, and prevent its constant agitation, by the continual motion of the intestines which surround it, two of which are above and two below. Those above are called the broad ligaments, because of their broad and membranous figure, and are nothing else but the production of the peritoneum which growing out of the sides of the loins towards the veins come to be inserted in the sides of the bottom of the womb, to hinder the body from bearing too much on the neck, and so from suffering a precipitation as will sometimes happen when the ligaments are too much relaxed; and do also contain the testicles, and as well, safely conduct the different vessels, as the ejaculatories, to the womb. The lowermost are called round ligaments, taking their origin from the side of the womb near the horn, from whence they pass the groin, together with the production of the peritoneum, which accompanies them through the rings of the oblique and transverse muscles of the belly, by which they divide themselves into many little branches resembling the foot of a goose, of which some are inserted into the os pubis, the rest are lost and confounded with the membranes which women and children feel in their thighs. These two ligaments are long, round and nervous, and pretty big in their beginning near the matrix, hollow in their rise, and all along the os pubis, where they are a little smaller and become flat, the better to be inserted in the manner aforesaid. It is by their means the womb is hindered from rising too high. Now, although the womb is held in its natural situation by means of these four ligaments, it has liberty enough to extend itself when pregnant, because they are very loose, and so easily yield to its distension. But besides these ligaments, which keep the womb, as it were, in a poise, yet it is fastened for greater security by its neck, both to the bladder and rectum, between which it is situated. Whence it comes to pass, that if at any time the womb be inflamed, it communicates the inflammation to the neighbouring part.

But besides all these parts that make up the womb, there are four ligaments that help keep it stable in place and prevent it from constantly shifting due to the movement of the nearby intestines. Two of these ligaments are located above the womb, and two are below. The upper ones are called the broad ligaments because of their wide, membranous shape. They are essentially extensions of the peritoneum that grow out from the sides of the lower back and attach to the sides of the base of the womb. This setup helps prevent excessive pressure on the neck of the womb, which can sometimes lead to it slipping when the ligaments are too relaxed. These broad ligaments also support the testicles and help channel various vessels, including the ejaculatory ducts, to the womb. The lower ligaments are known as the round ligaments. They originate from the side of the womb near the horn and travel through the groin, along with the peritoneum, passing through the rings of the oblique and transverse abdominal muscles. These ligaments break into numerous small branches that resemble a goose's foot, with some attaching to the pubic bone while others blend into the membranes that women and children feel in their thighs. These two ligaments are long, round, and nerve-rich, starting out quite large near the womb, hollow in their origin, then narrowing slightly and flattening along the pubic bone to allow for better insertion as described earlier. They help prevent the womb from rising too high. Although the womb is held in its natural position by these four ligaments, it can still expand easily during pregnancy because they are quite loose and easily accommodate its growth. In addition to these ligaments that keep the womb balanced, it is also securely attached by its neck to both the bladder and the rectum, between which it is positioned. This arrangement means that if the womb becomes inflamed, the inflammation can spread to the surrounding areas.

Its use or proper action in the work of generation, is to receive and retain the seed, and deduce from it power and action by its heat, for the generation of the infant; and it is, therefore, absolutely necessary for the conservation of the species. It also seems by accident to receive and expel the impurities of the whole body, as when women have abundance of whites, and to purge away, from time to time, the superfluity of the blood, as when a woman is not with child.

Its role in reproduction is to take in and hold the sperm, and from that, generate energy and activity through its heat to create the embryo; therefore, it’s essential for the survival of the species. It also seems to unintentionally take in and eliminate impurities from the body, like when women have a lot of discharge, and to periodically flush out excess blood, as happens when a woman isn’t pregnant.


SECT. II.—Of the difference between the ancient and modern Physicians, touching the woman's contributing seed for the Formation of the Child.

Our modern anatomists and physicians are of different sentiments from the ancients touching the woman's contributing seed for the formation of the child, as well as the man; the ancients strongly affirming it, but our modern authors being generally of another judgment. I will not make myself a party to this controversy, but set down impartially, yet briefly, the arguments on each side, and leave the judicious reader to judge for himself.

Our modern anatomists and doctors have different views from those of ancient scholars about a woman's contribution to the formation of a child, just like a man's. The ancients strongly believed in it, but most modern authors tend to disagree. I won't take a side in this debate but will outline the arguments for both sides briefly and fairly, leaving it up to the discerning reader to decide for themselves.

Though it is apparent, say the ancients, that the seed of man is the principal efficient and beginning of action, motion and generation, yet the woman affords seed, and contributes to the procreation of the child, it is evident from hence, that the woman had seminal vessels, which had been given her in vain if she wanted seminal excretions; but since nature forms nothing in vain, it must be granted that they were formed for the use of the seed and procreation, and fixed in their proper places, to operate and contribute virtue and efficiency to the seed; and this, say they, is further proved from hence, that if women at years of maturity use not copulation to eject their seed, they often fall into strange diseases, as appears by young women and virgins, and also it appears that, women are never better pleased than when they are often satisfied this way, which argues, that the pleasure and delight, say they, is double in women to what it is in men, for as the delight of men in copulation consists chiefly in the emission of the seed, so women are delighted, both in the emission of their own and the reception of the man's.

Though it's clear, say the ancients, that the male seed is the main source and starting point of action, movement, and reproduction, the woman also provides seed and plays a role in creating the child. This indicates that women have seminal vessels, which would be pointless if they didn't have vaginal secretions. Since nature doesn't create anything without purpose, we must accept that these vessels are meant for seed and procreation, positioned correctly to contribute and enhance the seed’s effectiveness. Furthermore, they argue that this is supported by the fact that if women of childbearing age do not engage in sexual activity to release their seed, they often develop unusual ailments, as seen in young women and virgins. Additionally, it’s clear that women are most satisfied when they experience pleasure in this way, suggesting that the pleasure they feel is greater than that of men. While men’s pleasure in sexual activity mainly comes from the release of their seed, women enjoy both the emission of their own seed and the reception of the man's.

But against this, all our modern authors affirm that the ancients are very erroneous, inasmuch as the testicles in women do not afford seed, but are two eggs, like those of a fowl or other creatures; neither have they any such offices as in men, but are indeed an ovarium, or receptacle for eggs, wherein these eggs are nourished, by the sanguinary vessels dispersed through them; and from hence one or more, as they are fecundated by the man's seed, are conveyed into the womb by the oviducts. And the truth of this, say they, is so plain, that if you boil them, the liquor shall have the same taste, colour and consistency with the taste of bird's eggs. And if it be objected that they have no shells, the answer is easy; for the eggs of fowls while they are in the ovary, nay, after they have fallen into the uterus, have no shell: and though they have one when they are laid, yet it is no more than a fence which nature has provided for them against outward injuries, they being hatched without the body, but those of women being hatched within the body have no need of any other fence than the womb to secure them.

But in contrast, all our modern authors argue that the ancients are very mistaken, as the testicles in women do not produce seed; instead, they are two eggs, similar to those of birds or other creatures. They don’t have the same functions as in men but are actually ovaries, or storage for eggs, where these eggs are nourished by blood vessels distributed throughout them. From here, one or more eggs, once fertilized by the man’s seed, are transported into the womb through the fallopian tubes. They claim the truth of this is so obvious that if you boil them, the liquid will have the same taste, color, and consistency as bird eggs. And if it is pointed out that they don’t have shells, the response is simple: birds' eggs don’t have shells while they are in the ovary, and even after they have moved into the uterus. Although they do have a shell once they are laid, it is merely a barrier that nature has provided to protect them from external harm, since they hatch outside the body, while those of women develop inside the body and only require the womb for protection.

They also further say, that there are in the generation of the foetus, or young ones, two principles, active and passive; the active is the man's seed elaborated in the testicles out of the arterial blood and animal spirits; the passive principle is the ovum or egg, impregnated by the man's seed; for to say that women have true seed, say they, is erroneous. But the manner of conception is this; the most spirituous part of the man's seed, in the act of copulation, reaching up to the ovarium or testicles of the woman (which contains divers eggs, sometimes fewer) impregnates one of them; which, being conveyed by the oviducts to the bottom of the womb, presently begins to swell bigger and bigger, and drinks in the moisture that is so plentifully sent hither, after the same manner that the seed in the ground suck the fertile moisture thereof, to make them sprout.

They also say that in the development of a fetus or young ones, there are two principles, active and passive; the active is the man's sperm created in the testicles from the arterial blood and vital energy; the passive principle is the egg, fertilized by the man's sperm; because claiming that women have true sperm is incorrect, they argue. The process of conception is as follows: the most vital part of the man's sperm, during intercourse, reaches the woman's ovaries (which contain various eggs, sometimes fewer) and fertilizes one of them; this fertilized egg, transported by the fallopian tubes to the bottom of the uterus, starts to grow larger and absorbs the abundant moisture provided, in the same way that seeds in the ground absorb the fertile moisture to sprout.

But, notwithstanding what is here urged by modern anatomists, there are some late writers of the opinion of the ancients, viz., that women both have, and emit seed in the act of copulation; and even women themselves take it ill to be thought merely passive in the act wherein they make such vigorous exertions; and positively affirm, that they are sensible of the emission of their seed in that action, and that in it a great part of the delight which they take in that act, consists. I shall not, therefore, go about to take away any of their happiness from them, but leave them in possession of their imaginary felicity.

But despite what modern anatomists say, some recent writers agree with the ancient belief that women do produce and release seed during intercourse; and even women themselves dislike being seen as merely passive in an act where they exert so much energy. They insist that they are aware of the release of their seed during the act, and that a significant part of their pleasure comes from it. Therefore, I won't try to take away any of their joy but will let them continue to believe in their imagined happiness.

Having thus laid the foundation of this work, I will now proceed to speak of conception, and of those things which are necessary to be observed by women from the time of their conception, to the time of their delivery.

Having laid the groundwork for this work, I will now talk about conception and the things that women need to pay attention to from the moment of conception until delivery.


CHAPTER II

Of Conception; what it is; how women are to order themselves after Conception.

About Conception; what it is; how women should conduct themselves after Conception.


SECTION I.—What Conception is, and the qualifications requisite thereto.

Conception is nothing but an action of the womb, by which the prolific seed is received and retained, that an infant may be engendered and formed out of it. There are two sorts of conception: the one according to nature, which is followed by the generation of the infant in the womb; the other false and wholly against nature, in which the seed changes into water, and produces only false conceptions, moles, or other strange matter. Now, there are three things principally necessary in order to a true conception, so that generation may follow, viz., without diversity of sex there can be no conception; for, though some will have a woman to be an animal that can engender of herself, it is a great mistake; there can be no conception without a man discharge his seed into the womb. What they allege of pullets laying eggs without a cock's treading them is nothing to the purpose, for those eggs should they be set under a hen, will never become chickens because they never received any prolific virtue from the male, which is absolutely necessary to this purpose, and is sufficient to convince us, that diversity of the sex is necessary even to those animals, as well as to the generation of man. But diversity of sex, though it be necessary to conception, yet it will not do alone; there must also be a congression of the different sexes; for diversity of sex would profit little if copulation did not follow. I confess I have heard of subtle women, who, to cover their sin and shame, have endeavoured to persuade some peasants that they were never touched by man to get them with child; and that one in particular pretended to conceive by going into a bath where a man had washed himself a little before and spent his seed in it, which was drawn and sucked into her womb, as she pretended. But such stories as these are only for such who know no better. Now that these different sexes should be obliged to come to the touch, which we call copulation or coition, besides the natural desire of begetting their like, which stirs up men and women to it, the parts appointed for generation are endowed by nature with a delightful and mutual itch, which begets in them a desire to the action; without which, it would not be very easy for a man, born for the contemplation of divine mysteries, to join himself, by the way of coition, to a woman, in regard to the uncleanness of the part and the action. And, on the other side, if the woman did but think of those pains and inconveniences to which they are subject by their great bellies, and those hazards of life itself, besides the unavoidable pains that attend their delivery, it is reasonable to believe they would be affrighted from it. But neither sex makes these reflections till after the action is over, considering nothing beforehand but the pleasure of the enjoyment, so that it is from this voluptuous itch that nature obliges both sexes to this congression. Upon which the third thing followeth of course, viz., the emission of seed into the womb in the act of copulation. For the woman having received this prolific seed into her womb, and retained it there, the womb thereupon becomes depressed, and embraces the seed so closely, that being closed the point of a needle cannot enter into it without violence. And now the woman may be said to have conceived, having reduced by her heat from power into action, the several faculties which are contained in the seed, making use of the spirits with which the seed abounds, and which are the instruments which begin to trace out the first lineaments of the parts, and which afterwards, by making use of the menstruous blood flowing to it, give it, in time, growth and final perfection. And thus much shall suffice to explain what conception is. I shall next proceed to show

Conception is simply an action of the womb, where the fertile seed is taken in and retained so that an infant can develop from it. There are two types of conception: one is natural, leading to the growth of the baby in the womb; the other is false and completely unnatural, where the seed turns into water and only results in false conceptions, moles, or other unusual substances. To have a true conception that leads to generation, three main things are necessary: first, there cannot be conception without the difference in sex. Some people mistakenly think that a woman can conceive on her own, but that's not true; a man must release his seed into the womb for conception to occur. The idea that pullets can lay eggs without a rooster does not support this point, as those eggs, if placed under a hen, will never turn into chicks because they didn't receive any fertilizing power from the male, which is crucial for this process, proving that the difference in sex is essential for both animals and human reproduction. However, just having different sexes is not enough; they must also engage in mating because having different sexes would be of little value without copulation. I admit I've heard about clever women who, to hide their shame, tried to convince some men that they had never been touched by a man to become pregnant, including one who claimed she conceived by entering a bath where a man had recently washed himself and left his seed behind. Such stories are only for those who lack knowledge. The necessity for these different sexes to come into contact, known as copulation or coition, is driven both by the natural desire to reproduce and by the physical attraction that nature bestows upon the parts meant for reproduction, which creates a mutual urge for the act. Without this urge, it wouldn't be easy for a man, focused on higher things, to engage in copulation with a woman due to the perceived uncleanliness of the act. Likewise, if a woman thought of the discomfort and risks associated with pregnancy and childbirth, she'd likely be deterred. Yet, neither sex usually thinks about these consequences until after the act, focusing instead on the pleasure of intimacy. This natural desire compels both sexes to come together for the act. The third essential element follows naturally: the release of seed into the womb during copulation. When a woman receives the seed and holds it in her womb, it becomes contracted, tightly embracing the seed so much that not even a needle can enter without force. At this point, we can say that the woman has conceived, as her heat transforms the potential in the seed into action, utilizing the vitality from the seed that starts forming the initial features of the parts and, later, with the help of the menstrual blood supplied to it, allows for growth and eventual perfection. That should be enough to clarify what conception is. I will next proceed to show


SECT. II.—How a Woman ought to order herself after Conception.

My design in this treatise being brevity, I shall bring forward a little of what the learned have said of the causes of twins, and whether there be any such things as superfoetations, or a second conception in a woman (which is yet common enough), and as to twins, I shall have occasion to speak of them when I come to show you how the midwife ought to proceed in the delivery of the women that are pregnant with them. But having already spoken of conception, I think it now necessary to show how such as have conceived ought to order themselves during their pregnancy, that they may avoid those inconveniences, which often endanger the life of the child and many times their own.

My goal in this writing is to keep things brief. I’ll share some insights from experts about what causes twins and whether there are such things as superfetations, or a second conception in a woman (which is still fairly common). As for twins, I’ll discuss them when I explain how a midwife should assist women who are pregnant with them. However, since I’ve already talked about conception, I now think it’s important to explain how those who are pregnant should take care of themselves to avoid complications that can threaten the life of the baby and, often, their own.

A woman, after conception, during the time of her being with child, ought to be looked upon as indisposed or sick, though in good health; for child bearing is a kind of nine months' sickness, being all that time in expectation of many inconveniences which such a condition usually causes to those that are not well governed during that time; and therefore, ought to resemble a good pilot, who, when sailing on a rough sea and full of rocks, avoids and shuns the danger, if he steers with prudence, but if not, it is a thousand to one but he suffers shipwreck. In like manner, a woman with child is often in danger of miscarrying and losing her life, if she is not very careful to prevent those accidents to which she is subject all the time of her pregnancy. All which time her care must be double, first of herself, and secondly of the child she goes with for otherwise, a single error may produce a double mischief; for if she receives a prejudice, the child also suffers with her. Let a woman, therefore, after conception, observe a good diet, suitable to her temperament, custom, condition and quality; and if she can, let the air where she ordinarily dwells be clear and well tempered, and free from extremes, either of heat or cold; for being too hot, it dissipateth the spirits too much and causes many weaknesses; and by being too cold and foggy, it may bring down rheums and distillations on the lungs, and so cause her to cough, which, by its impetuous motion, forcing downwards, may make her miscarry. She ought alway to avoid all nauseous and ill smells; for sometimes the stench of a candle, not well put out, may cause her to come before time; and I have known the smell of charcoal to have the same effect. Let her also avoid smelling of rue, mint, pennyroyal, castor, brimstone, etc.

A woman, after getting pregnant and while carrying a child, should be seen as unwell or sick, even if she feels fine; because pregnancy is like a nine-month illness, as she’s constantly anticipating various discomforts that can arise if she doesn’t take care of herself during this time. She should act like a skilled captain who, when navigating a stormy sea full of hazards, avoids danger by steering carefully; otherwise, the chance of disaster is high. Similarly, a pregnant woman is at risk of miscarriage and serious complications unless she takes great care to prevent the risks she faces throughout her pregnancy. During this period, her focus must be twofold: first on herself, and second on the child she’s carrying, because any mistake can lead to serious consequences for both. If she suffers, the child will also be affected. Therefore, after conception, a woman should maintain a balanced diet that suits her individual needs, lifestyle, and circumstances. If possible, she should ensure that her living environment is pleasant and temperate, avoiding extremes of heat or cold; being too hot can exhaust her energy and lead to various health issues, while excessive cold and dampness can result in respiratory problems, causing her to cough, which may lead to miscarriage due to the pressure. She should always steer clear of unpleasant odors, as even the smell of a poorly extinguished candle can cause premature labor; I’ve even seen the odor of charcoal have the same effect. She should also avoid the scents of rue, mint, pennyroyal, castor oil, brimstone, and similar substances.

But, with respect to their diet, women with child have generally so great loathings and so many different longings, that it is very difficult to prescribe an exact diet for them. Only this I think advisable, that they may use those meats and drinks which are to them most desirable, though, perhaps, not in themselves so wholesome as some others, and, it may be not so pleasant; but this liberty must be made use of with this caution, that what they desire be not in itself unwholesome; and also that in everything they take care of excess. But, if a child-bearing woman finds herself not troubled with such longings as we have spoken of, let her take simple food, and in such quantity as may be sufficient for herself and the child, which her appetite may in a great measure regulate; for it is alike hurtful to her to fast too long as to eat too much; and therefore, rather let her eat a little and often; especially let her avoid eating too much at night, because the stomach being too much filled, compresseth the diaphragm, and thereby causeth difficulty of breathing. Let her meat be easy of digestion, such as the tenderest parts of beef, mutton, veal, fowls, pullets, capons, pigeons and partridges, either boiled or roasted, as she likes best, new laid eggs are also very good for her; and let her put into her broth those herbs that purify it, as sorrel, lettuce, succory and borage; for they will purge and purify the blood. Let her avoid whatever is hot seasoned, especially pies and baked meats, which being of hot digestion, overcharge the stomach. If she desire fish let it be fresh, and such as is taken out of rivers and running streams. Let her eat quinces and marmalade, to strengthen her child: for which purpose sweet almonds, honey, sweet apples, and full ripe grapes, are also good. Let her abstain from all salt, sour, bitter and salt things, and all things that tend to provoke the terms—such as garlic, onions, mustard, fennel, pepper and all spices except cinnamon, which in the last three months is good for her. If at first her diet be sparing, as she increases in bigness, let her diet be increased, for she ought to consider that she has a child as well as herself to nourish. Let her be moderate in her drinking; and if she drinks wine, let it be rather claret than white (for it will breed good blood, help the digestion, and comfort the stomach, which is weakly during pregnancy); but white wine being diuretic, or that which provokes urine, ought to be avoided. Let her be careful not to take too much exercise, and let her avoid dancing, riding in a coach, or whatever else puts the body into violent motion, especially in the first month. But to be more particular, I shall here set down rules proper for every month for the child-bearing woman to order herself, from the time she first conceived, to the time of her delivery.

But when it comes to their diet, pregnant women often have strong aversions and various cravings, making it difficult to recommend a strict diet plan for them. I think it's best that they consume the foods and drinks they find most appealing, even if they aren’t necessarily the healthiest. However, they should be cautious to ensure that what they crave isn’t unhealthy and to avoid overeating. If a pregnant woman doesn’t experience these cravings, she should stick to simple foods in amounts that are enough for both her and the baby, which her appetite will largely dictate. It’s harmful for her to either fast too long or overeat, so it's better for her to eat smaller portions frequently. She should especially avoid heavy meals at night, as a full stomach can compress the diaphragm and make breathing difficult. Her meals should be easy to digest, such as tender cuts of beef, mutton, veal, chicken, young chickens, capons, pigeons, and partridges, either boiled or roasted, depending on her preference. Freshly laid eggs are also very beneficial. She should add herbs to her broth that help purify it, such as sorrel, lettuce, endive, and borage, as they will cleanse and purify the blood. She should steer clear of highly seasoned foods, especially pies and baked dishes, which are harder to digest and may overload the stomach. If she craves fish, it should be fresh and sourced from rivers and streams. Eating quinces and marmalade can help strengthen her baby, and sweet almonds, honey, sweet apples, and ripe grapes are good options as well. She should avoid all salty, sour, and bitter foods, along with anything that can trigger labor, such as garlic, onions, mustard, fennel, pepper, and all spices except for cinnamon, which is beneficial in the last three months of pregnancy. If her diet starts off light, it should be increased as her pregnancy progresses since she needs to nourish both herself and her child. She should drink in moderation, and if she drinks wine, it should be more red than white, as red wine is better for producing good blood, aiding digestion, and comforting her stomach, which can be sensitive during pregnancy; white wine should be avoided as it can increase urination. She should be careful not to overexert herself, avoiding any activities that cause vigorous movement, like dancing or riding in a carriage, especially in the first month. To be more specific, I will outline guidelines for each month of pregnancy, from conception to delivery.

Rules for the First Two Months.

As soon as a woman knows, or has reason to believe, that she has conceived, she ought to abstain from all violent motions and exercise; whether she walks afoot, or rides on horseback or in a coach, it ought to be very gently. Let her also abstain from Venery (for which, after conception, she has usually no great inclination), lest there be a mole or superfoetation, which is the adding of one embryo to another. Let her beware not to lift her arms too high, nor carry great burdens, nor repose herself on hard and uneasy seats. Let her use moderately good, juicy meat and easy of digestion, and let her wines be neither too strong nor too sharp, but a little mingled with water; or if she be very abstemious, she may use water wherein cinnamon has been boiled. Let her avoid fastings, thirst, watchings, mourning, sadness, anger, and all other perturbations of the mind. Let no one present any strange or unwholesome thing to her, nor so much as name it, lest she should desire it and not be able to get it, and so either cause her to miscarry, or the child to have some deformity on that account. Let her belly be kept loose with prunes, raisins or manna in her broth, and let her use the following electuary, to strengthen the womb and the child—

As soon as a woman knows or suspects that she is pregnant, she should avoid all intense movements and exercise; whether she walks, rides a horse, or travels in a carriage, she should do so very gently. She should also refrain from sexual activity (which she usually isn't very interested in after conception) to prevent the risk of a mole or superfoetation, which is when one embryo attaches to another. She should be careful not to lift her arms too high, carry heavy loads, or sit on hard and uncomfortable surfaces. She should eat moderately good, tender meat that is easy to digest, and her wines shouldn't be too strong or too acidic, but rather mixed with a bit of water; or if she prefers to be very moderate, she can drink water that has been boiled with cinnamon. She should avoid fasting, being thirsty, staying up late, grieving, sadness, anger, and any other mental disturbances. No one should present her with strange or unhealthy things, or even mention them, so she doesn’t desire them and potentially risk a miscarriage or cause the child to have some deformity. She should keep her stomach regulated with prunes, raisins, or manna in her broth, and use the following mixture to strengthen her womb and the child—

"Take conserve of borage, buglos and roses, each two ounces; an ounce of balm; an ounce each of citron peel and shreds, candied mirobalans, an ounce each; extract of wood aloes a scruple; prepared pearl, half a drachm; red coral and ivory, of each a drachm; precious stones each a scruple; candied nutmegs, two drachms, and with syrup of apples and quinces make an electuary."

"Take two ounces each of borage, bugloss, and roses; one ounce of balm; one ounce each of citron peel and candied myrobalans; a scruple of extract of wood aloes; half a drachm of prepared pearl; one drachm each of red coral and ivory; a scruple each of precious stones; two drachms of candied nutmegs, and mix it with syrup of apples and quinces to make an electuary."

Let her observe the following rules.

"Take pearls prepared, a drachm; red coral and ivory prepared, each half a drachm, precious stones, each a scruple; yellow citron peel, mace, cinnamon, cloves, each half a drachm; saffron, a scruple; wood aloes, half a scruple; ambergris, six drachms; and with six ounces of sugar dissolved in rosewater make rolls." Let her also apply strengtheners of nutmeg, mace and mastich made up in bags, to the navel, or a toast dipped in malmsey, or sprinkled with powdered mint. If she happens to desire clay, chalk, or coals (as many women with child do), give her beans boiled with sugar, and if she happens to long for anything that she cannot obtain, let her presently drink a large draught of pure cold water.

"Take prepared pearls, one drachm; red coral and prepared ivory, half a drachm each; precious stones, each a scruple; yellow citron peel, mace, cinnamon, and cloves, each half a drachm; saffron, one scruple; wood aloes, half a scruple; ambergris, six drachms; and mix with six ounces of sugar dissolved in rosewater to make rolls." Also, she should apply tonics of nutmeg, mace, and mastic in bags to the navel, or have a toast dipped in malmsey or sprinkled with powdered mint. If she craves clay, chalk, or coals (as many pregnant women do), give her beans boiled with sugar, and if she desires something she can’t get, she should drink a big glass of cold, pure water.

Rules for the Third Month.

In this month and the next, be sure to keep from bleeding; for though it may be safe and proper at other times, yet it will not be so at the end of the fourth month; and yet if blood abound, or some incidental disease happens which requires evacuation, you may use a cupping glass, with scarification, and a little blood may be drawn from the shoulders and arms, especially if she has been accustomed to bleed. Let her also take care of lacing herself too straitly, but give herself more liberty than she used to do; for inclosing her belly in too strait a mould, she hinders the infant from taking its free growth, and often makes it come before its time.

In this month and the next, make sure to avoid bleeding; while it may be fine at other times, it won't be safe at the end of the fourth month. However, if there is an excess of blood or an incidental illness occurs that requires drainage, you can use a cupping glass with some cuts to draw a little blood from the shoulders and arms, especially if she's used to bleeding. She should also be careful not to lace herself too tightly and give herself more freedom than she is used to; constricting her belly too much can prevent the baby from growing properly and often leads to premature delivery.

Rules for the Fourth Month.

In this month also you ought to keep the child-bearing woman from bleeding, unless in extraordinary cases, but when the month is passed, blood-letting and physic may be permitted, if it be gentle and mild, and perhaps it may be necessary to prevent abortion. In this month she may purge, in an acute disease, but purging may only be used from the beginning of this month to the end of the sixth; but let her take care that in purging she use no vehement medicine, nor any bitter, as aloes, which is disagreeable and hurtful to the child, and opens the mouth of the vessels; neither let her use coloquintida, scammony nor turbith; she may use cassia, manna, rhubarb, agaric and senna but dyacidodium purgans is best, with a little of the electuary of the juice of roses.

In this month, you should keep the pregnant woman from bleeding unless there are exceptional circumstances. However, once the month is over, blood-letting and mild treatments may be allowed, especially if it helps prevent miscarriage. During this month, she can take laxatives for a severe illness, but these should only be used from the start of this month until the end of the sixth month. She should be careful to avoid harsh medicines or anything bitter, like aloes, which is harmful to the baby and can open blood vessels. Also, she should stay away from colocynth, scammony, or turpeth. She may use cassia, manna, rhubarb, agaric, and senna, but dyacidodium purgans is the best option, mixed with a little rose juice electuary.

Rules for the Fifth, Sixth and Seventh Months.

In these months, child-bearing women are troubled with coughs, colds, heart-beating, fainting, watching, pains in the loins and hips, and bleeding. The cough is from a sharp vapour that comes to the jaws and rough artery from the terms, or the thin part of that blood got less into the reins of the breast; this endangers abortion, and strength fails from watching: therefore, purge the humours that come to the breast, with rhubarb and agaric, and strengthen the head as in a catarrh, and give sweet lenitives as in a cough. Palpitation and faintness arises from vapours that go to it by the arteries, or from blood that abounds and cannot get out of the womb, but ascends and oppresses the heart; and in this case cordials should be used both inwardly and outwardly. Watching, is from sharp dry vapours that trouble the animal spirits, and in this case use frictions, and let the woman wash her feet at bed-time, and let her take syrup of poppies, dried roses, emulsions of sweet almonds, and white poppy seed. If she be troubled with pains in her loins and hips, as in those months she is subject to be, from the weight of her child as it grows big and heavy, and so stretches the ligaments of the womb and part adjacent, let her hold it up with swathing bands about her neck. About this time also the woman often happens to have a flux of blood, either at the nose, womb or haemorrhoids, from plenty of blood, or from the weakness of the child that takes it not in, or else from evil humour in the blood, that stirs up nature and sends it forth. And sometimes it happens that the vessels of the womb may be broken, either by some violent motion, fall, cough or trouble of the mind (for any of these will work that effect), and this is so dangerous, that in such a case the child cannot be well, but if it be from blood only, the danger is less, provided it flows by the veins of the neck of the womb, for then it prevents plethora and takes not away the nourishment of the child; but if it proceeds from the weakness of the child, that draws it not in, abortion of the child often follows, or hard travail, or else she goes beyond her time. But if it flows from the inward veins of the womb, there is more danger by the openness of the womb, if it come from evil blood; the danger is alike from cacochymy, which is like to fall upon both. If it arises from plethora, open a vein, but with great caution, and use astringents, of which the following will do well:—Take prepared pearls, a scruple; red coral, two scruples; mace, nutmeg, each a drachm; cinnamon, half a drachm; make a powder, or with white sugar make rolls. Or give this powder in broth:—"Take red coral, a drachm; half a drachm precious stones; red sander, half a drachm; bole, a drachm; scaled earth and tormental roots, each two scruples, with sugar of roses and Manus Christi; with pearl, five drachms; make a powder." You may also strengthen the child at the navel, and if there be a cacochymy, alter the humours, and if you can do it safely, evacuate; you may likewise use amulets on her hands and about her neck. In a flux of haemorrhoids, wear off the pain, and let her drink hot wine with a toasted nutmeg. In these months the belly is also subject to be bound, but if it be without any apparent disease, the broth of a chicken or veal, sodden with oil, or with the decoction of mallows or marsh-mallows, mercury or linseed, put up in a clyster, will not be amiss, but in less quantity than is given in other cases:—viz. of the decoction, five ounces, of common oil, three ounces, of sugar, two ounces, and of cassia fistula, one ounce. But if she will not take a clyster, one or two yolks of new laid eggs, or a little peas-pottage warm, a little salt and sugar, and supped a little before meat, will be very convenient. But if her belly be distended and stretched with wind a little fennel seed and aniseed reduced to a powder and mixed with honey and sugar made after the manner of an electuary, will be very well Also, if thighs and feet swell let them be anointed with erphodrinum (which is a liquid medicine) made with vinegar and rose-water, mingled with salt.

In these months, women who are pregnant often deal with coughs, colds, heart palpitations, fainting, insomnia, pains in the lower back and hips, and bleeding. The cough comes from sharp vapors that irritate the throat and lungs due to thinner blood not properly circulating in the chest; this can risk miscarriage, and exhaustion comes from lack of sleep. Therefore, it's important to clear out the fluids affecting the chest using rhubarb and agaric, fortify the head like in a cold, and provide soothing remedies like those used for coughs. Palpitations and faintness occur from vapors entering through the arteries, or from an excess of blood that can't exit the womb, which then puts pressure on the heart; in this situation, both internal and external tonics should be used. Insomnia results from sharp dry vapors disturbing the nervous system, so using friction therapies, having the woman soak her feet before bed, and taking syrups made from poppies, dried roses, emulsified sweet almonds, and white poppy seeds is advisable. If she experiences pain in her lower back and hips, which can happen as her baby grows heavier and stretches the ligaments of the womb and surrounding areas, she should support her abdomen with bandages around her neck. Around this time, women frequently experience bleeding from the nose, womb, or hemorrhoids, either from an excess of blood, weakness in the child, or from unhealthy blood that's provoking nature to discharge it. Sometimes, the blood vessels in the womb can break due to sudden movements, falls, coughing, or emotional distress (any of which can cause this effect), and this situation is serious; if it’s just blood flow, the danger is less significant, as long as it flows from the neck of the womb, since it prevents excess blood and doesn't rob the baby of its nourishment. However, if the bleeding comes from a weak child that can’t retain it, there can often be miscarriage, difficult labor, or a delivery past the due date. If it’s from the inner veins of the womb, there’s a greater risk due to the womb's openness, especially if it’s caused by unhealthy blood; the risk is similar from an imbalance in the body, which can affect both scenarios. If it’s due to excess blood, carefully open a vein and use astringents. The following remedies can be effective: take hardened pearls (a scruple), red coral (two scruples), mace and nutmeg (each a drachm), and cinnamon (half a drachm); make into a powder or rolls with white sugar. Or give this powder in broth: take red coral (a drachm), half a drachm of precious stones, red sandalwood (half a drachm), bole (a drachm), scaled earth and tormentil roots (each two scruples), with sugar of roses and Manus Christi, along with pearls (five drachms); create a powder. You can also strengthen the child at the navel, and if there's an imbalance, adjust the fluids; if safe, eliminate excess; you may also use amulets on her hands and around her neck. In the case of hemorrhoids, relieve pain, and have her drink warm wine with a toasted nutmeg. During these months, the stomach can also become constipated, but if there’s no noticeable illness, chicken or veal broth cooked with oil, or a decoction of mallows, marshmallows, mercury, or linseed, used in an enema, will work well, but in smaller quantities than usual: five ounces of the decoction, three ounces of common oil, two ounces of sugar, and one ounce of cassia fistula. If she refuses an enema, one or two yolks of fresh eggs, or warm pea soup with a little salt and sugar, taken slightly before meals, will be very useful. If her stomach is bloated and gassy, a small amount of ground fennel and anise seeds mixed with honey and sugar in the form of a paste will help. Additionally, if her thighs and feet swell, they should be rubbed with erphodrinum (a liquid medicine) made with vinegar and rose water mixed with salt.

Rules for the Eighth Month.

The eighth month is commonly called the most dangerous; therefore the greatest care and caution ought to be used, the diet better in quality, but no more, nor indeed, so much in quantity as before, but as she must abate her diet, she must increase her exercise; and because then women with child, by reason that sharp humours alter the belly, are accustomed to weaken their spirits and strength, they may well take before meat, an electuary of diarrhoden, or aromaticum rosatum or diamagarton; and sometimes they may lick a little honey. As they will loathe, nauseate their meat, they may take green ginger, candied with sugar, and the rinds of citron and oranges candied; and let them often use honey for strengthening the infant. When she is not very far from her labour, let her eat every day seven roasted figs before her meat, and sometimes let her lick a little honey. But let her beware of salt and powdered meat, for it is neither good for her nor the child.

The eighth month is often called the most dangerous; therefore, she should be very careful and cautious. The quality of her diet should improve, but she shouldn't eat more or even as much as before. Since she needs to cut back on her food, she should increase her exercise. Women who are pregnant often experience changes in their bodies that can weaken their spirits and strength, so they might want to take a mix of diarrhea remedy, fragrant herbs, or a soothing powder before meals, and sometimes they can have a bit of honey. If they start to feel nauseous about their food, they can try some candied ginger and candied citrus peels, and they should often use honey to help strengthen the baby. When she is close to giving birth, she should eat seven roasted figs before her meals every day and occasionally have a little honey. However, she should avoid salty and heavily seasoned foods, as they are not good for her or the baby.

Rules for the Ninth Month.

In the ninth month let her have a care of lifting any great weight, but let her move a little more, to dilate the parts, and stir up natural heat. Let her take heed of stooping, and neither sit too much nor lie on her sides, neither ought she to bend herself much enfolded in the umbilical ligaments, by which means it often perisheth. Let her walk and stir often, and let her exercise be, rather to go upwards than downwards. Let her diet, now especially, be light and easy of digestion and damask prunes with sugar, or figs with raisins, before meat, as also the yolks of eggs, flesh and broth of chickens, birds, partridges and pheasants; astringent and roasted meats, with rice, hard eggs, millet and such like other things are proper. Baths of sweet water, with emollient herbs, ought to be used by her this month with some intermission, and after the baths let her belly be anointed with oil of sweet roses and of violets; but for her privy parts, it is better to anoint them with the fat of hens, geese or ducks, or with oil of lilies, and the decoction of linseed and fenugreek, boiled with oil of linseed and marshmallows, or with the following liniment:—

In the ninth month, she should avoid heavy lifting but move around a bit more to expand the areas and stimulate natural warmth. She should be mindful not to stoop and avoid sitting too long or lying on her sides. It's important for her not to bend too much around the umbilical cord, as this can sometimes lead to issues. She should walk and stay active often, focusing on moving upward rather than downward. Her diet, especially now, should be light and easy to digest, including damask prunes with sugar or figs with raisins before meals, along with egg yolks, chicken, and broth from birds like partridges and pheasants. Astringent and roasted meats, rice, hard-boiled eggs, millet, and similar foods are appropriate. She should use sweet water baths with soothing herbs this month intermittently, and after bathing, her belly should be anointed with oil of sweet roses and violets. For her private areas, it’s best to use chicken, goose, or duck fat, or oil of lilies, along with a decoction of linseed and fenugreek boiled with linseed oil and marshmallows, or the following liniment:—

Take mallows and marshmallows, cut and shred, of each one ounce; of linseed, one ounce; let them be boiled from twenty ounces of water to ten; then let her take three ounces of the boiled broth, of oil of almonds and oil of flower-de-luce, of each one ounce; of deer's suet, three ounces. Let her bathe with this, and anoint herself with it, warm.

Take mallows and marshmallows, cut and shred, of each one ounce; of linseed, one ounce; let them be boiled from twenty ounces of water to ten; then let her take three ounces of the boiled broth, of almond oil and oil of orris root, of each one ounce; of deer's suet, three ounces. Let her bathe with this and apply it to herself while it's warm.

If for fourteen days before the birth, she do every morning and evening bathe and moisten her belly with muscadine and lavender water, the child will be much strengthened thereby. And if every day she eat toasted bread, it will hinder anything from growing to the child. Her privy parts must be gently stroked down with this fomentation.

If for fourteen days before giving birth, she bathes and moistens her belly every morning and evening with muscadine and lavender water, it will strengthen the baby a lot. And if she eats toasted bread every day, it will prevent anything harmful from affecting the baby. She should gently apply this treatment to her intimate areas.

"Take three ounces of linseed, and one handful each of mallows and marshmallows sliced, then let them be put into a bag and immediately boiled." Let the woman with child, every morning and evening, take the vapour of this decoction in a hollow stool, taking great heed that no wind or air come to her in-parts, and then let her wipe the part so anointed with a linen cloth, and she may anoint the belly and groins as at first.

"Take three ounces of linseed and a handful each of sliced mallows and marshmallows, then put them in a bag and boil them right away." The pregnant woman should inhale the steam from this mixture every morning and evening using a hollow stool, making sure no wind or air reaches her intimate areas. Afterward, she should wipe the area she applied it to with a linen cloth, and she can also apply the mixture to her belly and groin as before.

When she has come so near to her time, as to be ten or fourteen days thereof, if she begins to feel any more than ordinary pain let her use every day the following:—"Take mallows and marshmallows, of each a handful; camomiles, hard mercury, maidenhair, of each a handful; of linseed, four ounces; let them be boiled in a sufficient quantity of water as to make a bath therewith." But let her not sit too hot upon the seat, nor higher than a little above her navel; nor let her sit upon it longer than about half an hour, lest her strength languish and decay, for it is better to use it often than to stay too long in it.

When she is close to her due date, about ten to fourteen days away, if she starts to feel more discomfort than usual, she should use the following daily:—"Take a handful each of mallows and marshmallows; a handful each of chamomile, hard mercury, and maidenhair; and four ounces of linseed. Boil them in enough water to create a bath." But she shouldn't sit in the bath too hot or any higher than a little above her belly button, and she should limit her time in it to about half an hour, so she doesn't become weak or exhausted. It's better to use the bath frequently than to stay in for too long.

And thus have I shown how a child-bearing woman ought to govern herself each month during her pregnancy. How she must order herself at her delivery, shall be shown in another chapter, after I have first shown the intended midwife how the child is first formed in the womb, and the manner of its decumbiture there.

And so, I've explained how a pregnant woman should manage herself each month during her pregnancy. How she should handle her delivery will be addressed in another chapter, after I first show the future midwife how the child is initially formed in the womb and how it is positioned there.


CHAPTER III

Of the Parts proper to a Child in the womb; How it is formed there, and the manner of its Situation therein.

About the parts specific to a child in the womb; how it develops there, and its position within it.


In the last chapter I treated of conception, showed what it was, how accomplished and its signs, and how she who has conceived ought to order herself during the time of her pregnancy. Now, before I come to speak of her delivery, it is necessary that the midwife be first made acquainted with the parts proper to a child in the womb, and also that she be shown how it is formed, and the manner of its situation and decumbiture there; which are so necessary to her, that without the knowledge thereof, no one can tell how to deliver a woman as she ought. This, therefore, shall be the work of this chapter. I shall begin with the first of these.

In the last chapter, I discussed conception, explained what it is, how it happens, and its signs, and how a woman who has conceived should take care of herself during her pregnancy. Now, before I talk about delivery, it's essential for the midwife to understand the parts of a baby in the womb, as well as how it forms and how it is positioned and lies there; this knowledge is crucial for her, as no one can properly assist a woman in labor without it. Therefore, this will be the focus of this chapter. I will start with the first topic.


SECTION I.—Of the Parts proper to a Child in the Womb.

In this section, I must first tell you what I mean by the parts proper to a child in the womb; and they are only those that either help or nourish it; and whilst it is lodged in that dark repository of nature, and that help to clothe and defend it there and are cast away, as of no more use, after it is born, and these are two, viz., the umbilicars, or navel vessels, and the secundinum. By the first it is nourished, and by the second clothed and defended from wrong. Of each of these I shall speak distinctly; and first,

In this section, I need to explain what I mean by the parts that belong to a fetus. These are only the parts that either support or nourish it while it’s in the womb, that dark place of nature. Once it’s born, these parts are no longer needed and are discarded. There are two of these parts: the umbilical cord and the secundinum. The first provides nourishment, while the second protects and supports it. I will discuss each of these in detail, starting with the first one.

Of the Umbilicars, or Navel Vessels.

These are four in number, viz.:—one vein, two arteries, and the vessel which is called the urachos.

These are four in total: one vein, two arteries, and the vessel known as the urachus.

(1) The vein is that on which the infant is nourished, from the time of its conception till the time of its delivery; till being brought into the light of the world, it has the same way of concocting the food we have. This vein ariseth from the liver of the child, and is divided into two parts when it has passed the navel; and these two are divided and subdivided, the branches being upheld by the skin called chorion (of which I speak by and by), and are joined to the veins of the mother's womb, from whence they have their blood for the nourishment of the child.

(1) The vein is what nourishes the baby from the moment of conception until delivery; until it's brought into the world, it processes food the same way we do. This vein comes from the baby’s liver and splits into two parts after it passes the navel; these two parts continue to divide, with the branches supported by the skin called chorion (which I'll explain later), and connecting to the veins of the mother’s womb, where they get their blood to nourish the baby.

(2) The arteries are two on each side which proceed from the back branches of the great artery of the mother, and the vital blood is carried by those to the child being ready concocted by the mother.

(2) There are two arteries on each side that come from the back branches of the main artery of the mother, and vital blood flows through these to the child, already prepared by the mother.

(3) A nervous or sinewy production is led from the bottom of the bladder of the infant to the navel, and this is called urachos, and its use is, to convey the urine of the infant from the bladder to the alantois. Anatomists do very much vary in their opinion concerning this, some denying any such thing to be in the delivery of the woman, and others on the contrary affirming it; but experience has testified there is such a thing, for Bartholomew Carbrolius, the ordinary doctor of anatomy to the College of Physicians at Montpellier in France, records the history of a maid, whose water being a long time stopped, at last issued out through the navel. And Johannes Fernelius speaks of the same thing that happened to a man of thirty years of age, who having a stoppage at the neck of the bladder, his urine issued out of his navel for many months together, and that without any prejudice at all to his health, which he ascribes to the ill lying of his navel, whereby the urachos was not well dried. And Volchier Coitas quotes such another instance in a maid of thirty-four at Nuremburg in Germany. These instances, though they happen but seldom, are sufficient to prove that there is such a thing as anurachos in men.

(3) A A thin or threadlike structure runs from the bottom of the infant's bladder to the navel, known as urachos. Its purpose is to transport the urine from the bladder to the allantois. Anatomists have different opinions on this. Some deny that it exists in women during childbirth, while others confirm its presence. However, evidence supports its existence. Bartholomew Carbrolius, a prominent anatomist at the College of Physicians in Montpellier, France, recounts the case of a young woman whose urine remained blocked for a long time and eventually came out through her navel. Johannes Fernelius mentions a similar case of a thirty-year-old man who had a blockage at the neck of the bladder, causing his urine to flow from his navel for several months without harming his health, which he attributed to an abnormal position of his navel that prevented the urachos from drying properly. Volchier Coitas also cites a similar case of a thirty-four-year-old woman in Nuremberg, Germany. Although these cases are rare, they are enough to establish that anurachos exists in men.

These four vessels before mentioned, viz., one vein, two arteries and the urachos, join near the navel, and are united by a skin which they have from the chorion and so become like a gut or rope, and are altogether void of sensibility, and this is that which women call the navel-string. The vessels are thus joined together, that so they may neither be broken, severed nor entangled; and when the infant is born are of no use save only to make up the ligament which stops the hole of the navel and for some other physical use, etc.

These four mentioned vessels—a vein, two arteries, and the urachus—come together near the navel and are connected by a skin from the chorion, forming something like a gut or a rope. They have no sensation, and this is what women refer to as the navel string. The vessels are joined together in a way that prevents them from being broken, severed, or tangled. After the infant is born, they serve no purpose except to form the ligament that closes the navel and for some other physical functions, etc.

Of the Secundine or After-birth.

Setting aside the name given to this by the Greeks and Latins, it is called in English by the name of secundine, after-birth or after-burden; which are held to be four in number.

Setting aside the name given to this by the Greeks and Latins, it is called in English by the name of secundine, after-birth or after-burden; which are considered to be four in number.

(1) The first is called placenta, because it resembles the form of a cake, and is knit both to the navel and chorion, and makes up the greatest part of the secundine or after-birth. The flesh of it is like that of the melt or spleen, soft, red and tending something to blackness, and hath many small veins and arteries in it: and certainly the chief use of it is, for containing the child in the womb.

(1) The first is called the placenta because it looks like a cake and is attached to both the navel and the chorion, making up most of the secundine or afterbirth. Its flesh is similar to that of the melt or spleen—soft, red, and somewhat dark—and it contains many small veins and arteries. Its main purpose is to hold the child in the womb.

(2) The second is the chorion. This skin and that called the amnios, involve the child round, both above and underneath, and on both sides, which the alantois does not. This skin is that which is most commonly called the secundine, as it is thick and white garnished with many small veins and arteries, ending in the placenta before named, being very light and slippery. Its use is, not only to cover the child round about, but also to receive, and safely bind up the roots of the veins and arteries or navel vessels before described.

(2) The second is the chorion. This skin, along with the amnios, surrounds the baby completely, above, below, and on both sides, unlike the alantois. This skin is commonly referred to as the secundine, as it is thick and white, adorned with numerous small veins and arteries that connect to the previously mentioned placenta, and is very light and slippery. Its purpose is not just to cover the baby all around, but also to hold and securely enclose the roots of the veins and arteries or umbilical vessels mentioned earlier.

(3) The third thing which makes up the secundine in the alantois, of which there is a great dispute amongst anatomists. Some say there is such a thing, and others that there is not. Those who will have it to be a membrane, say it is white, soft and exceedingly thin, and just under the placenta, where it is knit to the urachos, from which it receives the urine; and its office is to keep it separate from the sweat, that the saltness of it may not offend the tender skin of the child.

(3) The third thing that makes up the secundine in the alantois is a topic of considerable debate among anatomists. Some argue that it exists, while others claim it doesn’t. Those who insist it is a membrane describe it as white, soft, and extremely thin, located just beneath the placenta, where it connects to the urachus, which carries urine; its function is to keep the urine separate from sweat, preventing its saltiness from irritating the baby's delicate skin.

(4) The fourth, and last covering of the child is called amnios; and it is white, soft and transparent, being nourished by some very small veins and arteries. Its use is, not only to enwrap the child, but also to retain the sweat of the child.

(4) The fourth and final layer around the baby is called the amnios. It is white, soft, and transparent, nourished by tiny veins and arteries. Its purpose is not just to envelop the baby, but also to keep the baby's sweat contained.

Having thus described the parts proper to a child in the womb, I will next proceed to speak of the formation of the child therein, as soon as I have explained the hard terms of the section, that those for whose help it is designed, may understand what they read. A vein is that which receives blood from the liver, and distributes in several branches to all parts of the body. Nerve is the same with sinew, and is that by which the brain adds sense and motion to the body. Placenta, properly signifies sugar cake; but in this section it is used to signify a spongy piece of flesh resembling a cake, full of veins and arteries, and is made to receive a mother's blood appointed for the infant's nourishment in the womb. The chorion is an outward skin which compasseth the child in the womb. The amnios is the inner skin which compasseth the child in the womb. The alantois is the skin that holds the urine of the child during the time that it abides in the womb. The urachos is the vessel that conveys the urine from the child in the womb to the alantois. I now proceed to

Having described the parts specific to a child in the womb, I will now talk about how the child forms there, as soon as I’ve clarified the difficult terms in this section, so that those it's intended for can understand what they read. A vein is what carries blood from the liver and branches out to supply all parts of the body. A nerve is the same as a sinew, and it's what allows the brain to give the body sensation and movement. Placenta literally means sugar cake; however, in this context, it refers to a spongy piece of tissue that looks like a cake, filled with veins and arteries, and is designed to receive the mother's blood meant for the baby's nourishment in the womb. The chorion is the outer layer of skin that encircles the child in the womb. The amnios is the inner layer of skin that also surrounds the child in the womb. The alantois is the membrane that holds the child's urine while it is in the womb. The urachos is the structure that transports urine from the child in the womb to the alantois. I now proceed to


SECT. II.—Of the Formation of the Child in the Womb.

To speak of the formation of the child in the womb, we must begin where nature begins, and, that is at the act of coition, in which the womb having received the generative seed (without which there can be no conception), the womb immediately shuts up itself so close that the point of a needle cannot enter the inward orifice; and this it does, partly to hinder the issuing out of the seed again, and partly to cherish it by an inward heat, the better to provoke it to action; which is one reason why women's bellies are so lank at their first conception. The woman having thus conceived, the first thing which is operative in conception is the spirit whereof the seed is full, which, nature quickening by the heat of the womb, stirs up the action. The internal spirits, therefore, separate the parts that are less pure, which are thick, cold and clammy, from those that are more pure and noble. The less pure are cast to the outside, and with these seed is circled round and the membrane made, in which that seed that is most pure is wrapped round and kept close together, that it may be defended from cold and other accidents, and operate the better.

To discuss how a child forms in the womb, we need to start where nature does, at the act of intercourse. When the womb receives the generative seed (which is necessary for conception), it quickly closes up so tightly that not even the point of a needle can enter the opening. This happens partly to prevent the seed from escaping and partly to nurture it with internal warmth, encouraging it to develop; this is one reason why women’s bellies appear flat right after conception. Once a woman has conceived, the first active element in conception is the spirit contained in the seed, which nature stimulates through the warmth of the womb to initiate development. The internal spirits then separate the less pure parts—thick, cold, and clammy—from those that are more pure and refined. The less pure components are pushed outward, while the pure seed is enveloped and protected by a membrane, keeping it tightly gathered to shield it from cold and other potential issues, allowing it to function more effectively.

The first thing that is formed is the amnios; the next the chorion; and they enwrap the seed round like a curtain. Soon after this (for the seed thus shut up in the woman lies not idle), the navel vein is bred, which pierceth those skins, being yet very tender, and carries a drop of blood from the veins of the mother's womb to the seed; from which drop the vena cava, or chief vein, proceeds, from which all the rest of the veins which nourish the body spring; and now the seed hath something to nourish it, whilst it performs the rest of nature's work, and also blood administered to every part of it, to form flesh.

The first thing that forms is the amniotic sac; next comes the chorion, which wraps around the seed like a curtain. Soon after that (because the seed isn’t just sitting idle in the woman), the umbilical vein develops, piercing those very tender membranes and carrying a drop of blood from the mother’s womb to the seed. From this drop, the vena cava, or main vein, develops, and all the other veins that nourish the body come from it; and now the seed has something to sustain it while it carries out the rest of nature's work, with blood supplied to every part to create flesh.

This vein being formed, the navel arteries are soon after formed; then the great artery, of which all the others are but branches; and then the heart, for the liver furnisheth the arteries with blood to form the heart, the arteries being made of seed, but the heart and the flesh, of blood. After this the brain is formed, and then the nerves to give sense and motion to the infant. Afterwards the bones and flesh are formed; and of the bones, first of all, the vertebrae or chine bones, and then the skull, etc. As to the time in which this curious part of nature's workmanship is formed, having already in Chapter II of the former part of this work spoken at large upon this point, and also of the nourishment of the child in the womb, I shall here only refer the reader thereto, and proceed to show the manner in which the child lies in the womb.

This vein forms first, followed shortly by the navel arteries; then comes the main artery, from which all the others branch out; and then the heart forms, as the liver supplies the arteries with blood to create the heart, with the arteries made from seed, while the heart and flesh are made from blood. Next, the brain develops, followed by the nerves that provide the infant with sensation and movement. After that, the bones and flesh are formed, starting with the vertebrae or spine bones, and then the skull, etc. As for the timeframe in which this intricate part of nature's design is created, I have already discussed this in detail in Chapter II of the earlier section of this work, along with the nourishment of the child in the womb. I will simply direct the reader back to that and continue by explaining how the child is positioned in the womb.


SECT. III.—Of the manner of the Child's lying in the Womb.

This is a thing so essential for a midwife to know, that she can be no midwife who is ignorant of it; and yet even about this authors extremely differ; for there are not two in ten that agree what is the form that the child lies in the womb, or in what fashion it lies there; and yet this may arise in a great measure from the different times of the women's pregnancy; for near the time of its deliverance out of those winding chambers of nature it oftentimes changes the form in which it lay before, for another.

This is something that’s crucial for a midwife to know; a person cannot be a midwife if she doesn't understand it. Yet, even regarding this, authors differ greatly. In fact, there aren’t two out of ten who agree on the position of the baby in the womb or how it is positioned. This confusion may largely stem from the different stages of pregnancy, as close to delivery, the baby often changes the position it was in before.

I will now show the several situations of the child in the mother's womb, according to the different times of pregnancy, by which those that are contrary to nature, and are the chief cause of ill labours, will be more easily conceived by the understanding midwife. It ought, therefore, in the first place to be observed, that the infant, as well male as female, is generally situated in the midst of the womb; for though sometimes, to appearance a woman's belly seems higher on one side than the other, yet it is so with respect to the belly only, and not to her womb, in the midst of which it is always placed.

I will now explain the various positions of the child in the mother's womb at different stages of pregnancy. This will help those who go against nature, which is the main cause of difficult labors, to be better understood by the attentive midwife. First, it should be noted that the baby, whether male or female, is usually positioned in the center of the womb. Even though sometimes a woman's belly may look higher on one side than the other, this only pertains to her belly's appearance, not to her womb, where the baby is always positioned in the middle.

But, in the second place, a woman's great belly makes different figures, according to the different times of pregnancy; for when she is young with child, the embryo is always found of a round figure, a little long, a little oblong, having the spine moderately turned inwards, and the thighs folded, and a little raised, to which the legs are so raised, that the heels touch the buttocks; the arms are bending, and the hands placed upon the knees, towards which part of the body, the head is turned downwards towards the inward orifice of the womb, tumbling as it were over its head so that then the feet are uppermost, and the face towards the mother's great gut; and this turning of the infant in this manner, with its head downwards, towards the latter end of a woman's reckoning, is so ordered by nature, that it may be thereby the better disposed of its passage into the world at the time of its mother's labour, which is not then far off (and indeed some children turn not at all until the very time of birth); for in this posture all its joints are most easily extended in coming forth; for by this means its arms and legs cannot hinder its birth, because they cannot be bent against the inner orifice of the womb and the rest of the body, being very supple, passeth without any difficulty after the head, which is hard and big; being passed the head is inclined forward, so that the chin toucheth the breast, in which posture, it resembles one sitting to ease nature, and stooping down with the head to see what comes from him. The spine of the back is at that time placed towards the mother's, the head uppermost, the face downwards; and proportionately to its growth, it extends its members by little and little, which were exactly folded in the first month. In this posture it usually keeps until the seventh or eighth month, and then by a natural propensity and disposition of the upper first. It is true there are divers children, that lie in the womb in another posture, and come to birth with their feet downwards, especially if there be twins; for then, by their different motions they do so disturb one another, that they seldom come both in the same posture at the time of labour, but one will come with the head, and another with the feet, or perhaps lie across; but sometimes neither of them will come right. But, however the child may be situated in the womb, or in whatever posture it presents itself at the time of birth, if it be not with its head forwards, as I have before described, it is always against nature, and the delivery will occasion the more pain and danger, and require greater care and skill from the midwife, than when the labour is more natural.

But, on the other hand, a woman's large belly takes on different shapes depending on the stage of pregnancy. When she is early in her pregnancy, the embryo is typically found in a round shape, a bit elongated and oval, with the spine slightly curved inward and the thighs bent and slightly raised. The legs are positioned in such a way that the heels touch the buttocks; the arms are bent, and the hands rest on the knees, while the head is turned downward towards the opening of the womb, tumbling as if over its head, making the feet rise up while the face faces the mother's abdomen. This position of the infant, with its head downwards toward the end of a woman's pregnancy, is naturally designed to facilitate its passage into the world during childbirth, which is not far off (and indeed some babies don't turn until just before birth); in this position, all its joints extend easily as it emerges. This way, the arms and legs do not obstruct the delivery since they aren't bent against the inner opening of the womb, and the rest of the body, being very flexible, follows after the head, which is larger and harder. Once the head passes, it tilts forward, allowing the chin to touch the chest, resembling someone sitting down to relieve themselves and leaning forward to see what is happening. At this time, the spine is positioned against the mother's spine, the head is at the top, and the face is downward; as it grows, it gradually extends its limbs, which were tightly folded in the first month. This position usually remains until the seventh or eighth month, at which point it adjusts naturally. It's true that some babies lie in different positions in the womb and are born feet-first, especially in the case of twins; their different movements can disturb each other, so they rarely both adopt the same position during labor—one might come out headfirst while the other emerges feet first, or even lie sideways. Yet sometimes neither will be positioned correctly. Regardless of how the baby is situated in the womb or what position it presents at birth, if it isn't headfirst, as I described earlier, it's always against the natural order, leading to more pain and risk during delivery and requiring greater expertise and care from the midwife compared to a more natural labor.


CHAPTER IV

A Guide for Women in Travail, showing what is to be done when they fall in Labour, in order to their Delivery.

A Guide for Women in Labor, showing what to do when they are in labor, for their delivery.


The end of all that we have been treating of is, the bringing forth of a child into the world with safety both to the mother and the infant, as the whole time of a woman's pregnancy may be termed a kind of labour; for, from the time of the conception to the time of her delivery, she labours under many difficulties, is subject to many distempers, and in continual danger, from one affection or other, till the time of birth comes; and when that comes, the greatest labour and travail come along with it, insomuch that then all the other labours are forgotten, and that only is called the time of her labours, and to deliver her safely is the principal business of the midwife; and to assist therein, shall be the chief design of this chapter. The time of the child's being ready for its birth, when nature endeavours to cast it forth, is that which is properly the time of a woman's labour; nature then labouring to be eased of its burden. And since many child-bearing women, (especially the first child) are often mistaken in their reckoning and so, when they draw near their time take every pain they meet with for their labour, which often proves prejudicial and troublesome to them, when it is not so, I will in the first section of this chapter, set down some signs, by which a woman may know when the true time of her labour is come.

The goal of all that we’ve discussed is to ensure the safe arrival of a child into the world, protecting both the mother and the baby. A woman’s pregnancy can be seen as a sort of labor; from the moment of conception until delivery, she faces many challenges, endures various ailments, and is in constant danger from one issue or another until the time of birth arrives. When that moment comes, the most intense effort and pain follow, so much so that all previous struggles are forgotten, and it is only then that we refer to it as her labor. The midwife’s main task is to deliver her safely, and that will be the primary focus of this chapter. The period when the child is ready to be born, with nature working to expel it, is truly the time of a woman’s labor; nature is striving to relieve itself of the burden. Many women in labor, particularly with their first child, often misjudge the timing and mistakenly interpret every discomfort as contractions. This can be detrimental and stressful for them when it’s not the case. Therefore, in the first section of this chapter, I will outline some signs that indicate when the true time of labor has arrived.


SECTION I.—The Signs of the true Time of a Woman's Labour.

When women with child, especially of their first, perceive any extraordinary pains in the belly, they immediately send for their midwife, as taking it for their labour; and then if the midwife be not a skilful and experienced woman, to know the time of labour, but takes it for granted without further inquiry (for some such there are), and so goes about to put her into labour before nature is prepared for it, she may endanger the life of both mother and child, by breaking the amnios and chorion. These pains, which are often mistaken for labour, are removed by warm clothes laid to the belly, and the application of a clyster or two, by which those pains which precede a true labour, are rather furthered than hindered. There are also other pains incident to a woman in that condition from the flux of the belly, which are easily known by the frequent stools that follow them.

When pregnant women, especially with their first child, feel any unusual pains in their belly, they quickly call for their midwife, thinking they might be going into labor. If the midwife is not skilled and experienced enough to recognize the right time for labor and instead assumes it without checking further (and there are some like that), she might try to induce labor before the body is ready, endangering both the mother and child by breaking the amniotic sac and chorion. These pains, which are often confused with labor, can be eased by applying warm cloths to the belly and using a couple of enemas, which can actually help progress the pains leading up to true labor rather than hinder them. Additionally, there are other pains women experience during this time due to digestive issues, which are obvious because of the frequent bowel movements that accompany them.

The signs, therefore, of labour, some few days before, are that the woman's belly, which before lay high, sinks down, and hinders her from walking so easily as she used to do; also there flow from the womb slimy humours, which nature has appointed to moisten and smooth the passage that its inward orifice may be the more easily dilated when there is occasion; which beginning to open at this time, suffers that slime to flow away, which proceeds from the Glandules called prostata. These are signs preceding the labour; but when she is presently falling into labour, the signs are, great pains about the region of the reins and loins, which coming and retreating by intervals, are answered in the bottom of the belly by congruous throes, and sometimes the face is red and inflamed, the blood being much heated by the endeavours a woman makes to bring forth her child; and likewise, because during these strong throes her respiration is intercepted, which causes the blood to have recourse to her face; also her privy parts are swelled by the infant's head lying in the birth, which, by often thrusting, causes those parts to descend outwards. She is much subject to vomiting, which is a good sign of good labour and speedy delivery, though by ignorant people thought otherwise; for good pains are thereby excited and redoubled; which vomiting is excited by the sympathy there is between the womb and the stomach. Also, when the birth is near, women are troubled with a trembling in the thighs and legs, not with cold, like the beginning of an ague fit, but with the heat of the whole body, though it must be granted, this does not happen always. Also, if the humours which then flow from the womb are discoloured with the blood, which the midwives call shows, it is an infallible mark of the birth being near. And if then the midwife puts up her fingers into the neck of the womb, she will find the inner orifice dilated; at the opening of which the membranes of the infant, containing the waters, present themselves and are strongly forced down with each pain she hath; at which time one may perceive them sometimes to resist, and then again press forward the finger, being more or less hard and extended, according as the pains are stronger or weaker. These membranes, with the waters in them, when they are before the head of the child, midwives call the gathering of the waters, resemble to the touch of the fingers those eggs which have no shell, but are covered only with a simple membrane. After this, the pains still redoubling the membranes are broken by a strong impulsation of these waters, which flow away, and then the head of the infant is presently felt naked, and presents itself at the inward orifice of the womb. When these waters come thus away, then the midwife may be assured the birth is very near, this being the most certain sign that can be; for the amnios alantois, which contained these waters, being broken by the pressing forward of the birth, the child is no better able to subsist long in the womb afterwards than a naked man in a heap of snow. Now, these waters, if the child comes presently after them, facilitate the labour by making the passage slippery; and therefore, let no midwife (as some have foolishly done) endeavour to force away the water, for nature knows best when the true time of birth is, and therefore retains the waters till that time. But if by accident the water breaks away too long before the birth, then such things as will hasten it, may be safely administered, and what these are, I will show in another section.

The signs of labor, a few days before, are that the woman's belly, which used to sit high, drops down, making it harder for her to walk as she normally would; also, there are slimy fluids flowing from the womb, which nature provides to moisten and ease the passage so that the opening can expand more easily when the time comes. As this begins to open, the fluid flows out, coming from the glands known as prostata. These are the signs that labor is approaching; however, when she is actually entering labor, the signs include severe pains in the lower back and sides that come and go at intervals, matched by contractions deep in the belly. Sometimes, her face becomes red and inflamed, as the blood heats up from the efforts she makes to give birth; additionally, during these intense contractions, her breathing is interrupted, causing more blood to rush to her face. Her private parts also swell due to the baby's head pressing down, which pushes those areas outward. She often experiences vomiting, which is a good sign of effective labor and a quick delivery, even though some ignorant people consider it otherwise; as it produces strong contractions that become more intense. This vomiting occurs due to the connection between the womb and the stomach. Moreover, when birth is imminent, women often feel trembling in their thighs and legs, but not from cold, like the start of a fever, rather from overall body warmth, though this doesn't happen every time. If the fluids flowing from the womb are tinged with blood, referred to as shows by midwives, it’s a sure sign that labor is near. If at that point the midwife examines the cervix, she will find the opening dilated; at this point, the membranes containing the amniotic fluid are pushed down with each contraction, which sometimes appear to resist and then push forward against the finger, becoming more or less firm and stretched depending on the strength of the contractions. These membranes, filled with fluid, when in front of the baby's head, feel like eggs without shells, only covered with a thin membrane. After this, as the contractions increase, the membranes break from the strong pressure of the fluid, which flows out, and then the baby's head is felt bare, presenting itself at the opening of the womb. When the fluid releases like this, the midwife can be certain that labor is very close; this is the most certain sign possible. When the amnios alantois, which held these fluids, ruptures due to the baby's descent, the baby can no longer stay in the womb much longer than a naked person in a pile of snow. If the baby comes right after this, the released fluid helps to facilitate delivery by making the path slippery; therefore, no midwife should foolishly try to push the fluid out before it's time, as nature knows exactly when the right moment is and keeps the fluid until then. However, if by chance the water breaks too early, measures can be taken to expedite labor, and I will detail what those measures are in another section.


SECT. II.—How a Woman ought to be ordered when the time of her labour is come.

When it is known that the true time of her labour is come by the signs laid down in the foregoing, of which those most to be relied upon are pains and strong throes in the belly, forcing downwards towards the womb, and a dilation of the inward orifice, which may be perceived by touching it with the finger, and the gathering of the waters before the head of the child, and thrusting down the membranes which contain them; through which, between the pains, one may in some manner with the finger discover the part which presents itself (as we have said before), especially if it be the head of the child, by its roundness and hardness; I say, if these things concur and are evident, the midwife may be sure it is the time of the woman's labour, and care must be taken to get all those things that are necessary to comfort her at that time. And the better to help her, be sure to see that she is not tightly laced; you must also give her one strong clyster or more, if there be occasion, provided it be done at the beginning, and before the child be too forward, for it will be difficult for her to receive them afterwards. The benefit accruing therefrom will be, that they excite the gut to discharge itself of its excrements, so that the rectum being emptied there may be the more space for the dilation of the passage; likewise to cause the pains to bear the more downward, through the endeavours she makes when she is at stool, and in the meantime, all other necessary things for her labour should be put in order, both for the mother and the child. To this end, some get a midwife's; but a pallet bed, girded, is much the best way, placed near the fire, if the season so require, which pallet ought to be so placed, that there may be easy access to it on every side, that the woman may be the more easily assisted, as there is occasion.

When it’s known that the woman is truly in labor by the signs mentioned earlier, the most reliable indicators are the pains and strong contractions in the abdomen pushing down toward the womb, the dilation of the cervix that can be felt by touching it with a finger, and the pooling of amniotic fluid in front of the baby’s head, along with the pushing down of the membranes surrounding it. During contractions, one can often feel which part of the baby is presenting itself (as mentioned before), especially if it’s the baby’s head due to its roundness and hardness. If these signs are evident, the midwife can be confident that it's time for labor, and steps should be taken to gather everything necessary for the woman's comfort at this time. To assist her better, ensure that she isn’t tightly laced, and give her at least one strong enema if needed, but this should be done at the beginning and before the baby is too low in the birth canal, as it will be difficult for her to take them later. The benefit of this is that it stimulates the bowels to empty, providing more space for the passage to widen; it also helps the contractions push downward more effectively, as she exerts herself when having a bowel movement. In the meantime, prepare all other necessary items for her labor, for both the mother and the baby. For this purpose, some hire a midwife, but a well-supported pallet bed is much better, ideally located near the fire if it’s cold, and it should be arranged so that there’s easy access from all sides to assist the woman as needed.

If the woman abounds with blood, to bleed her a little more may not be improper, for thereby she will both breathe the better, and have her breasts more at liberty, and likewise more strength to bear down her pains; and this may be done without danger because the child being about ready to be born, has no more need of the mother's blood for its nourishment; besides, this evacuation does many times prevent her having a fever after delivery. Also, before her delivery, if her strength will permit, let her walk up and down her chamber; and that she may have strength so to do, it will be necessary to give her good strengthening things, such as jelly, broth, new laid eggs, or some spoonfuls of burnt wine; and let her by all means hold out her pains, bearing them down as much as she can, at the time when they take her; and let the midwife from time to time touch the inward orifice with her finger, to know whether the waters are ready to break and whether the birth will follow soon after. Let her also anoint the woman's privities with emollient oil, hog's grease, and fresh butter, if she find they are hard to be dilated. Let the midwife, likewise, all the time be near the labouring woman, and diligently observe her gestures, complaints, and pains, for by this she may guess pretty well how far her labour advanceth, because when she changeth her ordinary groans into loud cries, it is a sign that the child is near the birth; for at the time her pains are greater and more frequent. Let the woman likewise, by intervals, rest herself upon the bed to regain her strength, but not too long, especially if she be little, short and thick, for such women have always worse labour if they lie long on their beds in their travail. It is better, therefore, that she walk about her chamber as long as she can, the woman supporting her under the arms, if it be necessary; for by this means, the weight of the child causes the inward orifices of the womb to dilate the sooner than in bed, and if her pains be stronger and more frequent, her labour will not be near so long. Let not the labouring woman be concerned at those qualms and vomitings which, perhaps, she may find come upon her, for they will be much for her advantage in the issue, however uneasy she may be for a time, as they further her pains and throes by provoking downward.

If the woman has a lot of blood, it might be okay to draw a little more out, as this can help her breathe better, free up her chest, and give her more strength to manage her labor pains. This is safe to do because the baby, being almost ready to be born, no longer needs the mother’s blood for nourishment. Additionally, this can often prevent her from developing a fever after giving birth. Before the delivery, if she’s strong enough, she should walk around her room. To ensure she has enough strength, it’s important to give her nourishing foods like jelly, broth, fresh eggs, or a few spoonfuls of burnt wine. She should definitely try to endure her contractions as much as she can when they happen, and the midwife should regularly check the opening with her finger to see if the water is about to break and if the birth will follow soon after. The midwife should also apply emollient oil, lard, or fresh butter to the woman’s privates if they seem hard to open. The midwife should stay close to the laboring woman and carefully watch her movements, complaints, and pains, as this will help her estimate how far along the labor is; when the woman’s groans become louder, it indicates the baby is close to being born since the contractions are stronger and more frequent. The woman should also take breaks on the bed to regain her strength, but not for too long, especially if she is petite, as smaller women typically have more difficult labors if they lie in bed for too long. It’s better for her to walk around her room as much as possible, with support under her arms if needed, because the weight of the baby will help the opening of the womb to dilate more quickly than if she stays in bed, and if her contractions are stronger and more frequent, her labor won’t take as long. The laboring woman shouldn’t worry about any nausea or vomiting she might experience, as these can actually be beneficial for her in the end, even though they may feel uncomfortable for a while, as they help to enhance her labor pains by encouraging downward pressure.

When the waters of the child are ready and gathered (which may be perceived through the membranes presenting themselves to the orifice) to the bigness of the whole dilatation, the midwife ought to let them break of themselves, and not, like some hasty midwives, who being impatient of the woman's long labour, break them, intending thereby to hasten their business, when instead thereof, they retard it; for by the too hasty breaking of these waters (which nature designed to make the child slip more easy), the passage remains dry by which means the pains and throes of the labouring woman are less efficacious to bring forth the infant than they would otherwise have been. It is, therefore, much the better way to let the waters break of themselves; after which the midwife may with ease feel the child by that part which first presents, and thereby discern whether it comes right, that is, with the head foremost, for that is the proper and most natural way of the birth. If the head comes right, she will find it big, round, hard and equal; but if it be any other part, she will find it rugged, unequal, soft and hard, according to the nature of the part it is. And this being the true time when a woman ought to be delivered, if nature be not wanting to perform its office, therefore, when the midwife finds the birth thus coming forward let her hasten to assist and deliver it, for it ordinarily happens soon after, if it be natural.

When the amniotic fluid is ready and collected (which can be seen when the membranes appear at the opening) and has reached the right size for full dilation, the midwife should allow it to break on its own. Unlike some impatient midwives who, eager to speed up the long labor, break the membranes too early, doing so actually delays the process. When these waters are broken too soon—before nature has intended—it dries out the birth canal, making the contractions less effective in delivering the baby. Therefore, it’s generally better to let the waters break naturally. After that, the midwife can easily feel for the part of the baby that is presenting first and determine if it is positioned correctly, with the head facing down, as this is the proper and most natural way for birth. If the head is in the right position, she will find it large, round, hard, and even; but if another part is presenting, it will feel uneven, soft, or hard, depending on which part it is. This is the right moment for the woman to give birth, provided nature is functioning properly. Thus, when the midwife sees that the baby is coming, she should quickly prepare to assist and deliver, as it usually happens soon after, if everything is natural.

But if it happens, as it sometimes may, that the waters break away too long before the birth, in such a case, those things which hasten nature may safely be administered. For which purpose make use of pennyroyal, dittany, juniper berries, red coral, betony and feverfew, boiled in white wine, and give a drachm of it, or it would be much better to take the juice of it when it is in its prime, which is in May, and having clarified it, make it into a syrup with double its weight of sugar, and keep it all the year, to use when occasion calls for it; mugwort used in the same manner is also good in this case; also a drachm of cinnamon powder given inwardly profits much in this case; and so does tansey broiled and applied to the privities; or an oil of it, so, made and used, as you were taught before. The stone aetites held to the privities, is of extraordinary virtue, and instantly draws away, both child and after-burden; but great care must be taken to remove it presently, or it will draw forth womb and all; for such is the magnetic virtue of this stone that both child and womb follow it as readily as iron doth the load-stone or the load-stone the north star.

But if it happens, as it sometimes does, that the waters break well before the birth, in that case, remedies that speed up labor can safely be taken. For this, use pennyroyal, dittany, juniper berries, red coral, betony, and feverfew, boiled in white wine, and take a drachm of it. It’s much better to use the fresh juice when it's at its peak, which is in May, and after clarifying it, make it into a syrup with double its weight in sugar, and keep it for the entire year for when it’s needed. Mugwort prepared the same way is also effective; a drachm of cinnamon powder taken internally is very beneficial as well; and tansey, when fried and applied to the private parts, helps too; or an oil made from it can be used, as previously mentioned. The stone aetites held against the private parts has remarkable power and can quickly draw out both the child and the afterbirth; however, great care must be taken to remove it immediately, or it will pull out the womb as well; for the magnetic nature of this stone is such that both child and womb follow it as easily as iron follows a lodestone or the lodestone follows the North Star.

There are many things that physicians affirm are good in this case; among which are an ass's or horse's hoof, hung near the privities; a piece of red coral hung near the said place. A load-stone helps very much, held in the woman's left hand; or the skin cut off a snake, girt about the middle, next to the skin. These things are mentioned by Mizaldus, but setting those things aside, as not so certain, notwithstanding Mizaldus quotes them, the following prescriptions are very good to speedy deliverance to women in travail.

There are many things that doctors say are helpful in this case, including a donkey’s or horse’s hoof hung near the genital area, and a piece of red coral hung in the same spot. A lodestone is also very effective if held in the woman’s left hand, or the skin of a snake tied around the waist, next to the skin. These items are mentioned by Mizaldus, but setting those aside as less certain, even though Mizaldus cites them, the following remedies are very effective for providing quick relief to women in labor.

(1) A decoction of white wine made in savory, and drank.

(1) A broth of white wine made with herbs and consumed.

(2) Take wild tansey, or silver weed, bruise it, and apply to the woman's nostrils.

(2) Take wild tansey, or silver weed, crush it, and put it near the woman's nostrils.

(3) Take date stones, and beat them to powder, and let her take half a drachm of them in white wine at a time.

(3) Take date stones, crush them into a powder, and let her take half a drachm of it in white wine at a time.

(4) Take parsley and bruise it and press out the juice, and dip a linen cloth in it, and put it so dipped into the mouth of the womb; it will presently cause the child to come away, though it be dead, and it will bring away the after-burden. Also the juice of the parsley is a thing of so great virtue (especially stone parsley) that being drank by a woman with child, it cleanseth not only the womb, but also the child in the womb, of all gross humours.

(4) Take parsley, crush it, and squeeze out the juice. Dip a linen cloth in the juice and place it into the mouth of the womb; it will quickly cause the child to be delivered, even if it is dead, and will also help expel the afterbirth. Additionally, the juice of parsley is so powerful (especially stone parsley) that when consumed by a pregnant woman, it cleanses both the womb and the child inside of any unwanted substances.

(5) A scruple of castorum in powder, in any convenient liquor, is very good to be taken in such a case, and so also is two or three drops of castorum in any convenient liquor; or eight or nine drops of spirits of myrrh given in any convenient liquor, gives speedy deliverance.

(5) A small amount of castorum powder in any suitable liquid is very effective for this situation, as are two or three drops of castorum in any suitable liquid; or eight or nine drops of myrrh spirit in any suitable liquid will provide quick relief.

(6) Give a woman in such a case another woman's milk to drink; it will cause speedy delivery, and almost without pain.

(6) Give a woman in this situation another woman's milk to drink; it will lead to a quicker delivery, and almost without pain.

(7) The juice of leeks, being drunk with warm water, highly operates to cause speedy delivery.

(7) Drinking leek juice mixed with warm water helps promote quick delivery.

(8) Take peony seeds and beat them into a powder, and mix the powder with oil, with which oil anoint the privities of the woman and child; it will give her deliverance speedily, and with less pain than can be imagined.

(8) Take peony seeds and grind them into a powder, then mix the powder with oil. Use this oil to anoint the private areas of the woman and child; it will provide her with quick relief and reduce pain more than you can imagine.

(9) Take a swallow's nest and dissolve it in water, strain it, and drink it warm, it gives delivery with great speed and much ease.

(9) Take a swallow's nest and dissolve it in water, strain it, and drink it warm; it helps with delivery quickly and easily.

Note this also in general, that all that move the terms are good for making the delivery easy, such as myrrh, white amber in white wine, or lily water, two scruples or a drachm; or cassia lignea, dittany, each a drachm; cinnamon, half a drachm, saffron, a scruple; give a drachm, or take borax mineral, a drachm, and give it in sack; or take cassia lignea, a drachm; dittany, amber, of each a drachm; cinnamon, borax, of each a drachm and a half; saffron, a scruple, and give her half a drachm; or give her some drops of oil of hazel in convenient liquor; or two or three drops of oil of cinnamon in vervain water. Some prepare the secundine thus:—Take the navel-string and dry it in an oven, take two drachms of the powder, cinnamon a drachm, saffron half a scruple, with the juice of savin make trochisks; give two drachms; or wash the secundine in wine and bake it in a pot; then wash it in endive water and wine, take half a drachm of it; long pepper, galangal, of each half a drachm; plantain and endive seed, of each half a drachm; lavender seed, four scruples; make a powder, or take laudanum, two drachms; storax, calamite, benzoin, of each half a drachm; musk, ambergris each six grains, make a powder or trochisks for a fume. Or use pessaries to provoke the birth; take galbanum dissolved in vinegar, an ounce; myrrh, two drachms, with oil of oat make a pessary.

Note this generally: anything that helps with delivery is good, like myrrh, white amber in white wine, or lily water, two scruples or a drachm; or cassia lignea and dittany, each a drachm; cinnamon, half a drachm; saffron, a scruple; take a drachm of borax mineral and mix it with sack; or take a drachm of cassia lignea and a drachm of each dittany and amber; a drachm and a half of cinnamon and borax; a scruple of saffron, and give her half a drachm; or give her some drops of hazel oil in a suitable liquid; or two or three drops of cinnamon oil in vervain water. Some prepare the secundine this way: take the navel-string and dry it in an oven, take two drachms of the powder, a drachm of cinnamon, half a scruple of saffron, and mix with savin juice to make trochisks; give two drachms; or wash the secundine in wine and bake it in a pot; then wash it in endive water and wine, taking half a drachm of it; long pepper and galangal, half a drachm each; plantain and endive seed, half a drachm each; lavender seed, four scruples; make a powder, or take laudanum, two drachms; storax, calamite, and benzoin, half a drachm each; musk and ambergris, six grains each; make a powder or trochisks for fumigation. Or use pessaries to induce birth; take an ounce of galbanum dissolved in vinegar, two drachms of myrrh, and mix with oat oil to create a pessary.

An Ointment For the Navel.

Take oil of keir, two ounces, juice of savine an ounce, of leeks and mercury, each half an ounce; boil them to the consumption of the juice; add galbanum dissolved in vinegar, half an ounce, myrrh, two drachms, storax liquid a drachm, round bitwort, sowbread, cinnamon, saffron, a drachm, with wax make an ointment and apply it.

Take two ounces of oil of keir, one ounce of savine juice, half an ounce each of leeks and mercury; boil them until the liquid is gone; add half an ounce of galbanum dissolved in vinegar, two drachms of myrrh, one drachm of liquid storax, one drachm of round bitwort, sowbread, cinnamon, and saffron, along with a drachm of each. Mix with wax to create an ointment and apply it.

If the birth be retarded through the weakness of the mother, refresh her by applying wine and soap to the nose, confect. alkermas. diamarg.

If the birth is delayed because the mother is weak, help her by applying wine and soap to her nose, along with confect. alkermas. diamarg.

These things may be applied to help nature in her delivery when the child comes to the birth the right way, and yet the birth be retarded; but if she finds the child comes the wrong way, and that she is not able to deliver the woman as she ought to be, by helping nature, and saving both mother and child (for it is not enough to lay a woman if it might be done any other way with more safety and ease, and less hazard to woman and child), then let her send speedily for the better and more able to help; and not as I once knew a midwife do, who, when a woman she was to deliver had hard labour, rather than a man-midwife should be sent for, undertook to deliver the woman herself (though told it was a man's business), and in her attempting it, brought away the child, but left the head in the mother's womb; and had not a man midwife been presently sent for, the mother had lost her life as well as the child; such persons may rather be termed butchers than midwives. But supposing the woman's labour to be natural, I will next show what the midwife ought to do, in order of her delivery.

These methods can be used to assist nature during delivery when the baby is positioned correctly, but the birth is still delayed. However, if the baby is in the wrong position and she can't assist the woman in the right way to ensure both mother and baby are safe (since simply delivering the baby isn’t enough if it can be done more safely and easily, with less risk to both mother and baby), then she should quickly call for someone more skilled to help. This is not like the midwife I once knew who, when faced with a woman in difficult labor, refused to call a male midwife. Instead, she tried to deliver the baby herself (even though she was told it was better suited for a man) and ended up pulling the baby out but leaving the head inside the mother. If a male midwife hadn’t been called urgently, the mother would have lost her life along with the child; such people are more like butchers than midwives. Assuming the woman's labor is normal, I will next explain what the midwife should do during her delivery.


CHAPTER V

Of Natural Labour; What it is and what the Midwife is to do in such Labour.

About Natural Labor; What it is and What the Midwife Should Do During Such Labor.


SECTION I.—What Natural Labour is.

There are four things which denominate a woman's natural labour; the first is, that it be at the full time, for if a woman comes before her time, it cannot be termed natural labour, neither will it be so easy as though she had completed her nine months. The second thing is, that it be speedy, and without any ill accident; for when the time of her birth come, nature is not dilatory in the bringing it forth, without some ill accident intervene, which renders it unnatural.

There are four aspects that define a woman’s natural labor. The first is that it occurs at full term; if a woman gives birth before her due date, it can’t be called natural labor, and it’s usually more difficult than if she had completed her nine months. The second aspect is that it happens quickly and without any complications; when the time for birth arrives, nature isn’t slow to bring the baby forth, unless some unfortunate event disrupts the process, making it unnatural.

The third is, that the child be alive; for all will grant, that the being delivered of a dead child is very unnatural. The fourth is, that the child come right, for if the position of the child in the womb be contrary to that which is natural, the event will prove it so, by making that which should be a time of life, the death both of the mother and the child.

The third is that the baby needs to be alive; everyone agrees that giving birth to a dead baby is very unnatural. The fourth is that the baby should be in the right position, because if the baby's position in the womb is abnormal, it can turn what should be a time of life into a tragedy for both the mother and the baby.

Having thus told you what I mean by natural labour, I shall next show how the midwife is to proceed therein, in order to the woman's delivery. When all the foregoing requisites concur, and after the waters be broken of themselves, let there rather a quilt be laid upon the pallet bedstead than a feather bed, having there-on linen and cloths in many folds, with such other things as are necessary, and that may be changed according to the exigency requiring it, so that the woman may not be incommoded with the blood, waters and other filth which are voided in labour. The bed ought to be ordered, that the woman being ready to be delivered, should lie on her back upon it, having her body in a convenient posture; this is, her head and breast a little raised, so that she may be between lying and sitting, for being so placed, she is best capable of breathing, and, likewise, will have more strength to bear her pains than if she lay otherwise, or sunk down in her bed. Being so placed, she must spread her thighs abroad, folding her legs a little towards her buttocks, somewhat raised by a little pillow underneath, to the end that her rumps should have more liberty to retire back; and let her feet be stayed against some firm thing; besides this, let her take firm hold of some of the good women attending her, with her hands, that she may the better stay herself during her pains. She being thus placed at her bed, having her midwife at hand, the better to assist as nature may require, let her take courage, and help her pains as best she can, bearing them down when they take her, which she must do by holding her breath, and forcing them as much as possible, in like manner as when she goes to stool, for by such straining, the diaphragm, or midriff, being strongly thrust downward, necessarily forces down the womb and the child in it. In the meantime, let the midwife endeavour to comfort her all she can, exhorting her to bear her labour courageously, telling her it will be quickly over, and that there is no fear but that she will have a speedy delivery. Let the midwife also, having no rings on her fingers, anoint them with oil of fresh butter, and therewith dilate gently the inward orifice of the womb putting her finger ends into the entry thereof, and then stretch them one from the other, when her pains take her; by this means endeavouring to help forward the child, and thrusting by little and little, the sides of the orifice towards the hinder part of the child's head, anointing it with fresh butter if it be necessary.

Having explained what I mean by natural labor, I will now show how the midwife should assist in delivering the woman. When all the necessary conditions are met, and after the waters have broken on their own, a quilt should be placed on the pallet bed rather than a feather bed, with linen and cloths stacked in multiple layers, along with other essentials that can be changed as needed, so the woman isn't bothered by blood, water, and other messes that occur during labor. The bed should be arranged so that when the woman is ready to deliver, she lies on her back with her body in a comfortable position; her head and chest should be slightly elevated, so she’s in a position between lying down and sitting up. This way, she can breathe better and will have more strength to handle her pain than if she lay flat or sunk down into the bed. Once positioned, she should spread her thighs apart, bend her legs slightly toward her buttocks, lifted a bit by a small pillow underneath, allowing her bottom more room to move back; her feet should press against something stable. Additionally, she should grip the hands of the supportive women around her to help brace herself during contractions. With the midwife close by to assist as needed, she should gather her courage and manage her pain as best she can, pushing down when contractions hit, which she can do by holding her breath and straining as if she were trying to have a bowel movement, because this effort forces the diaphragm down, which in turn pushes the womb and the baby downward. Meanwhile, the midwife should do her best to comfort her, encouraging her to endure the labor bravely, assuring her that it will be over soon, and that there is every reason to expect a quick delivery. The midwife should also, without rings on her fingers, apply fresh butter oil to her fingers, gently stretching the inner opening of the womb by inserting her fingertips into it, and then spreading them apart during contractions, working to assist the baby’s descent by gradually pushing the sides of the opening toward the back of the baby's head, applying fresh butter as needed.

When the head of the infant is a little advanced into the inward orifice, the midwife's phrase is:—"It is crowned"; because it girds and surrounds it just as a crown; but when it is so far that the extremities begin to appear without the privy parts, then they say, "The infant is in the passage"; and at this time the woman feels herself as if it were scratched, or pricked with pins, and is ready to imagine that the midwife hurts her, when it is occasioned by the violent distension of those parts and the laceration which sometimes the bigness of the child's head causeth there. When things are in this posture, let the midwife seat herself conveniently to receive the child, which will come quickly, and with her finger ends (which she must be sure to keep close pared) let her endeavour to thrust the crowning of the womb (of which I have spoken before), back over the head of the child, and as soon as it is advanced as far as the ears, or thereabouts, let her take hold of the two sides with her two hands, that when a good pain comes she may quickly draw forth the child, taking care that the navel-string be not entangled about the neck or any part, as sometimes it is, lest thereby the after-burden be pulled with violence, and perhaps the womb also, to which it is fastened, and so either cause her to flood or else break the strings, both which are of bad consequence to the woman, whose delivery may thereby be rendered the more difficult. It must also be carefully observed that the head be not drawn forth straight, but shaking it a little from one side to the other, that the shoulders may sooner and easier take their places immediately after it is past, without losing time, lest the head being past, the child be stopped there by the largeness of the shoulders, and so come in danger of being suffocated and strangled in the passage, as it sometimes happens, for the want of care therein. But as soon as the head is born, if there be need, she may slide her fingers under the armpits, and the rest of the body will follow without any difficulty.

When the baby's head has moved slightly into the opening, the midwife says, "It's crowned," because it surrounds the head like a crown. But when the head is far enough in that the limbs start to show beyond the private parts, they say, "The baby is in the passage." At this point, the woman might feel as if she's being scratched or pricked with pins, and she might think the midwife is hurting her, but it's actually due to the intense stretching of those areas and the tearing that can happen from the size of the baby's head. When this happens, the midwife should sit in a proper position to receive the baby, which will come quickly. She needs to use the tips of her fingers (which should be neatly trimmed) to gently push the tissue of the birth canal back over the baby's head. As soon as the head has moved to about the ears, she should grasp both sides with her hands so that when a strong contraction comes, she can quickly pull the baby out, making sure the umbilical cord isn't wrapped around the neck or any other part of the body, since that could pull out the placenta too aggressively and potentially harm the mother, either causing excessive bleeding or breaking the cord, both of which could complicate her delivery. It's also crucial to ensure that the head isn't pulled out straight; instead, it should be rocked slightly from side to side so that the shoulders can align and come out smoothly right after the head, avoiding any delays. If the head is out and the shoulders get stuck due to their size, the baby risks suffocation, which can happen if care isn't taken. However, once the head is born, if needed, she can slide her fingers under the armpits, and the rest of the body will follow easily.

As soon as the midwife hath in this manner drawn forth the child, let her put it on one side, lest the blood and water which follows immediately, should do it any injury by running into its mouth and nose, as they would do, if it lay on its back; and so endanger the choking of it. The child being thus born, the next thing requisite is, to bring away the after-burden, but before that let the midwife be very careful to examine whether there be more children in the womb; for sometimes a woman may have twins that expected it not; which the midwife may easily know by the continuance of the pains after the child is born, and the bigness of the mother's belly. But the midwife may be sure of it, if she puts her hand up to the entry of the womb, and finds there another watery gathering, and the child in it presenting to the passage, and if she find it so, she must have a care of going to fetch the after-birth, till the woman be delivered of all the children she is pregnant with. Wherefore the first string must be cut, being first tied with a thread three or four times double, and fasten the other end with string to the woman's thighs, to prevent the inconvenience it may cause by hanging between the thighs; and then removing the child already born, she must take care to deliver her of the rest, observing all the circumstances as with the first; after which, it will be necessary to fetch away the after-birth, or births. But of that I shall treat in another section, and first show what is to be done to the new-born infant.

As soon as the midwife has helped deliver the baby, she should set it aside to prevent the blood and water that follow from entering its mouth and nose, which could happen if it lays on its back and risk choking it. Once the baby is born, the next important step is to deliver the placenta. But before that, the midwife needs to check if there are any more babies in the womb, as sometimes a woman might have twins without expecting it. The midwife can usually tell by the continued contractions after the first baby is born and the size of the mother’s belly. To confirm, she should insert her hand to the entrance of the womb and feel for another amniotic sac with a baby presenting in it. If she finds one, she must hold off on retrieving the placenta until the woman has delivered all her babies. Therefore, the first umbilical cord should be cut after tying it with a thread multiple times, securing the other end to the woman’s thighs to avoid any issues with it hanging between them. After removing the first baby, she should assist the woman in delivering the rest, taking care to manage all the details as with the first one. Once that is complete, it will be necessary to remove the placenta or placentas. However, I will discuss that in another section, and first, I will explain what needs to be done for the newborn baby.


SECT. II.—Of the Cutting of the Child's Navel String.

Though this is accounted by many but as a trifle, yet great care is to be taken about it, and it shows none of the least art and skill of a midwife to do it as it should be; and that it may be so done, the midwife should observe: (1) The time. (2) The place. (3) The manner. (4) The event.

Though many see this as a small matter, it's important to pay close attention to it, and it requires considerable skill and technique from a midwife to do it properly. To ensure it's done well, the midwife should pay attention to: (1) The timing. (2) The location. (3) The approach. (4) The outcome.

(1) The time is, as soon as ever the infant comes out of the womb, whether it brings part of the after-burden with it or not; for sometimes the child brings into the world a piece of the amnios upon its head, and is what mid wives call the caul, and ignorantly attribute some extraordinary virtue to the child so born; but this opinion is only the effect of their ignorance; for when a child is born with such a crown (as some call it) upon its brows, it generally betokens weakness and denotes a short life. But to proceed to the matter in hand. As soon as the child comes into the world, it should be considered whether it is weak or strong; and if it be weak, let the midwife gently put back part of the natural and vital blood into the body of the child by its navel; for that recruits a weak child (the vital and natural spirits being communicated by the mother to the child by its navel-string), but if the child be strong, the operation is needless. Only let me advise you, that many children that are born seemingly dead, may soon be brought to life again, if you squeeze six or seven drops of blood out of that part of the navel-string which is cut off, and give it to the child inwardly.

(1) The moment the baby comes out of the womb, whether it brings part of the afterbirth with it or not, is significant; sometimes the child is born with a piece of the amniotic sac on its head, which midwives call the caul, and they mistakenly believe that this gives the child some special quality. However, this view is just a reflection of their ignorance; when a child is born with such a "crown" on its head, it usually indicates weakness and a short life. But let’s get back to the main point. Once the child is born, we should determine if it is weak or strong; if it is weak, the midwife should gently push some of the natural and vital blood back into the child’s body through its navel, as this helps revive a weak child (because the mother transmits vital and natural energy to the child through the umbilical cord). If the child is strong, this step isn’t necessary. Just a word of advice: many children who appear to be stillborn can be revived if you squeeze six or seven drops of blood from the part of the umbilical cord that has been cut and give it to the child to ingest.

(2) As to the place in which it should be cut, that is, whether it should be cut long or short, it is that which authors can scarcely agree in, and which many midwives quarrel about; some prescribing it to be cut at four fingers' breadth, which is, at best, but an uncertain rule, unless all fingers were of one size. It is a received opinion, that the parts adapted to the generation are contracted and dilated according to the cutting of the navel-string, and this is the reason why midwives are generally so kind to their own sex, that they leave a longer part of the navel-string of a male than female, because they would have the males well provided for the encounters of Venus; and the reason they give, why they cut that of the female shorter is, because they believe it makes them more acceptable to their husbands. Mizaldus was not altogether of the opinion of these midwives, and he, therefore, ordered the navel string to be cut long both in male and female children; for which he gives the following reason, that the instrument of generation follows the proportion of it; and therefore, if it be cut too short in a female, it will be a hindrance to her having children. I will not go about to contradict the opinions of Mizaldus; these, experience has made good:—That one is, that if the navel-string of a child, after it be cut, be suffered to touch the ground, the child will never hold its water, either sleeping or waking, but will be subjected to an involuntary making of water all its lifetime. The other is, that a piece of a child's navel-string carried about one, so that it touch his skin, defends him that wears it from the falling sickness and convulsions.

(2) When it comes to where the umbilical cord should be cut, whether it should be cut long or short, authors hardly agree, and many midwives argue about it. Some say it should be cut at four fingers' breadth, which is, at best, an unreliable standard unless everyone's fingers are the same size. It's commonly believed that the body parts responsible for reproduction expand and contract based on how the umbilical cord is cut. That’s why midwives tend to be kind to their own gender; they leave a longer piece of the umbilical cord for boys than for girls, wanting to ensure that boys are ready for future relationships. The reasoning behind cutting the girl's cord shorter is that they think it makes them more appealing to their husbands. Mizaldus disagreed with these midwives and recommended cutting the umbilical cord long for both boys and girls. He said the size of the umbilical cord affects the reproductive organs, so if it's cut too short for a girl, it could hinder her ability to have children. I won’t challenge Mizaldus's opinions; experience has proven some things: one is that if a child's umbilical cord, after being cut, touches the ground, the child will struggle with incontinence throughout their life, both asleep and awake. The other is that carrying a piece of a child's umbilical cord against one's skin protects the wearer from seizures and convulsions.

(3) As to the manner it must be cut, let the midwife take a brown thread, four or five times double, of an ell long, or thereabouts, tied with a single knot at each of the ends, to prevent their entangling; and with this thread so accommodated (which the woman must have in readiness before the woman's labour, as also a good pair of scissors, that no time may be lost) let her tie the string within an inch of the belly with a double knot, and turning about the end of the thread, let her tie two more on the other side of the string, reiterating it again, if it be necessary; then let her cut off the navel-string another inch below the ligatures, towards the after-birth, so that there only remains but two inches of the string, in the midst of which will be the knot we speak of, which must be so close knit, as not to suffer a drop of blood to squeeze out of the vessels, but care must be taken, not to knit it so strait, as to out it in two, and therefore the thread must be pretty thick and pretty strait cut, it being better too strait than too loose; for some children have miserably lost their lives, with all their blood, before it was discovered, because the navel-string was not well tied, therefore great care must be taken that no blood squeeze through; for if there do, a new knot must be made with the rest of the string. You need not fear to bind the navel-string very hard because it is void of sense, and that part which you leave, falls off in a very few days, sometimes in six or seven, or sooner, but never tarries longer than eight or nine. When you have thus cut the navel-string, then take care the piece that falls off touch not the ground, for the reason I told you Mizaldus gave, which experience has justified.

(3) When it comes to how it should be cut, the midwife should take a brown thread, four or five times folded, about an ell long, and tie a single knot at each end to prevent tangling. This thread should be prepared in advance before the woman's labor, along with a good pair of scissors, to avoid wasting any time. She should tie the string within an inch of the belly with a double knot, then twist the end of the thread and tie two more knots on the other side of the string, repeating if necessary. Next, she should cut the umbilical cord about an inch below the knots, toward the placenta, leaving about two inches of the cord, with the knot in the middle. This knot must be tight enough to prevent any blood from leaking out of the vessels, but care should be taken not to tie it so tightly that it cuts through. The thread must be thick and cut straight; it’s better to be too tight than too loose, as some babies have tragically bled to death because the umbilical cord wasn’t tied properly, so it’s crucial to ensure no blood escapes. If it does, a new knot should be made with the remaining thread. You don’t need to worry about tying the umbilical cord too tightly, as it has no sensation, and the part you leave usually falls off within a few days—sometimes in six or seven, but never takes longer than eight or nine. Once you’ve cut the umbilical cord, be careful that the piece that falls off doesn’t touch the ground, for the reason Mizaldus explained, which experience has confirmed.

(4) The last thing I mentioned, was the event or consequence, or what follows cutting the navel-string. As soon as it is cut, apply a little cotton or lint to the place to keep it warm, lest the cold enter into the body of the child, which it most certainly will do, if you have not bound it hard enough. If the lint or cotton you apply to it, be dipped in oil of roses, it will be the better, and then put another small rag three or four times double upon the belly; upon the top of all, put another small bolster, and then swathe it with a linen swathe, four fingers broad, to keep it steady, lest by moving too much, or from being continually stirred from side to side, it comes to fall off before the navel-string, which you left remaining, is fallen off.

(4) The last thing I talked about was what happens next after cutting the umbilical cord. As soon as it's cut, place a little cotton or lint over the area to keep it warm, so that cold doesn't get into the baby's body, which it definitely will if you don't secure it tightly enough. If the cotton or lint you use is dipped in rose oil, that’s even better. Then, put another small cloth folded three or four times over the belly; on top of that, place another small cushion, and then wrap everything with a linen bandage that’s four fingers wide to keep it in place. This way, if there’s too much movement or if it gets jostled from side to side, it won’t come off before the remaining part of the umbilical cord falls off.

It is the usual custom of midwives to put a piece of burnt rag to it, which we commonly call tinder; but I would rather advise them to put a little ammoniac to it, because of its drying qualities.

It’s common practice for midwives to use a piece of burnt rag, which we usually refer to as tinder; however, I would recommend that they use a bit of ammoniac instead, due to its drying properties.


SECT. III.—How to bring away the After-burden.

A woman cannot be said to be fairly delivered, though the child be born, till the after-burden be also taken from her; herein differing from most animals, who, when they have brought forth their young, cast forth nothing else but some water, and the membranes which contained them. But women have an after-labour, which sometimes proves more dangerous than the first; and how to bring it safely away without prejudice to her, shall be my business to show in this section.

A woman can’t be considered fully delivered until the afterbirth is also expelled; this sets her apart from most animals, which, after giving birth, only release some fluid and the membranes that held their young. However, women experience after-labor, which can sometimes be riskier than the initial delivery. In this section, I will explain how to safely manage this process without harming her.

As soon as the child is born, before the midwife either ties or cuts the navel-string, lest the womb should close, let her take the string and wind it once or twice about one or two fingers on her left hand joined together, the better to hold it, with which she may draw it moderately, and with the right hand, she may only take a single hold of it, above the left, near the privities, drawing likewise with that very gently, resting the while the forefinger of the same hand, extended and stretched forth along the string towards the entrance of the vagina, always observing, for the greater facility, to draw it from the side where the burden cleaves least; for in so doing, the rest will separate the better; and special care must be taken that it be not drawn forth with too much violence, lest by breaking the string near the burden, the midwife be obliged to put the whole hand into the womb to deliver the woman; and she need to be a very skilful person that undertakes it, lest the womb, to which the burden is sometimes very strongly fastened, be drawn away with it, as has sometimes happened. It is, therefore, best to use such remedies as may assist nature. And here take notice, that what brings away the birth, will also bring away the after-birth. And therefore, for effecting this work, I will lay down the following rules.

As soon as the baby is born, before the midwife ties or cuts the umbilical cord, in order to prevent the uterus from closing, she should take the cord and wrap it once or twice around one or two fingers of her left hand, which she keeps together to have a better grip. With that hand, she can pull it gently while she uses her right hand to take hold of it just above the left hand, near the private area, drawing it slowly as well. Meanwhile, she should rest her index finger of the same hand along the cord toward the entrance of the vagina. For ease, she should pull it from the side where the baby is less attached; this way, the rest of the placenta will separate more easily. It’s crucial to avoid pulling too hard, as breaking the cord near the baby would require the midwife to insert her entire hand into the uterus to assist the woman, which needs a very skilled person to do, lest the uterus, sometimes tightly attached to the baby, gets pulled out as well, which has happened before. Therefore, it's best to use methods that support nature. Note that whatever helps deliver the baby will also help with delivering the placenta. For performing this task effectively, I will outline the following guidelines.

(1) Use the same means of bringing away the after-birth, that you made use of to bring away the birth; for the same care and circumspection are needful now that there were then.

(1) Use the same method to remove the afterbirth that you used to remove the birth; the same care and attention are required now as they were then.

(2) Considering that the labouring woman cannot but be much spent by what she has already undergone in bringing forth the infant, be therefore sure to give her something to comfort her. And in this case good jelly broths, also a little wine and toast in it, and other comforting things, will be necessary.

(2) Since the hardworking woman is surely exhausted from the effort of giving birth to the baby, make sure to provide her with something to comfort her. In this situation, nutritious broths, a little wine with toast, and other comforting items will be essential.

(3) A little hellebore in powder, to make her sneeze, is in this case very proper.

(3) A little powdered hellebore to make her sneeze is quite appropriate in this situation.

(4) Tansey, and the stone aetites, applied as before directed, are also of good use in this case.

(4) Tansey and the stone aetites, used as previously instructed, are also helpful in this situation.

(5) If you take the herb vervain, and either boil it in wine, or a syrup with the juice of it, which you may do by adding to it double its weight of sugar (having clarified the juice before you boil it), a spoonful of that given to the woman is very efficacious to bring away the secundine; and feverfew and mugwort have the same operation taken as the former.

(5) If you take the herb vervain and either boil it in wine or make a syrup using its juice—by adding twice its weight in sugar to the clarified juice before boiling—it’s very effective to give a spoonful of that to the woman to help with the afterbirth. Feverfew and mugwort have the same effect when taken like the vervain.

(6) Alexanders [10] boiled in wine, and the wine drank, also sweet servile, sweet cicily, angelica roots, and musterwort, are excellent remedies in this case.

(6) Alexanders [10] boiled in wine, along with the wine consumed, sweet servile, sweet cicely, angelica roots, and mustard root, are all great remedies for this situation.

(7) Or, if this fail, the smoke of marigolds, received up a woman's privities by a funnel, have been known to bring away the after-birth, even when the midwife let go her hold.

(7) Or, if that doesn't work, the smoke of marigolds, inhaled through a funnel by a woman, has been known to help remove the afterbirth, even when the midwife loses her grip.

(8) Boil mugwort in water till it be very soft, then take it out, and apply it in the manner of a poultice to the navel of the labouring woman, and it instantly brings away the birth. But special care must be taken to remove it as soon as they come away, lest by its long tarrying it should draw away the womb also.

(8) Boil mugwort in water until it's very soft, then take it out and apply it like a poultice to the navel of the woman in labor, and it will immediately help with the birth. But you must be careful to remove it as soon as the baby comes out, so it doesn't stay too long and also pull away the womb.


SECT. IV.—Of Laborious and Difficult Labours and how the Midwife is to proceed therein.

There are three sorts of bad labours, all painful and difficult, but not all properly unnatural. It will be necessary, therefore, to distinguish these.

There are three types of bad work, all of which are painful and challenging, but not all are truly unnatural. Therefore, it's important to differentiate between them.

The first of these labours is that when the mother and child suffer very much extreme pain and difficulty, even though the child come right; and this is distinguishably called the laborious labour.

The first of these tasks is when the mother and child experience a lot of intense pain and struggle, even if the child turns out fine; this is clearly referred to as the laborious labor.

The second is that which is difficult and differs not much from the former, except that, besides those extraordinary pains, it is generally attended with some unhappy accident, which, by retarding the birth, causes the difficulty; but these difficulties being removed, it accelerates the birth, and hastens the delivery.

The second is the one that's tough and isn't too different from the first, except that, along with those extreme pains, it usually comes with some unfortunate complication, which delays the birth and makes it harder. But once these difficulties are resolved, it speeds up the birth and helps with the delivery.

Some have asked, what is the reason that women bring forth their children with so much pain? I answer, the sense of feeling is distributed to the whole body by the nerves, and the mouth of the womb being so narrow, that it must of necessity be dilated at the time of the woman's delivery, the dilating thereof stretches the nerves, and from thence comes the pain. And therefore the reason why some women have more pain in their labour than others, proceeds from their having the mouth of the matrix more full of nerves than others. The best way to remove those difficulties that occasion hard pains and labour, is to show first from whence they proceed. Now the difficulty of labour proceeds either from the mother, or child, or both.

Some people have asked why women give birth with so much pain. I would say it's because the sense of feeling is spread throughout the body by the nerves, and since the opening of the womb is so narrow, it needs to stretch during delivery. This stretching affects the nerves, which causes the pain. This is why some women experience more pain in labor than others; it depends on how many nerves are present in the opening of the womb. The best way to alleviate the difficulties that lead to intense pain during labor is to first understand where they come from. The challenges of labor can arise from the mother, the child, or both.

From the mother, by reason of the indisposition of the body, or from some particular part only, and chiefly the womb, as when the woman is weak, and the mother is not active to expel the burden, or from weakness, or disease, or want of spirits; or it may be from strong passion of the mind with which she was once possessed; she may also be too young, and so may have the passage too narrow; or too old, and then, if it be her first child, because her pains are too dry and hard, and cannot be easily dilated, as happens also to them which are too lean; likewise those who are small, short or deformed, as crooked women who have not breath enough to help their pains, and to bear them down, persons that are crooked having sometimes the bones of the passage not well shaped. The colic also hinders labour, by preventing the true pains; and all great and active pains, as when the woman is taken with a great and violent fever, a great flooding, frequent convulsions, bloody flux, or any other great distemper. Also, excrements retained cause great difficulty, and so does a stone in the bladder: or when the bladder is full of urine, without being able to void it, or when the woman is troubled with great and painful piles. It may also be from the passages, when the membranes are thick, the orifice too narrow, and the neck of the womb not sufficiently open, the passages strained and pressed by tumours in the adjacent parts, or when the bones are too firm, and will not open, which very much endangers the mother and the child; or when the passages are not slippery, by reason of the waters having broken too soon, or membranes being too thin. The womb may also be out of order with regard to its bad situation or conformation, having its neck too narrow, hard and callous, which may easily be so naturally, or may come by accident, being many times caused by a tumour, an imposthume, ulcer or superfluous flesh.

Due to the mother’s physical condition, whether because of general weakness, issues specifically with the womb, or a lack of energy, childbirth can be complicated. This can happen when the mother is not strong enough to push the baby out, is suffering from an illness, or is feeling low. Sometimes it’s due to intense emotions she might have experienced earlier. A woman may also be too young, resulting in a narrow birth canal, or too old, especially if it’s her first child, where labor pains may be too harsh and dry, making dilation difficult. This can also happen to those who are very thin. Additionally, women who are small, short, or have physical deformities, like those with curved spines who lack the breath to manage their labor pains, may struggle due to poorly structured bones in the birth canal. Conditions like colic can obstruct labor by disrupting real contractions, alongside severe and sudden issues such as high fever, heavy bleeding, frequent convulsions, dysentery, or any other serious health problems. Retained waste can also create significant obstacles, as can a stone in the bladder, or a full bladder that cannot be emptied, and painful hemorrhoids. Problems can arise with the birth canal itself, like thick membranes, a too-narrow opening, or insufficiently dilated cervix, especially if the passages are compressed by growths in nearby areas, or if the bones are too rigid and won’t expand, putting both mother and child at serious risk. Moreover, if the canals aren’t lubricated properly, due to membranes breaking too early or being too thin, the process can be hindered. The womb itself might also be misaligned or poorly shaped, with a narrow, rigid, or hardened cervix, which could occur naturally or be due to external factors, often triggered by growths, abscesses, ulcers, or excess tissue.

As to hard labour occasioned by the child, it is when the child happens to stick to a mole, or when it is so weak it cannot break the membranes; or if it be too big all over, or in the head only; or if the natural vessels are twisted about its neck; when the belly is hydropsical; or when it is monstrous, having two heads, or joined to another child, also, when the child is dead or so weak that it can contribute nothing to its birth; likewise when it comes wrong, or there are two or more. And to all these various difficulties there is oftentimes one more, and that is, the ignorance of the midwife, who for want of understanding in her business, hinders nature in her work instead of helping her.

When it comes to hard labor caused by the child, it occurs when the child gets stuck at the opening, or when it's too weak to break through the membranes; or if it's too large overall, or just in the head; or if the natural pathways are tangled around its neck; when the belly is swollen with fluid; or if the child is malformed, having two heads, or connected to another child. It also happens when the child is dead or too weak to contribute to its birth; additionally, when the delivery is occurring improperly, or if there are two or more children. There’s often one more issue at play, and that’s the midwife’s lack of knowledge, which can obstruct the natural process instead of assisting it.

Having thus looked into the cause of hard labour, I will now show the industrious midwife how she may minister some relief to the labouring woman under these difficult circumstances. But it will require judgment and understanding in the midwife, when she finds a woman in difficult labour, to know the particular obstruction, or cause thereof, that so a suitable remedy may be applied; as for instance, when it happens by the mother's being too young and too narrow, she must be gently treated, and the passages anointed with oil, hog's lard, or fresh butter, to relax and dilate them the easier, lest there should happen a rupture of any part when the child is born; for sometimes the peritoneum breaks, with the skin from the privities to the fundament.

Having looked into the reasons for difficult labor, I will now show the hardworking midwife how she can provide some relief to the laboring woman in these challenging situations. However, it will require judgment and understanding from the midwife when she encounters a woman in difficult labor to identify the specific obstruction or cause so that an appropriate remedy can be applied. For example, if the issue arises from the mother being too young and too constricted, she must be treated gently, and the passages should be lubricated with oil, pig's lard, or fresh butter to help relax and widen them more easily, to avoid any risk of tearing during childbirth; sometimes the peritoneum can tear, along with the skin from the genitals to the anus.

But if the woman be in years with her first child, let her lower parts be anointed to mollify the inward orifice, which in such a case being more hard and callous, does not easily yield to the distention of labour, which is the true cause why such women are longer in labour, and also why their children, being forced against the inward orifice of the womb (which, as I have said, is a little callous) are born with great bumps and bruises on their heads.

But if a woman is having her first child, let her private area be oiled to soften the opening, which in this case is harder and tougher, making it less likely to stretch during labor. This is why these women often have longer labors, and also why their babies, being pushed against the tougher opening of the womb (which, as I mentioned, is a bit tough), are born with large bumps and bruises on their heads.

Those women who are very small and mis-shaped, should not be put to bed, at least until the waters are broken, but rather kept upright and assisted to walk about the chamber, by being supported under the arms; for by that means, they will breathe more freely, and mend their pains better than on the bed, because there they lie all of a heap. As for those that are very lean, and have hard labour from that cause, let them moisten the parts with oil and ointments, to make them more smooth and slippery, that the head of the infant, and the womb be not so compressed and bruised by the hardness of the mother's bones which form the passage. If the cause be weakness, she ought to be strengthened, the better to support her pains, to which end give her good jelly broths, and a little wine with a toast in it. If she fears her pains, let her be comforted, assuring her that she will not endure any more, but be delivered in a little time. But if her pains be slow and small, or none at all, they must be provoked by frequent and pretty strong clysters; let her walk about her chamber, so that the weight of the child may help them forward. If she flood or have strong convulsions she must then be helped by a speedy delivery; the operation I shall relate in this section of unnatural labours. If she be costive, let her use clysters, which may also help to dispel colic, at those times very injurious because attended with useless pains, and because such bear not downward, and so help not to forward the birth. If she find an obstruction or stoppage of the urine, by reason of the womb's bearing too much on the bladder, let her lift up her belly a little with her hands, and try if by that she receives any benefit; if she finds she does not, it will be necessary to introduce a catheter into her bladder, and thereby draw forth her urine. If the difficulty be from the ill posture of the woman, let her be placed otherwise, in a posture more suitable and convenient for her; also if it proceeds from indispositions of the womb, as from its oblique situation, etc., it must be remedied, as well as it can be, by the placing her body accordingly; or, if it be a vicious conformation, having the neck too hard, too callous, too straight, it must be anointed with oil and ointments, as before directed. If the membranes be so strong that the waters do not break in due time, they may be broken with the fingers, if the midwife be first well assured that the child is come forward into the passage, and ready to follow presently after; or else, by the breaking of the waters too soon, the child may be in danger of remaining dry a long time; to supply which defect, you may moisten the parts with fomentations, decoctions, and emollient oils; which yet is not half so well as when nature does her work in her own time, with the ordinary slime and waters. The membranes sometimes do press forth with the waters, three or four fingers' breadth out of the body before the child resembling a bladder full of water; but there is no great danger in breaking them, if they be not already broken; for when the case is so, the child is always in readiness to follow, being in the passage, but let the midwife be very careful not to pull it with her hand, lest the after-burden be thereby loosened before its time, for it adheres thereto very strongly. If the navel-string happen to come first, it must presently be put up again, and kept so, if possible, or otherwise, the woman must be immediately delivered. But if the after-burden should come first, it must not be put up again by any means; for the infant having no further occasion for it, it would be but an obstacle if it were put up; in this case, it must be cut off, having tied the navel-string, and afterwards draw forth the child with all speed that may be, lest it be suffocated.

Those women who are very short and irregularly shaped should not be put to bed, at least until their water breaks. Instead, they should stay upright and be helped to walk around the room while being supported under the arms. This way, they can breathe easier and manage their pain better than if lying down, where they feel all cramped. For those who are very thin and struggle with hard labor, they should apply oil and ointments to the area to make it smoother and more slippery. This helps prevent the baby's head and the mother's womb from being compressed and bruised by the hardness of the mother's bones that create the birth canal. If the issue is weakness, she should be strengthened to better handle her pain; to do this, give her nourishing jelly broth and a little wine with some toast. If she is afraid of her pain, comfort her by assuring her that she will not have to endure it much longer and will soon give birth. However, if her contractions are weak and infrequent or non-existent, they need to be encouraged with frequent and somewhat strong enemas; having her move around her room can help the baby’s weight advance labor. If she is bleeding or has strong convulsions, she must be assisted with a quick delivery; I will discuss this procedure in the section on complicated labors. If she is constipated, she should use enemas which can also help relieve colic, especially when accompanied by ineffective contractions that do not help with labor. If she experiences a blockage or stoppage of urine because the womb is pressing too hard on the bladder, she should lift her belly a little with her hands to see if that relieves her. If it doesn't, a catheter may be necessary to drain her bladder. If the difficulty arises from her awkward position, she should be repositioned in a more suitable way. If it's due to issues with the womb, like its tilted position, it should be corrected as much as possible by adjusting her body; or if there is a deformity, like a neck that is too rigid, thick, or straight, apply oil and ointments as previously instructed. If the membranes are so strong that the water does not break in due time, they can be broken with the fingers, as long as the midwife is certain that the baby is positioned correctly in the birth canal and ready to follow. Breaking the waters too early could risk the baby being left dry for too long; to prevent this, the area can be moistened with warm compresses, decoctions, and softening oils, although this is not nearly as effective as when nature completes its process in its own time with the normal fluids. Sometimes the membranes push forward with the waters, appearing three or four fingers' breadth outside the body before the baby comes out, but breaking them isn’t risky unless they are already broken. When this happens, the baby is always ready to follow, being in the birth canal, but the midwife should be very careful not to pull on it too much; otherwise, the placenta might loosen before it’s time, as it is tightly attached. If the umbilical cord comes out first, it must be pushed back up and kept there, if possible; otherwise, the woman must be delivered immediately. But if the placenta comes out first, it must not be pushed back in under any circumstances; since the baby no longer requires it, it would just get in the way if reinserted. In this case, it needs to be cut after tying off the umbilical cord, and then the baby should be delivered as quickly as possible to prevent suffocation.


SECT. V.—Of Women labouring of a dead Child.

When the difficulty of labour arises from a dead child, it is a great danger to a mother and great care ought to be taken therein; but before anything be done, the midwife ought to be well assured that the child is dead indeed, which may be known by these signs.

When labor becomes complicated due to a stillborn child, it poses significant risks to the mother, and great care should be taken in such situations. However, before taking any action, the midwife must be certain that the child is truly dead, which can be determined by these signs.

(1) The breast suddenly slacks, or falls flat, or bags down. (2) A great coldness possesses the belly of the mother, especially about the navel. (3) Her urine is thick, with a filthy stinking settling at the bottom. (4) No motion of the child can be perceived; for the trial whereof, let the midwife put her hand into warm water, and lay it upon the belly, for that, if it is alive, will make it stir. (5) She is very subject to dreams of dead men, and affrighted therewith. (6) She has extraordinary longings to eat such things as are contrary to nature. (7) Her breath stinks, though not used so to do. (8) When she turns herself in her bed, the child sways that way like a lump of lead.

(1) The breast suddenly becomes limp, or flattens, or droops. (2) A chilling sensation grips the mother’s belly, especially around the navel. (3) Her urine is thick, with a foul-smelling sediment at the bottom. (4) No movement of the baby can be felt; to check this, the midwife should place her hand in warm water and then put it on the belly, as the baby will move if it’s alive. (5) She often dreams about dead people, which frightens her. (6) She has intense cravings for things that are unnatural. (7) Her breath smells bad, even though it usually doesn’t. (8) When she turns in bed, the baby shifts that way like a heavy weight.

These things being carefully observed, the midwife may make a judgment whether the child be alive or dead, especially if the woman take the following prescription:—"Take half a pint of white wine and burn it, and add thereto half an ounce of cinnamon, but no other spices whatever, and when she has drunk it, if her travailing pains come upon her, the child is certainly dead; but if not, the child may possibly be either weak or sick, but not dead. This will bring her pains upon her if it be dead, and will refresh the child and give her ease if it be living; for cinnamon refresheth and strengtheneth the child.

These things being carefully observed, the midwife can determine whether the child is alive or dead, especially if the woman takes the following prescription:—"Take half a pint of white wine and burn it, then add half an ounce of cinnamon, but no other spices at all. After she drinks it, if her labor pains start, the child is certainly dead; but if they don't, the child might be weak or sick, but not dead. This will bring on her pains if the child is dead, and will refresh the child and give her relief if it is alive, since cinnamon refreshes and strengthens the child.

Now, if upon trial it be found the child is dead, let the mother do all she can to forward the delivery, because a dead child can in no wise be helpful therein. It will be necessary, therefore, that she take some comfortable things to prevent her fainting, by reason of the putrid vapours arising from the dead child. And in order to her delivery let her take the following herbs boiled in white wine (or at least as many of them as you can get), viz., dittany, betony, pennyroyal, sage, feverfew, centaury, ivy leaves and berries. Let her also take sweet basil in powder, and half a drachm at a time in white wine; let her privities also be anointed with the juice of the garden tansey. Or take the tansey in the summer when it can most plentifully be had, and before it runs up to flower, and having bruised it well, boil it in oil until the juice of it be consumed. If you set it in the sun, after you have mixed it with oil, it will be more effectual. This, an industrious midwife, who would be prepared against all events, ought to have always by her. As to the manner of her delivery, the same methods must be used as are mentioned in the section of natural labour. And here again, I cannot but commend the stone aetites, held near the privities, whose magnetic virtue renders it exceedingly necessary on this occasion, for it draws the child any way with the same facility that the load-stone draws iron.

Now, if during the trial it's found that the child has died, the mother should do everything she can to assist with the delivery, because a deceased child won't be helpful in this process. It's important for her to take some comforting items to prevent fainting due to the foul odors coming from the dead child. To aid her delivery, she should use the following herbs boiled in white wine (or at least as many as she can obtain): dittany, betony, pennyroyal, sage, feverfew, centaury, ivy leaves, and berries. She should also use powdered sweet basil, taking half a drachm at a time with white wine; her private area should be anointed with the juice of garden tansey. If possible, use tansey during the summer when it's most abundant, and before it flowers, making sure to bruise it well and boil it in oil until the juice is gone. If you expose it to sunlight after mixing it with oil, it will be more effective. This is something a diligent midwife, who would be well-prepared for any situation, should always have on hand. As for the method of delivery, the same techniques mentioned in the section on natural labor should be applied. Again, I want to emphasize the importance of the stone aetites, kept near the private area, as its magnetic properties can draw the child in a way that's as effective as a magnet attracting iron.

Let the midwife also make a strong decoction of hyssop with water, and let the woman drink it very hot, and it will in a little time bring away the dead child.

Let the midwife prepare a strong brew of hyssop with water, and let the woman drink it very hot; it will soon help deliver the deceased child.

If, as soon as she is delivered of the dead child, you are in doubt that part of the afterbirth is left behind in the body (for in such cases as these many times it rots, and comes away piece-meal), let her continue drinking the same decoction until her body be cleansed.

If, as soon as she gives birth to the dead child, you’re uncertain whether any part of the afterbirth is still inside her body (because in these cases it often rots and comes out in pieces), let her keep drinking the same brew until her body is cleaned out.

A decoction made of herbs, muster-wort, used as you did the decoction of hyssop, works the effect. Let the midwife also take the roots of pollodum and stamp them well; warm them a little and bind them on the sides of her feet, and it will soon bring away the child either dead or alive.

A herbal decoction made from muster-wort, used just like the hyssop decoction, has the same effect. The midwife should also take the roots of pollodum, crush them well, warm them slightly, and wrap them around the sides of her feet. This will quickly help with delivering the child, whether it's alive or deceased.

The following medicines also are such as stir up the expulsive faculty, but in this case they must be stronger, because the motion of the child ceases.

The following medicines also stimulate the expulsion process, but in this case they must be stronger, as the movement of the child stops.

Take savine, round birthwort, trochisks of myrrh, castor, cinnamon and saffron, each half a drachm; make a powder, give a drachm.

Take savine, round birthwort, myrrh lozenges, castor, cinnamon, and saffron, each half a drachm; grind into a powder, then give a drachm.

Or she may purge first, and then apply an emollient, anointing her about the womb with oil of lilies, sweet almonds, camomiles, hen and goose-grease. Also foment to get out the child, with a decoction of mercury, orris, wild cucumbers, saecus, broom flowers. Then anoint the privities and loins with ointment of sow-bread. Or, take coloquintida, agaric, birthwort, of each a drachm; make a powder, add ammoniacum dissolved in wine, ox-gall, each two drachms. Or make a fume with an ass's hoof burnt, or gallianum, or castor, and let it be taken in with a funnel.

Or she might start by cleansing herself, then apply a moisturizer, applying oil of lilies, sweet almonds, chamomile, and hen and goose grease around her abdomen. She should also use a warm compress to help deliver the baby, using a mixture of mercury, orris, wild cucumbers, saecus, and broom flowers. After that, she should apply ointment made from sow-bread to her private parts and lower back. Alternatively, take coloquintida, agaric, and birthwort, each in the amount of a drachm; grind them into a powder and add two drachms of ammoniacum dissolved in wine and ox-gall. Another option is to create a smoke using a burnt donkey's hoof, gallianum, or castor, and inhale it through a funnel.

To take away pains and strengthen the parts, foment with the decoction of mugwort, mallows, rosemary, with wood myrtle, St. John's wort, each half an ounce, spermaceti two drachms, deer's suet, an ounce; with wax make an ointment. Or take wax six ounces, spermaceti an ounce; melt them, dip flux therein, and lay it all over her belly.

To relieve pain and strengthen the areas, mix a decoction of mugwort, mallows, rosemary, and wood myrtle, each half an ounce, along with two drachms of spermaceti and an ounce of deer's suet; then make an ointment with wax. Alternatively, use six ounces of wax and one ounce of spermaceti; melt them together, dip a cloth in the mixture, and apply it all over her belly.

If none of these things will do, the last remedy is to try surgery, and then the midwife ought without delay to send for an expert and able man-midwife, to deliver her by manual operation, of which I shall treat more at large in the next chapter.

If none of these options work, the final solution is to consider surgery, and the midwife should immediately call for a skilled and capable man-midwife to assist with the manual procedure, which I will discuss in detail in the next chapter.


FOOTNOTES:

FOOTNOTES:

Horse-parsley.

Horse parsley.


CHAPTER VI

Of Unnatural Labour.

Of Unnatural Work.


In showing the duty of a midwife, when the child-bearing woman's labour is unnatural, it will be requisite to show, in the first place, what I mean by unnatural labour, for that women do bring forth in pain and sorrow is natural and common to all. Therefore, that which I call unnatural is, when the child comes to the birth in a contrary posture to that which nature ordained, and in which the generality of the children come into the world.

In explaining the role of a midwife, when a woman is in labor that is not typical, I need to first clarify what I mean by unnatural labor. It is natural and common for women to give birth with pain and sorrow. So, by unnatural, I mean when the baby is positioned improperly for birth, contrary to the way nature intended and how most babies enter the world.

The right and natural birth is when the child comes with its head first; and yet this is too short a definition of a natural birth; for if any part of the head but the crown comes first, so that the body follows not in a straight line, it is a wrong and difficult birth, even though the head comes first. Therefore, if the child comes with its feet first, or with the side across, it is quite contrary to nature, or to speak more plainly, that which I call unnatural.

The natural way for a baby to be born is head first. However, that's too simple a definition of a natural birth. If any part of the head except the crown comes out first, causing the body to follow at an angle, it becomes a difficult and abnormal birth, even if the head is leading. So, if the baby is born feet first or sideways, it's completely against nature, or to put it simply, it's what I consider unnatural.

Now, there are four general ways a child may come wrong. (1) When any of the foreparts of the body first present themselves. (2) When by an unhappy transposition, any of the hinder parts of the body first present themselves. (3) When either of the sides, or, (4) the feet present themselves first. To these, the different wrong postures that a child can present itself in, may be reduced.

Now, there are four general ways a child can be in the wrong position. (1) When any of the front parts of the body come out first. (2) When, due to an unfortunate switch, any of the back parts of the body come out first. (3) When either side comes out first, or (4) when the feet come out first. These cover the different incorrect postures that a child can have.


SECTION I.—How to deliver a Woman of a Dead Child by Manual Operation.

When manual operation is necessary, let the operator acquaint the woman of the absolute necessity there is for such an operation; and that, as the child has already lost its life, there is no other way left for the saving hers. Let him also inform her, for her encouragement, that he doubts not, with the divine blessing, to deliver her safely, and that the pains arising therefrom will not be so great as she fears. Then let him stir up the woman's pains by giving her some sharp clyster, to excite her throes to bear down, and bring forth the child. And if this prevails not, let him proceed with the manual operation.

When manual operation is necessary, the operator should inform the woman about the urgent need for such a procedure; and that, since the child has already lost its life, there is no other option to save hers. He should also reassure her that he believes, with divine help, he can deliver her safely, and that the pain she will experience won't be as intense as she fears. Then he should stimulate her contractions by giving her a strong enema to encourage her to push and deliver the child. If that doesn't work, he should go ahead with the manual operation.

First, therefore, let her be placed across the bed that he may operate the easier; and let her lie on her back, with her hips a little higher than her head, or at least the body equally placed, when it is necessary to put back or turn the infant to give it a better posture. Being thus situated, she must fold her legs so as her heels be towards her buttocks, and her thighs spread, and so held by a couple of strong persons, there must be others also to support her under her arms, that the body may not slide down when the child is drawn forth; for which sometimes great strength is required. Let the sheets and blankets cover her thighs for decency's sake, and with respect to the assistants, and also to prevent her catching cold; the operator herein governing himself as well with respect to his convenience, and the facility and surety of the operation, as to other things. Then let him anoint the entrance to the womb with oil or fresh butter, if necessary, that with so more ease he may introduce his hand, which must also be anointed, and having by the signs above mentioned, received satisfaction that the child is dead, he must do his endeavours to fetch it away as soon as he possibly can. If the child offer the head first, he must gently put it back until he hath liberty to introduce his hand quite into the womb; then sliding it along, under the belly, to find the feet, let him draw it forth by them, being very careful to keep the head from being locked into the passage; and that it be not separated from the body; which may be effected the more easily, because the child being very rotten and putrefied, the operator need not be so mindful to keep the breast and face downwards as he is in living births. But if notwithstanding all these precautions, by reason of the child's putrefaction, the head should be separated and left behind in the womb, it must be drawn forth according to the directions which have been given in the third section of this chapter. But when the head, coming first, is so far advanced that it cannot well be put back, it is better to draw it forth so, than to torment the woman too much by putting it back to turn it, and bring it by the feet; but the head being a part round and slippery, it may also happen that the operator cannot take hold of it with his fingers by reason of its moisture, nor put them up to the side of it, because the passage is filled with its bigness; he must, therefore, take a proper instrument, and put it up as far as he can without violence, between the womb and the child's head (for the child being dead before, there can be no danger in the operation), and let him fasten it there, giving it hold upon one of the bones of the skull, that it may not slide, and after it is well fixed in the head, he may therewith draw it forth, keeping the ends of the fingers of his left hand flat upon the opposite side, the better to help to disengage it, and by wagging it a little, to conduct it directly out of the passage, until the head be quite born; and then, taking hold of it with his hands only, the shoulders being drawn into the passage, and so sliding the fingers of both hands under the armpits, the child may be quite delivered, and then the after-burden fetched, to finish the operation, being careful not to pluck the navel-string too hard lest it break, as often happens when it is corrupt.

First, let her be positioned across the bed to make it easier for him to operate; she should lie on her back with her hips slightly elevated above her head, or at least with her body level, when it's necessary to reposition the infant for a better posture. In this position, she must fold her legs so that her heels are close to her buttocks, and her thighs are spread and held by a couple of strong people. Others should also support her under her arms to prevent her body from sliding down when the child is being pulled out, as this sometimes requires substantial strength. The sheets and blankets should cover her thighs for decency and to keep her warm, and the operator should manage his own comfort and the ease and safety of the procedure, among other considerations. He should then apply oil or fresh butter to the entrance of the womb, if needed, to introduce his hand more easily. After ensuring, through the mentioned signs, that the child is deceased, he should work swiftly to remove it. If the head presents first, he should gently push it back until he can introduce his hand fully into the womb. Then, by sliding it along under the belly to locate the feet, he should pull the child out by them, being cautious to keep the head from becoming stuck in the passage and to prevent it from separating from the body. This is generally easier because the child is very decomposed, and he doesn't need to be as careful about keeping the face and chest down as he does in live births. However, if despite these precautions the head should separate and remain in the womb due to the child’s decay, it must be removed following the guidelines given in the third section of this chapter. If the head is advanced far enough that it can't easily be pushed back, it's better to pull it out rather than to cause excessive distress to the woman by trying to reposition it to pull it out by the feet. However, since the head is round and slippery, he may find it difficult to grasp it because of its moisture, or may not be able to get his fingers to the side due to the passage being full. Therefore, he should use a suitable instrument, inserting it as far as he can without force between the womb and the child's head (since the child was already dead, there is no danger in the procedure) and secure it to one of the skull bones to prevent it from slipping. Once it’s firmly attached to the head, he can pull it out, using the fingers of his left hand to assist by pressing flat against the opposite side, gently wiggling to guide it directly out of the passage until the head is completely delivered. After that, he can hold it with his hands alone, drawing out the shoulders that have entered the passage, and sliding the fingers of both hands under the armpits to fully deliver the child. Finally, he should retrieve the afterbirth to complete the procedure, being careful not to pull too hard on the umbilical cord to avoid it breaking, which often occurs when it is decayed.

If the dead child comes with the arm up to the shoulders so extremely swelled that the woman must suffer too great violence to have it put back, it is then (being first well assured the child is dead) best to take it off by the shoulder joints, by twisting three or four times about, which is very easily done by reason of the softness and tenderness of the body. After the arm is so separated, and no longer possesses the passage, the operator will have more room to put up his hand into the womb, to fetch the child by the feet and bring it away.

If the deceased child has an arm swollen up to the shoulder so much that the woman experiences too much pain to put it back, it’s best to first confirm the child is dead and then remove the arm at the shoulder joint by twisting it three or four times. This is relatively easy to do because the body is soft and tender. Once the arm is removed and no longer obstructs the passage, the operator will have more space to insert their hand into the womb to retrieve the child by the feet and take it out.

But although the operator is sure the child is dead in the womb, yet he must not therefore presently use instruments because they are never to be used but when hands are not sufficient, and there is no other remedy to prevent the woman's danger, or to bring forth the child any other way; and the judicious operator will choose that way which is the least hazardous, and most safe.

But even if the operator is convinced that the child is dead in the womb, he still cannot immediately use instruments, because they should only be used when hands alone are insufficient, and there is no other way to protect the woman's safety or to deliver the child. The skilled operator will always opt for the method that is the least risky and the safest.


SECT. II.—How a Woman must be Delivered when the Child's Feet come first.

There is nothing more obvious to those whose business it is to assist labouring women, than that the several unnatural postures in which children present themselves at the birth are the occasions of most of the bad labours and ill accidents that happen to them in that condition.

There is nothing more clear to those who help expectant mothers than that the various unnatural positions in which babies present themselves during birth are the causes of most difficult labors and complications that happen to them in that situation.

And since midwives are often obliged, because of their unnatural situations, to draw the children forth by the feet, I conceive it to be most proper first to show how a child must be brought forth that presents itself in that posture, because it will be a guide to several of the rest.

And since midwives often have to pull the babies out by their feet due to unusual circumstances, I think it's best to first explain how to deliver a baby that is in that position, as it will serve as a guide for many others.

I know indeed in this case it is the advice of several authors to change the figure, and place the head so that it may present to the birth, and this counsel I should be very much inclined to follow, could they but also show how it may be done. But it will appear very difficult, if not impossible to be performed, if we would avoid the danger that by such violent agitations both the mother and the child must be put into, and therefore my opinion is, that it is better to draw forth by the feet, when it presents itself in that posture, than to venture a worse accident by turning it.

I really understand that many authors recommend changing the position and having the head face the birth. I’m definitely leaning towards that advice, but they need to provide a clear way to do it. It seems very challenging, if not impossible, to achieve that without putting both the mother and the baby in danger due to such intense movements. So, I believe it’s safer to deliver the baby by the feet when it’s in that position rather than risk a worse situation by trying to turn it.

As soon, therefore, as the waters are broken, and it is known that the child come thus and that the womb is open enough to admit the midwife's or operator's hand into it, or else by anointing the passage with oil or hog's grease, to endeavour to dilate it by degrees, using her fingers to this purpose, spreading them one from the other, after they are together entered, and continue to do so until they be sufficiently dilated, then taking care that her nails be well pared, no rings on her fingers and her hands well anointed with oil or fresh butter, and the woman placed in the manner directed in the former section, let her gently introduce her hand into the entrance of the womb, where finding the child's feet, let her draw it forth in the manner I shall presently direct; only let her first see whether it presents one foot or both, and if but one foot, she ought to consider whether it be the right foot or the left, and also in what fashion it comes; for by that means she will soon come to know where to find the other, which as soon as she knows and finds, let her draw it forth with the other; but of this she must be specially careful, viz., that the second be not the foot of another child; for if so, it may be of the utmost consequence, for she may sooner split both mother and child, than draw them forth. But this may be easily prevented if she but slide the hand up by the first leg and thigh to the waist, and there finding both thighs joined together, and descending from one and the same body. And this is also the best means to find the other foot, when it comes but with one.

As soon as the waters break and it’s clear that the baby is coming, and the birth canal is open enough for the midwife or doctor to insert their hand, or if needed, by applying oil or animal fat to gradually widen the opening using their fingers—spreading them apart while inside until there’s enough space—ensure that their nails are trimmed, no rings are worn, and their hands are well oiled or greased. Position the woman as indicated in the previous section, and then gently insert your hand into the opening of the womb. Once you find the baby's feet, carefully pull them out as I will explain shortly. First, check if one or both feet are presenting and, if only one, determine if it's the right or left foot and the position it’s in. This way, you'll know where to locate the other foot. Once you find the second foot, you should pull it out along with the first. However, be very cautious to ensure the second foot isn’t from another baby, as that could be extremely dangerous, risking both mother and child. You can avoid this by sliding your hand up the first leg and thigh to the waist, confirming that both thighs are from the same body. This method also helps locate the other foot when only one is visible.

As soon as the midwife has found both the child's feet, she may draw them forth, and holding them together, may bring them little by little in this manner, taking afterwards hold of the arms and thighs, as soon as she can come at them, drawing them so till the hips come forth. While this is doing, let her observe to wrap the parts in a single cloth, so that her hands being always greasy slide not in the infant's body, which is very slippery, because of the vicious humours which are all over it; which being done, she may take hold under the hips, so as to draw it forth to the beginning of the breast; and let her on both sides with her hand bring down the child's hand along its body, which she may easily find; and then let her take care that the belly and face of the child be downwards; for if they should be upwards, there would be the same danger of its being stopped by the chin, over the share-bone, and therefore, if it be not so she must turn it to that posture; which may easily be done if she takes a proper hold of the body when the breasts and arms are forth, in the manner we have said, and draw it, turning it in proportion on that side it most inclines to, till it be turned with the face downwards, and so, having brought it to the shoulders, let her lose no time, desiring the woman at the same time to bear down, that so drawing the head at that instant may take its place, and not be stopped in the passage, though the midwife takes all possible care to prevent it. And when this happens, she must endeavour to draw forth the child by the shoulders (taking care that she separate not the body from the head, as I have known it done by the midwife), discharging it by little and little from the bones in the passage with the fingers of each hand, sliding them on each side opposite the other, sometimes above and sometimes under, till the work be ended; endeavouring to dispatch it as soon as possible, lest the child be suffocated, as it will unavoidably be, if it remain long in that posture; and this being well and carefully effected, she may soon after fetch away the after-birth, as I have before directed.

As soon as the midwife finds both of the child's feet, she can gently pull them out while holding them together, gradually bringing them out this way. Once she can reach them, she should take hold of the arms and thighs, pulling until the hips emerge. While doing this, she should make sure to wrap the parts in a single cloth so her hands, which may be greasy, don’t slip on the baby’s body, which is very slippery due to the fluid covering it. When that's done, she can grip under the hips to pull it out until it reaches the beginning of the chest. She should then use her hands on both sides to guide the baby's hands down along its body, which should be easy to locate. Next, she must ensure that the baby's belly and face are facing downwards, because if they’re facing upwards, there's a risk of the chin getting stuck against the pubic bone. If this is the case, she must turn the baby to that position, which is usually simple as long as she holds the body correctly once the chest and arms have emerged and pulls while gently turning it in the direction it leans towards until the face is down. Once the baby reaches the shoulders, she should act quickly and ask the woman to push down, so that the head can be drawn into position at that moment without getting obstructed in the birth canal, despite the midwife's best efforts to avoid this. If that obstacle arises, she needs to pull the baby out by the shoulders, being careful not to separate the body from the head, as I’ve seen happen before. She should gradually release the baby from the bones in the birth canal using the fingers of both hands, sliding them alternately above and below, until the process is complete, making every effort to do this quickly to prevent suffocation, which will inevitably happen if the baby stays in that position for too long. Once this is done carefully and effectively, she can then remove the afterbirth shortly after, as previously directed.


SECT. III.—How to bring away the Head of the Child, when separated from the Body, and left behind in the Womb.

Though the utmost care be taken in bringing away the child by the feet, yet if it happen to be dead, it is sometimes so putrid and corrupt, that with the least pull the head separates from the body and remains alone in the womb, and cannot be brought away but with a manual operation and great difficulty, it being extremely slippery, by reason of the place where it is, and from the roundness of its figure, on which no hold can well be taken; and so very great is the difficulty in this case that sometimes two or three very able practitioners in midwifery have, one after the other, left the operation unfinished, as not able to effect it, after the utmost industry, skill and strength; so that the woman, not being able to be delivered, perished. To prevent which fatal accident, let the following operation be observed.

Though the utmost care is taken in delivering the child by the feet, if it happens to be stillborn, it can sometimes be so decomposed and decayed that with the slightest pull, the head separates from the body and remains stuck in the womb. It can only be removed through manual intervention, which is very difficult because it’s extremely slippery due to its location and its round shape, making it hard to grasp. The challenge is so significant that sometimes two or three skilled midwives, one after another, have been unable to complete the procedure, despite their best efforts, expertise, and strength, resulting in the woman not being able to deliver and ultimately perishing. To prevent this tragic outcome, the following procedure should be followed.

When the infant's head separates from the body, and is left alone behind, whether owing to putrefaction or otherwise, let the operator immediately, without any delay, while the womb is yet open, direct up his right hand to the mouth of the head (for no other hole can there be had), and having found it let him put one or two of his fingers into it, and the thumb under its chin; then let him draw it little by little, holding it by the jaws; but if that fails, as sometimes it will when putrefied, then let him pull off the right hand and slide up his left, with which he must support the head, and with the right hand let him take a narrow instrument called a crochet, but let it be strong and with a single branch, which he must guide along the inside of his hand, with the point of it towards it, for fear of hurting the womb; and having thus introduced it, let him turn it towards the head to strike either in an eyehole, or the hole of the ear, or behind the head, or else between the sutures, as he finds it most convenient and easy; and then draw forth the head so fastened with the said instrument, still helping to conduct it with his left hand; but when he hath brought it near the passage, being strongly fastened to the instrument, let him remember to draw forth his hand, that the passage not being filled with it, may be larger and easier, keeping still a finger or two on the side of the head, the better to disengage it.

When the baby's head separates from the body and is left behind, whether due to decay or something else, the operator should immediately, without delay, while the womb is still open, guide his right hand to the mouth of the head (since there are no other openings available), and once he finds it, he should insert one or two fingers into it and place his thumb under the chin. Then he should carefully pull it out, holding it by the jaws. If that doesn’t work, especially if it's decayed, he should remove his right hand and slide his left hand in to support the head. With his right hand, he should take a narrow tool called a crochet, ensuring it is strong and has a single branch. He must guide it along the inside of his hand, pointing it towards the head to avoid injuring the womb. Once he has introduced it, he should turn it towards the head to aim for either an eye socket, ear hole, behind the head, or between the sutures, depending on what is easiest. Then, holding the head with the tool, he should pull it out while still guiding it with his left hand. As he brings it closer to the passage, being securely fastened to the tool, he should remember to pull his hand back, so the passage stays clear and open, making it easier, while keeping a finger or two on the side of the head to better help free it.

There is also another method, with more ease and less hardship than the former; let the operator take a soft fillet or linen slip, of about four fingers' breadth, and the length of three quarters of an ell or thereabouts, taking the two ends with the left hand, and the middle with the right, and let him so put it up with his right, as that it may be beyond the head, to embrace it as a sling does a stone, and afterwards draw forth the fillet by the two ends together; it will thus be easily drawn forth, the fillet not hindering the least passage, because it takes up little or no space.

There’s also another method that’s easier and less challenging than the first; the operator should take a soft strip or linen slip, about four fingers wide and around three-quarters of an ell long. He should hold the two ends with his left hand and the middle with his right, then position it with his right hand so that it goes over the head, cradling it like a sling does a stone. After that, he can pull the strip out by the two ends together; it will come out easily without obstructing the passage at all since it takes up little to no space.

When the head is fetched out of the womb care must be taken that not the least part of it be left behind, and likewise to cleanse the womb of the after-burden, if yet remaining. If the burden be wholly separated from the side of the womb, that ought to be first brought away, because it may also hinder the taking hold of the head. But if it still adheres to the womb, it must not be meddled with till the head be brought away; for if one should endeavour to separate it from the womb, it might then cause a flooding, which would be augmented by the violence of the operation, the vessels to which it is joined remaining for the most part open as long as the womb is distended, which the head causeth while it is retained in it, and cannot be closed until this strange body be voided, and this it doth by contracting and compressing itself together, as has been more fully before explained. Besides, the after-birth remaining thus cleaving to the womb during the operation, prevents it from receiving easily either bruise or hurt.

When the head is pulled out of the womb, it's important to make sure that no part of it is left behind, and also to clean out any remaining afterbirth. If the afterbirth is completely detached from the side of the womb, it should be removed first because it might block access to the head. However, if it is still attached to the womb, it should not be disturbed until the head is delivered. Trying to separate it from the womb could lead to severe bleeding, which could be worsened by the force of the procedure, as the blood vessels it’s still connected to remain mostly open while the womb is stretched. This stretching is caused by the head being held inside, and those vessels won't close until the afterbirth is expelled. Additionally, having the afterbirth still attached during the procedure helps protect the womb from injury.


SECT. IV.—How to deliver a Woman when the child's head is presented to the birth.

Though some may think it a natural labour when the child's head come first, yet, if the child's head present not the right way, even that is an unnatural labour; and therefore, though the head comes first, yet if it be the side of the head instead of the crown, it is very dangerous both to the mother and the child, for the child's neck would be broken, if born in that manner, and by how much the mother's pains continue to bear the child, which is impossible unless the head be rightly placed, the more the passages are stopped. Therefore, as soon as the position of the child is known, the woman must be laid with all speed, lest the child should advance further than this vicious posture, and thereby render it more difficult to thrust it back, which must be done, in order to place the head right in the passage, as it ought to be.

Though some might consider it a normal labor when the baby's head comes first, if the baby's head is not in the correct position, it’s still an abnormal labor. So, even if the head is first, if it's the side of the head instead of the crown, it poses serious risks for both the mother and the baby. The baby's neck could break if delivered that way, and as long as the mother endures the pain of labor, which isn't possible unless the head is properly positioned, the more the birth canal becomes blocked. Thus, once the baby's position is determined, the woman must be laid down quickly to prevent the baby from moving further into this problematic position, making it harder to push it back, which needs to be done to properly align the head in the birth canal as it should be.

To this purpose, therefore, place the woman so that her buttocks may be a little higher than her head and shoulders, causing her to lean a little to the opposite side to the child's ill posture; then let the operator slide up his hand, well anointed with oil, by the side of the child's head; to bring it right gently, with his fingers between the head and the womb; but if the head be so engaged that it cannot be done that way, he must then put up his hand to the shoulders, that by so thrusting them back a little into the womb, sometimes on the one side, and sometimes on the other, he may, little by little, give a natural position. I confess it would be better if the operator could put back the child by its shoulders with both hands, but the head takes up so much room, that he will find much ado to put up one, with which he must perform this operation, and, with the help of the finger-ends of the other hand put forward the child's birth as in natural labour.

To achieve this, position the woman so that her buttocks are slightly higher than her head and shoulders, causing her to lean a bit away from the child's awkward position. Next, have the operator slide his hand, well-lubricated with oil, alongside the child's head; gently guiding it with his fingers between the head and the womb. If the head is positioned such that this isn't possible, he should then reach up to the shoulders, gently pushing them back a bit into the womb, sometimes to one side and sometimes to the other, to gradually help the child settle into a natural position. I admit it would be more effective if the operator could push the child back by the shoulders with both hands, but the head takes up so much space that he will struggle to maneuver one hand, while using the fingertips of the other hand to support the child's birth as in a natural labor.

Some children present their face first, having their hands turned back, in which posture it is extremely difficult for a child to be born; and if it continues so long, the face will be swelled and become black and blue, so that it will at first appear monstrous, which is occasioned as well by the compression of it in that place, as by the midwife's fingers in handling it, in order to place it in a better posture. But this blackness will wear away in three or four days' time, by anointing it often with oil of sweet almonds. To deliver the birth, the same operation must be used as in the former, when the child comes first with the side of the head; only let the midwife or operator work very gently to avoid as much as possible the bruising the face.

Some children come out face first, with their hands positioned backward, which makes it really hard for them to be born. If this continues for too long, the face can get swollen and turn black and blue, making it look really strange. This is caused by the pressure in that position and by the midwife's hands trying to adjust it to a better position. But this discoloration will fade away in three or four days if you keep applying sweet almond oil to it. To deliver the baby, the same technique used before, when the baby comes out with the side of its head, should be applied; just make sure the midwife or operator is really gentle to avoid bruising the face as much as possible.


SECT. V.—How to Deliver a Woman when the Child presents one or both Hands together with the Head.

Sometimes the infant will present some other part together with its head; which if it does, it is usually with one or both of its hands; and this hinders the birth, because the hands take up part of that passage which is little enough for the head alone; besides that, when this happens, they generally cause the head to lean on one side; and therefore this position may be well styled unnatural. When the child presents thus, the first thing to be done after it is perceived, must be, to prevent it from coming down more, or engaging further in the passage; and therefore, the operator having placed the woman on the bed, with her head lower than her buttocks, must guide and put back the infant's hand with his own as much as may be, or both of them, if they both come down, to give way to the child's head; and this being done, if the head be on one side, it must be brought into its natural posture in the middle of the passage, that it may come in a straight line, and then proceed as directed in the foregoing section.

Sometimes the baby will present a different part along with its head; when this happens, it’s usually one or both of its hands. This complicates the birth, as the hands occupy some space in the passage that’s already tight for just the head. Additionally, when this occurs, they often cause the head to tilt to one side, making this position quite unnatural. When the baby presents like this, the first thing to do once it’s noticed is to prevent it from descending further into the passage. Therefore, after placing the woman on the bed with her head lower than her buttocks, the practitioner must gently guide and push the baby’s hand back as much as possible, or both hands if they are both down, to clear the way for the baby’s head. Once that’s done, if the head is tilted to one side, it should be repositioned to a natural center position in the passage to follow a straight line, and then proceed as outlined in the previous section.


SECT. VI.—How a Woman ought to be delivered, when the Hands and Feet of the Infant come together.

There are none but will readily grant, that when the hands and feet of an infant present together, the labour must be unnatural, because it is impossible a child should be born in that manner. In this case, therefore, when the midwife guides her hand towards the orifice of the womb she will perceive only many fingers close together, and if it be not sufficiently dilated, it will be a good while before the hands and feet will be exactly distinguished; for they are sometimes so shut and pressed together, that they seem to be all of one and the same shape, but where the womb is open enough to introduce the hand into it, she will easily know which are the hands and which are the feet; and having taken particular notice thereof, let her slide up her hand and presently direct it towards the infant's breast, which she will find very near, and then let her gently thrust back the body towards the bottom of the womb, leaving the feet in the same place where she found them. And then, having placed the woman in a convenient posture, that is to say, her buttocks a little raised above her breast (and which situation ought also to be observed when the child is to be put back into the womb), let the midwife afterwards take hold of the child by the feet, and draw it forth, as is directed in the second section.

Everyone would agree that if an infant’s hands and feet are presented together, it means the delivery is abnormal, as it’s impossible for a child to be born that way. In this situation, when the midwife reaches into the opening of the womb, she will only feel many fingers close together, and if the opening isn’t wide enough, it will take some time before she can differentiate the hands from the feet. Sometimes, they are so tightly clenched and pressed together that they appear to be one shape. However, if the womb is open enough for her hand to pass through, she’ll easily tell which are the hands and which are the feet. Once she has noted this, she should slide her hand up and guide it toward the infant's chest, which will be very close, and then gently push the body back toward the bottom of the womb, keeping the feet in the same position where she found them. After that, she should place the woman in a suitable position, that is, her buttocks slightly elevated above her chest (this position should also be maintained when the child needs to be pushed back into the womb). The midwife can then grasp the child by the feet and pull it out, as described in the second section.

This labour, though somewhat troublesome, yet is much better than when the child presents only its hands; for then the child must be quite turned about before it can be drawn forth; but in this they are ready, presenting themselves, and there is little to do, but to lift and thrust back the upper part of the body, which is almost done of itself, by drawing it by the feet alone.

This work, while somewhat challenging, is far better than when the child only shows its hands. In that case, the child has to be turned around completely before it can be delivered. But here, they are ready, presenting themselves, and there is not much to do except lift and push back the upper part of the body, which largely takes care of itself by pulling it out by the feet alone.

I confess there are many authors that have written of labours, who would have all wrong births reduced to a natural figure, which is, to turn it that it may come with the head first. But those that have written thus, are such as never understood the practical part, for if they had the least experience therein, they would know that it is impossible; at least, if it were to be done, that violence must necessarily be used in doing it, that would probably be the death both of mother and child in the operation. I would, therefore, lay down as a general rule, that whenever a child presents itself wrong to the birth, in what posture so ever, from the shoulders to the feet, it is the way, and soonest done, to draw it out by the feet; and that it is better to search for them, if they do not present themselves, than to try and put them in their natural posture, and place the head foremost; for the great endeavours necessary to be used in turning the child in the womb, do so much weaken both the mother and the child, that there remains not afterwards strength enough to commit the operation to the work of nature; for, usually, the woman has no more throes or pains fit for labour after she has been so wrought upon; for which reason it would be difficult and tedious at best; and the child, by such an operation made very weak, would be in extreme danger of perishing before it could be born. It is, therefore, much better in these cases to bring it away immediately by the feet, searching for them as I have already directed, when they do not present themselves; by which the mother will be prevented a tedious labour, and the child be often brought alive into the world, who otherwise could hardly escape death.

I admit there are many writers who have discussed childbirth and believe that any wrong presentation should be adjusted to a natural position, meaning that it should be turned so that the head comes out first. However, those who have written this have never truly grasped the practical side of childbirth. If they had even a bit of experience, they would know that it is impossible; and if it were to be attempted, it would involve such force that it could likely cause the death of both the mother and the child during the process. Therefore, I propose a general rule: when a child is presenting incorrectly for birth, regardless of its position from shoulders to feet, it is better and quicker to deliver it by the feet. It’s preferable to search for the feet if they’re not visible, rather than trying to reposition the child head first. The effort needed to turn the child inside the womb weakens both the mother and the child, leaving them without enough strength to allow nature to take its course. Typically, after such an attempt, the woman no longer experiences the contractions or pains needed for labor. For this reason, the process would be difficult and lengthy, and the child would be significantly weakened, risking its life before birth. Therefore, it’s much better in these situations to deliver the baby immediately by the feet, searching for them as I’ve already instructed when they’re not apparent, which will save the mother from a long labor and increase the chances of the child being born alive, which would otherwise be unlikely.


SECT. VII.—How a Woman should be delivered that has twins, which present themselves in different postures.

We have already spoken something of the birth of twins in the chapter of natural labour, for it is not an unnatural labour barely to have twins, provided they come in the right position to the birth. But when they present themselves in different postures, they come properly under the denomination of unnatural labours; and if when one child presents itself in a wrong figure, it makes the labour dangerous and unnatural, it must needs make it much more so when there are several, and render it not only more painful to the mother and children, but to the operator also; for they often trouble each other and hinder both their births. Besides which the womb is so filled with them, that the operator can hardly introduce his hand without much violence, which he must do, if they are to be turned or thrust back, to give them a better position.

We have already discussed the birth of twins in the chapter on natural labor, as it's not considered unnatural to have twins, as long as they are positioned correctly for birth. However, when they come in different positions, they fall under the category of unnatural labor. If one baby is in an incorrect position, it makes the labor dangerous and unnatural; it becomes even more so when there are multiple babies. This makes it not only more painful for the mother and the babies but also for the practitioner, as the babies can complicate each other’s births. Additionally, the uterus is so crowded with them that the practitioner can barely fit their hand in without causing a lot of force, which is necessary if the babies need to be turned or pushed back to achieve a better position.

When a woman is pregnant with two children, they rarely present to the birth together, the one being generally more forward than the other; and that is the reason that but one is felt, and that many times the midwife knows not that there are twins until the first is born, and that she is going to fetch away the afterbirth. In the first chapter, wherein I treated of natural labour, I have showed how a woman should be delivered of twins, presenting themselves both right; and before I close the chapter of unnatural labour, it only remains that I show what ought to be done when they either both come wrong or one of them only, as for the most part it happens; the first generally coming right, and the second with the feet forward, or in some worse posture. In such a case, the birth of the first must be hastened as much as possible and to make way for the second, which is best brought away by the feet, without endeavouring to place it right, because it has been, as well as the mother, already tired and weakened by the birth of the first, and there would be greater danger to its death, than likelihood of its coming out of the womb that way.

When a woman is pregnant with twins, they rarely are born at the same time; usually, one is further along than the other. That’s why often only one is detected, and the midwife may not realize there are twins until the first one is born, and she goes to retrieve the afterbirth. In the first chapter, where I discussed natural labor, I explained how a woman should give birth to twins when they are both in the correct position. Before I finish the chapter on unnatural labor, I need to explain what to do when they are either both positioned incorrectly or when only one is, which is what usually happens. Typically, the first comes out correctly, while the second is feet-first or in an even more challenging position. In such cases, the delivery of the first baby should be expedited as much as possible to make way for the second, which is best delivered by the feet without trying to reposition it. This is because both the baby and the mother are already exhausted from the first birth, and there’s a greater risk of the second baby dying than a chance of it coming out the right way.

But if, when the first is born naturally, the second should likewise offer its head to the birth, it would then be best to leave nature to finish what she has so well begun, and if nature should be too slow in her work, some of those things mentioned in the fourth chapter to accelerate the birth, may be properly enough applied, and if, after that, the second birth should be delayed, let a manual operation be delayed no longer, but the woman being properly placed, as has been before directed, let the operator direct his hand gently into the womb to find the feet, and so draw forth the second child, which will be the more easily effected, because there is a way made sufficiently by the birth of the first; and if the waters of the second child be not broke, as it often happens, yet, intending to bring it by its feet, he need not scruple to break the membranes with his fingers; for though, when the birth of a child is left to the operation of nature, it is necessary that the waters should break of themselves, yet when the child is brought out of the womb by art, there is no danger in breaking them, nay, on the contrary it becomes necessary; for without the waters are broken, it will be almost impossible to turn the child.

But if, when the first baby is born naturally, the second is also ready to make its entrance, it's best to let nature complete what it's begun so well. If nature seems to be taking too long, some of the methods mentioned in the fourth chapter to speed up the birth can be used appropriately. If, after that, the second birth is still delayed, a manual procedure should not be postponed any longer. With the woman positioned correctly, as previously instructed, the operator should gently place their hand into the womb to locate the baby's feet and pull out the second child. This will be easier since there's already space created by the first birth. And if the water around the second baby hasn't broken— which often happens— when aiming to deliver it by its feet, the operator shouldn't hesitate to break the membranes with their fingers. While it's important for the water to break naturally during a regular birth, when the baby is being delivered by medical intervention, breaking the water is not only safe but necessary. Without breaking the water, it will be nearly impossible to turn the baby.

But herein principally lies the care of the operator, that he be not deceived, when either the hands or feet of both children offer themselves together to the birth; in this case he ought well to consider the operation, of whether they be not joined together, or any way monstrous, and which part belongs to one child and which to the other; so that they may be fetched one after the other, and not both together, as may be, if it were not duly considered, taking the right foot of one and the left of the other, and so drawing them together, as if they both belonged to one body, because there is a left and a right, by which means it would be impossible to deliver them. But a skilful operator will easily prevent this, if, after having found two or three of several children presenting together in the passage, and taking aside two of the forwardest, a right and a left, and sliding his arm along the legs and thighs up to the wrist, if forward, or to the buttocks, if backwards, he finds they both belong to one body; of which being thus assured, he may begin to draw forth the nearest, without regarding which is the strongest or weakest, bigger or less, living or dead, having first put aside that part of the other child which offers to have the more way, and so dispatch the first as soon as may be, observing the same rules as if there were but one, that is keeping the breast and face downwards, with every circumstance directed in that section where the child comes with its feet first, and not fetch the burden till the second child is born. And therefore, when the operator hath drawn forth one child, he must separate it from the burden, having tied and cut the navel-string, and then fetch the other by the feet in the same manner, and afterwards bring away the after-burden with the two strings as hath been before showed. If the children present any other part but the feet, the operator may follow the same method as directed in the foregoing section, where the several unnatural positions are fully treated of.

But this is where the operator needs to be careful, ensuring he isn't misled when both the hands or feet of the children present for birth at the same time. In this situation, he should carefully assess the delivery to determine if they are joined together in any way or have any abnormalities, and which part belongs to which child. This way, he can deliver them one after the other instead of trying to pull them out simultaneously, which could happen if he doesn't pay attention, mistakenly taking one child's right foot and the other's left, as if they were part of the same body. This could make it impossible to deliver them. However, a skilled operator can easily avoid this. After identifying two or three children presenting at once, he can set aside the two that are foremost, one right foot and one left, and slide his arm along their legs and thighs up to the wrist if they are facing forward or to the buttocks if they are facing backward. If he finds out that both legs belong to one body, he can begin to pull out the closest one without worrying about which is stronger or weaker, bigger or smaller, alive or dead, first pushing aside the part of the other child that's closer and then quickly delivering the first one while ensuring the breast and face are positioned downwards, following the same guidelines as if there were just one child. He should not attempt to deliver the second child until the first one is born. Thus, once the operator has delivered one child, he needs to separate it from the burden by tying and cutting the umbilical cord and then retrieve the other child by the feet in the same way, finally bringing out the placenta using the two cords as previously explained. If the children are presenting any part other than the feet, the operator can follow the same procedure as detailed in the earlier section, which addresses various unnatural positions.


CHAPTER VII

Directions for Child-bearing Women in their Lying-in.

Guidelines for Expecting Mothers During Their Recovery Period.


SECTION I.—How a Woman newly Delivered ought to be ordered.

As soon as she is laid in her bed, let her be placed in it conveniently for ease and rest, which she stands in great need of to recover herself of the great fatigue she underwent during her travail, and that she may lie the more easily let her hands and body be a little raised, that she may breathe more freely, and cleanse the better, especially of that blood which then comes away, that so it may not clot, which being retained causeth great pain.

As soon as she is settled in her bed, make sure she's positioned comfortably for ease and rest, which she really needs to recover from the intense fatigue she experienced during labor. To help her lie down more easily, raise her hands and body slightly so she can breathe more freely and clean herself better, especially from the blood that is coming out, to prevent it from clotting, as that can cause significant pain.

Having thus placed her in bed, let her take a draught of burnt white wine, having a drachm of spermaceti melted therein. The best vervain is also singularly good for a woman in this condition, boiling it in what she either eats or drinks, fortifying the womb so exceedingly that it will do it more good in two days, than any other thing does in double that time, having no offensive taste. And this is no more than what she stands in need of; for her lower parts being greatly distended until the birth of the infant, it is good to endeavour the prevention of an inflammation there. Let there also be outwardly applied, all over the bottom of her belly and privities, the following anodyne and cataplasm:—Take two ounces of oil of sweet almonds, and two or three new laid eggs, yolks and whites, stirring them together in an earthen pipkin over hot embers till they come to the consistence of a poultice; which being spread upon a cloth, must be applied to those parts indifferently warm, having first taken away the closures (which were put to her presently after her delivery), and likewise such clots of blood as were then left. Let this lie on for five or six hours, and then renew it again when you see cause.

After getting her into bed, let her drink a glass of burnt white wine with a gram of spermaceti melted in it. The best vervain is also particularly beneficial for a woman in this situation; boiling it in whatever she eats or drinks will strengthen her womb so much that it will be more effective in two days than anything else would be in twice that time, and it has no unpleasant taste. This is exactly what she needs, as her lower body is greatly swollen until the baby is born, so it’s good to try to prevent any inflammation in that area. Additionally, apply the following soothing paste to the entire area of her belly and private parts: Take two ounces of sweet almond oil and two or three fresh eggs, both yolks and whites, mixing them together in a clay pot over hot coals until it reaches the consistency of a poultice. Once spread on a cloth, it should be applied gently to those areas while warm, after removing the dressings (which were put on her right after delivery) and any clots of blood that remained. Leave it on for five or six hours, then replace it when necessary.

Great care ought to be taken at first, that if her body be very weak, she be not kept too hot, for extremity of heat weakens nature and dissolves the strength; and whether she be weak or strong, be sure that no cold air comes near her at first; for cold is an enemy to the spermatic parts; if it get into the womb it increases the after pains, causes swelling in the womb and hurts the nerves. As to her diet, let it be hot, and let her eat but little at a time. Let her avoid the light for the first three days, and longer if she be weak, for her labour weakens her eyes exceedingly, by a harmony between the womb and them. Let her also avoid great noise, sadness and trouble of mind.

Great care should be taken initially so that if her body is very weak, she isn't kept too hot, as excessive heat weakens the body and drains energy. Whether she is weak or strong, make sure no cold air approaches her at first; cold is harmful to the reproductive organs. If it enters the womb, it can increase afterpains, cause swelling, and harm the nerves. Regarding her diet, it should be warm, and she should eat only small amounts at a time. She should avoid bright light for the first three days, or longer if she is weak, as her labor can severely strain her eyes due to a connection between her womb and her eyesight. Additionally, she should steer clear of loud noises, sadness, and mental stress.

If the womb be foul, which may easily be perceived by the impurity of the blood (which will then easily come away in clots or stinking, or if you suspect any of the after-burden to be left behind, which may sometimes happen), make her drink a feverfew, mugwort, pennyroyal and mother of thyme, boiled in white wine and sweetened with sugar.

If the womb is unhealthy, which can be easily noticed by the impurities in the blood (which may then come out in clots or have a foul odor, or if you think there might be any remnants left behind, which can sometimes occur), have her drink a mix of feverfew, mugwort, pennyroyal, and mother of thyme, boiled in white wine and sweetened with sugar.

Panado and new laid eggs are the best meat for her at first, of which she may eat often, but not too much at a time. And let her nurse use cinnamon in all her meats and drinks, for it generally strengthens the womb.

Panado and fresh-laid eggs are the best food for her initially; she can eat them often, but not too much at once. Also, have her nurse use cinnamon in all her meals and drinks, as it usually strengthens the womb.

Let her stir as little as may be until after the fifth, sixth, or seventh day after her delivery, if she be weak; and let her talk as little as possible, for that weakens her very much.

Let her move as little as possible until after the fifth, sixth, or seventh day after giving birth, if she is weak; and let her speak as little as she can, because that tires her out a lot.

If she goes not well to stool, give a clyster made only of the decoction of mallows and a little brown sugar.

If she doesn't have a regular bowel movement, give her an enema made only with a decoction of mallows and a little brown sugar.

When she hath lain in a week or more, let her use such things as close the womb, of which knot-grass and comfrey are very good, and to them you may add a little polypodium, for it will do her good, both leaves and root being bruised.

When she has been lying down for a week or more, let her use things that help close the womb, such as knot-grass and comfrey, which are very effective. You can also add a little polypody, as it will benefit her, with both the leaves and root being crushed.


SECT. II.—How to remedy those Accidents which a Lying-in Woman is subject to.

I. The first common and usual accident that troubles women in their lying-in is after-pains. They proceed from cold and wind contained in the bowels, with which they are easily filled after labour, because then they have more room to dilate than when the child was in the womb, by which they were compressed; and also, because nourishment and matter, contained as well in them as in the stomach, have been so confusedly agitated from side to side during the pains of labour, by the throes which always must compress the belly, that they could not be well digested, whence the wind is afterwards generated and, by consequence, the gripes which the woman feels running into her belly from side to side, according as the wind moves more or less, and sometimes likewise from the womb, because of the compression and commotion which the bowels make. This being generally the case, let us now apply a suitable remedy.

I. The first common issue that women experience after giving birth is after-pains. These pains come from cold and wind trapped in the intestines, which get filled up easily after labor, as there’s more space to expand compared to when the baby was in the womb, where they were pressed. Additionally, the food and substances in the intestines and stomach have been jostled around during labor, caused by the contractions that compress the belly, making them difficult to digest. This results in the generation of gas, leading to the cramps that women feel moving side to side in their belly, depending on how much the gas shifts, and sometimes also from the uterus, because of the pressure and movement within the intestines. Since this is generally the situation, let's find an appropriate remedy.

1. Boil an egg soft, and pour out the yolk of it, with which mix a spoonful of cinnamon water, and let her drink it; and if you mix in it two grains of ambergris, it will be better; and yet vervain taken in anything she drinks, will be as effectual as the other.

1. Soft-boil an egg, and pour out the yolk. Mix it with a spoonful of cinnamon water and have her drink it. If you add two grains of ambergris, it will be even better. Also, vervain mixed into anything she drinks will work just as well as the other ingredients.

2. Give a lying-in woman, immediately after delivery, oil of sweet almonds and syrup of maiden-hair mixed together. Some prefer oil of walnuts, provided it be made of nuts that are very good; but it tastes worse than the other at best. This will lenify the inside of the intestines by its unctuousness, and by that means bring away that which is contained in them more easily.

2. Give a woman who just gave birth a mix of sweet almond oil and maiden-hair syrup right after delivery. Some people prefer walnut oil, as long as it’s made from really good nuts, but it doesn’t taste as good as the other option. This will help soften the insides of the intestines because of its oily texture, making it easier to eliminate what’s inside them.

3. Take and boil onions well in water, then stamp them with oil of cinnamon, spread them on a cloth, and apply them to the region of the womb.

3. Take onions and boil them well in water, then mash them with cinnamon oil, spread them on a cloth, and place them on the area of the womb.

4. Let her be careful to keep her belly warm, and not to drink what is too cold; and if the pain prove violent, hot cloths from time to time must be laid on her belly, or a pancake fried in walnut oil may be applied to it, without swathing her belly too strait. And for the better evacuating the wind out of the intestines, give her a clyster, which may be repeated as often as necessity requires.

4. She should be careful to keep her stomach warm and avoid drinking anything too cold. If the pain gets severe, she should apply hot cloths to her stomach from time to time, or a pancake fried in walnut oil can be placed on it, but without wrapping her belly too tightly. To help get rid of gas in the intestines, give her a enema, which can be repeated as often as needed.

5. Take bay-berries, beat them to a powder, put the powder upon a chafing-dish of coals, and let her receive the smoke of them up her privities.

5. Take bay-berries, crush them into a powder, place the powder on a hot chafing dish, and let her inhale the smoke from it through her private areas.

6. Take tar and bear's grease, of each an equal quantity, boil them together, and whilst it is boiling, add a little pigeon's dung to it. Spread some of this upon a linen cloth, and apply it to the veins of the back of her that is troubled with afterpains, and it will give her speedy ease.

6. Take tar and bear grease, equal parts of each, boil them together, and while it’s boiling, add a bit of pigeon droppings. Spread some of this mixture on a linen cloth and apply it to the veins on the back of the person experiencing afterpains, and it will provide quick relief.

Lastly, let her take half a drachm of bay-berries beaten into a powder, in a drachm of muscadel or teat.

Lastly, let her take half a drachm of bay-berries powdered, mixed with a drachm of muscadel or tea.

II. Another accident to which women in child-bed are subject is haemorrhoids or piles, occasioned through the great straining in bringing the child into the world. To cure this,

II. Another issue that women face during childbirth is hemorrhoids or piles, caused by the intense strain of delivering the baby. To treat this,

1. Let her be let blood in the saphoena vein.

1. Let her have her blood drawn from the saphoena vein.

2. Let her use polypodium in her meat, and drink, bruised and boiled.

2. Let her use polypodium in her meat and drink, bruised and boiled.

3. Take an onion, and having made a hole in the middle, of it, fill it full of oil, roast it and having bruised it all together, apply it to the fundament.

3. Take an onion, and after making a hole in the middle of it, fill it with oil, roast it, and then mash it all together before applying it to the backside.

4. Take a dozen of snails without shells, if you can get them, or else so many shell snails, and pull them out, and having bruised them with a little oil, apply them warm as before.

4. Take a dozen of unshelled snails, if you can find them, or as many shelled snails as possible, and take them out of their shells. After crushing them with a little oil, apply them warm as before.

5. If she go not well to stool, let her take an ounce of cassia fistula drawn at night, going to bed; she needs no change of diet after.

5. If she hasn’t been able to poop well, let her take an ounce of cassia fistula before bed; she doesn’t need to change her diet afterward.

III. Retention of the menses is another accident happening to women in child-bed, and which is of so dangerous a consequence, that, if not timely remedied, it proves mortal. When this happens,

III. Retaining menstruation is another issue that women experience after childbirth, and it can have such serious consequences that, if not addressed promptly, it can be fatal. When this occurs,

1. Let the woman take such medicines as strongly provoke the terms, such as dittany, betony, pennyroyal, feverfew, centaury, juniper-berries, peony roots.

1. Allow the woman to take medicines that strongly stimulate the conditions, like dittany, betony, pennyroyal, feverfew, centaury, juniper berries, and peony roots.

2. Let her take two or three spoonfuls of briony water each morning.

2. Have her take two or three spoonfuls of briony water each morning.

3. Gentian roots beaten into a powder, and a drachm of it taken every morning in wine, are an extraordinary remedy.

3. Gentian roots ground into a powder, with a dram taken every morning in wine, are an amazing remedy.

4. The roots of birthwort, either long or round, so used and taken as the former, are very good.

4. The roots of birthwort, whether they're long or round, used in the same way as the former, are really effective.

5. Take twelve peony seeds, and beat them into a very fine powder, and let her drink them in a draught of hot cardus posset, and let her sweat after. And if the last medicine do not bring them down the first time she takes it, let her take as much more three hours after, and it seldom fails.

5. Take twelve peony seeds and grind them into a very fine powder. Then, have her drink them mixed in a hot cardus posset and let her sweat afterward. If the first dose doesn’t work the first time she takes it, let her take the same amount again three hours later, and it usually works.

IV. Overflowing of the menses is another accident incidental to child-bed women. For which,

IV. Overflowing of the menses is another accident incidental to women after giving birth. For which,

1. Take shepherd's purse, either boiled in any convenient liquor, or dried and beaten into a powder, and it will be an admirable remedy to stop them, this being especially appropriated to the privities.

1. Use shepherd's purse, either boiled in any suitable liquid or dried and ground into a powder, and it will be a great remedy to stop them, especially for the genital area.

2. The flower and leaves of brambles or either of them, being dried and beaten into a powder, and a drachm of them taken every morning in a spoonful of red wine, or in a decoction of leaves of the same (which, perhaps, is much better), is an admirable remedy for the immoderate flowing of the term in women.

2. The flowers and leaves of brambles, or either one, when dried and ground into a powder, can be taken in a dose of a drachm every morning with a spoonful of red wine, or in a brew made from the leaves (which is probably much better). This is an excellent remedy for excessive menstrual flow in women.

V. Excoriations, bruises, and rents in the lower part of the womb are often occasioned by the violent distention and separation of the caruncles in a woman's labour. For the healing whereof,

V. Scratches, bruises, and tears in the lower part of the womb are often caused by the intense stretching and tearing of the caruncles during a woman's labor. For the healing of these,

As soon as the woman is laid, if there be only simple contusions and excoriations, then let the anodyne cataplasm, formerly directed, be applied to the lower parts to ease the pain, made of the yolks and whites of new laid eggs, and oil of roses, boiled a little over warm embers, continually stirring it until it be mixed, and then spread on a fine cloth; it must be applied very warm to the bearing place for five or six hours, and when it is taken away, lay some fine rags, dipped in oil of St. John's wort twice or thrice a day; also foment the parts with barley water and honey of roses, to cleanse them from the excrements which pass. When the woman makes water, let them be defended with fine rags, and thereby hinder the urine from causing smart or pain.

As soon as the woman is laid down, if there are only minor bruises and scrapes, then apply the soothing poultice as previously instructed to the lower area to relieve the pain. This poultice should be made from the yolks and whites of freshly laid eggs and rose oil, gently heated over warm embers while constantly stirring until it's well mixed, then spread on a clean cloth. It should be applied warm to the affected area for five or six hours. After removing it, place some clean rags, dipped in St. John's wort oil, on the area two to three times a day. Also, cleanse the area with barley water and rose honey to remove any discharge. When the woman urinates, protect her with soft rags to prevent any discomfort or pain from the urine.

VI. The curding and clotting of the milk is another accident that happens to women in child-bed, for in the beginning of child-bed, the woman's milk is not purified because of the great commotions her body suffered during her labour, which affected all the parts, and it is then affected with many humours. Now this clotting of the milk does, for the most part, proceed from the breasts not being fully drawn, and that, either because she has too much milk, and that the infant is too small and weak to suck it all, or because she doth not desire to be a nurse, for the milk in those cases remaining in the breasts after concoction, without being drawn, loses its sweetness and the balsamic qualities it had, and by reason of the heat it requires, and the too long stay it makes there, is sours, curds and clots, in like manner as we see rennet put into ordinary milk to turn it into curds. The curding of the milk may also be caused by having taken a great cold, and not keeping the breasts well covered.

VI. The curdling and clotting of milk is another issue that can happen to women after childbirth. At the start of this period, a woman’s milk isn’t pure due to the intense physical changes her body undergoes during labor, which affects all parts of her. As a result, the milk can contain various humors. Most of the time, the clotting occurs because the breasts aren’t fully emptied, either because she produces too much milk and the baby is too small and weak to take it all, or because she doesn’t want to nurse. In these situations, milk left in the breasts after it has been processed loses its sweetness and beneficial qualities. Due to the heat it generates and the prolonged time it stays there, it sours, curdles, and clots, similar to how rennet is added to regular milk to make curds. Curdling can also happen if she catches a chill and doesn’t keep her breasts well-covered.

But from what cause so ever this curding of the milk proceeds, the most certain remedy is, to draw the breasts until it is emitted and dried. But in regard that the infant by reason of weakness, cannot draw strength enough, the woman being hard marked when her milk is curded, it will be most proper to get another woman to draw her breasts until the milk comes freely, and then she may give her child suck. And that she may not afterwards be troubled with a surplus of milk, she must eat such diet as give but little nourishment, and keep her body open.

But whatever the reason for the milk curdling, the best solution is to express the milk until it’s out and dried up. Since the baby, due to weakness, can't draw enough strength, and the woman's breasts may be too full when her milk has curdled, it's best to have another woman express her milk until it flows freely, and then she can breastfeed her baby. To avoid having excess milk afterward, she should eat a diet that provides minimal nourishment and keep her bowels regular.

But if the case be such that the woman neither can nor will be a nurse, it is necessary to apply other remedies for the curing of this distemper; for then it will be best not to draw the breasts, for that will be the way to bring more milk into them. For which purpose it will be necessary to empty the body by bleeding the arms, besides which, let the humours be drawn down by strong clysters and bleeding at the foot; nor will it be amiss to purge gently, and to digest, dissolve and dissipate the curded milk, four brans dissolved in a decoction of sage, milk, smallage and fennel, mixing with it oil of camomile, with which oil let the breasts be well anointed. The following liniment is also good to scatter and dissipate the milk.

But if the situation is such that the woman cannot or does not want to be a nurse, it's necessary to find other remedies to treat this condition. In that case, it’s best not to stimulate the breasts, as this will only encourage more milk production. To address this, it will be essential to remove excess fluid by bleeding the arms. Additionally, strong enemas and bleeding from the feet can help draw down the fluids. It may also be beneficial to gently purge and digest, dissolve, and disperse the curdled milk using four bran mixed in a decoction of sage, milk, celery, and fennel, combined with chamomile oil, which should be used to massage the breasts. The following liniment is also helpful in breaking up and dispersing the milk.

A Liniment to Scatter and Dissipate the Milk.

That the milk flowing back to the breast may without offence be dissipated, you must use this ointment:—"Take pure wax, two ounces, linseed, half a pound; when the wax is melted, let the liniment be made, wherein linen cloths must be clipped, and, according to their largeness, be laid upon the breasts; and when it shall be dispersed, and pains no more, let other linen cloths be laid in the distilled water of acorns, and put upon them.

That the milk returning to the breast can be safely reduced, you should use this ointment:—"Take two ounces of pure wax and half a pound of linseed; once the wax is melted, make the liniment, and cut linen cloths to size, laying them on the breasts. When it eases the discomfort, place other linen cloths in distilled acorn water and apply them."

Note.—That the cloths dipped into distilled water of acorns must be used only by those who cannot nurse their own children; but if a swelling in the breast of her who gives such do arise, from abundance of milk, threatens an inflammation, let her use the former ointment, but abstain from using the distilled water of acorns.

Note.—The cloths soaked in distilled acorn water should only be used by those who are unable to nurse their own children. However, if the person using this treatment develops swelling in their breast due to an excess of milk that might lead to inflammation, they should use the previous ointment but should avoid using the distilled acorn water.


CHAPTER VIII

Directions for the Nurses, in ordering Newly-born Children.

Instructions for Nurses on Caring for Newborns.


When the child's navel-string hath been cut according to the rules prescribed, let the midwife presently cleanse it from the excrements and filth it brings into the world with it; of which some are within the body, as the urine in the bladder, and the excrements found in the guts; and the others without, which are thick, whitish and clammy, proceeding from the sliminess of the waters. There are sometimes children covered all over with this, that one would think they were rubbed over with soft cheese, and some women are of so easy a belief, that they really think it so, because they have eaten some while they were with child. From these excrements let the child be cleansed with wine and water a little warmed, washing every part therewith, but chiefly the head because of the hair, also the folds of the groin, and the cods or privities; which parts must be gently cleansed with a linen rag, or a soft sponge dipped in lukewarm wine. If this clammy or viscous excrement stick so close that it will not easily be washed off from those places, it may be fetched off with oil of sweet almond, or a little fresh butter melted with wine, and afterwards well dried off; also make tents of fine rags, and wetting them in this liquor, clear the ears and nostrils; but for the eyes, wipe them only with a dry, soft rag, not dipping it in the wine, lest it should make them smart.

When the baby's umbilical cord has been cut according to the proper guidelines, the midwife should immediately clean it of any waste and grime the baby brings with them into the world. Some waste is inside the body, like urine in the bladder and stools in the intestines, while other waste is external, which appears thick, whitish, and sticky, coming from the sliminess of the amniotic fluid. Sometimes, babies are completely covered in this substance, making it look like they've been smeared with soft cheese, and some women believe this to be true, thinking it’s because they ate cheese while pregnant. The baby should be gently cleaned with a mixture of warm wine and water, washing every part, especially the head due to the hair, as well as the folds of the groin and the private areas. These areas should be delicately cleaned with a linen cloth or a soft sponge soaked in lukewarm wine. If this sticky or slimy waste is difficult to remove from those areas, it can be loosened with sweet almond oil or a bit of fresh melted butter mixed with wine and then thoroughly wiped off. Additionally, make small swabs from soft cloths, wet them with this mixture, and use them to clean the ears and nostrils. For the eyes, simply wipe them with a dry, soft cloth without dipping it in the wine to avoid causing irritation.

The child being washed, and cleansed from the native blood and impurities which attend it into the world, it must in the next place be searched to see whether all things be right about it, and that there is no fault nor dislocation; whether its nose be straight, or its tongue tied, or whether there be any bruise or tumour of the head; or whether the mold be not over shot; also whether the scrotum (if it be a male) be not blown up and swelled, and, in short, whether it has suffered any violence by its birth, in any part of its body, and whether all the parts be well and duly shaped; that suitable remedies may be applied if anything be found not right. Nor is it enough to see that all be right without, and that the outside of the body be cleansed, but she must also observe whether it dischargeth the excrements contained within, and whether the passage be open; for some have been born without having been perforated. Therefore, let her examine whether the conduits of the urine and stool be clear, for want of which some have died, not being able to void their excrements, because timely care was not taken at first. As to the urine all children, as well males as females, do make water as soon as they are born, if they can, especially if they feel the heat of the fire, and also sometimes void the excrements, but not so soon as the urine. If the infant does not ordure the first day, then put into its fundament a small suppository, to stir it up to be discharged, that it may not cause painful gripes, by remaining so long in the belly. A sugar almond may be proper for this purpose, anointed all over with a little boiled honey; or else a small piece of castile-soap rubbed over with fresh butter; also give the child for this purpose a little syrup of roses or violets at the mouth, mixed with some oil of sweet almonds, drawn without a fire, anointing the belly also, with the same oil or fresh butter.

The child is being washed and cleansed of the natural blood and impurities that come with entering the world. Next, it needs to be checked to ensure everything is okay, and that there are no faults or dislocations; whether its nose is straight, if its tongue is tied, if there are any bruises or swelling on the head, or if the birthmarks are not excessive. Also, check if the scrotum (if it's a boy) is not swollen, and in general, whether the child has suffered any trauma during birth in any part of its body, and ensure all the body parts are properly shaped so that appropriate remedies can be applied if anything is found to be wrong. It’s not enough to just check that everything looks fine on the outside and that the body is clean; you also need to see if the child is passing any waste and if the passages are clear, since some have been born without being properly opened. Therefore, check if the urinary and bowel passages are clear, as some have died due to being unable to excrete, because no timely care was given right away. All babies, both boys and girls, urinate as soon as they are born if they can, especially if they feel warmth from the fire, and they sometimes pass stool, but not as quickly as they urinate. If the baby doesn’t poop on the first day, then insert a small suppository into its rectum to help it pass waste, to avoid painful cramps from holding it too long. A sugar almond can work for this, coated with a little boiled honey; alternatively, a small piece of Castile soap rubbed with fresh butter will do. Also, give the baby a little syrup of roses or violets by mouth, mixed with some sweet almond oil, which should be prepared without fire, while also gently rubbing the belly with the same oil or fresh butter.

The midwife having thus washed and cleansed the child, according to the before mentioned directions, let her begin to swaddle it in swathing clothes, and when she dresses the head, let her put small rags behind the ears, to dry up the filth which usually engenders there, and so let her do also in the folds of the armpits and groins, and so swathe it; then wrap it up warm in a bed with blankets, which there is scarcely any woman so ignorant but knows well enough how to do; only let me give them this caution, that they swathe not the child too tightly in its blankets, especially about the breast and stomach, that it may breathe the more freely, and not be forced to vomit up the milk it sucks, because the stomach cannot be sufficiently distended to contain it; therefore let its arms and legs be wrapped in its bed, stretched and straight and swathed to keep them so, viz., the arms along its sides, and its legs equally both together with a little of the bed between them, that they may not be galled by rubbing each other; then let the head be kept steady and straight, with a stay fastened each side of the blanket, and then wrap the child up in a mantle and blankets to keep it warm. Let none think this swathing of the infant is needless to set down, for it is necessary it should be thus swaddled, to give its little body a straight figure, which is most proper and decent for a man, and to accustom him to keep upon his feet, who otherwise would go upon all fours, as most animals do.

The midwife, after washing and cleaning the baby as previously mentioned, should start swaddling it in cloth. When dressing the head, she should place small rags behind the ears to soak up any dirt that usually collects there, and do the same in the folds of the armpits and groin before continuing to swaddle. Then, wrap the baby warmly in a bed with blankets, something most women are familiar with. Just a word of caution: don’t wrap the baby too tightly in the blankets, especially around the chest and stomach, so it can breathe easier and not vomit up the milk it drinks, since its stomach needs room to expand. Its arms and legs should be wrapped snugly in the bed, stretched out and straight to hold them in place, with arms along the sides and legs together with a little space between them to prevent chafing. The head should be kept steady and straight with stays on either side of the blanket, and then cover the baby with a mantle and more blankets to keep it warm. Don’t think that swaddling the infant is unnecessary to mention; it's important for shaping its little body properly, helping it develop a straight posture, which is vital for a future adult, and encourages it to stand on its feet instead of crawling like most animals do.


CHAPTER IX


SECTION I.—Of Gripes and Pains in the, Bellies of Young Children.

This I mention first, as it is often the first and most common distemper which happens to little infants, after their birth; many children being so troubled therewith, that it causes them to cry day and night and at last die of it. The cause of it for the most part comes from the sudden change of nourishment, for having always received it from the umbilical vessel whilst in the mother's womb, they come on a sudden not only to change the manner of receiving it, but the nature and quality of what they received, as soon as they are born; for instead of purified blood only, which was conveyed to them by means of the umbilical vein, they are now obliged to be nourished by their mother's milk, which they suck with their mouths, and from which are engendered many excrements, causing gripes and pains; and not only because it is not so pure as the blood with which it was nourished in the womb, but because the stomach and the intestines cannot make a good digestion, being unaccustomed to it. It is sometimes caused also by a rough phlegm, and sometimes by worms; for physicians affirm that worms have been bred in children even in their mother's belly.

This is the first thing I want to mention, as it's often the most common issue that little infants face after birth. Many children are so affected by it that they cry day and night and, eventually, can even die from it. The main reason for this usually comes from the sudden change in their food source. While in the womb, they received all their nourishment through the umbilical vessel, but once they're born, they have to adapt quickly not just to a different way of getting food but also to the different types of nutrients they receive. Instead of the purified blood they got through the umbilical vein, they're now dependent on their mother's milk, which they drink from their mouths. This transition leads to the production of various wastes in their bodies, causing cramps and pain. It's not only because it's not as pure as the blood they were nourished with in the womb, but also because their stomachs and intestines are not used to digesting it properly. Sometimes, problems can also arise from thick phlegm or from worms, as doctors claim that worms can even develop in children while they are still in their mother’s belly.

Cure. The remedy must be suited to the cause. If it proceed from the too sudden change of nourishment, the remedy must be to forbear giving the child suck for some days, lest the milk be mixed with phlegm, which is then in the stomach corrupt; and at first it must suck but little, until it is accustomed to digest it. If it be the excrements in the intestines, which by their long stay increase their pains, give them at the month a little oil of sweet almonds and syrup of roses; if it be worms, lay a cloth dipped in oil of wormwood mixed with ox-gall, upon the belly, or a small cataplasm, mixed with the powder of rue, wormwood, coloquintida, aloes, and the seeds of citron incorporated with ox-gall and the powder of lupines. Or give it oil of sweet almonds and syrup of roses; if it be worms, lay a cloth, dipped in oil of wormwood mixed with ox-gall, upon the belly, or a small cataplasm mixed with the powder of rue, wormwood, coloquintida, aloes, and the seeds of citron incorporated with ox-gall and the powder of lupines. Or give it oil of sweet almonds with sugar-candy, and a scruple of aniseed; it purgeth new-born babes from green cholera and stinking phlegm, and, if it be given with sugar-pap, it allays the griping pains of the belly. Also anoint the belly with oil of dill, or lay pelitory stamped with oil of camomile to the belly.

Cure. The treatment should match the underlying cause. If it results from a sudden change in diet, avoid breastfeeding the child for a few days to prevent the milk from mixing with phlegm, which can spoil in the stomach. Initially, the child should only suck a little until it gets used to digesting it. If the issue is due to stools in the intestines that have been there too long, give a little sweet almond oil and rose syrup once a month. If worms are the problem, place a cloth soaked in wormwood oil mixed with ox-gall on the belly, or apply a small poultice made from powdered rue, wormwood, coloquintida, aloes, and citron seeds combined with ox-gall and lupine powder. Alternatively, give sweet almond oil and rose syrup; if worms are involved, apply the cloth or poultice again. You could also offer sweet almond oil with sugar candy and a small amount of aniseed; this helps newborns with green diarrhea and smelly phlegm, and when given with sugar paste, it eases painful cramps in the belly. Additionally, massage the belly with dill oil, or apply crushed pelitory soaked in chamomile oil to the stomach.


SECT. II.—Of Weakness In Newly-born Infants.

Weakness is an accident that many children bring into the world along with them, and is often occasioned by the labour of the mother; by the violence and length whereof they suffer so much, that they are born with great weakness, and many times it is difficult to know whether they are alive or dead, their body appearing so senseless, and their face so blue and livid, that they seem to be quite choked; and even after some hours, then-showing any signs of life is attended with weakness, that it looks like a return from death, and that they are still in a dying condition.

Weakness is a condition that many children come into the world with, often due to the strain of childbirth. The intensity and duration of the mother's labor can leave the newborn so fragile that it's hard to tell if they're alive or dead, as their body can seem so unresponsive, and their face may appear blue and lifeless, making it look like they are suffocating. Even after several hours, any sign of life is so weak that it feels like a return from death, as if they remain in a state of dying.

Cure. Lay the infant speedily in a warm blanket, and carry it to the fire, and then let the midwife take a little wine in her mouth and spout it into its mouth, repeating it often, if there be occasion. Let her apply linen dipped in urine to the breast and belly, and let the face be uncovered, that it may breathe the more freely; also, let the midwife keep its mouth a little open, cleanse the nostrils with small linen tents [11] dipt in white wine, that so it may receive the smell of it; and let her chafe every part of its body well with warm cloths, to bring back its blood and spirits, which being retired inwards through weakness, often puts him in danger of being choked. By the application of these means, the infant will gradually recover strength, and begin to stir its limbs by degrees, and at length to cry; and though it be but weakly at first, yet afterwards, as it breathes more freely, its cry will become more strong.

Cure. Quickly wrap the baby in a warm blanket and take it to the fire. Then, let the midwife take a small sip of wine and gently pour it into the baby's mouth, repeating as needed. She should apply linen soaked in urine to the baby's chest and belly, and keep the baby's face uncovered so it can breathe more easily. Additionally, the midwife should keep the baby's mouth slightly open, clean the nostrils with small linen swabs dipped in white wine so it can smell it, and gently rub every part of its body with warm cloths to help restore its blood flow and energy, which can retreat inward due to weakness and put the baby at risk of choking. By using these methods, the baby will gradually regain strength, begin to move its limbs little by little, and eventually start to cry. Although its cries may be weak at first, they will strengthen as it breathes more easily.


SECT. III.—Of the Fundament being closed up in a newly-born Infant.

Another defect that new-born infants are liable to is, to have their fundaments closed up, by which they can neither evacuate the new excrements engendered by the milk they suck, nor that which was amassed in their intestines before birth, which is certainly mortal without a speedy remedy. There have been some female children who have their fundaments quite closed, and yet have voided the excrements of the guts by an orifice which nature, to supply the defect, had made within the neck of the womb.

Another issue that newborn infants can have is having their anuses closed up, which prevents them from passing the new waste produced by the milk they drink, as well as what was stored in their intestines before birth. This can definitely be life-threatening without quick intervention. There have been some female children who had their anuses completely closed, yet managed to eliminate waste from their intestines through an opening that nature created in the neck of the womb to compensate for the defect.

Cure. Here we must take notice, that the fundament is closed two ways; either by a single skin, through which one may discover some black and blue marks, proceeding from the excrements retained, which, if one touch with the finger, there is a softness felt within, and thereabout it ought to be pierced; or else it is quite stopped by a thick, fleshy substance, in such sort that there appears nothing without, by which its true situation may be known. When there is nothing but the single skin which makes the closure, the operation is very easy, and the children may do very well; for then an aperture or opening may be made with a small incision-knife, cross-ways, that it may the better receive a round form, and that the place may not afterwards grow together, taking care not to prejudice the sphincter or muscle of the rectum. The incision being thus made, the excrements will certainly have issue. But if, by reason of their long stay in the belly, they become so dry that the infant cannot void them, then let a clyster be given to moisten and bring them away; afterwards put a linen tent into the new-made fundament, which at first had best be anointed with honey of roses, and towards the end, with a drying, cicatrizing ointment, such as unguentum album or ponphilex, observing to cleanse the infant of its excrement, and dry it again as soon and as often as it evacuates them, that so the aperture may be prevented from turning into a malignant ulcer.

Cure. Here we should note that the opening is blocked in two ways; either by a single layer of skin, through which some bruises may be seen from retained waste, which, if you touch it with your finger, feels soft inside, and it should be punctured there; or it is totally blocked by a thick, fleshy mass, so that nothing appears on the outside to indicate its true condition. When it's only a single layer of skin causing the blockage, the procedure is quite simple, and children can handle it well; an incision can be made crosswise with a small knife, allowing for a round shape, to prevent the area from healing over, while being careful not to damage the sphincter or rectal muscle. Once the incision is made, the waste will definitely be expelled. However, if the waste has become so dry from being in the belly for too long that the infant can’t pass it, then a laxative enema should be given to soften it and help it along. Afterwards, insert a linen tent into the newly created opening, which should first be coated with rose honey, and later with a drying, healing ointment, such as ungentum album or ponphilex, making sure to clean the infant of any waste and dry them as quickly and as often as they eliminate it, to prevent the opening from developing into a severe ulcer.

But if the fundament be stopped up in such a manner, that neither mark nor appearance of it can be seen or felt, then the operation is much more difficult, and, even when it is done, the danger is much greater that the infant will not survive it. Then, if it be a female, and it sends forth its excrements by the way I mentioned before, it is better not to meddle than, by endeavouring to remedy an inconvenience, run an extreme hazard of the infant's death. But when there is no vent for the excrements, without which death is unavoidable, then the operation is justifiable.

But if the bottom is blocked in such a way that you can't see or feel any sign of it, then the procedure becomes much more complicated, and even if it is performed, there's a much greater risk that the baby won't survive. If it's a girl and she releases her waste the way I mentioned earlier, it's better not to interfere than to attempt to fix a problem and risk the baby's life. However, when there's no way for the waste to exit, and death is unavoidable without intervention, then the procedure is justified.

Operation. Let the operator, with a small incision-knife that hath but one edge, enter into the void place, and turning the back of it upwards, within half a finger's breadth of the child's rump, which is the place where he will certainly find the intestines, let him thrust it forward, that it may be open enough to give free vent to matter there contained, being especially careful of the sphincter; after which, let the wound be dressed according to the method directed.

Operation. Have the operator use a small, single-edged incision knife to enter the empty space, turning the back of the knife upwards, and within half a finger's width of the child's backside, which is the spot where the intestines will definitely be found. He should push it forward enough to allow for the free release of any contents there, being particularly careful of the sphincter. Afterward, the wound should be treated according to the prescribed method.


SECT. IV.—Of the Thrush, or Ulcers In the Mouth of the Infant.

The thrush is a distemper that children are very subject to, and it arises from bad milk, or from foul humour in the stomach; for sometimes, though there be no ill humour in the milk itself, yet it may corrupt the child's stomach because of its weakness or some other indisposition; in which, acquiring an acrimony, instead of being well digested, there arise from it thrice biting vapours, which forming a thick viscosity, do thereby produce this distemper.

The thrush is an illness that kids often get, and it comes from spoiled milk or from bad conditions in the stomach. Sometimes, even if the milk isn't bad itself, it can upset a child's stomach because they are weak or unwell. As a result, instead of being digested properly, it creates irritants that turn into thick substances, leading to this illness.

Cure. It is often difficult, as physicians tell us, because it is seated in hot and moist places, where the putrefaction is easily augmented; and because the remedies applied cannot lodge there, being soon washed with spittle. But if it arises from too hot quality in the nurse's milk, care must be taken to temper and cool, prescribing her cool diet, bleeding and purging her also, if there be occasion.

Cure. It's often challenging, as doctors explain, because the issue is located in warm and moist areas, where decay can easily increase; and because the treatments used can’t stay there, as they're quickly washed away by saliva. However, if it results from the nurse's milk being too warm, it's important to cool it down by advising her to eat a cooler diet and possibly bleeding or purging her if necessary.

Take lentils, husked, powder them, and lay a little of them upon the child's gums. Or take bdellium flowers, half an ounce, and with oil of roses make a liniment. Also wash the child's mouth with barley and plantain-water, and honey of roses, mixing with them a little verjuice of lemons, as well to loosen and cleanse the vicious humours which cleave to the inside of the infant's mouth, as to cool those parts which are already over-heated. It may be done by means of a small fine rag, fastened to the end of a little stick, and dipped therein, wherewith the ulcers may be gently rubbed, being careful not to put the child in too much pain, lest an inflammation make the distemper worse. The child's body must also be kept open, that the humours being carried to the lower parts, the vapours may not ascend, as is usual for them to do when the body is costive, and the excrements too long retained.

Take lentils, remove the husks, grind them into powder, and place a small amount on the child's gums. Or take half an ounce of bdellium flowers and mix them with rose oil to make a soothing ointment. Also, wash the child's mouth with barley water and plantain water, adding some rose honey and a little lemon juice to help loosen and cleanse the bad humors stuck inside the baby's mouth, while cooling any areas that are already too warm. This can be done using a small, soft cloth attached to the end of a little stick, which you dip into the mixture and gently rub on the sores, being careful not to cause too much pain, as that could make the condition worse. Keep the child's body regular to ensure that the bad humors move downwards, preventing them from rising, which often happens when the body is constipated and waste is held too long.

If the ulcers appear malignant, let such remedies be used as do their work speedily, that the evil qualities that cause them, being thereby instantly corrected, their malignity may be prevented; and in this case, touch the ulcers with plantain water, sharpened with spirits of vitriol; for the remedy must be made sharp, according to the malignity of the distemper. It will be necessary to purge these ill humours out of the whole habit of the child, by giving half an ounce of succory and rhubarb.

If the ulcers seem cancerous, use remedies that work quickly to correct the harmful qualities causing them, so their malignancy can be prevented. In this case, apply plantain water mixed with sulfuric acid to the ulcers; the remedy needs to be potent based on the severity of the condition. It will be essential to flush these bad substances out of the child's system by administering half an ounce of chicory and rhubarb.


SECT. V.—Of Pains in the Ears, Inflammation, Moisture, etc.

The brain in infants is very moist, and hath many excrements which nature cannot send out at the proper passages; they get often to the ears, and there cause pains, flux of blood, with inflammation and matter with pain; this in children is hard to be known as they have no other way to make it known but by constant crying; you will perceive them ready to feel their ears themselves, but will not let others touch them, if they can prevent; and sometimes you may discern the parts about the ears to be very red.

The brains of infants are very moist and have many waste products that nature can't expel properly. These can often reach the ears, causing pain, bleeding, inflammation, and discomfort. It's hard to recognize this in children since the only way they can express it is through constant crying. You'll notice them trying to touch their own ears but they won't let anyone else touch them if they can avoid it. Sometimes, you might also see that the area around their ears appears very red.

These pains, if let alone, are of dangerous consequences, because they may bring forth watchings and epilepsy; for the moisture breeds worms there, and fouls the spongy bones, and by degrees causes incurable deafness.

These pains, if left untreated, can lead to serious consequences, as they may cause insomnia and epilepsy; the moisture creates worms in the area, contaminates the spongy bones, and gradually leads to permanent deafness.

Cure. Allay the pain with all convenient speed, but have a care of using strong remedies. Therefore, only use warm milk about the ears, with the decoction of poppy tops, or oil of violets; to take away the moisture, use honey of roses, and let aqua mollis be dropped into the ears; or take virgin honey, half an ounce; red wines two ounces; alum, saffron, saltpetre, each a drachm, mix them at the fire; or drop in hemp seed oil with a little wine.

Cure. Relieve the pain as quickly as possible, but be cautious about using strong remedies. Therefore, use only warm milk around the ears, along with a tea made from poppy tops, or violet oil; to remove moisture, use rose honey, and let soft water be dropped into the ears; or mix half an ounce of virgin honey, two ounces of red wine, and a drachm each of alum, saffron, and saltpeter over heat; or add hemp seed oil with a little wine.


SECT. VI.—Of Redness and Inflammation of the Buttocks, Groin and the Thighs of a Young Child.

If there be no great care taken to change and wash the child's bed as soon as it is fouled with the excrements, and to keep the child very clean, the acrimony will be sure to cause redness, and beget a smarting in the buttocks, groin and thighs of the child, which, by reason of the pain, will afterwards be subject to inflammations, which follow the sooner, through the delicacy and tenderness of their skin, from which the outward skin of the body is in a short time separated and worn away.

If there isn’t a lot of care taken to change and clean the child’s bed as soon as it gets soiled, and to keep the child very clean, the irritation will definitely lead to redness and cause discomfort in the child’s buttocks, groin, and thighs. Due to the pain, these areas will be more likely to become inflamed, especially because of the delicate nature of their skin, which can quickly become damaged and worn away.

Cure. First, keep the child cleanly, and secondly, take off the sharpness of its urine. As to keeping it cleanly, she must be a sorry nurse who needs to be taught how to do it; for if she lets it but have dry, warm and clean beds and cloths, as often and as soon as it has fouled and wet them, either by its urine or its excrements, it will be sufficient. And as to taking off the sharpness of the child's urine, that must be done by the nurse's taking a cool diet, that her milk may have the same quality; and, therefore, she ought to abstain from all things that may tend to heat it.

Cure. First, keep the child clean, and second, reduce the acidity of its urine. Regarding cleanliness, any nurse who needs to be taught this is not very good at her job; if she simply provides dry, warm, and clean bedding and clothes, changing them promptly after they get soiled, whether from urine or stool, that will be enough. To reduce the acidity of the child's urine, the nurse should eat a cool diet so that her milk has similar qualities. Therefore, she should avoid anything that might increase its heat.

But besides these, cooling and drying remedies are requisite to be applied to the inflamed parts; therefore let the parts be bathed in plantain-water, with a fourth of lime water added to it, each time the child's excrements are wiped off; and if the pain be very great, let it only be fomented with lukewarm milk. The powder of a post to dry it, or a little mill-dust strewed upon the parts affected, may be proper enough, and is used by many women. Also, unguentum album, or diapompholigos, spread upon a small piece of leather in form of a plaster, will not be amiss.

But in addition to these, cooling and drying treatments need to be applied to the inflamed areas; therefore, the affected areas should be bathed in plantain-water, with a quarter of lime water added each time the child's mess is cleaned up; and if the pain is very intense, it should be treated only with lukewarm milk. A powder to dry it out, or a little dust from a mill sprinkled on the affected areas, may be suitable and is used by many women. Also, ungentum album, or diapompholigos, spread on a small piece of leather like a bandage, will also be helpful.

But the chief thing must be, the nurse's taking great care to wrap the inflamed parts with fine rags when she opens the child, that these parts may not gather and be pained by rubbing together.

But the main thing is that the nurse needs to be very careful to wrap the inflamed areas with clean cloths when she opens the child, so that these areas don’t touch each other and cause pain from rubbing.


SECT. VII.—Of Vomiting in Young Children.

Vomiting in young children proceeds sometimes from too much milk, and sometimes from bad milk, and as often from a moist, loose stomach; for as dryness retains so looseness lets go. This is, for the most part, without danger in children; for they that vomit from their birth are the lustiest; for the stomach not being used to meat, and milk being taken too much, crudities are easily bred, or the milk is corrupted; and it is better to vomit these up than to keep them in; but if vomiting last long, it will cause an atrophy or consumption, for want of nourishment.

Vomiting in young children can sometimes happen due to too much milk, sometimes because of bad milk, and just as often from a wet, loose stomach; dryness keeps things in, while looseness lets things out. Most of the time, this isn't dangerous for kids; those who vomit since birth are the healthiest because their stomachs aren’t used to food, and if they drink too much milk, it can lead to issues or the milk can go bad. It’s better to throw those up than to keep them inside; however, if vomiting lasts a long time, it can lead to weight loss or malnutrition due to a lack of nourishment.

Cure. If this be from too much milk, that which is emitted is yellow and green, or otherwise ill-coloured and stinking; in this case, mend the milk, as has been shown before; cleanse the child with honey of roses, and strengthen its stomach with syrup of milk and quinces, made into an electuary. If the humours be hot and sharp, give the syrup of pomegranates, currants and coral, and apply to the belly the plaster of bread, the stomach cerate, or bread dipped in hot wine; or take oil of mastich, quinces, mint, wormwood, each half an ounce; of nutmegs by expression, half a drachm; chemical oil of mint, three drops. Coral hath an occult property to prevent vomiting, and is therefore hung about the neck.

Cure. If this is due to too much milk, what comes out is yellow and green, or otherwise discolored and foul-smelling; in this case, improve the milk as mentioned earlier; cleanse the child with rose honey, and strengthen its stomach with a syrup made from milk and quinces, prepared into a paste. If the fluids are hot and sharp, give the syrup of pomegranates, currants, and coral, and apply a bread plaster, stomach ointment, or bread soaked in hot wine to the belly; or use half an ounce each of mastic oil, quinces, mint, and wormwood; half a drachm of expressed nutmeg; and three drops of chemical mint oil. Coral has a hidden ability to prevent vomiting and is therefore worn around the neck.


SECT. VIII—Of Breeding Teeth in Young Children.

This is a very great and yet necessary evil in all children, having variety of symptoms joined with it. They begin to come forth, not all at once, but one after the other, about the sixth or seventh month; the fore-teeth coming first, then the eye-teeth, and last of all the grinders. The eye-teeth cause more pain to the child than any of the rest, because they have a deep root, and a small nerve which has communication with that which makes the eye move.

This is a significant yet necessary hassle for all children, accompanied by various symptoms . They start to emerge not all at once, but one after another, around the sixth or seventh month; the front teeth come first, then the canines, and finally the molars. The canines cause the child more pain than the others because they have a deep root and a small nerve connected to the one that moves the eye.

In the breeding of the teeth, first they feel an itching in their gums, then they are pierced as with a needle, and pricked by the sharp bones, whence proceed great pains, watching, inflammation of the gums, fever, looseness and convulsions, especially when they breed their eye-teeth.

In the process of teething, first, they feel an itch in their gums, then they're pierced like with a needle and poked by sharp bones, which causes a lot of pain, sleeplessness, swollen gums, fever, looseness, and convulsions, especially when their eyeteeth come in.

The signs when children breed their eye-teeth are these:

The signs that indicate when children are getting their eye teeth are as follows:

1. It is known by the time, which is usually about the seventh month.

1. It is known by the time, which is usually around the seventh month.

2. Their gums are swelled, and they feel a great heat there with an itching, which makes them put their fingers into their mouths to rub them; a moisture also distils from the gums into the mouth, because of the pain they feel there.

2. Their gums are swollen, and they feel a lot of heat there with an itching sensation, which makes them put their fingers in their mouths to rub them; a moisture also drips from the gums into the mouth because of the pain they’re experiencing there.

3. They hold the nipple faster than before.

3. They grip the nipple more firmly than before.

4. The gums are white when the teeth begin to come, and the nurse, in giving them suck, finds the mouth hotter, and that they are much changed, crying every moment, and cannot sleep, or but very little at a time.

4. The gums are white when the teeth start to come in, and the nurse, while breastfeeding, notices that the mouth feels hotter, and that the baby is very different, crying all the time and hardly able to sleep, if at all.

The fever that follows breeding of teeth comes from choleric humours, inflamed by watching, pain and heat. And the longer teeth are breeding, the more dangerous it is; so that many in the breeding of them, die of fevers and convulsions.

The fever that occurs during teething is caused by an excess of angry humours, inflamed by sleeplessness, discomfort, and heat. The longer the teething process lasts, the more dangerous it becomes; many people even die from fevers and convulsions during this time.

Cure. Two things are to be regarded:—one is, to preserve the child from the evil accidents that may happen to it by reason of the great pain; the other, to assist as much as may be, the cutting of the teeth, when they can hardly cut the gums themselves.

Cure. There are two main things to consider: first, to protect the child from any harmful accidents that could occur due to the intense pain; second, to help as much as possible with the process of teething, especially when the child is struggling to break through the gums on their own.

For the first of these, viz., the preventing of those accidents to the child, the nurse ought to take great care to keep a good diet, and to use all things that may cool and temper her milk, that so a fever may not follow the pain of the teeth. And to prevent the humour falling too much upon the inflamed gums, let the child's belly be always kept loose by gentle clysters, if he be bound; though oftentimes there is no need of them, because they are at those times usually troubled with a looseness; and yet, for all that, clysters may not be improper.

For the first of these, which is to prevent accidents for the child, the nurse should take great care to maintain a good diet and use anything that can soothe and balance her milk, so a fever doesn't follow the pain of teething. To prevent excessive fluid buildup on the inflamed gums, the child's bowels should always be kept loose with gentle enemas if they are constipated; however, often there is no need for them because they frequently experience diarrhea at those times. Still, even in that case, enemas may not be inappropriate.

As to the other, which is to assist it cutting the teeth, that the nurse must do from time to time by mollifying and loosening them, and by rubbing them with her finger dipped in butter or honey; or let the child have a virgin-wax candle to chew upon; or anoint the gums with the mucilage of quince made with mallow-water, or with the brains of a hare; also foment the cheeks with the decoction of althoea, and camomile flowers and dill, or with the juice of mallows and fresh butter. If the gums are inflamed, add juice of nightshade and lettuce. I have already said, the nurse ought to take a temperate diet; I shall now only add, that barley-broth, water-gruel, raw eggs, prunes, lettuce and endive, are good for her; but let her avoid salt, sharp, biting and peppered meats, and wine.

As for the other, which is to help with teething, the nurse should occasionally soothe and loosen the gums by rubbing them with her finger dipped in butter or honey. She can also give the child a virgin-wax candle to chew on or apply quince mucilage mixed with mallow-water or hare brains to the gums. Additionally, she should massage the cheeks with a decoction of althaea, chamomile flowers, and dill, or with mallow juice and fresh butter. If the gums are inflamed, add some nightshade and lettuce juice. As I've mentioned before, the nurse should stick to a balanced diet; I’ll just add that barley broth, water gruel, raw eggs, prunes, lettuce, and endive are good for her, but she should avoid salty, spicy, or peppery foods, as well as wine.


SECT. IX.—Of the Flux of the Belly, or Looseness in Infants.

It is very common for infants to have the flux of the belly, or looseness, especially upon the least indisposition; nor is it to be wondered at, seeing their natural moistness contributes so much thereto; and even if it be extraordinarily violent, such are in a better state of health than those that are bound. The flux, if violent, proceeds from divers causes, as 1. From breeding of the teeth, and is then commonly attended with a fever in which the concoction is hindered, and the nourishment corrupted. 2. From watching. 3. From pain. 4. From stirring up of the humours by a fever. 5. When they suck or drink too much in a fever. Sometimes they have a flux without breeding of teeth, from inward cold in the guts or stomach that obstructs concoction. If it be from the teeth, it is easily known; for the signs of breeding in teeth will discover it. If it be from external cold, there are signs of other causes. If from a humour flowing from the head there are signs of a catarrh, and the excrements are frothy. If crude and raw humours are voided, and there be wind, belching, and phlegmatic excrements, or if they be yellow, green and stink, the flux is from a hot and sharp humour. It is best in breeding of teeth when the belly is loose, as I have said before; but if it be too violent, and you are afraid it may end in a consumption, it must be stopped; and if the excrements that are voided be black, and attended with a fever, it is very bad.

It's pretty common for babies to have diarrhea or loose stools, especially when they're not feeling well; this isn’t surprising since their bodies are naturally moist. Even if the diarrhea is particularly severe, those babies are usually in better health than those who are constipated. Severe diarrhea can arise from various reasons: 1. Teething, which often comes with a fever that disrupts digestion and messes with their nutrition. 2. Lack of sleep. 3. Pain. 4. The stirring of bodily fluids due to a fever. 5. Overfeeding during a fever. Sometimes babies have diarrhea without teething, caused by internal cold affecting their stomach or intestines that prevents proper digestion. If it’s from teething, it's easy to identify since the signs of teething will show. If it’s due to external cold, there will be signs of other issues. If a fluid is flowing from the head, there may be signs of a cold, and the stool will be frothy. If they pass raw and unprocessed fluids, and have gas, burping, and thick stools, or if the stools are yellow, green, and foul-smelling, the diarrhea is likely caused by a hot and sharp fluid. It's best when babies are teething to have loose stools, as mentioned earlier; but if it’s too severe and you’re worried it might lead to something worse, it should be treated. If the stool is black and accompanied by a fever, it’s a serious concern.

Cure. The remedy in this case, is principally in respect to the nurse, and the condition of the milk must be chiefly observed; the nurse must be cautioned that she eat no green fruit, nor things of hard concoction. If the child suck not, remove the flux with such purges as leave a cooling quality behind them, as syrup of honey or roses, or a clyster. Take the decoction of millium, myrobolans, of each two or three ounces, with an ounce or two of syrup of roses, and make a clyster. After cleansing, if it proceed from a hot cause, give syrup of dried roses, quinces, myrtles and a little sanguis draconis. Also anoint with oil of roses, myrtles, mastich, each two drachms; with oil of myrtles and wax make an ointment. Or take red roses and moulin, of each a handful; cypress roots two drachms; make a bag, boil it in red wine and apply it to the belly. Or use the plaster bread or stomach ointment. If the cause be cold, and the excrements white give syrup of mastich and quinces, with mint-water. Use outwardly, mint, mastich, cummin; or take rose seeds, an ounce, cummin, aniseed, each two drachms; with oil of mastich, wormwood and wax, make an ointment.

Cure. The treatment here mainly concerns the nurse, and it's important to keep an eye on the condition of the milk; the nurse should avoid eating any green fruits or hard-to-digest foods. If the baby isn't nursing, address the issue with gentle laxatives that have a cooling effect, such as syrup of honey or roses, or a cleansing enema. Prepare a mixture of millet decoction and myrobalans, about two or three ounces each, with one or two ounces of syrup of roses, and use that for the enema. After cleansing, if the problem is caused by heat, give syrup made from dried roses, quinces, myrtles, and a little dragon's blood. You can also apply an oil made from two drachms each of oil of roses, myrtles, and mastic, combined with oil of myrtles and wax to create an ointment. Alternatively, take a handful of red roses and mullein, and two drachms of cypress roots; place them in a cloth bag, boil it in red wine, and apply this to the abdomen. A plaster made from bread or a stomach ointment can also be used. If the issue is cold and the stool is white, give syrup made from mastic and quinces, along with mint water. For external treatment, use mint, mastic, and cumin; or mix one ounce of rose seeds with two drachms each of cumin and aniseed, and create an ointment with oil of mastic, wormwood, and wax.


SECT. X.—Of the Epilepsy and Convulsions in Children.

This is a distemper that is often fatal to young children, and frequently proceeds from the brain, originating either from the parents, or from vapours, or bad humours that twitch the membranes of the brain; it is also sometimes caused by other distempers and by bad diet; likewise, the toothache, when the brain consents, causes it, and so does a sudden fright. As to the distemper itself, it is manifest and well enough known where it is; and as to the cause whence it comes, you may know by the signs of the disease, whether it comes from bad milk, or worms, or teeth; if these are all absent, it is certain that the brain is first affected; if it come with the small-pox or measles, it ceaseth when they come forth, if nature be strong enough.

This is an illness that can often be deadly for young children and usually starts in the brain, stemming either from the parents, environmental factors, or unhealthy conditions that irritate the brain's membranes. It can also be triggered by other illnesses or poor nutrition; additionally, toothaches can contribute if they affect the brain, and so can a sudden scare. As for the illness itself, it is evident and well-known in its appearance; regarding its origin, you can tell from the signs of the disease whether it stems from spoiled milk, worms, or teeth issues. If none of these are present, it’s clear that the brain is primarily affected. If it occurs alongside smallpox or measles, it will subside when those diseases emerge, provided the body's defenses are strong enough.

Cure. For the remedy of this grievous, and often mortal distemper, give the following powder to prevent it, to a child as soon as it is born:—Take male peony roots, gathered in the decrease of the moon, a scruple; with leaf gold make a powder; or take peony roots, a drachm; peony seeds, mistletoe of the oak, elk's hoof, man's skull, amber, each a scruple; musk, two grains; make a powder. The best part of the cure is taking care of the nurse's diet, which must be regular, by all means. If it be from corrupt milk, provoke a vomit; to do which, hold down the tongue, and put a quill dipped in sweet almonds, down the throat. If it come from the worms, give such things as will kill the worms. If there be a fever, with respect to that also, give coral smaragad and elk's hoof. In the fit, give epileptic water, as lavender water, and rub with oil of amber, or hang a peony root, and elk's hoof smaragad, about the child's neck.

Cure. To treat this serious and often deadly condition, give the following powder to a child as soon as they are born:—Take male peony roots, collected during the waning of the moon, a scruple; mix with gold leaf to make a powder; or take peony roots, a drachm; peony seeds, oak mistletoe, elk's hoof, human skull, amber, each a scruple; musk, two grains; mix these into a powder. The most important part of the treatment is ensuring the nurse’s diet is regular at all times. If the issue is due to spoiled milk, induce vomiting; to do this, hold down the tongue and insert a quill dipped in sweet almonds down the throat. If it’s caused by worms, give remedies that will eliminate the worms. If there’s a fever, also give coral, emerald, and elk's hoof. During a seizure, administer epileptic water, such as lavender water, and rub the child with amber oil, or hang a peony root and elk's hoof emerald around the child's neck.

As to a convulsion, it is when the brain labours to cast out that which troubles it; the mariner is in the marrow of the back, and fountain of the nerves; it is a stubborn disease, and often kills.

As for a convulsion, it's when the brain struggles to get rid of whatever is troubling it; the sailor is deeply embedded in the spinal cord, and is the source of the nerves; it's a tough disease, and often leads to death.

Wash the body, when in the fit, with decoction of althoea, lily roots, peony and camomile flowerets, and anoint it with man's and goose's grease, oils of worms, orris, lilies, foxes, turpentine, mastich, storax and calamint. The sun flower is also very good, boiled in water, to wash the child.

Wash the body, when in the fit, with a mixture of marshmallow root, lily roots, peony, and chamomile flowers, and then rub it with men’s and goose fat, oils from worms, orris, lilies, foxes, turpentine, mastic, storax, and calamint. The sunflower is also very effective, boiled in water, for washing the child.


FOOTNOTES:

FOOTNOTES:

Tent (surgical). A bunch of some fibre such as sponge or horsehair introduced into an opening, natural or artificial, to keep it open, or increase its calibre.

Tent (surgical). A collection of fibers like sponge or horsehair inserted into an opening, whether natural or artificial, to keep it open or enlarge its size.


PROPER AND SAFE REMEDIES
FOR
CURING ALL THOSE DISTEMPERS
THAT ARE PECULIAR
TO THE FEMALE SEX
AND ESPECIALLY THOSE OBSERVATIONS
TO BEARING OF CHILDREN


BOOK II


Having finished the first part of this book, and wherein, I hope, amply made good my promise to the reader, I am now come to treat only of those distempers to which they are more subject when in a breeding condition, and those that keep them from being so; together with such proper and safe remedies as may be sufficient to repel them. And since amongst all the diseases to which human nature is subject, there is none that more diametrically opposes the very end of our creation, and the design of nature in the formation of different sexes, and the power thereby given us for the work of generation, than that of sterility or barrenness which, where it prevails, renders the most accomplished midwife but a useless person, and destroys the design of our book; I think, therefore, that barrenness is an effect that deserves our first and principal consideration.

Having finished the first part of this book, and where I hope I've clearly kept my promise to the reader, I am now going to discuss the issues people face more often when they are in a breeding condition, and those that prevent them from doing so; along with proper and safe remedies that may be enough to eliminate them. Among all the diseases that affect human nature, none more directly contradicts the very purpose of our creation and the natural design in the formation of different sexes, and the power given to us for the process of reproduction, than sterility or barrenness. When this condition prevails, the most skilled midwife becomes useless, and it undermines the purpose of our book; therefore, I believe that barrenness is an issue that deserves our first and foremost attention.


CHAPTER I

Of Barrenness; its several Kinds; with the proper Remedies for it; and the Signs of Insufficiency both in Men and Women.

Of Barrenness; its various Types; with the appropriate Remedies for it; and the Signs of Insufficiency in both Men and Women.


SECTION I.—Of Barrenness in General.

Barrenness is either natural or artificial.

Barrenness can be either natural or man-made.

Natural barrenness is when a woman is barren, though the instruments of generation are perfect both in herself and in her husband, and no preposterous or diabolical course used to it, and neither age, nor disease, nor any defect hindering, and yet the woman remains naturally barren.

Natural barrenness is when a woman cannot conceive, even though both she and her husband are perfectly capable of reproduction, and there are no strange or harmful methods involved, and there are no issues like age, illness, or any defects preventing conception, yet the woman remains naturally unable to bear children.

Now this may proceed from a natural cause, for if the man and woman be of one complexion, they seldom have children, and the reason is clear, for the universal course of nature being formed of a composition of contraries, cannot be increased by a composition of likes; and, therefore, if the constitution of the woman be hot and dry, as well as the man's there can be no conception; and if, on the contrary, the man should be of a cold and moist constitution, as well as the woman, the effect would be the same; and this barrenness is purely natural. The only way to help this is, for people, before they marry, to observe each others constitution and complexion, if they design to have children. If their complexions and constitutions be alike, they are not fit to come together, for discordant natures only, make harmony in the work of generation.

Now, this might come from a natural cause. If a man and woman have the same temperament, they rarely have children, and the reason is clear: the natural order of the world is built on a balance of opposites, which cannot be enhanced by similarity. Therefore, if both the man and the woman have a hot and dry constitution, conception cannot occur; likewise, if both have a cold and moist constitution, the result would be the same. This inability to conceive is purely natural. The only way to address this is for couples to observe each other's temperaments and characteristics before getting married, especially if they want to have children. If their traits and temperaments are alike, they are not suited for each other, as only conflicting natures can create harmony in the process of reproduction.

Another natural cause of barrenness, is want of love between man and wife. Love is that vivid principle that ought to inspire each organ in the act of generation, or else it will be spiritless and dull; for if their hearts be not united in love, how should their seed unite to cause Conception? And this is sufficiently evinced, in that there never follows conception on a rape. Therefore, if men and women design to have children, let them live so, that their hearts as well as their bodies may be united, or else they may miss their expectations.

Another natural cause of infertility is the lack of love between partners. Love is the vital force that should ignite every part of the body during reproduction; otherwise, the process will lack energy and passion. If their hearts aren't connected through love, how can their bodies come together to create conception? This is clearly demonstrated by the fact that conception never follows an act of rape. Therefore, if couples want to have children, they should live in a way that unites their hearts as well as their bodies, or they might not achieve their goals.

A third cause of natural barrenness, is the letting virgins blood in the arm before their natural courses are come down, which is usually in the fourteenth and fifteenth year of their age; sometimes, perhaps before the thirteenth, but never before the twelfth. And because usually, they are out of order, and indisposed before their purgations come down, their parents run to the doctor to know what is the matter; and he, if not skilled, will naturally prescribe opening a vein in the arm, thinking fullness of blood the cause; and thus she seems recovered for the present: and when the young virgin happens to be in the same disorder, the mother applies again to the surgeon, who uses the same remedy; and by these means the blood is so diverted from its proper channel, that it comes not down the womb as usual, and so the womb dries up, and she is for ever barren. To prevent this, let no virgin blood in the arm before her courses come down well; for that will bring the blood downwards, and by that means provoke the menstrua to come down.

A third reason for natural infertility is the practice of letting a virgin's blood from her arm before her menstrual cycle starts, which typically happens in her fourteenth or fifteenth year; sometimes even before the thirteenth, but never before the twelfth. Since they often feel unwell before their periods start, their parents rush to the doctor to find out what's wrong. If the doctor is inexperienced, he might suggest bloodletting, thinking that having too much blood is the issue. This might seem to help temporarily. When the young girl experiences the same problem later, her mother goes back to the surgeon, who uses the same treatment again. As a result, the blood is diverted from its normal process, preventing it from flowing to the womb as it usually would, causing the womb to dry up, and leading to permanent infertility. To avoid this, no virgin should have her blood let from her arm before her period properly begins; doing so will help encourage the menstrual flow.

Another cause of natural barrenness, is debility in copulation. If persons perform not that act with all the bent and ardour that nature requires, they may as well let it alone; for frigidity and coldness never produces conception. Of the cure of this we will speak by and by, after I have spoken of accidental barrenness, which is occasioned by some morbific matter or infirmity in the body, either of the man or of the woman, which being removed they become fruitful. And since, as I have before noted, the first and great law of creation, was to increase and multiply, and barrenness is in direct opposition to that law, and frustrates the end of our creation, and often causes man and wife to have hard thoughts one of another, I shall here, for the satisfaction of well meaning people, set down the signs and causes of insufficiency both in men and women; premising first that when people have no children, they must not presently blame either party, for neither may be in fault.

Another reason for natural infertility is weakness during intercourse. If people don't engage in that act with the energy and passion that nature requires, they might as well skip it altogether; because coldness and lack of desire never lead to conception. We'll discuss the cure for this later, after addressing accidental infertility, which is caused by some harmful matter or illness in the body, either of the man or the woman. Once that is resolved, they can become fertile again. And since, as I've mentioned before, the primary and fundamental law of creation is to increase and multiply, and infertility goes against that law, hindering our purpose for existence and often leading to resentment between spouses, I will outline the signs and causes of inadequacy in both men and women. I want to clarify first that when couples don't have children, they shouldn't immediately blame each other, as neither may necessarily be at fault.


SECT. II.—Signs and Causes of Insufficiency in Men.

One cause may be in some viciousness of the yard, as if the same be crooked, or any ligaments thereof distorted and broken, whereby the ways and passages, through which the seed should flow, come to be stopped or vitiated.

One reason might be the corruption in the yard, as if it is twisted, or any of its connections are warped and broken, which causes the paths and passages, through which the seed should travel, to become blocked or damaged.

Another cause may be, too much weakness of the yard, and tenderness thereof, so that it is not strong enough erected to inject seed into the womb; for the strength and stiffness of the yard very much conduces to conception, by reason of the forcible injection of the seed.

Another reason could be that the penis is too weak and soft, which means it isn't strong enough to penetrate and deliver sperm into the womb; because the strength and rigidity of the penis greatly aid in conception due to the forceful delivery of the sperm.

Also, if the stones have received any hurt, so that they cannot exercise the proper gift in producing seed, or if they be oppressed with an inflammation, tumour, wound or ulcer, or drawn up within the belly, and not appearing outwardly.

Also, if the stones have been damaged in a way that prevents them from functioning properly to produce seed, or if they are affected by inflammation, a tumor, a wound, or an ulcer, or if they are pulled up inside the belly and not visible from the outside.

Also, a man may be barren by reason of the defect of seed, as first, if he cast forth no seed at all, or less in substance than is needful. Or, secondly, if the seed be vicious, or unfit for generation; as on the one side, it happens in bodies that are gross and fat, the matter of it being defective; and on the other side, too much leanness, or continual wasting or consumption of the body, destroys seed; nature turning all the matter and substance thereof into the nutriment of the body.

Also, a man can be infertile due to issues with his sperm. This can happen in a couple of ways: first, if he doesn’t produce any sperm at all, or if he produces less than what is necessary. Secondly, if the sperm is abnormal or not suitable for reproduction; this can occur in cases where the body is overly heavy or fat, leading to poor quality sperm. On the other hand, if someone is too thin or is constantly losing weight, it can also harm sperm production, as the body uses all available material and energy for nourishment instead.

Too frequent copulation is also one great cause of barrenness in men; for it attracteth the seminal moisture from the stones, before it is sufficiently prepared and concocted. So if any one, by daily copulation, do exhaust and draw out all their moisture of the seed, then do the stones draw the moist humours from the superior veins unto themselves; and so, having but a little blood in them, they are forced of necessity to cast it out raw and unconcocted, and thus the stones are violently deprived of the moisture of their veins, and the superior veins, and all the other parts of the body, of their vital spirits; therefore it is no wonder that those who use immoderate copulation are very weak in their bodies, seeing their whole body is deprived of the best and purest blood, and of the spirit, insomuch that many who have been too much addicted to that pleasure, have killed themselves in the very act.

Too frequent sex is a major cause of infertility in men because it drains the seminal fluid from the testes before it has been fully prepared. If someone engages in daily sex and exhausts all their seed moisture, the testes will draw moisture from the upper veins into themselves. As a result, with only a little blood remaining, they end up expelling it raw and unrefined. This leaves the testes deprived of moisture from their veins and the upper veins, along with the rest of the body, lacking vital energy. It’s no surprise that those who engage in excessive sex tend to be very weak, as their whole body loses the best and purest blood, as well as the vital spirit. In fact, many who have been overly indulgent in that pleasure have even harmed themselves in the act.

Gluttony, drunkenness, and other excesses, do so much hinder men from fruitfulness, that it makes them unfit for generation.

Gluttony, drunkenness, and other excesses seriously hinder people from being productive, making them unfit for reproduction.

But among other causes of barrenness of men, this also is one, and makes them almost of the nature of eunuchs, and that is the incision or the cutting of the veins behind their ears, which in case of distempers is oftentimes done; for, according to the opinions of most physicians and anatomists, the seed flows from the brain by those veins behind the ears, more than any part of the body. From whence it is very probable, that the transmission of the seed is hindered by the cutting of the veins behind the ears, so that it cannot descend to the testicles, or may come thither very crude and raw.

But among other causes of male infertility, this is one as well, making them almost like eunuchs. This refers to the cutting of the veins behind their ears, which is often done in cases of illness. According to most doctors and anatomists, the reproductive fluid flows from the brain through those veins behind the ears more than any other part of the body. Therefore, it's likely that cutting these veins hinders the flow of reproductive fluid, preventing it from reaching the testicles or causing it to arrive in an unrefined state.


SECT. III.—Signs and Causes of Insufficiency or Barrenness in Women.

Although there are many causes of the barrenness of women, yet the chief and principal are internal, respecting either the privy parts, the womb or menstruous blood.

Although there are many reasons for women's infertility, the main ones are internal, relating to either the reproductive organs, the uterus, or menstrual blood.

Therefore, Hippocrates saith (speaking as well of easy as difficult conception in women) the first consideration is to be had of their species; for little women are more apt to conceive than great, slender than gross, white and fair than ruddy and high coloured, black than wan, those that have their veins conspicuous, than others; but to be very fleshy is evil, and to have great swelled breasts is good.

Therefore, Hippocrates says (talking about both easy and difficult conception in women) that the first thing to consider is their body type; smaller women are more likely to conceive than larger ones, slender women more than heavier ones, fair-skinned women more than those with ruddy complexions, and darker-skinned women more than pale ones. Women with visible veins are more favorable than those without; however, being very overweight is not ideal, while having large breasts is seen as positive.

The next thing to be considered is, the monthly purgations, whether they have been duly every month, whether they flow plentifully, are of a good colour, and whether they have been equal every month.

The next thing to consider is the monthly cycles, whether they have occurred regularly each month, whether they flow abundantly, are a healthy color, and whether they have been consistent every month.

Then the womb, or place of conception, is to be considered. It ought to be clean and sound, dry and soft, not retracted or drawn up; not prone or descending downward; nor the mouth thereof turned away, nor too close shut up. But to speak more particularly:—

Then the womb, or place of conception, should be taken into account. It should be clean and healthy, dry and soft, not retracted or pulled up; not tilted or dropping down; nor should the mouth of it be turned away, or tightly closed. But to elaborate further:—

The first parts to be spoken of are the pudenda, or privities, and the womb; which parts are shut and enclosed either by nature or against nature; and from hence, such women are called imperforate; as in some women the mouth of their womb continues compressed, or closed up, from the time of their birth until the coming down of their courses, and then, on a sudden, when their terms press forward to purgation, they are molested with great and unusual pains. Sometimes these break of their own accord, others are dissected and opened by physicians; others never break at all, which bring on disorders that end in death.

The first things to discuss are the pudenda, or private parts, and the womb; these parts are either naturally closed or somehow obstructed; hence, women with this condition are referred to as imperforate. In some women, the opening of the womb remains tight or sealed from birth until the onset of menstruation, and then, suddenly, when their period is due, they experience significant and unusual pain. Sometimes these openings rupture on their own, others are surgically opened by doctors; some never open at all, leading to complications that can result in death.

All these Aetius particularly handles, showing that the womb is shut three manner of ways, which hinders conception. And the first is when the pudenda grow and cleave together. The second is, when these certain membranes grow in the middle part of the matrix within. The third is, when (though the lips and bosom of the pudenda may appear fair and open), the mouth of the womb may be quite shut up. All which are occasions of barrenness, as they hinder the intercourse with man, the monthly courses, and conception.

All these issues are particularly addressed by Aetius, demonstrating that the womb can be closed in three different ways, which prevents conception. The first way is when the pudenda grow together and seal shut. The second is when certain membranes develop in the middle part of the uterus. The third is when, even if the lips and outer parts of the pudenda look normal and open, the opening of the womb might be completely blocked. All of these conditions can lead to infertility, as they obstruct sexual intercourse, menstrual cycles, and conception.

But amongst all causes of barrenness in women, the greatest is in the womb, which is the field of generation; and if this field is corrupt, it is in vain to expect any fruit, be it ever so well sown. It may be unfit for generation by reason of many distempers to which it is subject; as for instance, overmuch heat and overmuch cold; for women whose wombs are too thick and cold, cannot conceive, because coldness extinguishes the heat of the human seed. Immoderate moisture of the womb also destroys the seed of man, and makes it ineffectual, as corn sown in ponds and marshes; and so does overmuch dryness of the womb, so that the seed perisheth for want of nutriment. Immoderate heat of the womb is also a cause of barrenness for it scorcheth up the seed as corn sown in the drought of summer; for immoderate heat burns all parts of the body, so that no conception can live in the womb.

But among all the reasons for infertility in women, the main issue lies within the womb, which is essential for reproduction; if this area is unhealthy, it’s pointless to expect any results, no matter how well everything is set up. The womb can become unsuitable for conception due to various conditions, such as excessive heat or cold. Women with wombs that are overly thick and cold cannot conceive because the coldness cools down the warmth of the male seed. Excessive moisture in the womb also undermines the male seed, making it ineffective, much like seeds planted in ponds and swamps; similarly, too much dryness can prevent the seed from thriving due to a lack of nourishment. Moreover, excessive heat in the womb leads to infertility, as it scorches the seed like grains sown in the summer drought; excessive heat damages all parts of the body, rendering it impossible for any conception to survive in the womb.

When unnatural humours are engendered, as too much phlegm, tympanies, wind, water, worms, or any other evil humour abounding contrary to nature, it causes barrenness as do all terms not coming down in due order.

When unnatural fluids are produced, like excess phlegm, bloating, gas, water retention, worms, or any other harmful fluid that goes against nature, it leads to infertility just like all conditions that aren’t resolved properly.

A woman may also have accidental causes of barrenness (at least such as may hinder her conception), as sudden frights, anger, grief and perturbation of mind; too violent exercises, as leaping, dancing, running, after copulation, and the like. But I will now add some signs, by which these things may be known.

A woman can also experience unintentional reasons for infertility (at least those that can prevent her from conceiving), such as sudden scares, anger, sadness, and mental stress; also, too much physical activity like jumping, dancing, and running after intercourse, and so on. Now, I will mention some signs that can help identify these issues.

If the cause of barrenness be in the man, through overmuch heat in the seed, the woman may easily feel that in receiving it.

If the reason for infertility is with the man, due to excessive heat in the sperm, the woman can easily sense that when she receives it.

If the nature of the woman be too hot, and so unfit for conception, it will appear by her having her terms very little, and the colour inclining to yellowness; she is also very hasty, choleric and crafty; her pulse beats very swift, and she is very desirous of copulation.

If a woman's nature is too hot and therefore unsuitable for conception, it will show through infrequent periods and a yellowish color. She will also be very quick-tempered, irritable, and cunning; her pulse will be fast, and she will have a strong desire for sexual activity.

To know whether the fault is in the man or in the woman, sprinkle the man's urine upon a lettuce leaf, and the woman's urine upon another, and that which dries away first is unfruitful. Also take five wheaten corns and seven beans, put them into an earthen pot, and let the party make water therein; let this stand seven days, and if in that time they begin to sprout, then the party is fruitful; but if they sprout not, then the party is barren, whether it be the man or the woman; this is a certain sign.

To determine if the issue lies with the man or the woman, sprinkle the man's urine on a lettuce leaf and the woman's urine on another. The one that dries up first indicates unfruitfulness. Also, take five wheat kernels and seven beans, place them in an earthen pot, and let the person urinate in it. Leave this for seven days, and if they start to sprout during that time, then that person is fertile; but if they do not sprout, then that person is barren, regardless of whether it’s the man or the woman; this is a definite sign.

There are some that make this experiment of a woman's fruitfulness; take myrrh, red storax and some odoriferous things, and make a perfume of which let the woman receive into the neck of the womb through a funnel; if the woman feels the smoke ascend through her body to the nose, then she is fruitful; otherwise she is barren. Some also take garlic and beer, and cause the woman to lie upon her back upon it, and if she feel the scent thereof in her nose, it is a sign of her being fruitful.

There are those who conduct this experiment concerning a woman's ability to conceive; they take myrrh, red storax, and other fragrant substances to create a perfume that the woman should take in through a funnel into the neck of her womb. If she senses the smoke rising through her body to her nose, then she is fertile; if not, she is barren. Some also use garlic and beer, having the woman lie on her back on it, and if she perceives the smell in her nose, it is a sign that she is fertile.

Culpepper and others also give a great deal of credit to the following experiment. Take a handful of barley, and steep half of it in the urine of a man, and the other half in the urine of the woman, for the space of twenty-four hours; then take it out, and put the man's by itself, and the woman's by itself; set it in a flower-pot, or some other thing, where let it dry; water the man's every morning with his own urine, and the woman's with hers, and that which grows first is the most fruitful; but if they grow not at all, they are both naturally barren.

Culpepper and others also give a lot of credit to the following experiment. Take a handful of barley and soak half of it in a man’s urine and the other half in a woman’s urine for twenty-four hours. After that, take them out and keep the man’s urine barley separate from the woman’s. Place them in a flowerpot or something similar to let them dry. Water the man’s barley every morning with his own urine and the woman’s with hers. The one that grows first is the most fruitful; but if neither grows at all, then both are naturally barren.

Cure. If the barrenness proceeds from stoppage of the menstrua, let the woman sweat, for that opens the parts; and the best way to sweat is in a hot-house. Then let the womb be strengthened by drinking a draught of white wine, wherein a handful of stinking arrach, first bruised, has been boiled, for by a secret magnetic virtue, it strengthens the womb, and by a sympathetic quality, removes any disease thereof. To which add also a handful of vervain, which is very good to strengthen both the womb and the head, which are commonly afflicted together by sympathy. Having used these two or three days, if they come not down, take of calamint, pennyroyal, thyme, betony, dittany, burnet, feverfew, mugwort, sage, peony roots, juniper berries, half a handful of each, or as many as can be got; let these be boiled in beer, and taken for her drink.

Cure. If the infertility is due to a blockage in menstruation, the woman should sweat, as this helps to open up the body. The best way to induce sweating is in a hot room. Afterward, the womb can be strengthened by drinking a mixture of white wine boiled with a handful of crushed stinking arrach, as it has a unique property that helps strengthen the womb and alleviates any related issues. Also, include a handful of vervain, which is excellent for strengthening both the womb and the head, since they are often affected together. After using these remedies for two or three days, if menstruation hasn’t started, take half a handful each of calamint, pennyroyal, thyme, betony, dittany, burnet, feverfew, mugwort, sage, peony roots, and juniper berries—use as many as are available. Boil these in beer and have her drink it.

Take one part of gentian-root, two parts of centaury, distil them with ale in an alembic after you have bruised the gentian-roots and infused them well. This water is an admirable remedy to provoke the terms. But if you have not this water in readiness, take a drachm of centaury, and half a drachm of gentian-roots bruised, boiled in posset drink, and drink half a drachm of it at night going to bed. Seed of wild navew beaten to powder, and a drachm of it taken in the morning in white wine, also is very good; but if it answers not, she must be let blood in the legs. And be sure you administer your medicines a little before the full of the moon, by no means in the wane of the moon; if you do, you will find them ineffectual.

Take one part of gentian root and two parts of centaury, and distill them with ale in an alembic after bruising the gentian roots and infusing them thoroughly. This water is an excellent remedy to stimulate menstruation. However, if you don’t have this water ready, take a drachm of centaury and half a drachm of bruised gentian roots, boil them in posset drink, and consume half a drachm of it at night before bed. Beaten wild navew seeds taken in powdered form, and a drachm of it mixed with white wine in the morning, is also very effective; but if it doesn’t work, she should have blood drawn from her legs. Make sure to administer the medicines shortly before the full moon, and definitely not during the waning moon; otherwise, you will find them ineffective.

If barrenness proceed from the overflowing of the menstrua, then strengthen the womb as you were taught before; afterwards anoint the veins of the back with oil of roses, oil of myrtle and oil of quinces every night, and then wrap a piece of white baise about your veins, the cotton side next to the skin and keep the same always to it. But above all, I recommend this medicine to you. Take comfrey-leaves or roots, and clown woundwort, of each a handful; bruise them well, and boil them in ale, and drink a good draught of it now and then. Or take cinnamon, cassia lignea, opium, of each two drachms; myrrh, white pepper, galbanum, of each one drachm; dissolve the gum and opium in white wine; beat the rest into powder and make pills, mixing them together exactly, and let the patient take two each night going to bed; but let the pills not exceed fifteen grains.

If infertility is caused by heavy menstrual flow, then strengthen the womb as you were taught before; after that, apply oil of roses, oil of myrtle, and oil of quinces to the veins of your back every night, and then wrap a piece of white cloth around your veins, with the cotton side against your skin, and keep it there at all times. But above all, I recommend this remedy to you. Take a handful of comfrey leaves or roots and a handful of woundwort; crush them well and boil them in ale, then drink a good amount of it from time to time. Alternatively, take two drachms of cinnamon, cassia, and opium; one drachm of myrrh, white pepper, and galbanum; dissolve the gum and opium in white wine; grind the rest into powder and make pills, mixing them together thoroughly, and let the patient take two each night before bed; but make sure the pills do not exceed fifteen grains.

If barrenness proceed from a flux in the womb, the cure must be according to the cause producing it, or which the flux proceeds from, which may be known by signs; for a flux of the womb, being a continual distillation from it for a long time together, the colour of what is voided shows what humour it is that offends; in some it is red, and that proceeds from blood putrified, in some it is yellow, and that denotes choler; in others white and pale, and denotes phlegm. If pure blood comes out, as if a vein were opened, some corrosion or gnawing of the womb is to be feared. All these are known by the following signs:

If infertility is caused by a discharge from the womb, the treatment needs to be based on the underlying cause, which can be identified through certain signs. A discharge from the womb is a constant flow over an extended period, and the color of what is expelled indicates the type of humor that is causing the issue. In some cases, it appears red, which indicates putrid blood; in others, it is yellow, indicating bile; and in some, it is white or pale, indicating phlegm. If pure blood is expelled, as if a vein has been cut, there may be concern about some erosion or damage to the womb. All of these conditions can be identified by the following signs:

The place of conception is continually moist with the humours, the face ill-coloured, the party loathes meat and breathes with difficulty, the eyes are much swollen, which is sometimes without pain. If the offending humour be pure blood, then you must let blood in the arm, and the cephalic vein is fittest to draw back the blood; then let the juice of plantain and comfrey be injected into the womb. If phlegm be a cause, let cinnamon be a spice used in all her meats and drinks, and let her take a little Venice treacle or mithridate every morning. Let her boil burnet, mugwort, feverfew and vervain in all her broths. Also, half a drachm of myrrh, taken every morning, is an excellent remedy against this malady. If choler be the cause, let her take burrage, buglos, red roses, endive and succory roots, lettuce and white poppy-seed, of each a handful; boil these in white wine until one half be wasted; let her drink half a pint every morning to which half pint add syrup of chicory and syrup of peach-flowers, of each an ounce, with a little rhubarb, and this will gently purge her. If it proceed from putrified blood, let her be bled in the foot, and then strengthen the womb, as I have directed in stopping the menstrua.

The area of conception is always damp with fluids. The face is discolored, the person has an aversion to food and struggles to breathe, and their eyes are swollen, which can sometimes be painless. If the problem is caused by pure blood, then you should draw blood from the arm, ideally from the cephalic vein. After that, inject juice from plantain and comfrey into the uterus. If phlegm is the issue, use cinnamon as a spice in all her meals and drinks, and have her take a little Venice treacle or mithridate every morning. She should boil burnet, mugwort, feverfew, and vervain in all her soups. Additionally, taking half a drachm of myrrh every morning is a great remedy for this condition. If it's caused by yellow bile, she should take borage, bugloss, red roses, endive, and succory roots, along with lettuce and white poppy seeds, one handful of each; boil these in white wine until half the liquid evaporates. She should drink half a pint every morning and add to it an ounce each of chicory syrup and peach-flower syrup, along with a little rhubarb to gently purge her. If the issue arises from putrefied blood, she should be bled in the foot, and then the womb should be strengthened as previously advised for stopping menstruation.

If barrenness be occasioned by the falling out of the womb, as sometimes it happens, let her apply sweet scents to the nose, such as civet, galbanum, storax, calamitis, wood of aloes; and such other things as are of that nature; and let her lay stinking things to the womb, such as asafoetida, oil of amber, or the smoke of her own hair, being burnt; for this is a certain truth, that the womb flies from all stinking, and to all sweet things. But the most infallible cure in this case is; take a common burdock leaf (which you may keep dry, if you please, all the year), apply this to her head and it will draw the womb upwards. In fits of the mother, apply it to the soles of the feet, and it will draw the womb downwards. But seed beaten into a powder, draws the womb which way you please, accordingly as it is applied.

If infertility is caused by the womb falling out, which can happen sometimes, she should use pleasant scents for her nose, like civet, galbanum, storax, calamitis, and aloe wood, along with other similar items. At the same time, she should place foul-smelling substances near the womb, such as asafoetida, amber oil, or the smoke from burning her own hair; since it’s a known fact that the womb repels all bad odors and is drawn to sweet ones. However, the most reliable remedy in this situation is to take a common burdock leaf (which you can keep dry all year if you want) and apply it to her head to help draw the womb upwards. If there are issues related to the mother's condition, apply it to the soles of her feet to help draw the womb downwards. Additionally, powdered seed can direct the womb in whichever direction you need, depending on how it’s applied.

If barrenness in the woman proceed from a hot cause, let her take whey and clarify it; then boil plantain leaves and roots in it, and drink it for her ordinary drink. Let her inject plantain juice into her womb with a syringe. If it be in the winter, when you cannot get the juice, make a strong decoction of the leaves and roots in water, and inject that up with a syringe, but let it be blood warm, and you will find this medicine of great efficacy. And further, to take away barrenness proceeding from hot causes, take of conserve of roses, cold lozenges, make a tragacanth, the confections of trincatelia; and use, to smell to, camphor, rosewater and saunders. It is also good to bleed the basilica or liver vein, and take four or five ounces of blood, and then take this purge; take electuarium de epithymo de succo rosarum, of each two drachms and a half; clarified whey, four ounces; mix them well together, and take it in the morning fasting; sleep after it about an hour and a half, and fast for four hours after; and about an hour before you eat anything, drink a good draught of whey. Also take lilywater, four ounces; mandragore water, one ounce; saffron, half a scruple; beat the saffron to a powder, and mix it with waters, drink them warm in the morning; use these eight days together.

If a woman's infertility is due to a hot cause, she should consume clarified whey, then boil plantain leaves and roots in it, and drink this as her regular beverage. She should inject plantain juice into her uterus with a syringe. If it's winter and the juice isn't available, make a strong decoction of the leaves and roots in water, and use that for the injection, ensuring it is blood warm; this treatment is very effective. Additionally, to address infertility from hot causes, take rose conserve, cold lozenges, make tragacanth, and prepare trincatelia confections; for scent, use camphor, rosewater, and sandalwood. It's also advisable to bleed the basilic or liver vein, taking four or five ounces of blood. Then, take this purge: mix two and a half drachms each of electuary of epithymum and rose juice, with four ounces of clarified whey. Mix well and take it in the morning on an empty stomach; rest for about an hour and a half afterward and fast for four hours. About an hour before eating anything, drink a good amount of whey. Additionally, take four ounces of lily water, one ounce of mandrake water, and half a scruple of saffron. Grind the saffron into a powder and mix it with the waters, then drink the mixture warm each morning for eight days.

Some apparent Remedy against Barrenness and to cause Fruitfulness.

Take broom flowers, smallage, parsley seed, cummin, mugwort, feverfew, of each half a scruple; aloes, half an ounce; Indian salt, saffron, of each half a drachm; beat and mix them together, and put it to five ounces of feverfew water warm; stop it up, and let it stand and dry in a warm place, and this do, two or three times, one after the other; then make each drachm into six pills, and take one of them every night before supper.

Take broom flowers, smallage, parsley seeds, cumin, mugwort, and feverfew, half a scruple each; aloes, half an ounce; Indian salt and saffron, half a drachm each; grind and mix them together, then add it to five ounces of warm feverfew water; seal it up and let it sit and dry in a warm place, repeating this two or three times in a row; then form each drachm into six pills and take one every night before dinner.

For a purging medicine against barrenness, take conserve of benedicta lax, a quarter of an ounce; depsillo three drachms, electuary de rosarum, one drachm; mix them together with feverfew water, and drink it in the morning betimes. About three days after the patient hath taken this purge, let her be bled, taking four or five ounces from the median, or common black vein in the foot; and then give for five successive days, filed ivory, a drachm and a half, in feverfew water; and during the time let her sit in the following bath an hour together, morning and night. Take mild yellow sapes, daucas, balsam wood and fruit, ash-keys, of each two handfuls, red and white behen, broom flowers, of each a handful; musk, three grains; amber, saffron, of each a scruple; boiled in water sufficiently; but the musk, saffron, amber and broom flowers must be put into the decoction, after it is boiled and strained.

For a cleansing remedy to address infertility, take a quarter ounce of the conserve of benedicta lax; three drachms of depsillo; and one drachm of the electuary de ro sarum; mix them together with feverfew water and drink it early in the morning. About three days after the patient has taken this purge, she should have her blood drawn, taking four or five ounces from the median or the common black vein in the foot; then for five consecutive days, give her a drachm and a half of filed ivory in feverfew water; and during this time, she should sit in the following bath for an hour each morning and night. Take mild yellow sapes, daucas, balsam wood and fruit, and ash-keys, two handfuls each; red and white behen and broom flowers, one handful each; three grains of musk; a scruple each of amber and saffron; boil these in enough water; but the musk, saffron, amber, and broom flowers need to be added to the decoction after it has boiled and been strained.

A Confection very good against Barrenness.

Take pistachia, eringoes, of each half an ounce; saffron, one drachm; lignum aloes, galengal, mace, coriophilla, balm flowers, red and white behen, of each four scruples; syrup of confected ginger, twelve ounces; white sugar, six ounces, decoct all these in twelve ounces of balm water, and stir them well together; then put in it musk and amber, of each a scruple; take thereof the quantity of a nutmeg three times a day; in the morning, an hour before noon and an hour after supper.

Take half an ounce each of pistachio and eringoes; one drachm of saffron; four scruples each of lignum aloes, galangal, mace, coriander, balm flowers, red behen, and white behen; twelve ounces of syrup of candied ginger; and six ounces of white sugar. Boil all these together in twelve ounces of balm water, stirring them well. Then add one scruple each of musk and amber. Take a quantity the size of a nutmeg three times a day: in the morning, an hour before noon, and an hour after supper.

But if the cause of barrenness, either in man or woman, be through scarcity or diminution of the natural seed, then such things are to be taken as do increase the seed, and incite to stir up to venery, and further conception; which I shall here set down, and then conclude the chapter concerning barrenness.

But if the reason for infertility, in either a man or a woman, is due to a lack or reduction of natural seed, then things that enhance the seed and stimulate sexual desire, as well as promote conception, should be considered. I will list these here and then wrap up the chapter on infertility.

For this, yellow rape seed baked in bread is very good; also young, fat flesh, not too much salted; also saffron, the tails of stincus, and long pepper prepared in wine. But let such persons eschew all sour, sharp, doughy and slimy meats, long sleep after meat, surfeiting and drunkenness, and so much as they can, keep themselves from sorrow, grief, vexation and anxious care.

For this, yellow rapeseed baked into bread is great; also young, fatty meat that isn't overly salted; also saffron, the tails of stincus, and long pepper cooked in wine. But those individuals should avoid all sour, sharp, doughy, and slimy foods, long sleeping after meals, overeating, drunkenness, and, as much as possible, keep themselves away from sadness, grief, irritation, and worry.

These things following increase the natural seed, stir up the venery and recover the seed again when it is lost, viz., eggs, milk, rice, boiled in milk, sparrows' brains, flesh, bones and all; the stones and pizzles of bulls, bucks, rams and bears, also cocks' stones, lambs' stones, partridges', quails' and pheasants' eggs. And this is an undeniable aphorism, that whatever any creature is addicted unto, they move or incite the man or the woman that eats them, to the like, and therefore partridges, quails, sparrows, etc., being extremely addicted to venery, they work the same effect on those men and women that eat them. Also, take notice, that in what part of the body the faculty that you would strengthen, lies, take that same part of the body of another creature, in whom the faculty is strong, as a medicine. As for instance, the procreative faculty lies in the testicles; therefore, cocks' stones, lambs' stones, etc., are proper to stir up venery. I will also give you another general rule; all creatures that are fruitful being eaten, make them fruitful that eat them, as crabs, lobsters, prawns, pigeons, etc. The stones of a fox, dried and beaten to a powder, and a drachm taken in the morning in sheep's milk, and the stones of a boar taken in like manner, are very good. The heart of a male quail carried about a man, and the heart of a female quail carried about a woman, causes natural love and fruitfulness. Let them, also, that would increase their seed, eat and drink of the best, as much as they can; for sine Cerere el Libero, friget Venus, is an old proverb, which is, "without good meat and drink, Venus will be frozen to death."

These following things boost natural fertility, stimulate desire, and help recover lost vitality: eggs, milk, rice boiled in milk, sparrow brains, meat, bones, and everything; the stones and genitals of bulls, bucks, rams, and bears, as well as rooster testicles, lamb testicles, and the eggs of partridges, quails, and pheasants. It’s a well-known saying that whatever a creature is inclined to, it influences the man or woman who consumes them to feel the same way. For instance, since partridges, quails, sparrows, etc., are highly driven by desire, they have the same effect on those who eat them. Also, pay attention to the part of the body you want to strengthen; consume that same body part from another creature that has a strong faculty in that area as a remedy. For example, since the reproductive faculty is in the testicles, rooster testicles, lamb testicles, etc., are effective for stimulating desire. I’ll give you another general rule: eating fertile creatures makes you fertile too, like crabs, lobsters, prawns, pigeons, etc. The stones of a fox, dried and ground into powder, taken in the morning with sheep's milk, and the stones of a boar consumed the same way, are very beneficial. The heart of a male quail kept on a man, and the heart of a female quail kept on a woman, promote natural love and fertility. Those who want to boost their vitality should eat and drink the best they can; because sine Cerere el Libero, friget Venus, is an old proverb meaning, "without good food and drink, love will die."

Pottages are good to increase the seed; such as are made of beans, peas, and lupins, mixed with sugar. French beans, wheat sodden in broth, aniseed, also onions, stewed garlic, leeks, yellow rapes, fresh mugwort roots, eringo roots confected, ginger connected, etc. Of fruits, hazel nuts, cyprus nuts, pistachio, almonds and marchpanes thereof. Spices good to increase seed are cinnamon, galengal, long pepper, cloves, ginger, saffron and asafoetida, a drachm and a half taken in good wine, is very good for this purpose.

Pottages are great for boosting fertility; for example, those made from beans, peas, and lupins, combined with sugar. French beans, wheat cooked in broth, aniseed, onions, stewed garlic, leeks, yellow rapes, fresh mugwort roots, and candied eringo roots, along with ginger, etc. As for fruits, hazelnuts, cypress nuts, pistachios, almonds, and marzipan. The spices that are good for enhancing fertility include cinnamon, galangal, long pepper, cloves, ginger, saffron, and asafoetida. A dose of one and a half drachms taken in quality wine is very beneficial for this purpose.

The weakness and debility of a man's yard, being a great hindrance to procreation let him use the following ointment to strengthen it: Take wax, oil of beaver-cod, marjoram, gentle and oil of costus, of each a like quantity, mix them into an ointment, and put it to a little musk, and with it anoint the yard, cods, etc. Take of house emmets, three drachms, oil of white safannum, oil of lilies, of each an ounce; pound and bruise the ants, and put them to the oil and let them stand in the sun six days; then strain out the oil and add to it euphorbium one scruple, pepper and rue, of each one drachm, mustard seed half a drachm, set this altogether in the sun two or three days, then anoint the instrument of generation therewith.

The weakness and frailty of a man's private parts can be a major barrier to reproduction. He should use the following ointment to strengthen it: Take wax, beaver oil, marjoram, gentian, and costus oil, all in equal amounts. Mix these into an ointment and add a little musk to it. Use this to anoint the private parts and testicles. Take three drachms of house ants, and one ounce each of white saffron oil and lily oil. Crush the ants and mix them with the oil, then let it sit in the sun for six days. Afterward, strain the oil and add one scruple of euphorbium, along with one drachm each of pepper and rue, and half a drachm of mustard seed. Leave this mixture in the sun for two or three days, then use it to anoint the genitals.


CHAPTER II

The Diseases of the Womb.

The Womb's Diseases.


I have already said, that the womb is the field of generation; and if this field be corrupted, it is vain to expect any fruit, although it be ever so well sown. It is, therefore, not without reason that I intend in this chapter to set down the several distempers to which the womb is obnoxious, with proper and safe remedies against them.

I’ve already mentioned that the womb is the place where life begins; if this place is unhealthy, it’s pointless to expect any results, no matter how well it’s nurtured. So, in this chapter, I will outline the various issues that can affect the womb and what safe remedies can help address them.


SECTION I.—Of the Hot Distemper of the Womb.

The distemper consists in excess of heat; for as heat of the womb is necessary for conception, so if it be too much, it nourisheth not the seed, but it disperseth its heat, and hinders the conception. This preternatural heat is sometimes from the birth, and causeth barrenness, but if it be accidental, it is from hot causes, that bring the heat and the blood to the womb; it arises also from internal and external medicines, and from too much hot meat, drink and exercise. Those that are troubled with this distemper have but few courses, and those are yellow, black, burnt or sharp, have hair betimes on their privities, are very prone to lust, subject to headache, and abound with choler, and when the distemper is strong upon them, they have but few terms, which are out of order, being bad and hard to flow, and in time they become hypochondriacal, and for the most part barren, having sometimes a phrenzy of the womb.

The illness is caused by excessive heat; just as the heat of the womb is essential for conception, too much heat actually harms the seed, spreading its heat and preventing conception. This unnatural heat can be present from birth and can lead to infertility, but if it develops later, it’s due to hot influences that increase heat and blood flow to the womb. It can also result from certain internal and external medicines, as well as from consuming too much hot food, drink, and exercise. Those affected by this condition have limited menstrual cycles, which tend to be yellow, black, burnt, or sharp, often experience early pubic hair growth, have a strong desire for sex, suffer from headaches, and have an excess of bile. When the condition worsens, their cycles become irregular, difficult, and painful, and over time they may develop anxiety and often remain infertile, sometimes experiencing bouts of hysteria.

Cure. The remedy is to use coolers, so that they offend not the vessels that most open for the flux of the terms. Therefore, take the following inwardly; succory, endive, violets, water lilies, sorrel, lettuce, saunders and syrups and conserve made thereof. Also take a conserve of succory, violets, water-lilies, burrage, each an ounce; conserve of roses, half an ounce, diamargation frigid, diatriascantal, each half a drachm; and with syrup of violets, or juice of citrons, make an electuary. For outward applications, make use of ointment of roses, violets, water-lilies, gourd, Venus navel, applied to the back and loins.

Cure. The solution is to use coolers to avoid aggravating the vessels that are most susceptible to the flow of the terms. So, take the following internally: succory, endive, violets, water lilies, sorrel, lettuce, saunders, and syrups and conserves made from them. Also, take a conserve of succory, violets, water lilies, and borage, each an ounce; conserve of roses, half an ounce; diamargation frigid, diatriascantal, each half a drachm; and with syrup of violets or lemon juice, make an electuary. For external applications, use an ointment made of roses, violets, water lilies, gourd, and Venus navel, applied to the back and lower back.

Let the air be cool, her garments thin, and her food endive, lettuce, succory and barley. Give her no hot meats, nor strong wine, unless mixed with water. Rest is good for her, but she must abstain from copulation, though she may sleep as long as she pleases.

Let the air be cool, her clothes light, and her food endive, lettuce, chicory, and barley. Give her no hot meats or strong wine, unless it's mixed with water. Rest is good for her, but she should avoid sex, though she can sleep as long as she wants.


SECT. II.—Of the Cold Distempers of the Womb.

This distemper is the reverse of the foregoing, and equally an enemy to generation, being caused by a cold quality abounding to excess, and proceeds from a too cold air, rest, idleness and cooling medicines. It may be known by an aversion to venery, and taking no pleasure in the act of copulation when the seed is spent; the terms are phlegmatic, thick and slimy, and do not flow as they should; the womb is windy and the seed crude and waterish. It is the cause of obstructions and barrenness, and is hard to be cured.

This illness is the opposite of the previous one and is also a foe to reproduction. It is caused by an excess of cold qualities and results from overly cold air, inactivity, laziness, and cooling medications. You can identify it by a lack of desire for sex and no enjoyment in the act when the semen has been released; the fluids are phlegmy, thick, and slimy, failing to flow as they should. The uterus may feel windy, and the semen is unripe and watery. This condition leads to blockages and infertility and is difficult to treat.

Cure. Take galengal, cinnamon, nutmeg mace, cloves, ginger, cububs, cardamom, grains of paradise, each an ounce and a half, galengal, six drachms, long pepper, half an ounce, Zedoary five drachms; bruise them and add six quarts of wine, put them into a cellar nine days, daily stirring them; then add of mint two handfuls, and let them stand fourteen days, pour off the wine and bruise them, and then pour on the wine again, and distil them. Also anoint with oil of lilies, rue, angelica, cinnamon, cloves, mace and nutmeg. Let her diet and air be warm, her meat of easy concoction, seasoned with ant-seed, fennel and thyme; and let her avoid raw fruits and milk diets.

Cure. Take one and a half ounces each of galangal, cinnamon, nutmeg mace, cloves, ginger, cubebs, cardamom, and grains of paradise, six drachms of galangal, half an ounce of long pepper, and five drachms of zedoary. Crush them and add six quarts of wine, then store them in a cellar for nine days, stirring daily. Afterward, add two handfuls of mint and let everything sit for fourteen days. Strain the wine and crush the ingredients again, then pour the wine back in and distill it. Also, apply oil made from lilies, rue, angelica, cinnamon, cloves, mace, and nutmeg. Ensure her diet and surroundings are warm, with easily digestible foods seasoned with ant-seed, fennel, and thyme. Avoid raw fruits and a milk-based diet.


SECT. III.—Of the Inflation of the Womb.

The inflation of the womb is a stretching of it by wind, called by some a windy mole; the wind proceeds from a cold matter, whether thick or thin, contained in the veins of the womb, by which the heat thereof is overcome, and which either flows thither from other parts, or is gathered there by cold meats and drinks. Cold air may be a producing cause of it also, as women that lie in are exposed to it. The wind is contained either in the cavity of the vessels of the womb, or between the tumicle, and may be known by a swelling in the region of the womb, which sometimes reaches to the navel, loins and diaphragm, and rises and abates as the wind increaseth or decreaseth. It differs from the dropsy, in that it never swells so high. That neither physician nor midwife may take it for dropsy, let them observe the signs of the woman with the child laid down in a former part of this work; and if any sign be wanting, they may suspect it to be an inflation; of which it is a further sign, that in conception the swelling is invariable; also if you strike upon the belly, in an inflation, there will be noise, but not so in case there be a conception. It also differs from a mole, because in that there is a weight and hardness of the belly, and when the patient moves from one side to the other she feels a great weight which moveth, but not so in this. If the inflation continue without the cavity of the womb, the pain is greater and more extensive, nor is there any noise, because the wind is more pent up.

The inflation of the womb occurs when it stretches due to gas, sometimes referred to as a windy mole. This gas comes from a cold substance, whether thick or thin, found in the veins of the womb, which overcomes its heat. This substance can flow from other areas or accumulate there due to cold food and drinks. Cold air can also be a cause, particularly for women in labor who are exposed to it. The gas is trapped either in the blood vessels of the womb or between the membrane and can be recognized by swelling in the area of the womb that may extend to the navel, lower back, and diaphragm, with the swelling increasing and decreasing as the gas levels change. It differs from dropsy because it never swells as high. To help ensure neither the physician nor midwife confuses it for dropsy, they should refer to the signs of a woman with a child mentioned earlier in this work; if any signs are missing, they might suspect inflation. A further indication is that during conception, the swelling remains constant. Additionally, if you tap on the belly with inflation, you will hear noise, but not if there is conception. It also differs from a mole, which is characterized by the heaviness and hardness of the belly, and the patient feels a significant weight moving when she shifts from side to side, unlike with inflation. If the inflation persists outside the womb cavity, the pain is more severe and widespread, and there’s no noise because the gas is more confined.

Cure. This distemper is neither of a long continuance nor dangerous, if looked after in time; and if it be in the cavity of the womb it is more easily expelled. To which purpose give her diaphnicon, with a little castor and sharp clysters that expel the wind. If this distemper happen to a woman in travail let her not purge after delivery, nor bleed, because it is from a cold matter; but if it come after child-bearing, and her terms come down sufficiently, and she has fullness of blood, let the saphoena vein be opened, after which, let her take the following electuary: take conserve of betony and rosemary, of each an ounce and a half; candied eringoes, citron peel candied, each half an ounce; diacimium, diagenel, each a drachm; oil of aniseed, six drops, and with syrup of citrons make an electuary. For outward application make a cataplasm of rue, mugwort, camomile, dill, calamint, new pennyroyal, thyme, with oil of rue, keir and camomile. And let the following clyster to expel the wind be put into the womb: Take agnus castus, cinnamon, each two drachms, boil them in wine to half a pint. She may likewise use sulphur, Bath and Spa waters, both inward and outward, because they expel the wind.

Cure. This illness isn’t long-lasting or dangerous if treated promptly; if it’s in the uterus, it’s easier to get rid of. For this, give her diaphnicon, along with a bit of castor oil and strong enemas to relieve gas. If this condition occurs in a woman during labor, she shouldn’t have any purgatives or bleed afterward, because it’s due to cold matter; but if it happens after childbirth, and her periods are regular, and she has too much blood, let the saphoena vein be opened. After that, she should take the following mixture: one and a half ounces each of betony and rosemary conserve; half an ounce each of candied eryngo and candied citron peel; a drachm each of diacimium and diagenel; six drops of aniseed oil, mixed with citron syrup to make a paste. For external treatment, make a poultice with rue, mugwort, chamomile, dill, calamint, fresh pennyroyal, thyme, and oil of rue, keir, and chamomile. Additionally, to relieve gas, use the following enema in the uterus: take two drachms each of agnus castus and cinnamon, and boil them in wine down to half a pint. She can also use sulphur and Bath and Spa waters, both internally and externally, as they help eliminate gas.


SECT. IV.—Of the Straitness of the Womb and its Vessels.

This is another effect of the womb, which is a very great obstruction to the bearing of children, hindering both the flow of the menses and conception, and is seated in the vessel of the womb, and the neck thereof. The causes of this straitness are thick and rough humours, that stop the mouths of the veins and arteries. These humours are bred either by gross or too much nourishment, when the heat of the womb is so weak that it cannot attenuate the humours, which by reason thereof, either flow from the whole body, or are gathered into the womb. Now the vessels are made straiter or closer several ways; sometimes by inflammation, scirrhous or other tumours; sometimes by compressions, scars, or by flesh or membranes that grow after a wound. The signs by which this is known are, the stoppage of the terms, not conceiving, and condities abounding in the body which are all shown by particular signs, for if there is a wound, or the secundine be pulled out by force phlegm comes from the wound; if stoppage of the terms be from an old obstruction of humours, it is hard to be cured; if it be only from the disorderly use of astringents, it is more curable; if it be from a scirrhous, or other tumours that compress or close the vessel, the disease is incurable.

This is another effect of the uterus, which greatly hinders childbirth by blocking both the menstrual flow and conception. This obstruction is located in the uterine vessel and its neck. The causes of this narrowing are thick and rough fluids that block the veins and arteries. These fluids can develop from poor or excessive nutrition when the heat in the uterus is too weak to thin them out, leading to the accumulation of fluids either from the entire body or specifically in the uterus. The vessels can become tighter or more constricted in various ways; sometimes due to inflammation, benign tumors, or other growths; sometimes from compression, scars, or tissue that grows after an injury. The signs that indicate this condition include missed periods, inability to conceive, and an excess of conditions in the body, all of which manifest through specific symptoms. For instance, if there is a wound or if the afterbirth is forcibly removed, phlegm may come from the wound. If the missed periods result from an old blockage of fluids, it is difficult to treat; if it arises simply from improper use of astringents, it is more treatable; if it is due to a tumor or growth that compresses or closes the vessel, the condition is incurable.

Cure. For the cure of that which is curable, obstructions must be taken away, phlegm must be purged, and she must be let blood, as will be hereafter directed in the stoppage of the terms. Then use the following medicines: Take of aniseed and fennel seed, each a drachm; rosemary, pennyroyal, calamint, betony flowers, each an ounce; castus, cinnamon, galengal, each half an ounce; saffron half a drachm, with wine. Or take asparagus roots, parsley roots, each an ounce; pennyroyal, calamint, each a handful; wallflowers, gilly-flowers, each two handfuls; boil, strain and add syrup of mugwort, an ounce and a half. For a fomentation, take pennyroyal, mercury, calamint, marjoram, mugwort, each two handfuls, sage, rosemary bays, camomile-flowers, each a handful, boil them in water and foment the groin and the bottom of the belly; or let her sit up to the navel in a bath, and then anoint about the groin with oil of rue, lilies, dill, etc.

Cure. To cure what can be cured, blockages must be cleared, phlegm must be removed, and she should be bled, as will be explained later in the stoppage of the terms. Then use the following remedies: Take one drachm each of aniseed and fennel seed; one ounce each of rosemary, pennyroyal, calamint, and betony flowers; and half an ounce each of castus, cinnamon, and galangal; half a drachm of saffron, mixed with wine. Alternatively, take one ounce each of asparagus roots and parsley roots; a handful each of pennyroyal and calamint; and two handfuls each of wallflowers and gilly-flowers; boil, strain, and add one and a half ounces of mugwort syrup. For a fomentation, take two handfuls each of pennyroyal, mercury, calamint, and marjoram; one handful each of mugwort, sage, rosemary, and chamomile flowers; boil them in water and apply to the groin and lower abdomen; or let her sit up to the navel in a bath, and then rub the groin with oil of rue, lilies, dill, etc.


SECT. V.—Of the falling of the Womb.

This is another evil effect of the womb which is both very troublesome, and also a hindrance to conception. Sometimes the womb falleth to the middle of the thighs, nay, almost to the knees, and may be known then by its hanging out. Now, that which causeth the womb to change its place is, that the ligaments by which it is bound to the other parts, are not in order; for there are four ligaments, two above, broad and membranous, round and hollow; it is also bound to the great vessels by veins and arteries, and to the back by nerves; but the place is changed when it is drawn another way, or when the ligaments are loose, and it falls down by its own weight. It is drawn on one side when the menses are hindered from flowing, and the veins and arteries are full, namely, those that go to the womb. If it be a mole on one side, the liver and spleen cause it; by the liver vein on the right side, and the spleen on the left, as they are more or less filled. Others are of opinion, it comes from the solution of the connexion of the fibrous neck and the parts adjacent; and that it is from the weight of the womb descending; this we deny not, but the ligaments must be loose or broken. But women with a dropsy could not be said to have the womb fallen down, if it came only from looseness; but in them it is caused by the saltness of the water, which dries more than it moistens. Now, if there be a little tumour, within or without the privities, it is nothing else but a descent of the womb, but if there be a tumour like a goose's egg and a hole at the bottom and there is at first a great pain in the parts to which the womb is fastened, as the loins, the bottom of the belly, and the os sacrum, it proceeds from the breaking or stretching of the ligaments; and a little after the pain is abated, and there is an impediment in walking, and sometimes blood comes from the breach of the vessels, and the excrements and urine are stopped, and then a fever and convulsion ensueth, oftentimes proving mortal, especially if it happen to women with child.

This is another negative effect of the womb that is both very annoying and a barrier to getting pregnant. Sometimes the womb can drop down to the middle of the thighs, even almost to the knees, and you can tell it's happening when it hangs out. The reason the womb shifts position is that the ligaments holding it in place are not functioning properly. There are four ligaments—two above that are broad and membranous, round and hollow. It's also connected to the major blood vessels by veins and arteries, and to the back by nerves. The position changes when it's pulled in another direction or when the ligaments are loose, causing it to drop due to its own weight. It can be pulled to one side when the menstrual flow is blocked, and the veins and arteries, particularly those leading to the womb, are engorged. If there is a mass on one side, the liver and spleen are the cause; the liver vein on the right side and the spleen on the left, depending on how full they are. Others believe it results from a breakdown in the fibrous neck and surrounding areas; while we don't deny that the weight of the womb descends, it must be that the ligaments are loose or torn. However, a woman with dropsy would not be said to have a dropped womb solely from looseness; in that case, it's due to the saltiness of the water, which dries more than it moistens. If there is a small lump inside or outside the private area, it's just a descent of the womb, but if there’s a lump the size of a goose's egg and a hole at the bottom, along with initial severe pain in the areas where the womb is attached—like the lower back, the bottom of the belly, and the sacrum—it indicates a tear or stretching of the ligaments. Soon after, the pain lessens, but walking becomes difficult, and sometimes there's bleeding due to ruptured vessels, causing blockage in both bowel and urinary movements. This can lead to fever and convulsions, often proving fatal, especially for pregnant women.

Cure. For the cure of this distemper, first put up the womb before the air alter it, or it be swollen or inflamed; and for this purpose give a clyster to remove the excrements, and lay her upon her back, with her legs abroad, and her thighs lifted up and her head down; then take the tumour in your hand and thrust it in without violence; if it be swelled by alteration and cold, foment it with the decoction of mallows, althoea, lime, fenugreek, camomile flowers, bay-berries, and anoint it with oil of lilies, and hen's grease. If there be an inflammation, do not put it up, but fright it in, by putting a red-hot iron before it and making a show as if you intended to burn it; but first sprinkle upon it the powder of mastich, frankincense and the like; thus, take frankincense, mastich, each two drachms; sarcocol steeped in milk, drachm; mummy, pomegranate flowers, sanguisdraconis, each half a drachm. When it is put up, let her lie with her legs stretched, and one upon the other, for eight or ten days, and make a pessary in the form of a pear, with cork or sponge, and put it into the womb, dipped in sharp wine, or juice of acacia, with powder of sanguis, with galbanum and bdellium. Apply also a cupping-glass, with a great flame, under the navel or paps, or both kidneys, and lay this plaster to the back; take opopanax, two ounces, storax liquid, half an ounce; mastich, frankincense, pitch, bole, each two drachms; then with wax make a plaster; or take laudanum, a drachm and a half; mastich, and frankincense, each half a drachm, wood aloes, cloves, spike, each a drachm; ash-coloured ambergris, four grains: musk, half a scruple; make two round plasters to be laid on each side of the navel; make a fume of snails' skins salted, or of garlic, and let it be taken in by the funnel. Use also astringent fomentations of bramble leaves, plantain, horse-tails, myrtles, each two handfuls; wormseed, two handfuls; pomegranate flowers, half an ounce; boil them in wine and water. For an injection take comfrey root, an ounce; rupturewort, two drachms; yarrow, mugwort, each half an ounce; boil them in red wine, and inject with a syringe. To strengthen the womb, take hartshorn, bays, of each half a drachm; myrrh half a drachm; make a powder of two doses, and give it with sharp wine. Or you may take Zedoary, parsnip seed, crabs' eyes prepared, each a drachm, nutmeg, half a drachm; and give a drachm, in powder; but astringents must be used with great caution, lest by stopping the courses a worse mischief follow. To keep in its place, make rollers and ligatures as for a rupture; and put pessaries into the bottom of the womb, that may force it to remain. Let the diet be such as has drying, astringent and glueing qualities, as rice, starch, quinces, pears and green cheese; but let the summer fruits be avoided; and let her wine be astringent and red.

Cure. To treat this condition, first reposition the womb before it gets altered by air or becomes swollen or inflamed. For this purpose, give an enema to eliminate waste, and have her lie on her back with her legs spread apart, thighs elevated, and head lowered. Then, gently press the tumor in with your hand without force. If it's swollen due to changes and cold, apply a warm compress made from a decoction of mallows, althaea, lime, fenugreek, chamomile flowers, bay berries, and massage it with lily oil and hen's grease. If there’s inflammation, don't push it back in; instead, scare it in by holding a red-hot iron near it as if you plan to burn it; first sprinkle it with a powder of mastic, frankincense, and similar ingredients. Use two drachms each of frankincense and mastic; one drachm of sarcocol steeped in milk; and half a drachm of mummy, pomegranate flowers, and sanguis draconis. After it’s back in place, have her lie with her legs stretched out, one over the other, for eight to ten days. Create a pessary shaped like a pear using cork or sponge, dip it in strong wine or acacia juice mixed with sanguis powder, galbanum, and bdellium, and place it in the womb. Also, use a cupping glass with a strong flame under the navel or breasts, or both kidneys, and apply this plaster to the back: two ounces of opopanax, half an ounce of liquid storax, and two drachms each of mastic, frankincense, pitch, and bole; then make a plaster with wax. Alternatively, take one and a half drachms of laudanum; half a drachm each of mastic and frankincense; one drachm each of wood aloes, cloves, and spike; and four grains of ash-colored ambergris; half a scruple of musk; prepare two round plasters to lay on each side of the navel. Create a fumigation using salted snail skins or garlic and let it be inhaled through a funnel. Also, use astringent compresses made from two handfuls each of bramble leaves, plantain, horsetail, and myrtle; two handfuls of wormseed; and half an ounce of pomegranate flowers; boil them in wine and water. For an injection, take one ounce of comfrey root; two drachms of rupturewort; and half an ounce each of yarrow and mugwort; boil them in red wine and use a syringe to inject. To strengthen the womb, take half a drachm each of hartshorn and bay leaves; half a drachm of myrrh; make a powder of two doses and take it with strong wine. Alternatively, use one drachm each of zedoary, parsnip seeds, and prepared crab eyes; half a drachm of nutmeg; and give one drachm in powder, but be cautious with astringents to avoid causing more harm by stopping menstrual flow. To keep it in position, create rollers and bandages like those for a hernia; and insert pessaries into the bottom of the womb to help it stay in place. The diet should consist of drying, astringent, and binding foods such as rice, starch, quinces, pears, and green cheese; avoid summer fruits, and ensure her wine is astringent and red.


CHAPTER III

Of Diseases Relating to Women's Monthly Courses.

Of Diseases Related to Women's Monthly Cycles.


SECTION I.—Of Women's Monthly Courses in General.

That divine Providence, which, with a wisdom peculiar to itself, has appointed woman to conceive by coition with man, and to bear and bring forth children, has provided for nourishment of children during their recess in the womb of their mother, by that redundancy of the blood which is natural to all women; and which, flowing out at certain periods of time (when they are not pregnant) are from thence called terms and menses, from their monthly flux of excrementitious and unprofitable blood. Now, that the matter flowing forth is excrementitious, is to be understood only with respect to the redundancy and overplus thereof, being an excrement only with respect to its quantity; for as to its quality, it is as pure and incorrupt as any blood in the veins; and this appears from the final cause of it, which is the propagation and conservation of mankind, and also from the generation of it, being superfluity of the last aliment of the fleshy parts. If any ask, if the menses be not of hurtful quality, how can they cause such venomous effects; if they fall upon trees and herbs, they make the one barren and mortify the other: I answer, this malignity is contracted in the womb, for the woman, wanting native heat to digest the superfluity, sends it to the matrix, where seating itself till the mouth of the womb be dilated, it becomes corrupt and mortified; which may easily be, considering the heat and moistness of the place; and so this blood being out of its proper vessels, offends in quality.

That divine Providence, which with its unique wisdom has designated that women conceive through intercourse with men and bear children, has ensured that children receive nourishment during their time in their mother's womb through the excess blood natural to all women. This excess blood, which flows out at certain times (when women are not pregnant), is referred to as terms and menses due to its monthly discharge of waste and unnecessary blood. Now, the fact that this flowing substance is considered waste only means it's in excess, as it’s waste only regarding its quantity; in terms of quality, it's as pure and untainted as any blood in the body. This is evident from its ultimate purpose, which is the continuation and preservation of humanity, as well as from its origin, being an excess of the last nourishment for the body’s tissues. If someone asks why, if the menses are not harmful in quality, they can cause such toxic effects when they fall on trees and plants, making some barren and causing others to wither, I would respond that this toxicity is developed in the womb. Because the woman lacks enough heat to properly digest the excess, it accumulates in the uterus until the cervix opens, at which point it can become corrupt and spoiled; this is likely, considering the warmth and moisture of that area, so when this blood is outside of its proper vessels, it becomes harmful in quality.


SECT. II.—Of the Terms coming out of order, either before or after the usual Time.

Having, in the former part of this work, treated, of the suppression and overflowing of the monthly terms, I shall content myself with referring the reader thereto, and proceed to speak of their coming out of order, either before or after the usual time.

Having discussed the suppression and overflow of the monthly terms earlier in this work, I will refer the reader back to that section and move on to talk about them being released out of order, either before or after the usual time.

Both these proceed from an ill constitution of body. Everything is beautiful in its order, in nature as well as in morality; and if the order of nature be broken, it shows the body to be out of order. Of each of these effects briefly.

Both of these come from a poor physical condition. Everything is beautiful when it follows its proper order, both in nature and in morality; and if the order of nature is disrupted, it indicates that the body is not functioning properly. A brief overview of each of these effects.

When the monthly courses come before their time, showing a depraved excretion, and flowing sometimes twice a month, the cause is in the blood, which stirs up the expulsive faculty of the womb, or else in the whole body, and is frequently occasioned by the person's diet, which increases the blood too much, making it too sharp or too hot. If the retentive faculty of the womb be weak, and the expulsive faculty strong, and of a quick sense, it brings them forth the sooner. Sometimes they flow sooner by reason of a fall, stroke or some violent passion, which the parties themselves can best relate. If it be from heat, thin and sharp humours, it is known by the distemper of the whole body. The looseness of the vessels and the weakness of the retentive faculty, is known from a moist and loose habit of the body. It is more troublesome than dangerous, but hinders conception, and therefore the cure is necessary for all, but especially such as desire children. If it proceeds from a sharp blood, let her temper it by a good diet and medicines. To which purpose, let her use baths of iron water, that correct the distemper of the bowels, and then evacuate. If it proceeds from the retentive faculty, and looseness of the vessels, it is to be corrected with gentle astringents.

When monthly cycles arrive earlier than expected, showing abnormal discharge and sometimes occurring twice a month, the cause lies in the blood, which irritates the expelling functions of the womb, or may affect the entire body. This is often caused by the individual's diet, which can excessively increase the blood, making it too sharp or too hot. If the womb's ability to hold is weak and its ability to expel is strong and sensitive, it can lead to earlier cycles. Sometimes, cycles may come sooner due to a fall, a blow, or some intense emotional upheaval, which the individuals affected are best able to describe. If it’s due to heat and thin, sharp fluids, it can be identified by the general disturbance of the body. The looseness of the blood vessels and weakness of the womb’s holding capacity can be recognized by a damp and loose body type. This condition is generally more bothersome than harmful, but it can prevent conception, making treatment necessary for everyone, especially those wanting children. If it’s related to sharp blood, she should balance it with a healthy diet and medications. To this end, she should use baths with iron-infused water to correct the disturbances in her system, followed by cleansing. If the issue stems from the womb’s holding capacity and loose vessels, it should be addressed with mild astringents.

As to the courses flowing after the usual time, the causes are, thickness of the blood, and the smallness of its quantity, with the stoutness of the passage, and weakness of the expulsive faculties. Either of these singly may stop the courses, but if they all concur, they render the distemper worse. If the blood abounds not in such a quantity as may stir up nature to expel it, its purging must necessarily be deferred, till there be enough. And if the blood be thick, the passage stopped, and the expulsive faculty weak, the menses must needs be out of order and the purging of them retarded.

As for periods that occur later than usual, the reasons are thick blood, low blood volume, narrow passageways, and weak expulsion abilities. Any one of these factors alone can disrupt the menstrual flow, but if they all happen together, the condition worsens. If there isn't enough blood to trigger nature to expel it, the purging will have to wait until there's enough. And if the blood is thick, the passage is blocked, and the expulsion ability is weak, then menstruation will definitely be irregular and delayed.

For the cure of this, if the quantity of blood be small, let her use a larger diet, and a very little exercise. If the blood be thick and foul, let it be made thin, and the humours mixed therewith, evacuated. It is good to purge, after the courses have done flowing, and to use calamint, and, indeed, the oftener she purges, the better. She may also use fumes and pessaries, apply cupping glasses without scarification to the inside of the thighs, and rub the legs and scarify the ankles, and hold the feet in warm water four or five days before the courses come down. Let her also anoint the bottom of her belly with things proper to provoke the terms.

For this condition, if the blood amount is low, she should eat more and exercise very little. If the blood is thick and unhealthy, it should be thinned out, and the mixed fluids should be expelled. It's a good idea to purge after her period has ended and to use calamint. In fact, the more often she purges, the better. She can also use steam treatments and vaginal suppositories, place cupping glasses without cutting the skin on the inner thighs, massage her legs and lightly cut the ankles, and soak her feet in warm water for four or five days before her period starts. Additionally, she should rub her lower abdomen with substances that help to induce menstruation.

Remedies for Diseases in Women's Paps.

Make a cataplasm of bean meal and salad oil, and lay it to the place afflicted. Or anoint with the juice of papilaris. This must be done when the papa are very sore.

Make a poultice of bean meal and salad oil, and apply it to the affected area. Or, rub with the juice of papilaris. This should be done when the spots are very sore.

If the paps be hard and swollen, take a handful of rue, colewort roots, horehound and mint; if you cannot get all these conveniently, any two will do; pound the handful in honey, and apply it once every day till healed.

If the boils are hard and swollen, take a handful of rue, collard roots, horehound, and mint; if you can't get all these easily, any two will work; crush the handful in honey, and apply it once a day until healed.

If the nipples be stiff and sore, anoint twice a day with Florence oil, till healed. If the paps be flabby and hanging, bruise a little hemlock, and apply it to the breast for three days; but let it not stand above seven hours. Or, which is safer, rusae juice, well boiled, with a little sinapios added thereto, and anoint.

If your nipples are stiff and sore, apply Florence oil twice a day until they heal. If your breasts are sagging, crush a little hemlock and apply it to your chest for three days, but don't let it stay on for more than seven hours. Alternatively, a safer option is to use boiled rusae juice mixed with a bit of mustard and apply that instead.

If the paps be hard and dead, make a plate of lead pretty thin, to answer the breasts; let this stand nine hours each day, for three days. Or sassafras bruised, and used in like manner.

If the bumps are tough and lifeless, make a thin plate of lead to apply to the breasts; let this sit for nine hours each day for three days. Alternatively, use bruised sassafras in the same way.

Receipt for Procuring Milk.

Drink arpleui, drawn as tea, for twenty-one days. Or eat of aniseeds. Also the juice of arbor vitae, a glassful once a day for eleven days, is very good, for it quickens the memory, strengthens the body, and causeth milk to flow in abundance.

Drink arpleui, brewed like tea, for twenty-one days. You can also eat aniseeds. Additionally, the juice of arbor vitae—one glass a day for eleven days—is very beneficial as it boosts memory, strengthens the body, and helps produce milk in abundance.

Directions for Drawing of Blood.

Drawing of blood was first invented for good and salutary purposes, although often abused and misapplied. To bleed in the left arm removes long continued pains and headaches. It is also good for those who have got falls and bruises.

Drawing blood was originally developed for beneficial and healthy reasons, although it has often been misused and misapplied. Bleeding from the left arm can relieve persistent pain and headaches. It's also effective for those who have suffered falls and bruises.

Bleeding is good for many disorders, and generally proves a cure, except in some extraordinary cases, and in those cases bleeding is hurtful. If a woman be pregnant, to draw a little blood will give her ease, good health, and a lusty child.

Bleeding helps with many illnesses and usually acts as a cure, except in rare cases where it can be harmful. If a woman is pregnant, losing a small amount of blood can relieve her, promote good health, and lead to a healthy baby.

Bleeding is a most certain cure for no less than twenty-one disorders, without any outward or inward applications; and for many more with application of drugs, herbs and flowers.

Bleeding is definitely a cure for at least twenty-one disorders, without any external or internal treatments; and for many more when using medications, herbs, and flowers.

When the moon is on the increase, you may let blood at any time day or night; but when she is on the decline, you must bleed only in the morning.

When the moon is waxing, you can let blood any time, day or night; but when it’s waning, you should only do it in the morning.

Bleeding may be performed from the month of March to November. No bleeding in December, January or February, unless an occasion require it. The months of March, April and November, are the three chief months of the year for bleeding in; but it may be performed with safety from the ninth of March to the nineteenth of November.

Bleeding can be done from March to November. No bleeding in December, January, or February, unless necessary. March, April, and November are the main months for bleeding, but it can be safely done from March 9 to November 19.

To prevent the dangers that may arise from she unskilful drawing of blood, let none open a but a person of experience and practice.

To avoid the risks that can come from unskilled bloodletting, only someone experienced and trained should perform it.

There are three sorts of people you must not let draw blood; first ignorant and inexperienced persons. Secondly, those who have bad sight and trembling hands, whether skilful or unskilled. For when the hand trembles, the lance is apt to start from the vein, and the flesh be thereby damaged, which may hurt, canker, and very much torment the patient. Thirdly, let no woman bleed, but such as have gone through a course of midwifery at college, for those who are unskilful may cut an artery, to the great damage of the patient. Besides, what is still worse, those pretended bleeders, who take it up at their own hand, generally keep unedged and rusty lancets, which prove hurtful, even in a skilful hand. Accordingly you ought to be cautious in choosing your physician; a man of learning knows what vein to open for each disorder; he knows how much blood to take as soon as he sees the patient, and he can give you suitable advice concerning your disorder.

There are three types of people you shouldn't let draw blood. First, those who are ignorant and inexperienced. Second, those who have poor vision and shaky hands, whether they are skilled or not. When the hand shakes, the lancet can slip out of the vein and damage the flesh, which can lead to pain, infection, and significant discomfort for the patient. Third, don't let any woman perform bloodletting unless she has been trained in midwifery at a college, as unskilled individuals may accidentally cut an artery, causing serious harm to the patient. Additionally, it's even worse when pretend bleeders take matters into their own hands; they often use dull and rusty lancets, which can be harmful, even when handled by someone experienced. Therefore, you should be careful when choosing your physician; a knowledgeable doctor knows which vein to open for each condition, how much blood to draw as soon as they see the patient, and can give you appropriate advice regarding your issue.


PART III

ARISTOTLE'S BOOK OF PROBLEMS
WITH OTHER
ASTROMER, ASTROLOGERS AND
PHYSICIANS,
CONCERNING
THE STATE OF MAN'S BODY.


Q. Among all living creatures, why hath man only his countenance lifted up towards Heaven. A. 1. From the will of the Creator. But although this answer be true, yet it seemeth not to be of force, because that so all questions might be easily resolved. Therefore, 2. I answer that, for the most part, every workman doth make his first work worse, and then his second better! so God creating all other animals before man gave them their face looking down to the earth; and then secondly he created man, unto whom he gave an upright shape, lifted unto heaven, because it is drawn from divinity, and it is derived from the goodness of God, who maketh all his works both perfect and good. 3. Man only, among all living creatures, is ordained to the kingdom of heaven, and therefore hath his face elevated and lifted up to heaven, because that despising earthly and worldly things, he ought often to contemplate on heavenly things. 4. That the reasonable man is like unto angels, and finally ordained towards God; and therefore he hath a figure looking upward. 5. Man is a microcosm, that is, a little world, and therefore he doth command all other living creatures and they obey him. 6. Naturally there is unto everything and every work, that form and figure given which is fit and proper for its motion; as unto the heavens, roundness, to the fire a pyramidical form, that is, broad beneath and sharp towards the top, which form is most apt to ascend; and so man has his face towards heaven to behold the wonders of God's works.

Q. Among all living creatures, why is it that only humans have their faces lifted up towards Heaven? A. 1. Because of the Creator's will. While this answer is true, it doesn't seem strong enough, since it would allow for easy solutions to all questions. Therefore, 2. I respond that, typically, every craftsman creates their first work less skillfully and then improves with the second! So, God made all other animals before humans, giving them faces directed downward towards the earth; and then He created man, who was given an upright form, facing Heaven, because it is derived from divinity and reflects the goodness of God, who makes all His creations perfect and good. 3. Only humans, among all living beings, are destined for the kingdom of Heaven, and that's why their faces are raised to Heaven, as they should often reflect on spiritual matters and disregard earthly and worldly things. 4. The rational man is like angels and ultimately directed towards God; thus, he has a form that looks upward. 5. Man is a microcosm, or a small world, commanding all other living creatures, who then obey him. 6. Naturally, everything and every creation has a form and shape suitable for its movement; for example, the heavens are round, fire has a pyramidal shape, wider at the bottom and pointed at the top, which is best for ascending; similarly, man has his face directed towards Heaven to witness the wonders of God's creations.

Q. Why are the heads of men hairy? A. The hair is the ornament of the head, and the brain is purged of gross humours by the growing of the hair, from the highest to the lowest, which pass through the pores of the exterior flesh, become dry, and are converted into hair. This appears to be the case, from the circumstance that in all man's body there is nothing drier than the hair, for it is drier than the bones; and it is well known that some beasts are nourished with bones, as dogs, but they cannot digest feathers or hair, but void them undigested, being too hot for nourishment. 2. It is answered, that the brain is purged in three different ways; of superfluous watery humours by the eyes, of choler by the nose, and of phlegm by the hair, which is the opinion of the best physicians.

Q. Why do men have hairy heads? A. Hair is an ornament for the head, and it helps to cleanse the brain of excess gross humors as it grows from the top to the bottom. These humors pass through the pores of the outer skin, dry out, and turn into hair. This seems to be true because, in the human body, nothing is drier than hair; it’s drier than bones. It’s well known that some animals, like dogs, can digest bones, but they can't digest feathers or hair, which is too hot for their nourishment and comes out undigested. 2. It's said that the brain is cleansed in three ways: excess watery humors are removed through the eyes, bile through the nose, and phlegm through the hair, according to the best physicians.

Q. Why have men longer hair on their heads than any other living creature? A. Arist. de Generat. Anim. says, that men have the moistest brain of all living creatures from which the seed proceedeth which is converted into the long hair of the head. 2. The humours of men are fat, and do not become dry easily; and therefore the hair groweth long on them. In beasts, the humours easily dry, and therefore the hair groweth not so long.

Q. Why do men have longer hair on their heads than any other living creature? A. Arist. de Generat. Anim. says that men have the moistest brains of all living creatures, which produces the substance that turns into the long hair on their heads. 2. The fluids in men are fatty and do not dry out easily; therefore, their hair grows long. In animals, the fluids dry out quickly, so their hair doesn't grow as long.

Q. Why doth the hair take deeper root in man's skin than in that of any other living creatures? A. Because it has greater store of nourishment in man, and therefore grows more in the inward parts of man. And this is the reason why in other creatures the hair doth alter and change with the skin, and not in man, unless by a scar or wound.

Q. Why does hair take deeper root in human skin than in that of other living creatures? A. Because humans have more nourishment, which allows hair to grow more in the inner layers of the skin. This is the reason why, in other creatures, hair changes and alters with the skin, but not in humans, unless there is a scar or wound.

Q. Why have women longer hair than men? A. Because women are moister and more phlegmatic than men, and therefore there is more matter for hair to them, and, by consequence, the length also of their hair. And, furthermore, this matter is more increased in women than men from their interior parts, and especially in the time of their monthly terms, because the matter doth then ascend, whereby the humour that breedeth the hair, doth increase. 2. Because women want beards; so the matter of the beard doth go into that of the hair.

Q. Why do women have longer hair than men? A. It's because women are more moist and more phlegmatic than men, so they have more substance for hair, which results in longer hair. Additionally, this substance increases more in women than in men from their internal processes, especially during their menstrual cycle, when the substance rises, leading to an increase in the humor that grows hair. 2. Because women don't have beards, the substance that would form a beard goes into their hair.

Q. Why have some women soft hair and some hard? A. 1. The hair hath proportion with the skin; of which some is hard, some thick, some subtle and soft, some gross; therefore, the hair which grows out of thick, gross skin, is thick and gross; that which groweth out of a subtle and fine skin, is fine and soft; when the pores are open, then cometh forth much humour, and therefore hard hair is engendered; and when the pores are strait, then there doth grow soft and fine hair. This doth evidently appear in men, because women have softer hair than they; for in women the pores are shut and strait, by reason of their coldness. 2. Because for the most part, choleric men have harder and thicker hair than others, by reason of their heat, and because their pores are always open, and therefore they have beards sooner than others. For this reason also, beasts that have hard hair are boldest, because such have proceeded from heat and choler, examples of which we have in the bear and the boar; and contrariwise, those beasts that have soft hair are fearful, because they are cold, as the hare and the hart. 3. From the climate where a man is born; because in hot regions hard and gross hair is engendered, as appears in the Ethiopians, and the contrary is the case is cold countries toward the north.

Q. Why do some women have soft hair while others have hard hair? A. 1. Hair is related to the skin; some skin is hard, some thick, some delicate and soft, and some coarse. Therefore, hair that grows from thick, coarse skin is also thick and coarse, while hair that comes from delicate and fine skin is fine and soft. When the pores are open, more moisture escapes, resulting in hard hair; when the pores are narrow, softer and finer hair grows. This is clearly seen in men, as women generally have softer hair. In women, the pores are tighter and narrower due to their cooler nature. 2. Additionally, men with a lot of bile tend to have harder and thicker hair because of their heat, and their pores are usually open, which is why they grow beards earlier than others. For the same reason, animals with hard hair are bolder since they come from heat and bile; examples include bears and boars. Conversely, animals with soft hair are more timid due to being colder, like hares and deer. 3. The climate where a person is born also plays a role; in hot regions, people tend to have hard and thick hair, as seen in Ethiopians, while in colder northern countries, the opposite is true.

Q. Why have some men curled hair, and some smooth? A. From the superior degree of heat in some men, which makes the hair curl and grow upward; this is proved by a man's having smooth hair when he goes into a hot bath, and it afterwards becomes curled. Therefore keepers of baths have often curled hair, as also Ethiopians and choleric men. But the cause of this smoothness, is the abundance of moist humours.

Q. Why do some men have curly hair while others have straight hair? A. It's because some men have a higher degree of heat in their bodies, which causes their hair to curl and grow upward. This is shown by a man having straight hair when he first enters a hot bath, but it becomes curly afterward. That's why bath attendants often have curly hair, as do Ethiopians and hot-tempered men. On the other hand, straight hair is usually due to an excess of moist humors.

Q. Why do women show ripeness by hair in their privy parts, and not elsewhere, but men in their breasts? A. Because in men and women there is abundance of humidity in that place, but most in women, as men have the mouth of the bladder in that place, where the urine is contained, of which the hair in the breast is engendered, and especially that about the navel. But of women in general, it is said, that the humidity of the bladder of the matrix, or womb, is joined and meeteth in that lower secret place, and therefore is dissolved and separated in that place into vapours and fumes, which are the cause of hair. And the like doth happen in other places, as in the hair under the arms.

Q. Why do women have hair in their private parts to indicate maturity, while men have it on their chests? A. Because both men and women have a lot of moisture in that area, but women have more. In men, the urethra is located there, where urine is stored, which leads to hair on the chest, especially around the navel. For women, it's said that the moisture from the bladder of the uterus collects in that lower private area, and as a result, it gets transformed into vapors and fumes there, which causes hair growth. The same happens in other areas, like under the arms.

Q. Why have not women beards? A. Because they want heat; which is the case with some effeminate men, who are beardless from the same cause, to have complexions like women.

Q. Why don’t women have beards? A. Because they prefer warmth; this is also true for some delicate men, who are beardless for the same reason, to have complexions like women.

Q. Why doth the hair grow on those that are hanged? A. Because their bodies are exposed to the sun, which, by its heat doth dissolve all moisture into the fume or vapour of which the hair doth grow.

Q. Why does hair grow on those who are hanged? A. Because their bodies are exposed to the sun, which, due to its heat, evaporates all moisture, and from that, hair grows.

Q. Why is the hair of the beard thicker and grosser than elsewhere; and the more men are shaven, the harder and thicker it groweth? A. Because by so much as the humours or vapours of a liquid are dissolved and taken away, so much the more doth the humour remaining draw to the same; and therefore the more the hair is shaven, the thicker the humours gather which engender the hair, and cause it to wax hard.

Q. Why is beard hair thicker and coarser than hair in other places, and why does it grow harder and thicker the more men shave? A. It's because as the liquids or vapors are dissolved and removed, the remaining fluids attract more to that area; therefore, the more a person shaves, the thicker the fluids that contribute to hair growth accumulate, causing the hair to become strong and coarse.

Q. Why are women smooth and fairer than men? A. Because in women much of the humidity and superfluity, which are the matter and cause of the hair of the body, is expelled with their monthly terms; which superfluity, remaining in men, through vapours passes into hair.

Q. Why are women smoother and fairer than men? A. Because women lose a lot of the moisture and excess that contribute to body hair during their menstrual cycle; this excess remains in men and, through steam, turns into hair.

Q. Why doth man, above all other creatures, wax hoary and gray? A. Because man hath the hottest heart of all living creatures; and therefore, nature being most wise, lest a man should be suffocated through the heat of his heart, hath placed the heart, which is most hot, under the brain, which is most cold; to the end that the heat of the heart may be tempered by the coldness of the brain; and contrariwise, that the coldness of the brain may be qualified by the heat of the heart; and thereby there might be a temperature in both. A proof of this is, that of all living creatures man hath the worst breath when he comes to full age. Furthermore, man doth consume nearly half his time in sleep, which doth proceed from the great excess of coldness and moisture in the brain, and from his wanting natural heat to digest and consume that moisture, which heat he hath in his youth, and therefore, in that age is not gray, but in old age, when heat faileth; because then the vapours ascending from the stomach remain undigested and unconsumed for want of natural heat, and thus putrefy, on which putrefaction of humours that the whiteness doth follow, which is called grayness or hoariness. Whereby it doth appear, that hoariness is nothing but a whiteness of hair, caused by a putrefaction of the humours about the roots of the hair, through the want of natural heat in old age. Sometimes all grayness is caused by the naughtiness of the complexion, which may happen in youth: sometimes through over great fear and care as appeareth in merchants, sailors and thieves.

Q. Why does man, more than any other creature, grow old and gray? A. Because man has the hottest heart of all living creatures; and so, nature, being very wise, has placed the heart, which is the hottest, below the brain, which is the coldest. This arrangement helps balance the heat of the heart with the coolness of the brain, and vice versa, creating a balance in both. A clear sign of this is that among all living beings, man has the worst breath when he reaches adulthood. Moreover, man spends nearly half his time sleeping, which results from the excess cold and moisture in the brain, and from lacking the natural heat to digest and process that moisture. This natural heat is present in youth, which is why he isn’t gray then, but in old age, when that heat diminishes; during this time, the vapors rising from the stomach remain undigested due to insufficient natural heat and thus rot. This rot leads to the whiteness known as grayness or hoariness. Therefore, it is clear that grayness is simply a whitening of hair, caused by the rotting of humors around the hair roots, due to the lack of natural heat in old age. Sometimes, grayness may also stem from an unhealthy constitution, even in youth, or from excessive fear and worry, as seen in merchants, sailors, and thieves.

Q. Why doth red hair grow white sooner than hair of any other colour? A. Because redness is an infirmity of the hair; for it is engendered of a weak and infirm matter, that is, of matter corrupted with the flowers of the woman; and therefore it waxes white sooner than any other colour.

Q. Why does red hair turn white sooner than hair of any other color? A. Because red hair is a weakness; it results from a weak and inferior substance, which is affected by the essence of women; and that's why it turns white sooner than any other color.

Q. Why do wolves grow grisly? A. To understand this question, note the difference between grayness and grisliness; grayness is caused through defect of natural heat, but grisliness through devouring and heat. The wolf being a devouring beast, he eateth gluttonously without chewing, and enough at once for three days; in consequence of which, gross vapours engendered in the wolf's body, which cause grisliness. Grayness and grisliness have this difference; grayness is only in the head, but grisliness all over the body.

Q. Why do wolves become grisly? A. To answer this question, it's important to recognize the difference between grayness and grisliness; grayness happens due to a lack of natural heat, while grisliness results from eating too much and heat. The wolf, being a greedy creature, eats without chewing and consumes enough food at once to last for three days; as a result, the heavy vapors created in the wolf's body lead to grisliness. The difference between grayness and grisliness is that grayness occurs only in the head, while grisliness affects the whole body.

Q. Why do horses grow grisly and gray? A. Because they are for the most part in the sun, and heat naturally causes putrefaction; therefore the matter of hair doth putrefy, and in consequence they are quickly peeled.

Q. Why do horses grow grizzled and gray? A. Because they spend most of their time in the sun, and heat naturally causes decay; therefore the hair deteriorates, and as a result, they lose it quickly.

Q. Why do men get bald, and trees let fall their leaves in winter? A. The want of moisture is the cause in both, which is proved by a man's becoming bald through venery, because by that he lets forth his natural humidity and heat; and by that excess in carnal pleasure the moisture is consumed which is the nutriment of the hair. Thus, eunuchs and women do not grow bald, because they do not part from this moisture; and therefore eunuchs are of the complexion of women.

Q. Why do men go bald, and trees lose their leaves in winter? A. The lack of moisture causes both, which is shown by a man becoming bald due to excessive sexual activity, since that depletes his natural moisture and heat; and that excess in physical pleasure consumes the moisture that nourishes the hair. Therefore, eunuchs and women don't go bald, because they don’t lose this moisture; hence, eunuchs have a complexion similar to women.

Q. Why are not women bald? A. Because they are cold and moist, which are the causes that the hair remaineth; for moistness doth give nutriment to the hair, and coldness doth bind the pores.

Q. Why aren't women bald? A. Because they are cold and moist, which are the reasons that hair remains; moisture provides nourishment to the hair, and coldness helps to close the pores.

Q. Why are not blind men naturally bald? A. Because the eye hath moisture in it, and that moisture which should pass through by the substance of the eyes, doth become a sufficient nutriment for the hair and therefore they are seldom bald.

Q. Why aren’t blind men naturally bald? A. Because the eye has moisture in it, and that moisture, which would normally drain from the eyes, provides enough nourishment for the hair, so they are rarely bald.

Q. Why doth the hair stand on end when men are afraid? A. Because in time of fear the heat doth go from the outward parts of the body into the inward to help the heart, and so the pores in which the hair is fastened are shut up, after which stopping and shutting up of the pores, the standing up of the hair doth follow.

Q. Why does the hair stand on end when people are afraid? A. Because during fear, heat moves from the outer parts of the body to the inner ones to support the heart, causing the pores where the hair is rooted to close up. After this closing of the pores, the hair stands up.


Of the Head.

Q. Why is a man's head round? A. Because it contains in it the moistest parts of the living creature: and also that the brain may be defended thereby, as with a shield.

Q. Why is a man's head round? A. Because it holds the most fluid parts of a living being: and also to protect the brain, like a shield.

Q. Why is the head not absolutely long but somewhat round? A. To the end that the three creeks and cells of the brain might the better be distinguished; that is, the fancy in the forehead, the discoursing or reasonable part in the middle, and memory in the hinder-most part.

Q. Why is the head not completely long but rather somewhat round? A. So that the three areas and sections of the brain can be more easily identified; that is, the imagination in the forehead, the reasoning part in the middle, and memory in the back part.

Q. Why doth a man lift up his head towards the heavens when he doth imagine? A. Because the imagination is in the fore part of the head or brain, and therefore it lifteth up itself, that the creeks or cells of the imagination may be opened, and that the spirits which help the imagination, and are fit for that purpose, having their concourse thither, may help the imagination.

Q. Why does a man lift his head towards the heavens when he imagines? A. Because the imagination is at the front of the head or brain, and so it raises itself up, so that the crevices or areas of the imagination can be opened, and the energies that assist the imagination, which are suitable for that purpose, can gather there and aid the imagination.

Q. Why doth a man, when he museth or thinketh of things past, look towards the earth? A. Because the cell or creek which is behind, is the creek or chamber of the memory; and therefore, that looketh towards heaven when the head is bowed down, and so the cell is open, to the end that the spirits which perfect the memory should enter it.

Q. Why does a person, when they ponder or think about the past, look down at the ground? A. Because the space or area behind them is the place of memory; and so, when the head is bent down, it effectively opens up, allowing the thoughts that enhance memory to enter.

Q. Why is not the head fleshy, like other parts of the body? A. Because the head would be too heavy, and would not stand steadily. Also, a head loaded with flesh, betokens an evil complexion.

Q. Why isn't the head fleshy like other parts of the body? A. Because a fleshy head would be too heavy and wouldn't be stable. Also, a head that's loaded with flesh indicates a bad complexion.

Q. Why is the head subject to aches and griefs? A. By reason that evil humours, which proceed from the stomach, ascend up to the head and disturb the brain, and so cause pain in the head; sometimes it proceeds from overmuch filling the stomach, because two great sinews pass from the brain to the mouth of the stomach, and therefore these two parts do always suffer grief together.

Q. Why does the head hurt and feel troubled? A. Because harmful substances from the stomach rise to the head and disrupt the brain, causing headaches. Sometimes, it happens because the stomach is overly full, as two large nerves connect from the brain to the stomach. That's why these two areas often experience discomfort together.

Q. Why have women the headache oftener than men? A. By reason of their monthly terms, which men are not troubled with, and by which a moist, unclean and venomous fume is produced, that seeks passage upwards, and so causes the headache.

Q. Why do women get headaches more often than men? A. Because of their monthly periods, which men don’t experience, and which produce a damp, unhealthy, and toxic effect that rises up and causes headaches.

Q. Why is the brain white? A. 1. Because it is cold, and coldness is the mother of white. 2. Because it may receive the similitude and likeness of all colours, which the white colour can best do, because it is most simple.

Q. Why is the brain white? A. 1. Because it is cold, and coldness is the source of white. 2. Because it can absorb the resemblance and likeness of all colors, which white can do best since it is the simplest.

Q. Why are all the senses in the head? A. Because the brain is there, on which all the senses depend, and are directed by it; and, consequently, it maketh all the spirits to feel, and governeth all the membranes.

Q. Why are all the senses located in the head? A. Because the brain is there, which all the senses rely on and are controlled by; therefore, it allows all the nerves to feel and manages all the tissues.

Q. Why cannot a person escape death if the brain or heart be hurt? A. Because the brain and heart are the two principal parts which concern life; and, therefore, if they be hurt, there is no remedy left for cure.

Q. Why can't a person escape death if the brain or heart is injured? A. Because the brain and heart are the two main organs that are essential for life; therefore, if they get hurt, there is no cure left.

Q. Why is the brain moist? A. Because it may easily receive an impression, which moisture can best do, as it appeareth in wax, which doth easily receive the print of the seal when soft.

Q. Why is the brain moist? A. Because it can easily take in impressions, and moisture helps with that, just like wax that easily receives the imprint of a seal when it's soft.

Q. Why is the brain cold? A. 1. Because that by this coldness it may clear the understanding of man and make it subtle. 2. That by the coldness of the brain, the heat of the heart may be tempered.

Q. Why is the brain cold? A. 1. Because this coldness helps to clarify and sharpen human understanding. 2. The coldness of the brain also helps to balance the heat of the heart.


Of the Eyes.

Q. Why have you one nose and two eyes? A. Because light is more necessary to us than smelling; and therefore it doth proceed from the goodness of Nature, that if we receive any hurt or loss of one eye, the other should remain.

Q. Why do you have one nose and two eyes? A. Because light is more important to us than smell; and that's why, out of Nature's goodness, if we lose or hurt one eye, the other one remains.

Q. Why have children great eyes in their youth, which become small as they grow up? A. It proceeds from the want of fire, and from the assemblage and meeting together of the light and humour; the eyes, being lightened by the sun, which doth lighten the easy humour thereof and purge them: and, in the absence of the sun, those humours become dark and black, and the sight not so good.

Q. Why do children have bright eyes when they are young, but they become smaller as they grow older? A. It's due to a lack of vitality, and the combination of light and moisture; the eyes are brightened by the sun, which enhances the clear moisture and cleanses them. When the sun isn't present, that moisture becomes dark and murky, and vision isn't as good.

Q. Why does the blueish grey eye see badly in the day-time and well in the night? A. Because greyness is light and shining in itself, and the spirits with which we see are weakened in the day-time and strengthened in the night.

Q. Why does the bluish-grey eye see poorly during the day and well at night? A. Because greyness has a natural brightness and the spirits that help us see are weakened during the day and become stronger at night.

Q. Why are men's eyes of diverse colours? A. By reason of diversity of humours. The eye hath four coverings and three humours. The first covering is called consolidative, which is the outermost, strong and fat. The second is called a horny skin or covering, of the likeness of a horn; which is a clear covering. The third, uvea, of the likeness of a black grape. The fourth is called a cobweb. The first humour is called albuginous, from its likeness unto the white of an egg. The second glarial; that is, clear, like unto crystalline. The third vitreous, that is, clear as glass. And the diversity of humours causeth the diversity of the eyes.

Q. Why do men have eyes of different colors? A. Because of the variety of humors. The eye has four layers and three humors. The first layer is called the outer covering, which is strong and fatty. The second is called the cornea, which is a clear layer similar to horn. The third is the uvea, resembling a black grape. The fourth is known as the cobweb layer. The first humor is called the albuginous, since it's similar to the white of an egg. The second is called the glarial, meaning clear like crystal. The third is the vitreous, which is clear like glass. The variety of humors causes the diversity in eye colors.

Q. Why are men that have but one eye, good archers? and why do good archers commonly shut one? And why do such as behold the stars look through a trunk with one eye? A. This matter is handled in the perspective arts; and the reason is, as it doth appear in The Book of Causes, because that every virtue and strength united and knit together, is stronger than when dispersed and scattered. Therefore, all the force of seeing dispersed in two eyes, the one being shut, is gathered into the other, and so the light is fortified in him; and by consequence he doth see better and more certainly with one eye being shut, than when both are open.

Q. Why are men with only one eye good archers? And why do good archers usually close one eye? Also, why do people who observe the stars look through a tube with one eye? A. This topic is discussed in the perspective arts, and the reason, as shown in The Book of Causes, is that every virtue and strength, when united and combined, is stronger than when it is dispersed and scattered. Therefore, when the visual power from both eyes is divided, closing one eye concentrates all the seeing ability into the other. As a result, the light is enhanced in that eye, allowing him to see better and more accurately with one eye closed than when both are open.

Q. Why do those that drink and laugh much, shed most tears? A. Because that while they drink and laugh without measure the air which is drawn in doth not pass out through the windpipe, and so with force is directed and sent to the eyes, and by their pores passing out, doth expel the humours of the eyes; which humour being expelled, brings tears.

Q. Why do people who drink and laugh a lot end up crying the most? A. Because when they drink and laugh excessively, the air they breathe in doesn’t escape through the windpipe, and instead, it gets pushed with force to the eyes. As it exits through their pores, it releases the moisture in the eyes, which causes tears.

Q. Why do such as weep much, urine but little? A. Because the radical humidity of a tear and of urine are of one and the same nature, and, therefore, where weeping doth increase, urine diminishes. And that they are of one nature is plain to the taste, because they are both salt.

Q. Why do we cry a lot but urinate only a little? A. Because the fundamental moisture in tears and urine is essentially the same, so when we cry more, we urinate less. It’s obvious that they’re similar because they both taste salty.

Q. Why do some that have clear eyes see nothing? A. By reason of the oppilation and naughtiness of the sinews with which we see; for the temples being destroyed, the strength of the light cannot be carried from the brain to the eye.

Q. Why do some with clear eyes see nothing? A. Because of the obstruction and weakness of the nerves we use to see; when the temples are damaged, the light's strength can't be transmitted from the brain to the eye.

Q. Why is the eye clear and smooth like glass? A. 1. Because the things which may be seen are better beaten back from a smooth thing than otherwise, that thereby the sight should strengthen. 2. Because the eye is moist above all parts of the body, and of a waterish nature; and as the water is clear and smooth, so likewise is the eye.

Q. Why is the eye clear and smooth like glass? A. 1. Because smooth surfaces reflect things better, which helps improve our vision. 2. Because the eye is more moist than any other part of the body and has a watery quality; just like water is clear and smooth, so is the eye.

Q. Why do men and beasts who have their eyes deep in their head best see far off? A. Because the force and power by which we see is dispersed in them, and both go directly to the thing which is seen. Thus, when a man doth stand in a deep ditch or well, he doth see in the daytime the stars of the firmament; because then the power of the night and of the beams are not scattered.

Q. Why do men and animals with deep-set eyes see far away better? A. Because the strength and ability we use to see is concentrated in them, and both go straight to the thing being observed. So, when a person stands in a deep ditch or well, they can see the stars in the sky during the day; because at that point, the power of the night and the light isn’t dispersed.

Q. Wherefore do those men who have eyes far out in their head not see far distant? A. Because the beams of the sight which pass from the eye, are scattered on every side, and go not directly unto the thing that is seen, and therefore the sight is weakened.

Q. Why do those men who have eyes positioned far out on their heads not see far away? A. Because the rays of sight that come from the eye scatter in all directions and don’t go straight to the object being seen, which weakens their vision.

Q. Why are so many beasts born blind, as lions' whelps and dogs' whelps. A. Because such beasts are not yet of perfect ripeness and maturity, and the course of nutriment doth not work in them. Thus the swallow, whose eyes, if they were taken out when they are young in their nest, would grow in again. And this is the case in many beasts who are brought forth before their time as it were dead, as bear's whelps.

Q. Why are so many animals born blind, like lion cubs and puppy dogs? A. Because these animals aren’t fully developed or mature yet, and their nourishment hasn't worked in them properly. For example, if a young swallow has its eyes taken out while it's still in the nest, they will grow back. This happens with many animals that are born too early, like bear cubs, who seem lifeless.

Q. Why do the eyes of a woman that hath her flowers, stain new glass? And why doth a basilisk kill a man with his sight? A. When the flowers do run from a woman, then a most venomous air is distilled from them, which doth ascend into a woman's head; and she, having pain in her head, doth wrap it up with a cloth or handkerchief; and because the eyes are full of insensible holes, which are called pores, there the air seeketh a passage, and infects the eyes, which are full of blood. The eyes also appear dropping and full of tears, by reason of the evil vapour that is in them; and these vapours are incorporated and multiplied till they come to the glass before them; and by reason that such a glass is round, clear and smooth, it doth easily receive that which is unclean. 2. The basilisk is a very venomous and infectious animal, and there pass from his eyes vapours which are multiplied upon the thing which is seen by him, and even unto the eye of man; the which venomous vapours or humours entering into the body, do infect him, and so in the end the man dieth. And this is also the reason why the basilisk, looking upon a shield perfectly well made with fast clammy pitch, or any hard smooth thing, doth kill itself, because the humours are beaten back from the hard smooth thing unto the basilisk, by which beating back he is killed.

Q. Why do the eyes of a woman with her flowers stain new glass? And why does a basilisk kill a man with its gaze? A. When the flowers fade from a woman, a very noxious air is released from them, which rises into her head; and she, feeling pain in her head, wraps it up with a cloth or handkerchief. Because the eyes have many tiny openings, called pores, the air finds a way in and infects the eyes, which are full of blood. The eyes also look watery and full of tears due to the harmful vapor inside them; these vapors mix and multiply until they reach the glass in front of them. Since that glass is round, clear, and smooth, it easily collects what is dirty. 2. The basilisk is a very poisonous and infectious creature, and vapors emanate from its eyes that multiply onto whatever it sees, even reaching a person's eye. These poisonous vapors or fluids enter the body, infecting it, and ultimately causing death. This explains why the basilisk, when looking at a shield made perfectly with sticky pitch or any hard, smooth surface, destroys itself; the fluids are repelled back from the hard, smooth surface towards the basilisk, which results in its death.

Q. Why is the sparkling in cats' eyes and wolves' eyes seen in the dark and not in the light? A. Because that the greater light doth darken the lesser; and therefore, in a greater light the sparkling cannot be seen; but the greater the darkness, the easier it is seen, and is more strong and shining.

Q. Why do cats' and wolves' eyes sparkle in the dark but not in the light? A. Because the brighter light overshadows the dimmer; so in bright light, the sparkle can't be seen. However, in darker conditions, it's more noticeable and appears stronger and brighter.

Q. Why is the sight recreated and refreshed by a green colour? A. Because green doth merely move the sight, and therefore doth comfort it; but this doth not, in black or white colours, because these colours do vehemently stir and alter the organ and instrument of the sight, and therefore make the greater violence; and by how much the more violent the thing is which is felt or seen the more it doth destroy and weaken the sense.

Q. Why does the sight feel revived and refreshed by the color green? A. Because green simply engages the eye, and therefore provides comfort; while this isn't true for black or white, as those colors strongly provoke and disturb the eye, leading to greater strain. The more intense the sensation of what is seen or felt, the more it can damage and weaken the sense.


Of the Nose.

Q. Why doth the nose stand out further than any other part of the body. A. 1. Because the nose is, as it were, the sink of the brain, by which the phlegm of the brain is purged; and therefore it doth stand forth, lest the other parts should be defiled. 2. Because the nose is the beauty of the face, and doth smell.

Q. Why does the nose stick out more than any other part of the body? A. 1. Because the nose is, in a way, the drain for the brain, where excess brain fluid is cleared out; and that's why it stands out, to keep the other parts from getting dirty. 2. Because the nose adds to the beauty of the face and is responsible for smell.

Q. Why hath a man the worst smell of all creatures? A. Because man hath most brains of all creatures; and, therefore, by exceeding coldness and moisture, the brain wanteth a good disposition, and by consequence, the smelling instrument is not good, yea, some men have no smell.

Q. Why does a man have the worst smell of all creatures? A. Because man has the most brains of all creatures; and, therefore, due to excessive coldness and moisture, the brain lacks a good condition, and consequently, the sense of smell is not good; in fact, some men have no sense of smell at all.

Q. Why have vultures and cormorants a keen smell? A. Because they have a very dry brain; and, therefore, the air carrying the smell, is not hindered by the humidity of the brain, but doth presently touch its instrument; and, therefore, vultures, tigers and other ravenous beasts, have been known to come five hundred miles after dead bodies.

Q. Why do vultures and cormorants have such a strong sense of smell? A. Because they have very dry brains; as a result, the air carrying the smell isn't blocked by the humidity of the brain, allowing it to directly stimulate their sense of smell. That's why vultures, tigers, and other scavenging animals have been known to travel up to five hundred miles to find dead bodies.

Q. Why did nature make the nostrils? A. 1. Because the mouth being shut we draw breath in by the nostrils, to refresh the heart. 2. Because the air which proceedeth from the mouth doth savour badly, because of the vapours which rise from the stomach, but that which we breathe from the nose is not noisome. 3. Because the phlegm which doth proceed from the brain is purged by them.

Q. Why did nature create nostrils? A. 1. Because when the mouth is closed, we breathe through the nostrils to refresh the heart. 2. Because the air that comes from the mouth has an unpleasant smell due to the vapors that rise from the stomach, but the air we breathe through the nose isn't foul. 3. Because the mucus that comes from the brain is cleared out by them.

Q. Why do men sneeze? A. That the expulsive virtue and power of the sight should thereby be purged, and the brain also from superfluities; because, as the lungs are purged by coughing, so is the sight and brain by sneezing; and therefore physicians give sneezing medicaments to purge the brain; and thus it is, such sick persons as cannot sneeze, die quickly, because it is a sign their brain is wholly stuffed with evil humours, which cannot be purged.

Q. Why do men sneeze? A. Sneezing helps clear the eyes and the brain of excess substances; just like coughing clears the lungs, sneezing clears the eyes and brain. That's why doctors provide medications to induce sneezing to cleanse the brain. People who cannot sneeze tend to die quickly because it indicates their brain is completely blocked with harmful substances that can't be eliminated.

Q. Why do such as are apoplectic sneeze, that is, such as are subject easily to bleed? A. Because the passages, or ventricles of the brain are stopped, and if they could sneeze, their apoplexy would be loosed.

Q. Why do people who have apoplexy sneeze, meaning those who are prone to bleeding? A. Because the pathways or chambers in the brain are blocked, and if they could sneeze, their apoplexy would be relieved.

Q. Why does the heat of the sun provoke sneezing, and not the heat of the fire? A. Because the heat of the sun doth dissolve, but not consume, and therefore the vapour dissolved is expelled by sneezing; but the heat of the fire doth dissolve and consume, and therefore doth rather hinder sneezing than provoke it.

Q. Why does sunlight make you sneeze but fire doesn't? A. Because sunlight dissolves but doesn't consume, so the vapor it creates makes you sneeze. In contrast, fire both dissolves and consumes, which usually stops you from sneezing instead of causing it.


Of the Ears.

Q. Why do beasts move their ears, and not men? A. Because there is a certain muscle near the under jaw which doth cause motion in the ear; and therefore, that muscle being extended and stretched, men do not move their ears, as it hath been seen in divers men; but all beasts do use that muscle or fleshy sinew, and therefore do move their ears.

Q. Why do animals move their ears, but not humans? A. Because there’s a specific muscle near the lower jaw that allows for ear movement; and since that muscle is stretched and extended in humans, they don't move their ears, as has been observed in various individuals; however, all animals utilize that muscle or fleshy tendon, which is why they can move their ears.

Q. Why is rain prognosticated by the pricking up of asses' ears? A. Because the ass is of a melancholic constitution, and the approach of rain produceth that effect on such a constitution. In the time of rain all beasts prick up their ears, but the ass before it comes.

Q. Why do donkeys perk up their ears when rain is coming? A. Because donkeys have a naturally gloomy temperament, and the coming of rain affects them in this way. While all animals raise their ears during rain, donkeys do so before it arrives.

Q. Why have some animals no ears? A. Nature giveth unto everything that which is fit for it, but if she had given birds ears, their flying would have been hindered by them. Likewise fish want ears, because they would hinder their swimming, and have only certain little holes through which they hear.

Q. Why do some animals not have ears? A. Nature provides everything with what it needs, but if birds had ears, it would hinder their ability to fly. Similarly, fish don’t have ears because they would interfere with their swimming, and they only have small openings through which they can hear.

Q. Why have bats ears, although of the bird kind? A. Because they are partly birds in nature, in that they fly, by reason whereof they have wings; and partly they are hairy and seem to be of the nature of mice, therefore nature hath given them ears.

Q. Why do bats have ears that resemble those of birds? A. Because they are partly like birds since they can fly, which is why they have wings; and they are also hairy and seem similar to mice, so nature has given them ears.

Q. Why have men only round ears? A. Because the shape of the whole and of the parts should be proportionable, and especially in all things of one nature; for as a drop of water is round, so the whole water: and so, because a man's head is round, the ears incline towards the same figure; but the heads of beasts are somewhat long, and so the ears are drawn into length likewise.

Q. Why do men have only round ears? A. Because the shape of the whole and its parts should be proportional, especially among things of the same kind; just like a drop of water is round, so is the whole body of water. Since a man's head is round, the ears naturally follow that shape. However, the heads of animals are somewhat elongated, so their ears are drawn out longer as well.

Q. Why hath nature given all living creatures ears? A. 1. Because with them they should hear. 2. Because by the ear choleric superfluity is purged; for as the head is purged of phlegmatic superfluity by the nose, so from choleric, by the ears.

Q. Why has nature given all living creatures ears? A. 1. Because they should hear with them. 2. Because the ear helps to release excess anger; just as the nose clears excess phlegm from the head, the ears help get rid of excess anger.


Of the Mouth.

Q. Why hath the mouth lips to compass it? A. Because the lips cover and defend the teeth; for it would be unseemly if the teeth were always seen. Also, the teeth being of a cold nature, would be soon hurt if they were not covered with lips.

Q. Why does the mouth have lips around it? A. Because the lips protect and shield the teeth; it would look strange if the teeth were always visible. Also, since the teeth are cold, they would get damaged quickly if they weren't covered by lips.

Q. Why has a man two eyes and but one mouth? A. Because a man should speak but little, and hear and see much. And by hearing and the light we see difference of things.

Q. Why does a man have two eyes and only one mouth? A. Because a man should speak little and listen and observe a lot. Through listening and seeing, we can notice the differences in things.

Q. Why hath a man a mouth? A. 1. Because the mouth is the gate and door of the stomach. 2. Because the meat is chewed in the mouth, and prepared and made ready for the first digestion. 3. Because the air drawn into the hollow of the mouth for the refreshing of the heart, is made pure and subtle.

Q. Why does a man have a mouth? A. 1. Because the mouth is the entrance and exit for the stomach. 2. Because food is chewed in the mouth and prepared for the initial digestion. 3. Because the air taken into the mouth to refresh the heart is purified and refined.

Q. Why are the lips moveable? A. For the purpose of forming the voice and words which cannot be perfectly done without them. For as without a, b, c, there is no writing, so without the lips no voice can well be formed.

Q. Why can the lips move? A. They are used to create sounds and words, which can't be done perfectly without them. Just like you can't write without a, b, c, you can't form a clear voice without lips.

Q. What causes men to yawn or gape? A. It proceeds from the thick fume and vapours that fill the jaws; by the expulsion of which is caused the stretching out and expansion of the jaws, and opening of the mouth.

Q. What causes men to yawn or gape? A. It comes from the thick fumes and vapors that fill the jaws; the release of these causes the jaws to stretch and expand, leading to the opening of the mouth.

Q. Why doth a man gape when he seeth another do the same? A. It proceeds from the imagination. And this is proved by the similitude of the ass, who by reason of his melancholy, doth retain his superfluity for a long time, and would neither eat nor piss unless he should hear another doing the like.

Q. Why does a man yawn when he sees someone else doing it? A. It comes from the imagination. This is shown by the example of the donkey, which due to its sadness, holds onto its excess for a long time and won't eat or urinate unless it hears another doing the same.


Of the Teeth.

Q. Why do the teeth only, amongst all ether bones, experience the sense of feeling? A. That they may discern heat and cold, that hurt them, which other bones need not.

Q. Why do the teeth, unlike all other bones, have the sense of feeling? A. So that they can sense heat and cold that causes them pain, which other bones do not need to feel.

Q. Why have men more teeth than women? A. By reason of the abundance of heat and cold which is more in men than in women.

Q. Why do men have more teeth than women? A. Because they experience more extreme heat and cold than women do.

Q. Why do the teeth grow to the end of our life, and not the other bones? A. Because otherwise they would be consumed with chewing and grinding.

Q. Why do our teeth keep growing throughout our lives, while other bones don't? A. Because if they didn't, they would wear down from all the chewing and grinding.

Q. Why do the teeth only come again when they fall, or be taken out, and other bones being taken away, grow no more? A. Because other bones are engendered of the humidity which is called radical, and so they breed in the womb of the mother, but the teeth are engendered of nutritive humidity, which is renewed and increased from day to day.

Q. Why do teeth only grow back when they fall out or are removed, while other bones, once taken away, do not grow again? A. Because other bones are formed from the moisture known as radical humidity, which develops in the mother’s womb, but teeth are formed from nutritive moisture, which is refreshed and increased daily.

Q. Why do the fore-teeth fall in youth, and grow again, and not the cheek teeth? A. From the defect of matter, and from the figure; because the fore-teeth are sharp, and the others broad. Also, it is the office of the fore-teeth to cut the meat, and therefore they are sharp; and the office of the others to chew the meat, and therefore they are broad in fashion, which is fittest for that purpose.

Q. Why do the front teeth fall out during childhood, and then grow back, but not the molars? A. It's due to their structure and material; the front teeth are sharp while the molars are wide. Also, the function of the front teeth is to cut food, which is why they are sharp, whereas the molars are designed for grinding food, which is why they are broad.

Q. Why do the fore-teeth grow soonest? A. Because we want them sooner in cutting than the others in chewing.

Q. Why do the front teeth grow in first? A. Because we need them for cutting food sooner than we need the others for chewing.

Q. Why do the teeth grow black in human creatures in their old age? A. It is occasioned by the corruption of the meat, and the corruption of phlegm with a choleric humour.

Q. Why do teeth turn black in humans as they age? A. This happens due to the decay of food and the breakdown of phlegm combined with a bile imbalance.

Q. Why are colts' teeth yellow, and of the colour of saffron, when they are young, and become white when they grow up? A. Because horses have abundance of watery humours in them, which in their youth are digested and converted into grossness; but in old age heat diminishes, and the watery humours remain, whose proper colour is white.

Q. Why are colts' teeth yellow and the color of saffron when they are young, but turn white as they get older? A. It's because horses have a lot of watery substances in them, which in their youth are digested and turned into coarseness; but as they age, the heat decreases, and the watery substances stay, and their natural color is white.

Q. Why did nature give living creatures teeth? A. To some to fight with, and for defence of their lives, as unto wolves and bears, unto some to eat with, as unto horses, unto some for the forming of the voices, as unto men.

Q. Why did nature give living creatures teeth? A. Some use them to fight and defend themselves, like wolves and bears; some use them for eating, like horses; and some use them to form sounds, like humans.

Q. Why do horned beasts want their upper teeth? A. Horns and teeth are caused by the same matter, that is, nutrimental humidity, and therefore the matter which passeth into the horns turneth not into teeth, consequently they want the upper teeth. And such beasts cannot chew well; therefore, to supply the want of teeth, they have two stomachs, from whence it returns and they chew it again, then it goes into the other to be digested.

Q. Why do horned animals lack their upper teeth? A. Horns and teeth are formed from the same substance, which is the nutritional moisture, so the material that goes into the horns doesn't turn into teeth. That's why they lack upper teeth. These animals can't chew food well, so to make up for the missing teeth, they have two stomachs. Food goes into one stomach, then comes back so they can chew it again before it goes into the other stomach to be digested.

Q. Why are some creatures brought forth with teeth, as kids and lambs; and some without, as men? A. Nature doth not want in necessary things, nor abound in things superfluous; and therefore, because these beasts, not long after they are fallen, do need teeth, they are fallen with teeth; but men, being nourished by their mother, for a long time do not stand in need of teeth.

Q. Why are some creatures born with teeth, like kids and lambs, while others, like humans, are not? A. Nature doesn't lack what is essential or have an excess of unnecessary things; therefore, because these animals, shortly after birth, need teeth, they are born with them. Humans, on the other hand, are fed by their mothers for a longer time and don't need teeth right away.


Of the Tongue.

Q. Why is the tongue full of pores? A. Because the tongue is the means whereby which we taste; and through the mouth, in the pores of the tongue, doth proceed the sense of tasting. Again, it is observed, that frothy spittle is sent into the mouth by the tongue from the lungs, moistening the meat and making it ready for digestion.

Q. Why does the tongue have so many small openings? A. Because the tongue is how we taste things; the sense of taste comes through the mouth and the tiny openings in the tongue. Also, it's noted that bubbly saliva is brought into the mouth by the tongue from the lungs, moistening the food and preparing it for digestion.

Q. Why do the tongues of such as are sick of agues judge all things bitter? A. Because the stomachs of such persons are filled with choleric humours; and choler is very bitter, as appeareth by the gall; therefore this bitter fume doth infect their tongues; and so the tongue, being full of these tastes, doth judge everything bitter.

Q. Why do people with fevers find everything bitter? A. Because their stomachs are filled with choleric humor, which is very bitter, as seen in gall; this bitter substance affects their tongues, so when their tongues are overwhelmed by these flavors, they perceive everything as bitter.

Q. Why doth the tongue water when we hear sour and sharp things spoken of? A. Because the imaginative virtue or power is of greater force than the power or faculty of tasting; and when we imagine a taste, we conceive the power of tasting as a swan; there is nothing felt by the taste, but by means of the spittle the tongue doth water.

Q. Why does the mouth water when we hear about sour and sharp things? A. Because our imagination is more powerful than our sense of taste; when we think of a taste, we activate our ability to taste like a swan. There’s nothing actually tasted, but the saliva makes the mouth water.

Q. Why do some persons stammer and lisp? A. Sometimes through the moistness of the tongue and brain, as in children, who cannot speak plainly nor pronounce many letters. Sometimes it happeneth by reason of the shrinking of certain sinews which go to the tongue, which are corrupted with phlegm.

Q. Why do some people stammer and lisp? A. Sometimes it's due to the moisture in the tongue and brain, like in children who can't speak clearly or pronounce many letters. Other times, it happens because certain muscles connected to the tongue shrink and get affected by phlegm.

Q. Why are the tongues of serpents and mad dogs venomous? A. Because of the malignity and tumosity of the venomous humour which predominates in them.

Q. Why are the tongues of snakes and rabid dogs poisonous? A. Because of the harmful and swollen nature of the toxic substance that is dominant in them.

Q. Why is a dog's tongue good for medicine, and a horse's tongue pestiferous? A. By reason of some secret property, or that the tongue of a dog is full of pores, and so doth draw and take away the viscosity of the wound. It is observed that a dog hath some humour in his tongue, with which, by licking he doth heal; but the contrary effect is the lick of a horse's tongue.

Q. Why is a dog's tongue beneficial for healing, while a horse's tongue is harmful? A. Because of some hidden quality, or because a dog's tongue is full of pores, which helps absorb and remove the thickness of the wound. It's noted that a dog has some kind of fluid in its tongue that aids in healing through licking, but the opposite effect occurs with a horse's tongue.

Q. Why is spittle white? A. By reason of the continual moving of the tongue, whereof heat is engendered, which doth make this superfluity white; as seen in the froth of water.

Q. Why is saliva white? A. Because of the constant movement of the tongue, which generates heat that makes this excess white, just like the foam in water.

Q. Why is spittle unsavoury and without taste? A. If it had a certain determinate taste, then the tongue would not taste at all, but only have the taste of spittle, and could not distinguish others.

Q. Why is spit unpleasant and tasteless? A. If it had a distinct taste, then the tongue wouldn't taste anything else, but would only taste the spit, and wouldn't be able to distinguish other flavors.

Q. Why doth the spittle of one that is fasting heal an imposthume? A. Because it is well digested and made subtle.

Q. Why does the saliva of someone who is fasting heal a sore? A. Because it is well digested and refined.

Q. Why do some abound in spittle more than others? A. This doth proceed of a phlegmatic complexion, which doth predominate in them; and such are liable to a quotidian ague, which ariseth from the predominance of phlegm; the contrary in those that spit little, because heat abounds in them, which consumes the humidity of the spittle; and so the defect of spittle is a sign of fever.

Q. Why do some people produce more saliva than others? A. This is due to having a phlegmatic temperament, which is stronger in them; and these individuals are prone to a daily fever caused by an excess of phlegm. In contrast, those who produce little saliva have more heat in their bodies, which dries up the moisture of the saliva; therefore, having less saliva can indicate a fever.

Q. Why is the spittle of a man that is fasting more subtle than of one that is full? A. Because the spittle is without the viscosity of meat, which is wont to make the spittle of one who is full, gross and thick.

Q. Why is the saliva of a fasting person thinner than that of someone who has eaten? A. Because the saliva lacks the thickness from the meat, which tends to make the saliva of a full person thick and heavy.

Q. From whence proceeds the spittle of a man? A. From the froth of the lungs, which according to the physicians, is the seat of the phlegm.

Q. Where does a man's spit come from? A. From the froth of the lungs, which, according to doctors, is the source of phlegm.

Q. Why are beasts when going together for generation very full of froth and foam? A. Because then the lights and heart are in greater motion of lust; therefore there is engendered in them much frothy matter.

Q. Why do animals produce a lot of froth and foam when they mate? A. Because during that time, their instincts and emotions are more intense; that's why they generate a lot of frothy substance.

Q. Why have not birds spittle? A. Because they have very dry lungs.

Q. Why don't birds spit? A. Because they have very dry lungs.

Q. Why doth the tongue sometimes lose the use of speaking? A. It is occasioned by a palsy or apoplexy, which is a sudden effusion of blood, and by gross humours; and sometimes also by infection of spiritus animates in the middle cell of the brain which hinders the spirits from being carried to the tongue.

Q. Why does the tongue sometimes lose the ability to speak? A. It is caused by a stroke or seizure, which is a sudden outpouring of blood, and by thick fluids; and sometimes also by an infection of the spiritus animates in the middle part of the brain that prevents the spirits from reaching the tongue.


Of the Roof of the Mouth.

Q. Why are fruits, before they are ripe, of a bitter and sour relish, and afterward sweet? A. A sour relish or taste proceeds from coldness and want of heat in gross and thick humidity; but a sweet taste is produced by sufficient heat; therefore in the ripe fruit humidity is subtle through the heat of the sun, and such fruit is commonly sweet; but before it is ripe, as humidity is gross or subtle for want of heat, the fruit is bitter or sour.

Q. Why are fruits bitter and sour before they ripen, but sweet afterward? A. A sour taste comes from being cold and lacking warmth in thick moisture; however, a sweet taste comes from sufficient heat. Therefore, in ripe fruit, the moisture is subtle due to the sun's heat, making it sweet; but before it ripens, the moisture is thick or subtle because of a lack of heat, resulting in the fruit being bitter or sour.

Q. Why are we better delighted with sweet tastes than with bitter or any other? A. Because a sweet thing is hot and moist, and through its heat dissolves and consumes superfluous humidities, and by this humidity immundicity is washed away; but a sharp, eager taste, by reason of the cold which predominates in it, doth bind overmuch, and prick and offend the parts of the body in purging, and therefore we do not delight in that taste.

Q. Why do we enjoy sweet tastes more than bitter ones or others? A. Because something sweet is hot and moist, and its heat helps to dissolve and eliminate excess moisture, which in turn cleans away impurities; but a sharp, intense taste, due to its cold nature, constricts too much and irritates the body's parts during cleansing, which is why we don't take pleasure in that taste.

Q. Why doth a sharp taste, as that of vinegar, provoke appetite rather than any other? A. Because it is cold, and doth cool. For it is the nature of cold to desire to draw, and therefore it is the cause of appetite.

Q. Why does a sharp taste, like that of vinegar, stimulate appetite more than others? A. Because it's cold and cools you down. It's the nature of cold to want to draw things in, and that’s why it sparks appetite.

Q. Why do we draw in more air than we breathe out? A. Because much air is drawn in that is converted into nutriment, and with the vital spirits is contained in the lungs. Therefore a beast is not suffocated as long as it receives air with its lungs, in which some part of the air remaineth also.

Q. Why do we inhale more air than we exhale? A. Because we take in a lot of air that gets turned into nutrients, and along with the vital energy, it stays in the lungs. So, an animal won't suffocate as long as it continues to take in air with its lungs, where some of the air also remains.

Q. Why doth the air seem to be expelled and put forth, seeing the air is invisible, by reason of its variety and thinness? A. Because the air which is received in us, is mingled with vapours and fumes from the heart, by reason whereof it is made thick, and so is seen. And this is proved by experience, because that in winter, we see our breath, for the coldness of the air doth bind the air mixed with fume, and so it is thickened and made gross, and by consequence is seen.

Q. Why does the air seem to be expelled and released, even though air is invisible, due to its variety and thinness? A. Because the air that we take in is mixed with vapors and fumes from the heart, which makes it thicker and therefore visible. This is proven by experience, as in winter we can see our breath because the cold air condenses the air mixed with fumes, making it thicker and more visible.

Q. Why have some persons stinking breath? A. Because of the evil fumes that arise from the stomach. And sometimes it doth proceed from the corruption of the airy parts of the body, as the lungs. The breath of lepers is so infected that it would poison birds if near them, because the inward parts are very corrupt.

Q. Why do some people have bad breath? A. It's because of the harmful gases that come from the stomach. Sometimes it also comes from the decay of the respiratory system, like the lungs. The breath of lepers is so contaminated that it could poison birds if they were close by, due to the severe internal corruption.

Q. Why are lepers hoarse? A. Because the vocal instruments are corrupted, that is, the lights.

Q. Why do lepers have a hoarse voice? A. Because their vocal cords are damaged, specifically the vocal folds.

Q. Why do persons become hoarse? A. Because of the rheum descending from the brain, filling the conduit of the lights; and sometimes through imposthumes of the throat, or rheum gathering in the neck.

Q. Why do people become hoarse? A. Because of the mucus coming down from the brain, clogging the airway; and sometimes due to abscesses in the throat, or mucus building up in the neck.

Q. Why have the females of all living creatures the shrillest voices, the crow only excepted, and a woman a shriller and smaller voice than a man? A. By reason of the composition of the veins and vocal arteries the voice is formed, as appears by this similitude, that a small pipe sounds shriller than a great. Also in women, because the passage where the voice is formed is made narrow and strait, by reason of cold, it being the nature of cold to bind; but in men, the passage is open and wider through heat, because it is the property of heat to open and dissolve. It proceedeth in women through the moistness of the lungs, and weakness of the heat. Young and diseased men have sharp and shrill voices from the same cause.

Q. Why do female animals have the shrillest voices, except for crows, and why do women have higher and smaller voices than men? A. It's because of the structure of the veins and vocal cords that the voice is formed. Think of it like this: a small pipe makes a sharper sound than a larger one. In women, the area where the voice is created is narrower and tighter due to cold, since cold tends to constrict. In men, the passage is open and wider because of warmth, as heat tends to open things up. Women's voices also result from the moisture in their lungs and less heat. Young and sick men can have high-pitched and shrill voices for the same reasons.

Q. Why doth the voice change in men at fourteen, and in women at twelve; in men they begin to yield seed, in women when their breasts begin to grow? A. Because then the beginning of the voice is slackened and loosened; and this is proved by the similitude of the string of an instrument let down or loosened, which gives a great sound, and also because creatures that are gelded, as eunuchs, capons., etc., have softer and slenderer voices than others, by the want of their stones.

Q. Why does the voice change in men at fourteen and in women at twelve? In men, it's when they start to produce sperm, and in women, it's when their breasts begin to develop. A. Because at that age, the voice starts to loosen and relax; this is similar to a musical instrument string that is loosened, which produces a deeper sound. Also, creatures that are castrated, like eunuchs and capons, have softer and thinner voices than others because they lack their testicles.

Q. Why do small birds sing more and louder than great ones, as appears in the lark and nightingale? A. Because the spirits of small birds are subtle and soft, and the organ conduit strait, as appeareth in a pipe; therefore their notes following easily at desire, they sing very soft.

Q. Why do small birds sing more and louder than larger ones, like the lark and nightingale? A. Because small birds have delicate and gentle spirits, and their vocal tracts are narrow, similar to a pipe; this allows their notes to flow easily, so they sing very softly.

Q. Why do bees, wasps, locusts and many other such like insects, make a noise, seeing they have no lungs, nor instruments of music? A. Because in them there is a certain small skin, which, when struck by the air, causeth a sound.

Q. Why do bees, wasps, locusts, and many other similar insects make noise even though they don't have lungs or musical instruments? A. Because they have a small membrane that, when hit by the air, creates a sound.

Q. Why do not fish make a sound? A. Because they have no lungs, but only gills, nor yet a heart, and therefore they need not the drawing in of the air, and by consequence they make no noise, because a voice is a percussion of the air which is drawing.

Q. Why don't fish make a sound? A. Because they have no lungs, only gills, and they don’t have a heart, so they don't need to draw in air, and as a result, they make no noise, since a voice is created by the vibration of air that is being drawn in.


Of the Neck.

Q. Why hath a living creature a neck? A. Because the neck is the supporter of the head, and therefore the neck is in the middle between the head and the body, to the intent that by it, and by its sinews, motion and sense of the body might be conveyed through all the body; and that by means of the neck, the heart, which is very hot, might be separated from the brain.

Q. Why does a living creature have a neck? A. Because the neck supports the head, which is why it is located between the head and the body. This way, it allows movement and sensation to be transmitted throughout the body. Additionally, the neck helps separate the heart, which is very warm, from the brain.

Q. Why do some creatures want necks, as serpents and fishes? A. Because they want hearts, and therefore want that assistance which we have spoken of; or else they have a neck in some inward part of them, which is not distinguished outwardly.

Q. Why do some creatures want necks, like snakes and fish? A. Because they want hearts, and so they seek the support we mentioned; or they have a neck in some internal part of them that isn't visible from the outside.

Q. Why is the neck full of bones and joints? A. That it may bear and sustain the head the better. Also, because the back bone is joined to the brain in the neck, and from thence it receives marrow, which is of the substance of the brain.

Q. Why is the neck full of bones and joints? A. So it can better support and hold up the head. Also, because the spinal column connects to the brain in the neck, and from there it gets marrow, which is made up of the same substance as the brain.

Q. Why have some creatures long necks, as cranes, storks and such like? A. Because such birds seek their food at the bottom of waters. And some creatures have short necks, as sparrows, hawks, etc., because such are ravenous, and therefore for strength have short necks, as appeareth in the ox, who has a short neck and strong.

Q. Why do some creatures have long necks, like cranes, storks, and similar birds? A. Because these birds look for food at the bottom of the water. And some creatures have short necks, like sparrows and hawks, because they are aggressive, and for strength, they have short necks, as can be seen in the ox, which has a short and strong neck.

Q. Why is the neck hollow, and especially before, about the tongue? A. Because there are two passages, whereof the one doth carry the meat to the nutritive instrument, or stomach and liver, which is called by the Greeks Aesophagus; and the other is the windpipe.

Q. Why is the neck hollow, especially around the tongue? A. Because there are two passages: one carries food to the digestive system, or stomach and liver, which the Greeks call Aesophagus; and the other is the windpipe.

Q. Why is the artery made with rings and circle? A. The better to bow and give a good sounding.

Q. Why is the artery made with rings and circles? A. To bend easily and produce a better sound.


Of the Shoulders and Arms.

Q. Why hath a man shoulders and arms? A. To lift and carry burdens.

Q. Why does a man have shoulders and arms? A. To lift and carry burdens.

Q. Why are the arms round? A. For the swifter and speedier work.

Q. Why are the arms round? A. To make work faster and more efficient.

Q. Why are the arms thick? A. That they may be strong to lift and bear burdens, and thrust and give a strong blow; so their bones are thick, because they contain much marrow, or they would be easily corrupted and injured.

Q. Why are the arms thick? A. So they can be strong enough to lift and carry heavy loads, push hard, and deliver a strong punch; their bones are thick because they have a lot of marrow, or else they would be easily damaged and harmed.

Q. Why do the arms become small and slender in some diseases, as in mad men, and such as are sick of the dropsy? A. Because all the parts of the body do suffer the one with the other; and therefore one member being in grief, all the humours do concur and run thicker to give succour and help to the aforesaid grief.

Q. Why do the arms become small and thin in some illnesses, like in people with mental issues or those suffering from dropsy? A. Because all parts of the body affect each other; so when one part is in distress, all the fluids gather and thicken to provide support and help to that distress.

Q. Why have brute beasts no arms? A. Their fore feet are instead of arms, and in their place.

Q. Why don't brute beasts have arms? A. Their front feet act as arms instead.


Of the Hands.

Q. For what use hath a man hands, and an ape also, like unto a man? A. The hand is an instrument a man doth especially make use of, because many things are done by the hands, and not by any other part.

Q. What purpose do a man's hands serve, and how are they similar to an ape's hands? A. The hand is a tool that a man uses primarily, as many tasks are accomplished with the hands and not with any other part.

Q. Why are some men ambo-dexter, that is, they use the left hand as the right? A. By reason of the great heat of the heart, and for the hot bowing of the same, for it is that which makes a man as nimble of the left hand as of the right.

Q. Why do some men use their left hand like their right? A. Because of the intense heat of the heart, and due to the energetic movement of it; this is what allows a person to be as quick with their left hand as with their right.

Q. Why are the fingers full of joints? A. To be more fit and apt to receive and keep what is put in them.

Q. Why do fingers have so many joints? A. So they can better receive and hold onto what’s placed in them.

Q. Why hath every finger three joints, and the thumb but two? A. The thumb hath three, but the third is joined to the arm, therefore is stronger than the other fingers; and is called pollex or polico, that is, to excel in strength.

Q. Why does every finger have three joints, while the thumb has only two? A. The thumb actually has three, but the third is connected to the arm, which makes it stronger than the other fingers; it’s called pollex or polico, meaning to excel in strength.

Q. Why are the fingers of the right hand nimbler than the fingers of the left? A. It proceedeth from the heat that predominates in those parts, and causeth great agility.

Q. Why are the fingers of the right hand more agile than the fingers of the left? A. It comes from the heat that is stronger in those areas, which leads to greater agility.


Of the Nails.

Q. From whence do nails proceed? A. Of the tumosity and humours, which are resolved and go into the extremities of the fingers; and they are dried through the power of the external air, and brought to the hardness of horn.

Q. Where do nails come from? A. They come from the swelling and fluids that are processed and travel to the tips of the fingers; they dry out due to the influence of the outside air and become as hard as horn.

Q. Why do the nails of old men grow black and pale? A. Because the heat of the heart decaying causeth their beauty to decay also.

Q. Why do old men's nails turn black and pale? A. Because the heat from their failing heart also causes their beauty to fade.

Q. Why are men judged to be good or evil complexioned by the colour of the nails? A. Because they give witness of the goodness or badness of their heart, and therefore of the complexion, for if they be somewhat red, they betoken choler well tempered; but if they be yellowish or black, they signify melancholy.

Q. Why are men considered good or evil based on the color of their nails? A. Because their nail color reflects the goodness or badness of their character, and thus their overall appearance. If the nails are somewhat red, it indicates a well-balanced temperament; but if they appear yellowish or black, it suggests melancholy.

Q. Why do white spots appear in the nails? A. Through mixture of phlegm with nutriment.

Q. Why do white spots appear on the nails? A. Because of a combination of phlegm with nutrients.


Of the Paps and Dugs.

Q. Why are the paps placed upon the breasts? A. Because the breast is the seat of the heart, which is most hot; and therefore the paps grow there, to the end that the menses being conveyed thither as being near the heat of the heart, should the sooner be digested, perfected and converted with the matter and substance of the milk.

Q. Why are the nipples located on the breasts? A. Because the breast is where the heart is, which is very warm; and that's why the nipples develop there, so that the menstrual flow, being close to the warmth of the heart, can be digested, perfected, and transformed into the matter and substance of milk more quickly.

Q. Why are the paps below the breasts in beasts, and above the breast in women? A. Because woman goes upright, and has two legs only; and therefore if her paps were below her breasts, they would hinder her going; but beasts having four feet prevents that inconveniency.

Q. Why are nipples below the breasts in animals, and above the breasts in women? A. Because women stand upright and only have two legs; if their nipples were below their breasts, it would get in the way of walking, but animals with four legs avoid that issue.

Q. Whether are great, small or middle-sized paps best for children to suck? A. In great ones the heat is dispersed, there is no good digestion of the milk; but in small ones the power and force is strong, because a virtue united is strongest; and by consequence there is a good digestion for the milk.

Q. Are large, small, or medium-sized breasts better for children to nurse? A. In larger ones, the heat is spread out, leading to poor digestion of the milk; but in smaller ones, the strength and power are concentrated, as unity makes strength; therefore, digestion of the milk is better.

Q. Why have not men as great paps and breasts as women? A. Because men have not monthly terms, and therefore have no vessel deputed for them.

Q. Why don't men have large breasts like women? A. Because men don't have monthly cycles, so they don't have a designated organ for that.

Q. Why do the paps of young women begin to grow about thirteen or fifteen years of age? A. Because then the flowers have no course to the teats, by which the young one is nourished, but follow their ordinary course and therefore wax soft.

Q. Why do the breasts of young women start to develop around the ages of thirteen or fifteen? A. Because at that age, the flowers no longer provide sustenance to the nipples, which nourish the young one, but instead follow their natural course and become softer.

Q. Why hath a woman who is with child of a boy, the right pap harder than the left? A. Because the male child is conceived in the right side of the mother; and therefore the flowers do run to the right pap, and make it hard.

Q. Why does a woman pregnant with a boy have a right breast harder than the left? A. Because the male child is conceived on the right side of the mother; and therefore the milk flows to the right breast, making it hard.

Q. Why doth it show weakness of the child, when the milk doth drop out of the paps before the woman is delivered? A. Because the milk is the proper nutriment of the child in the womb of its mother, therefore if the milk run out, it is a token that the child is not nourished, and consequently is weak.

Q. Why does it show weakness in the child when the milk comes out of the breasts before the woman gives birth? A. Because the milk is the proper nourishment for the child in its mother's womb, so if the milk flows out, it indicates that the child is not getting enough nutrition and is therefore weak.

Q. Why do the hardness of the paps betoken the health of the child in the womb? A. Because the flowers are converted into milk, and thereby strength is signified.

Q. Why does the hardness of the breasts indicate the health of the baby in the womb? A. Because the flowers are turned into milk, which signifies strength.

Q. Why are women's paps hard when they be with child, and soft at other times? A. Because they swell then, and are puffed, and the great moisture which proceeds from the flowers doth run into the paps, which at other seasons remaineth in the matrix and womb, and is expelled by the place deputed for that end.

Q. Why are women's breasts hard when they are pregnant, and soft at other times? A. Because they swell and get fuller then, and the significant moisture that comes from the flowers flows into the breasts, which at other times stays in the uterus and is expelled through the designated area for that purpose.

Q. By what means doth the milk of the paps come to the matrix or womb? A. There is a certain knitting and coupling of the paps with the womb, and there are certain veins which the midwives do cut in the time of the birth of the child, and by those veins the milk flows in at the navel of the child, and so it receives nourishment by the navel.

Q. How does the milk from the breasts reach the womb? A. There is a specific connection between the breasts and the womb, and there are certain veins that midwives cut during childbirth. Through these veins, the milk flows into the child's navel, providing nourishment through the navel.

Q. Why is it a sign of a male child in the womb when the milk that runneth out of a woman's breast is thick, and not much, and of a female when it is thin? A. Because a woman that goeth with a boy hath a great heat in her, which doth perfect the milk and make it thick; but she who goes with a girl hath not so much heat, and therefore the milk is undigested, imperfect, watery and thin, and will swim above the water if it be put into it.

Q. Why is thick milk that comes from a woman's breast a sign of a male child in the womb, while thin milk indicates a female? A. Because a woman carrying a boy has a lot of heat in her body, which perfects the milk and makes it thick; whereas a woman carrying a girl doesn’t have as much heat, so her milk is undigested, imperfect, watery, and thin, and it will float on top of water if placed in it.

Q. Why is the milk white, seeing the flowers are red, of which it is engendered? A. Because blood which is well purged and concocted becomes white, as appeareth in flesh whose proper colour is white, and being boiled, is white. Also, because every humour which is engendered of the body, is made like unto that part in colour where it is engendered as near as it can be; but because the flesh of the paps is white, therefore the colour of the milk is white.

Q. Why is the milk white when the flowers are red, from which it comes? A. Because blood that is well cleaned and processed turns white, as seen in flesh, which is naturally white and becomes white when cooked. Also, since every fluid produced by the body resembles the color of the part where it is formed, as closely as possible; but since the tissue of the breasts is white, that’s why the milk is white.

Q. Why doth a cow give milk more abundantly than other beasts? A. Because she is a great eating beast, where there is much monthly superfluity engendered, there is much milk; because it is nothing else but the blood purged and tried.

Q. Why does a cow produce more milk than other animals? A. Because she eats a lot, and where there's a lot of extra nutrients produced each month, there’s also a lot of milk; it's basically just the blood that has been filtered and refined.

Q. Why is not milk wholesome? A. 1. Because it curdeth in the stomach, whereof an evil breath is bred. 2. Because the milk doth grow sour in the stomach, where evil humours are bred, and infect the breath.

Q. Why isn't milk healthy? A. 1. Because it curdles in the stomach, which creates bad breath. 2. Because milk turns sour in the stomach, where bad substances are produced, and this affects the breath.

Q. Why is milk bad for such as have the headache? A. Because it is easily turned into great fumosities, and hath much terrestrial substance in it, the which ascending, doth cause the headache.

Q. Why is milk bad for those who have a headache? A. Because it easily turns into gas and has a lot of earthy substance in it, which rises and causes the headache.

Q. Why is milk fit nutriment for infants? A. Because it is a natural and usual food, and they were nourished by the same in the womb.

Q. Why is milk a suitable food for infants? A. Because it is a natural and common source of nutrition, and they were fed with it while in the womb.

Q. Why are the white-meats made of a newly milked cow good? A. Because milk at that time is very springy, expels fumosities, and, as it were, purges at that time.

Q. Why are the white meats from a freshly milked cow good? A. Because the milk at that time is very fresh, removes impurities, and essentially acts as a cleanser at that moment.

Q. Why is the milk naught for the child, if the woman giving suck uses carnal copulation? A. Because in time of carnal copulation, the best part of the milk goes to the seed vessels, and to the womb, and the worst remain in the paps, which hurts the child.

Q. Why is the milk not good for the child if the woman breastfeeding is engaging in sexual intercourse? A. Because during sexual intercourse, the best part of the milk goes to the reproductive organs and the womb, while the worst remains in the breasts, which harms the child.

Q. Why do physicians forbid the eating of fish and milk at the same time? A. Because they produce a leprosy, and because they are phlegmatic.

Q. Why do doctors prohibit eating fish and milk together? A. Because they can cause leprosy and because they are phlegmatic.

Q. Why have not birds and fish milk and paps? A. Because paps would hinder the flight of birds. And although fish have neither paps nor milk, the females cast much spawn, which the male touches with a small gut, and causes their kind to continue in succession.

Q. Why don't birds and fish have milk and nipples? A. Because nipples would make it difficult for birds to fly. And even though fish don't have either, the females release a lot of eggs, which the males fertilize with a small organ, allowing their species to continue.


Of the Back.

Q. Why have beasts a back? A. 1. Because the back is the way and mien of the body from which are extended and spread throughout, all the sinews of the backbone. 2. Because it should be a guard and defence for the soft parts of the body, as for the stomach, liver, lights and such like. 3. Because it is the foundation of all the bones, as the ribs, fastened to the back bone.

Q. Why do animals have a back? A. 1. Because the back is the part of the body from which all the nerves of the spine extend and spread out. 2. Because it serves as a protection for the softer parts of the body, like the stomach, liver, lungs, and similar organs. 3. Because it is the base for all the bones, such as the ribs, that are attached to the spine.

Q. Why hath the back bone so many joints or knots, called spondyli? A. Because the moving and bending it, without such joints, could not be done; and therefore they are wrong who say that elephants have no such joints, for without them they could not move.

Q. Why does the backbone have so many joints or knots, called spondyli? A. Because moving and bending it wouldn't be possible without such joints; therefore, those who say that elephants don’t have these joints are mistaken, as they would not be able to move without them.

Q. Why do fish die after their back bones are broken? A. Because in fish the back bone is instead of the heart; now the heart is the first thing that lives and the last that dies; and when that bone is broken, fish can live no longer.

Q. Why do fish die after their backbones are broken? A. Because in fish, the backbone serves the function of the heart; the heart is the first thing that lives and the last that dies. When that bone is broken, fish can no longer survive.

Q. Why doth a man die soon after the marrow is hurt or perished? A. Because the marrow proceeds from the brain, which is the principal part of a man.

Q. Why does a man die soon after his marrow is hurt or destroyed? A. Because the marrow comes from the brain, which is the main part of a man.

Q. Why have some men the piles? A. Those men are cold and melancholy, which melancholy first passes to the spleen, its proper seat, but there cannot be retained, for the abundancy of blood; for which reason it is conveyed to the back bone, where there are certain veins which terminate in the back, and receive the blood. When those veins are full of the melancholy blood, then the conduits of nature are opened, and the blood issues out once a month, like women's terms. Those men who have this course of blood, are kept from many infirmities, such as dropsy, plague, etc.

Q. Why do some men have hemorrhoids? A. Those men tend to be cold and depressed, and this sadness first affects the spleen, where it should be processed. However, it can't stay there because of an overflow of blood, so it moves to the spine, where certain veins end and collect the blood. When those veins are filled with the depressed blood, the body's natural pathways open up, and the blood flows out once a month, similar to a woman’s menstrual cycle. Men who experience this blood flow are less likely to suffer from various ailments, such as swelling or the plague, etc.

Q. Why are the Jews much subject to this disease? A. Because they eat much phlegmatic and cold meats, which breed melancholy blood, which is purged with the flux. Another reason is, motion causes heat and heat digestion; but strict Jews neither move, labour nor converse much, which breeds a coldness in them, and hinders digestion, causing melancholic blood, which is by this means purged out.

Q. Why are Jews more susceptible to this disease? A. Because they consume a lot of phlegmatic and cold meats, which lead to a buildup of melancholy blood, which is expelled through flux. Another reason is that movement generates heat, which aids digestion; however, observant Jews are less active, work less, and engage in fewer conversations, resulting in a coldness within them that hampers digestion and creates melancholic blood, which is then purged out.


Of the Heart.

Q. Why are the lungs light, spongy and full of holes? A. That the air may be received into them for cooling the heart, and expelling humours, because the lungs are the fan of the heart; and as a pair of bellows is raised up by taking in the air, and shrunk by blowing it out, so likewise the lungs draw the air to cool the heart, and cast it out, lest through too much air drawn in, the heart should be suffocated.

Q. Why are the lungs light, spongy, and full of holes? A. So that air can be taken in to cool the heart and remove excess fluids, because the lungs are like a fan for the heart. Just as a pair of bellows expands by taking in air and contracts by blowing it out, the lungs draw in air to cool the heart and expel it, preventing the heart from being overwhelmed by too much air.

Q. Why is the flesh of the lungs white? A. Because they are in continual motion.

Q. Why is the flesh of the lungs white? A. Because they are constantly moving.

Q. Why have those beasts only lungs that have hearts? A. Because the lungs be no part for themselves, but for the heart, and therefore, it were superfluous for those creatures to have lungs that have no hearts.

Q. Why do those creatures have lungs only if they have hearts? A. Because lungs don't serve a purpose on their own; they exist for the heart. So, it would be unnecessary for those creatures to have lungs if they don't have hearts.

Q. Why do such creatures as have no lungs want a bladder? A. Because such drink no water to make their meat digest and need no bladder for urine; as appears in such birds as do not drink at all, viz., the falcon and sparrow hawk.

Q. Why do creatures that don't have lungs need a bladder? A. Because they don't drink water to help digest their food and don't need a bladder for urine; as seen in birds that don't drink at all, like the falcon and sparrow hawk.

Q. Why is the heart in the midst of the body? A. That it may import life to all, parts of the body, and therefore it is compared to the sun, which is placed in the midst of the planets, to give light to them all.

Q. Why is the heart located in the center of the body? A. So it can provide life to all the parts of the body, and that's why it's compared to the sun, which is situated in the center of the planets, to give light to all of them.

Q. Why only in men is the heart on the left side? A. To the end that the heat of the heart may mitigate the coldness of the spleen; for the spleen is the seat of melancholy, which is on the left side also.

Q. Why is the heart only on the left side in men? A. So that the heat of the heart can temper the coldness of the spleen; because the spleen is where melancholy resides, which is also on the left side.

Q. Why is the heart first engendered; for the heart doth live first and die last? A. Because the heart is the beginning and original of life, and without it no part can live. For of the seed retained in the matrix, there is first engendered a little small skin, which compasses the seed; whereof first the heart is made of the purest blood; then of blood not so pure, the liver; and of thick and cold blood the marrow and brain.

Q. Why is the heart formed first, since it lives before everything else and dies last? A. Because the heart is the starting point and source of life, and without it, no part can survive. From the seed held in the womb, a tiny skin is first formed that surrounds the seed; from this, the heart is created from the purest blood; then the liver is made from blood that is less pure, and finally, the marrow and brain are formed from thicker, colder blood.

Q. Why are beasts bold that have little hearts? A. Because in a little heart the heat is well united and vehement, and the blood touching it, doth quickly heat it and is speedily carried to the other parts of the body, which give courage and boldness.

Q. Why are animals that are small-hearted so bold? A. Because in a small heart, the heat is concentrated and intense, and the blood touching it warms it quickly and is swiftly distributed to the other parts of the body, which provide courage and boldness.

Q. Why are creatures with a large heart timorous, as the hare? A. The heart is dispersed in such a one, and not able to heat the blood which cometh to it; by which means fear is bred.

Q. Why are creatures with a large heart timid, like the hare? A. The heart is spread out in such a creature, and it can't warm the blood that flows to it; this is how fear is created.

Q. How is it that the heart is continually moving? A. Because in it there is a certain spirit which is more subtle than air, and by reason of its thickness and rarefaction, seeks a larger space, filling the hollow room of the heart; hence the dilating and opening of the heart, and because the heart is earthly the thrusting and moving ceasing, its parts are at rest, tending downwards. As a proof of this, take an acorn, which, if put into the fire, the heat doth dissolve its humidity, therefore occupies a greater space, so that the rind cannot contain it, but puffs up, and throws it into the fire. The like of the heart. Therefore the heart of a living creature is triangular, having its least part towards its left side, and the greater towards the right; and doth also open and shut in the least part, by which means it is in continual motion; the first motion is called diastole, that is extending the heart or breast; the other systole, that is, shutting of the heart; and from these all the motions of the body proceed, and that of the pulse which the physicians feel.

Q. How is it that the heart keeps moving? A. Because there's a certain spirit inside it that's finer than air, and due to its density and rarity, it seeks more space, filling the empty chamber of the heart; this causes the heart to expand and contract. Since the heart is physical, when it stops pushing and moving, its parts settle downwards. To illustrate this, take an acorn; when heated, the heat breaks down its moisture, causing it to take up more space, so the shell can't contain it and it bursts open. It's similar with the heart. Therefore, the heart of a living creature is triangular, with the smallest part on the left side and the larger part on the right; it also opens and closes at the smaller part, which keeps it in constant motion. The first movement is called diastole, meaning the heart or chest is expanding; the second is systole, meaning the heart is contracting; and from these movements, all body motions arise, including the pulse that doctors check.

Q. How comes it that the flesh of the heart is so compact and knit together? A. Because in thick compacted substances heat is commonly received and united. And because the heart with its heat should moderate the coldness of the brain, it is made of that fat flesh apt to keep a strong heat.

Q. Why is the flesh of the heart so tightly packed together? A. Because dense substances tend to absorb and retain heat. Since the heart's heat needs to balance the coldness of the brain, it is made from that fatty tissue which is good at maintaining heat.

Q. How comes the heart to be the hottest part of all living creatures? A. It is so compacted as to receive the heat best, and because it should mitigate the coldness of the brain.

Q. Why is the heart the warmest part of all living creatures? A. It's compacted in a way that allows it to retain heat effectively, and also because it helps to counteract the coldness of the brain.

Q. Why is the heart the beginning of life? A. It is plain that in it the vital spirit is bred, which is the heat of life; and therefore the heart having two receptacles, viz., the right and the left the right hath more blood than spirits; which spirit is engendered to give life and vivify the body.

Q. Why is the heart the beginning of life? A. It's clear that the vital spirit originates in it, which represents the heat of life; and so the heart has two chambers, the right and the left. The right chamber contains more blood than spirit, and this spirit is generated to give life and energize the body.

Q. Why is the heart long and sharp like a pyramid? A. The round figure hath an angle, therefore the heart is round, for fear any poison or hurtful matter should be retained in it; and because that figure is fittest for motion.

Q. Why is the heart long and sharp like a pyramid? A. The round shape has an angle, so the heart is round to avoid holding onto any poison or harmful substances; plus, that shape is best for movement.

Q. How comes the blood chiefly to be in the heart? A. The blood in the heart has its proper or efficient place, which some attribute to the liver; and therefore the heart doth not receive blood from any other parts but all other parts of it.

Q. Why is most of the blood located in the heart? A. The blood in the heart has its designated or effective place, which some believe is the liver; therefore, the heart doesn't receive blood from other parts but rather all other parts are connected to it.

Q. How happens it that some creatures want a heart? A. Although they have no heart, yet they have somewhat that answers for it, as appears in eels and fish that have the back bone instead of the heart.

Q. How is it that some creatures lack a heart? A. Even though they don’t have a heart, they have something that serves a similar purpose, as seen in eels and fish that have a backbone instead of a heart.

Q. Why does the heart beat in some creatures after the head is cut off, as in birds and hens? A. Because the heart lives first and dies last, and therefore beats longer than other parts.

Q. Why does the heart continue to beat in some animals after the head is cut off, like birds and hens? A. Because the heart lives longer than the other parts and therefore beats for a longer time.

Q. Why doth the heat of the heart sometimes fail of a sudden, and in those who have the falling sickness? A. This proceeds from the defect of the heart itself, and of certain small skins with which it is covered, which, being infected and corrupted, the heart faileth on a sudden; sometimes only by reason of the parts adjoining; and therefore, when any venomous humour goes out of the stomach that turns the heart and parts adjoining, that causeth this fainting.

Q. Why does the heat of the heart sometimes suddenly fail, especially in those who have seizures? A. This happens due to a deficiency in the heart itself and in certain thin membranes that cover it. When these become infected or damaged, the heart suddenly fails; sometimes it's just due to the surrounding areas. Therefore, when any toxic substance from the stomach affects the heart and surrounding parts, it can cause fainting.


Of the Stomach.

Q. For what reason is the stomach large and wide? A. Because in it the food is first concocted or digested as it were in a pot, to the end that which is pure should be separated from that which is not; and therefore, according to the quantity of food, the stomach is enlarged.

Q. Why is the stomach large and wide? A. Because it’s where food is initially broken down, like in a pot, to separate what is pure from what is not; and so, depending on the amount of food, the stomach expands.

Q. How comes it that the stomach is round? A. Because if it had angles and corners, food would remain in them and breed ill-humours, so that a man would never want agues, which humours are evacuated and consumed, and not hid in any such corners, by the roundness of the stomach.

Q. Why is the stomach round? A. Because if it had angles and corners, food would get stuck in them and create bad substances, which means a person would constantly have issues like fevers. These substances are eliminated and not trapped in any corners, thanks to the round shape of the stomach.

Q. How comes the stomach to be full of sinews? A. Because the sinews can be extended and enlarged, and so is the stomach when it is full; but when empty it is drawn together, and therefore nature provides the sinews.

Q. Why is the stomach full of sinews? A. Because the sinews can stretch and expand, just like the stomach does when it's full; but when it's empty, it contracts, and that's why nature supplies the sinews.

Q. How comes the stomach to digest? A. Because of the heat which is in it, and comes from the parts adjoining, that is, the liver and the heart. For as we see in metals the heat of the fire takes away the rust and dross from iron, the silver from tin, and gold from copper; so also by digestion the pure is separated from the impure.

Q. How does the stomach digest? A. It’s due to the heat within it, which comes from the surrounding organs, specifically the liver and the heart. Just as we observe in metals, the heat of fire removes rust and impurities from iron, separates silver from tin, and extracts gold from copper; similarly, digestion separates the pure from the impure.

Q. For what reason doth the stomach join the liver? A. Because the liver is very hot, and with its heat helps digestion, and provokes appetite.

Q. Why does the stomach connect with the liver? A. Because the liver is very hot, and its heat aids digestion and stimulates appetite.

Q. Why are we commonly cold after dinner? A. Because then the heat goes to the stomach to further digestion, and so the other parts grow cold.

Q. Why do we often feel cold after dinner? A. Because the heat goes to the stomach to help with digestion, making the other parts of the body feel cold.

Q. Why is it hurtful to study soon after dinner? A. Because when the heat labours to help the imagination in study, it ceases from digesting the food, which remains undigested; therefore people should walk sometimes after meals.

Q. Why is it not a good idea to study right after dinner? A. Because when your body works hard to support your imagination while studying, it stops digesting your food, which then remains undigested; therefore, people should take a walk sometimes after eating.

Q. How cometh the stomach slowly to digest meat? A. Because it swims in the stomach. Now, the best digestion is in the bottom of the stomach, because the fat descends not there; such as eat fat meat are very sleepy by reason that digestion is hindered.

Q. Why does the stomach take a long time to digest meat? A. Because it floats in the stomach. The best digestion happens at the bottom of the stomach because fat doesn't settle there; people who eat fatty meat feel very sleepy because digestion is slowed down.

Q. Why is all the body wrong when the stomach is uneasy? A. Because the stomach is knit with the brain, heart and liver, which are the principal parts in man; and when it is not well, the others are indisposed. Again, if the first digestion be hindered, the others are also hindered; for in the first digestion is the beginning of the infirmity in the stomach.

Q. Why does the whole body feel off when the stomach is upset? A. Because the stomach is connected to the brain, heart, and liver, which are the main organs in a person; if the stomach isn’t functioning well, the others also feel unwell. Additionally, if the initial digestion is disrupted, the subsequent digestions are affected too; the initial digestion is where the issues in the stomach start.

Q. Why are young men sooner hungry than old men? A. Young men do digest for three causes; 1. For growing; 2. For restoring life; and 3. For conservation of life. Also, young men are hot and dry, and therefore the heat doth digest more, and by consequence they desire more.

Q. Why do young men get hungry faster than old men? A. Young men digest food for three reasons: 1. For growth; 2. For restoring energy; and 3. For maintaining life. Additionally, young men are more energetic and have a higher metabolism, which means they digest food more quickly and therefore feel hungrier.

Q. Why do physicians prescribe that men should eat when they have an appetite? A. Because much hunger and emptiness will fill the stomach with naughty rotten humours, which are drawn in instead of meat; for, if we fast over night we have an appetite to meat, but none in the morning; as then the stomach is filled with naughty humours, and especially its mouth, which is no true filling, but a deceitful one. And, therefore, after we have eaten a little, our stomach comes to us again; for the first morsel, having made clean the mouth of the stomach, doth provoke the appetite.

Q. Why do doctors recommend that men eat when they feel hungry? A. Because excessive hunger can fill the stomach with unhealthy, rotten substances that replace actual food; if we skip dinner, we might feel hungry for food, but not in the morning; at that point, the stomach is filled with these unhealthy substances, especially at its opening, which doesn't count as true fullness but is rather deceptive. Therefore, after we eat a little, our stomach signals that it's ready for more because the first bite cleans out the stomach's entry, stimulating our appetite.

Q. Why do physicians prescribe that we should not eat too much at a time, but little by little? A. Because when the stomach is full, the meat doth swim in it, which is a dangerous thing. Another reason is, that as very green wood doth put out the fire, so much meat chokes the natural heat and puts it out; and therefore the best physic is to use temperance in eating and drinking.

Q. Why do doctors say we shouldn't eat too much at once, but rather little by little? A. Because when the stomach is full, the food just floats around, which is dangerous. Another reason is that just like wet wood puts out a fire, too much food can choke the natural heat and extinguish it; so the best medicine is to practice moderation in eating and drinking.

Q. Why do we desire change of meals according to the change of times; as in winter, beef, mutton; in summer light meats, as veal, lamb, etc.? A. Because the complexion of the body is altered and changed according to the time of year. Another reason is, that this proceeds from the quality of the season: because the cold in winter doth cause a better digestion.

Q. Why do we crave different foods depending on the season; like in winter, we prefer beef and mutton, and in summer, lighter meats like veal and lamb? A. Because our body's makeup changes with the seasons. Another reason is that it has to do with the qualities of the season: the cold in winter promotes better digestion.

Q. Why should not the meat we eat be as hot as pepper and ginger? A. Because as hot meat doth inflame the blood, and dispose it to a leprosy, so, on the contrary, meat too cold doth mortify and chill the blood. Our meat should not be over sharp, because it wastes the constitution; too much sauce doth burn the entrails, and inclineth to too often drinking; raw meat doth the same; and over sweet meats to constipate and cling the veins together.

Q. Why shouldn't the meat we eat be as spicy as pepper and ginger? A. Because hot meat heats up the blood and can lead to leprosy, while cold meat can numb and chill the blood. Our meat shouldn't be overly spicy because it can weaken the body; too much sauce can irritate the stomach and make you drink more often; raw meat does the same; and overly sweet foods can cause constipation and tighten the veins.

Q. Why is it a good custom to eat cheese after dinner, and pears after all meat? A. Because, by reason of its earthliness and thickness it tendeth down towards the bottom of the stomach, and so put down the meat; and the like of pears. Note, that new cheese is better than old, and that old soft cheese is very bad, and causeth the headache and stopping of the liver; and the older the worse. Whereof it is said that cheese digesteth all things but itself.

Q. Why is it a good idea to eat cheese after dinner and pears after any meat? A. Because, due to its density and richness, cheese tends to settle at the bottom of the stomach, aiding in the digestion of meat, and pears do the same. Note that fresh cheese is better than aged cheese, and that soft, old cheese is really bad, causing headaches and liver issues; the older it is, the worse it gets. It's said that cheese digests everything except itself.

Q. Why are nuts good after cheese, as the proverb is, "After fish nuts, and after flesh cheese?" A. Because fish is of hard digestion, and doth easily putrefy and corrupt; and nuts are a remedy against poison.

Q. Why are nuts a good choice after cheese, as the saying goes, "After fish nuts, and after meat cheese?" A. Because fish is hard to digest and can easily spoil; nuts help counteract toxins.

Q. Why is it unwholesome to wait long for one dish after another, and to eat of divers kinds of meat? A. Because the first begins to digest when the last is eaten, and so digestion is not equally made. But yet this rule is to be noted; dishes light of digestion, as chickens, kids, veal, soft eggs and such like, should be first eaten; because, if they should be first served and eaten and were digested, they would hinder the digestion of the others; and the light meats not digested would be corrupted in the stomach and kept in the stomach violently, whereof would follow belching, loathing, headache, bellyache and great thirst. It is very hurtful too, at the same meal to drink wine and milk, because they are productive of leprosy.

Q. Why is it unhealthy to wait a long time between different dishes and to eat various kinds of meat? A. Because the first dish starts to digest when you eat the last one, so digestion doesn't happen evenly. However, there's a rule to keep in mind: lighter foods, like chicken, young goat, veal, soft eggs, and the like, should be eaten first. If these lighter dishes are served and eaten first and digested properly, they won't interfere with the digestion of heavier foods. If the lighter meats aren’t digested, they can spoil in the stomach, causing discomfort like belching, nausea, headaches, stomach aches, and excessive thirst. It's also very harmful to drink wine and milk at the same meal, as they can lead to serious health issues.

Q. Whether is meat or drink best for the stomach? A. Drink is sooner digested than meat, because meat is of greater substance, and more material than drink, and therefore meat is harder to digest.

Q. Which is better for the stomach, meat or drink? A. Drink is digested more quickly than meat because meat is denser and more substantial than drink, making it harder to digest.

Q. Why is it good to drink after dinner? A. Because the drink will make the meat readier to digest. The stomach is like unto a pot which doth boil meat, and therefore physicians do counsel to drink at meals.

Q. Why is it good to drink after dinner? A. Because drinking helps the meat digest more easily. The stomach is like a pot that cooks meat, which is why doctors recommend drinking during meals.

Q. Why is it good to forbear a late supper? A. Because there is little moving or stirring after supper, and so the meat is not sent down to the bottom of the stomach, but remaineth undigested, and so breeds hurts; therefore a light supper is best.

Q. Why is it good to skip a late dinner? A. Because there isn't much activity after dinner, and the food doesn’t get settled to the bottom of the stomach, but instead stays undigested, which can cause problems; so a light dinner is best.


Of the Blood.

Q. Why is it necessary that every living creature that hath blood have also a liver? A. Because the blood is first made in the liver, its seat, being drawn from the stomach by certain principal veins, and so engendered.

Q. Why is it necessary for every living creature that has blood to also have a liver? A. Because blood is first produced in the liver, which is its main site, being drawn from the stomach by certain major veins, and thus generated.

Q. Why is the blood red? A. 1. It is like the part in which it is made, viz., the liver, which is red. 2. It is likewise sweet, because it is well digested and concocted; but if it hath a little earthly matter mixed with it, that makes it somewhat salt.

Q. Why is the blood red? A. 1. It's similar to the organ it's produced in, namely the liver, which is red. 2. It's also sweet because it's well digested and processed; however, if there's a bit of earthly matter mixed in, that makes it somewhat salty.

Q. How is women's blood thicker than men's? Their coldness thickens, binds, congeals, and joins together.

Q. How is women's blood thicker than men's? Their coolness thickens, binds, congeals, and brings together.

Q. How comes the blood to all parts of the body through the liver, and by what means? A. Through the principal veins, as the veins of the head, liver, etc., to nourish the body.

Q. How does blood reach all parts of the body through the liver, and by what means? A. Through the major veins, like those in the head and liver, to nourish the body.


Of the Urine.

Q. How doth the urine come into the bladder, seeing the bladder is shut? A. Some say sweatings; others, by a small skin in the bladder, which opens and lets in the urine. Urine is a certain and not deceitful messenger of the health or infirmity of man. Men make white urine in the morning, and before dinner red, but after dinner pale, and also after supper.

Q. How does urine get into the bladder if the bladder is closed? A. Some say it's through sweating; others say there's a small membrane in the bladder that opens and allows the urine in. Urine is a reliable indicator of a person's health or illness. In the morning, men have clear urine, while it turns red before lunch, and then becomes pale after lunch and dinner.

Q. Why is it hurtful to drink much cold water? A. Because one contrary doth hinder and expel another; water is very cold, and lying so in the stomach, doth hinder digestion.

Q. Why is it harmful to drink a lot of cold water? A. Because one thing can interfere with and push out another; cold water is very chilly, and when it's sitting in the stomach, it disrupts digestion.

Q. Why is it unwholesome to drink new wine? A. 1. It cannot be digested; therefore it causeth the belly to swell, and a kind of bloody flux. 2. It hinders making water.

Q. Why is it unhealthy to drink new wine? A. 1. It can't be digested; therefore, it makes the stomach swell and can cause a kind of bloody diarrhea. 2. It prevents urination.

Q. Why do physicians forbid us to labour presently after dinner? A. 1. Because the motion hinders the virtue and power of digestion. 2. Because stirring immediately after dinner causes the different parts of the body to draw the meat to them, which often breeds sickness. 3. Because motion makes the food descend before it is digested. And after supper it is good to walk a little, that the food may go to the bottom of the stomach.

Q. Why do doctors tell us not to work right after dinner? A. 1. Because moving around interferes with digestion. 2. Because getting active right after eating causes different parts of the body to pull food to them, which can often lead to feeling unwell. 3. Because activity makes food move down before it’s fully digested. And after dinner, it’s good to take a short walk so the food settles in the stomach.

Q. Why is it good to walk after dinner? A. Because it makes a man well disposed, and fortifies and strengthens the natural heat, causing the superfluity of the stomach to descend.

Q. Why is it good to walk after dinner? A. Because it puts you in a good mood, boosts your natural body heat, and helps food move through your stomach.

Q. Why is it wholesome to vomit? A. It purges the stomach of all naughty humours, expelling them, which would breed again if they should remain in it; and purges the eyes and head, clearing the brain.

Q. Why is it healthy to vomit? A. It cleanses the stomach of all harmful substances, getting rid of them, which would cause issues if they stayed inside; and it clears the eyes and head, refreshing the mind.

Q. How comes sleep to strengthen the stomach and the digestive faculty? A. Because in sleep the heat draws inwards, and helps digestion; but when we awake, the heat returns, and is dispersed through the body.

Q. How does sleep strengthen the stomach and digestion? A. Because while we sleep, internal heat is concentrated, which aids digestion; but when we wake up, the heat spreads out through the body.


Of the Gall and Spleen.

Q. How come living creatures to have a gall? A. Because choleric humours are received into it, which through their acidity helps the guts to expel superfluities; also it helps digestion.

Q. Why do living creatures have a gall? A. Because choleric humors are stored in it, which, due to their acidity, help the guts to get rid of excess waste; they also aid in digestion.

Q. How comes the jaundice to proceed from the gall? A. The humour of the gall is bluish and yellow; therefore when its pores are stopped the humour cannot go into the sack thereof, but are mingled with the blood, wandering throughout all the body and infecting the skin.

Q. How does jaundice come from the gallbladder? A. The fluid from the gallbladder is bluish and yellow; therefore, when its ducts are blocked, the fluid can't flow into the gallbladder, but mixes with the blood, spreading throughout the body and affecting the skin.

Q. Why hath a horse, mule, ass or cow a gall? A. Though these creatures have no gall in one place, as in a purse or vessel, yet they have one dispersed in small veins.

Q. Why does a horse, mule, donkey, or cow have gall? A. Although these animals don't have gall in a single location like a purse or container, they do have it spread out in small veins.

Q. How comes the spleen to be black? A. It is occasioned by terrestrial and earthy matter of a black colour. According to physicians, the spleen is the receptacle of melancholy, and that is black.

Q. Why is the spleen black? A. It's caused by earthly and black-colored substances. According to doctors, the spleen holds melancholy, which is black.

Q. Why is he lean who hath a large spleen? A. Because the spleen draws much water to itself, which would turn to fat; therefore, men that have a small spleen are fat.

Q. Why is someone thin if they have a large spleen? A. Because the spleen attracts a lot of water, which would normally turn into fat; therefore, people with a small spleen tend to be fat.

Q. Why does the spleen cause men to laugh, as says Isidorus; "We laugh with the spleen, we are angry with the gall, we are wise with the heart, we love with the liver, we feel with the brain, and speak with the lungs"? A. The reason is, the spleen draws much melancholy to it, being its proper seat, the which melancholy proceeds from sadness, and is there consumed; and the cause failing, the effect doth so likewise. And by the same reason the gall causes anger, for choleric men are often angry, because they have much gall.

Q. Why does the spleen make men laugh, as Isidorus says; "We laugh with the spleen, we get angry with the gall, we are wise with the heart, we love with the liver, we feel with the brain, and we speak with the lungs"? A. The reason is that the spleen absorbs a lot of melancholy, which is its main function, and this melancholy comes from sadness, and is then taken in there and processed; when the cause is gone, the effect disappears as well. Similarly, the gall causes anger, because people with a temper often get angry due to having a lot of gall.


Of Carnal Copulation.

Q. Why do living creatures use carnal copulation? A. Because it is most natural in them to get their like.

Q. Why do living creatures engage in sexual reproduction? A. Because it is most natural for them to produce offspring like themselves.

Q. What is carnal copulation? A. It is a mutual action of male and female, with instruments ordained for that purpose to propagate their kind.

Q. What is carnal copulation? A. It is a mutual act between a male and a female, using specific tools designed for the purpose of reproducing their species.

Q. Why is this action good in those that use it lawfully and moderately? A. Because it eases and lightens the body, clears the mind, comforts the head and senses, and expels melancholy.

Q. Why is this action beneficial for those who use it legally and in moderation? A. Because it relaxes and lightens the body, clears the mind, comforts the head and senses, and drives away sadness.

Q. Why is immoderate carnal copulation hurtful? A. Because it destroys the sight, dries the body, and impairs the brain, often causes fevers and shortens life also.

Q. Why is excessive sexual activity harmful? A. Because it damages vision, dehydrates the body, impairs brain function, often leads to fevers, and can shorten life as well.

Q. Why doth carnal copulation injure melancholic or choleric men, especially thin men? A. Because it dries the bones much which are naturally so. On the contrary, it is good for the phlegmatic and sanguine, because they abound with that substance which by nature, is necessarily expelled.

Q. Why does sexual intercourse harm melancholic or choleric men, especially thin men? A. Because it dries out their bones, which are already prone to that. On the other hand, it's beneficial for phlegmatic and sanguine men, because they have an abundance of that substance which, by nature, is meant to be expelled.

Q. Why should not the act be used when the body is full? A. Because it hinders digestion; and it is not good for a hungry belly, because it weakens.

Q. Why shouldn't the act be used when your stomach is full? A. Because it interferes with digestion; and it's not good for a hungry stomach, because it makes it weaker.

Q. Why is it not good soon after a bath? A. Because then the pores are open, and the heat dispersed through the body: for after bathing, it cools the body too much.

Q. Why is it not good soon after a bath? A. Because the pores are open and the heat is spread throughout the body; after bathing, it cools the body too much.

Q. Why is it not proper after vomiting or looseness? A. Because it is dangerous to purge twice a day; for in this act the veins are purged, and the guts by the vomit.

Q. Why is it not appropriate after vomiting or diarrhea? A. Because it's risky to purge twice a day; doing so affects the veins and the intestines through vomiting.

Q. Why is there such delight in the act of venery? A. Because this act is such a contemptible thing in itself, that all creatures would naturally abhor it were there no pleasure in it; and therefore nature readily uses it, that all kinds of living things should be maintained and kept up.

Q. Why is there such joy in the act of sexual intercourse? A. Because this act is inherently viewed as shameful, and all creatures would naturally detest it if there were no enjoyment involved; therefore, nature readily incorporates it so that all kinds of living things can be sustained and preserved.

Q. Why do such as use it often take less delight in it than those who come to it seldom? A. 1. The passages of the seed are over large and wide; and therefore it makes no stay there, which would cause the delight. 2. Through often evacuation there is little seed left, and therefore no delight. 3. Because such, instead of seed there is cast out blood, undigested and raw, or some other watery substance, which is not hot, and therefore affords no delight.

Q. Why do people who use it often enjoy it less than those who use it rarely? A. 1. The passages of the seed are too large and wide, so it doesn’t stay there, which would create delight. 2. Because of frequent release, there’s not much seed left, and therefore no delight. 3. Instead of seed, what comes out is blood, undigested and raw, or some other watery substance that isn’t warm, and therefore provides no delight.


Of the Seed of Man and Beasts.

Q. How, and of what cometh the seed of man? A. Some philosophers and physicians say, it is superfluous humours; others say, that the seed is pure blood, flowing from the brain, concocted and whitened in the testicles; but sweat, urine, spittle, phlegm, choler, and the like, and blood dispersed throughout the whole body, come chiefly from the heart, liver and brain, because those parts are greatly weakened by casting seed; and therefore it appears that frequent carnal copulation is not good.

Q. How, and what causes the seed of a man? A. Some philosophers and doctors say it's excess fluids; others claim the seed is pure blood that flows from the brain, processed and turned into sperm in the testicles; however, sweat, urine, saliva, phlegm, bile, and similar substances, along with blood that circulates throughout the body, primarily originate from the heart, liver, and brain, because those organs get significantly drained by releasing seed; therefore, frequent sexual intercourse is not beneficial.

Q. Why is a man's seed white, and a woman's red? A. It is white in men by reason of great heat and quick digestion, because it is rarefied in the testicles; but a woman's is red, because her terms corrupt the undigested blood, and it hath its colour.

Q. Why is a man's sperm white, and a woman's red? A. It's white in men due to high heat and fast digestion, as it becomes more refined in the testicles; but a woman's is red because her menstrual cycle transforms the undigested blood, giving it its color.

Q. How come females to have monthly courses? A. Because they are cold in respect of men, and because all their nourishment cannot be converted into blood, a great part of which turns to menses, which are monthly expelled.

Q. Why do females have monthly periods? A. Because they are colder compared to men, and because not all their nourishment can be turned into blood; a large portion of it turns into menstrual fluid, which is expelled monthly.

Q. For what reason do the menses not come down in females before the age of thirteen? A. Because young women are hot, and digest all their nourishment.

Q. Why don't females get their periods before the age of thirteen? A. Because young women are energetic and fully digest all their food.

Q. For what reason do they leave off at about fifty? A. Because nature is then so exhausted, they cannot expel them by reason of weakness.

Q. Why do they stop around fifty? A. Because at that point, nature is so worn out that they can't push them out due to weakness.

Q. Why have not breeding women the menses? A. Because that then they turn into milk, and into the nourishment of the child: for if a woman with child have them, it is a sign that she will miscarry.

Q. Why don't pregnant women have their periods? A. Because they turn into milk, which nourishes the child. If a pregnant woman has her period, it indicates that she might miscarry.

Q. Why are they termed menstrua, from the word mensis, a month? A. Because it is a space of time that measures the moon, as she ends her course in twenty-nine days, and fourteen hours.

Q. Why are they called menstrua, from the word mensis, which means a month? A. Because it refers to a period of time that aligns with the moon's cycle, as she completes her orbit in twenty-nine days and fourteen hours.

Q. Why do they continue longer with some than others, as with some six or seven, but commonly with all three days? A. The first are cold, therefore they increase most in them, and consequently are longer expelling; other women are hot, and therefore have fewer and are sooner expelled.

Q. Why do some last longer than others, like some for six or seven days, but usually all for three days? A. The ones that last longer are cold, so they tend to increase more, and as a result, take longer to be expelled; other women are warmer, so they have fewer and are expelled sooner.

Q. Are the menses which are expelled, and those by which the child is engendered, all one? A. No, because the one are unclean, and unfit for that purpose; but the other very pure and clear, therefore the fittest for generation.

Q. Are the menstrual fluids that are expelled and those that create a child the same? A. No, because one is unclean and unsuitable for that purpose, while the other is very pure and clear, making it the most suitable for reproduction.

Q. Why have not women their menses all one and the same time, but some in the new moon, some in the full, and others at the wane? A. From their several complexions, and though all women (in respect of men) are phlegmatic, yet some are more sanguine than others, some more choleric; and as the moon hath her quarters, so have women their complexions; the first sanguine, the second choleric.

Q. Why don't all women have their periods at the same time, but some during the new moon, some at the full moon, and others as the moon wanes? A. It’s due to their different bodily types. While all women (in relation to men) tend to be phlegmatic, some are more sanguine, and others are more choleric; just as the moon goes through its phases, women have different bodily types: the first being sanguine and the second choleric.

Q. Why do women easily conceive after their menses? A. Because the womb being cleansed, they are better prepared for conception.

Q. Why do women easily conceive after their period? A. Because the womb is cleansed, they are better prepared for conception.

Q. Why do women look pale when they first have their menses upon them? A. Because the heat goes from the outward parts of the body to the inward, to help nature to expel their terms, which deprivation of heat doth cause a paleness in the face. Or, because that flux is caused of raw humours, which, when they run, make the face colourless.

Q. Why do women look pale when they first get their period? A. Because the blood moves from the outer parts of the body to the inside to help nature expel their menstrual flow, and this loss of heat causes their face to look pale. Or, it may be because that flow is caused by raw fluids, which, when they flow, make the face lose its color.

Q. Why do they at that time abhor their meat? A. Because nature labours more to expel their terms than digest; and, therefore, if they should eat, their food would remain raw in the stomach.

Q. Why do they at that time hate their food? A. Because their body works harder to get rid of their menstrual cycle than to digest; and so, if they eat, their food would stay undigested in the stomach.

Q. Why are some women barren and do not conceive? A. 1. It proceeds sometimes from the man who may be of a cold nature, so that his seed is unfit for generation. 2. Because it is waterish, and so doth not stay in the womb. 3. By reason that the seed of them both hath not a like proportion, as if the man be melancholy and the woman sanguine, or the man choleric and the woman phlegmatic.

Q. Why are some women unable to have children? A. 1. Sometimes it is due to the man, who may have a cold nature, making his sperm unsuitable for conception. 2. It could be watery, which prevents it from remaining in the womb. 3. It may also be because their body fluids are not in balance; for example, if the man is melancholic and the woman is sanguine, or if the man is choleric and the woman is phlegmatic.

Q. Why do fat women seldom conceive? A. Because they have a slippery womb, and the seed will not stay in it. Or, because the mouth of the matrix is very strait, and the seed cannot enter it, or, if it does, it is so very slowly that it grows cold and unfit for generation.

Q. Why do overweight women rarely become pregnant? A. Because they have a slippery womb, and the sperm won't stay in it. Or, because the opening of the uterus is very narrow, and the sperm can't enter it, or if it does, it happens so slowly that it becomes cold and unfit for reproduction.

Q. Why do those of a hot constitution seldom conceive? A. Because the seed in them is extinguished or put out, as water cast into fire; whereof we find that women who vehemently desire the flesh seldom conceive.

Q. Why do people with a hot temperament rarely conceive? A. Because their seed is extinguished or eliminated, like water thrown into fire; from this, we see that women who strongly crave physical pleasures seldom conceive.

Q. Why are whores never with child? A. By reason of divers seeds, which corrupt and spoil the instruments of conception, for it makes them so slippery, that they cannot retain seed. Or, else, it is because one man's seed destroys another's, so neither is good for generation.

Q. Why are prostitutes never pregnant? A. Because of various substances that corrupt and damage the reproductive organs, making them so slippery that they can't hold onto sperm. Or, it could be that one man's sperm cancels out another's, so neither is effective for conception.

Q. Why do women conceive twins? A. Because there are seven cells or receptacles in the womb; wherefore they may naturally have so many children at once as there falls seed into these cells.

Q. Why do women have twins? A. Because there are seven spaces in the womb; so, they can naturally have as many children at once as there are seeds that fall into these spaces.

Q. Why are twins but half men, and not so strong as others? A. The seed that should have been for one, is divided into two and therefore they are weakly and seldom live long.

Q. Why are twins only half as strong as other men? A. The seed that should have been for one person is split into two, which is why they are weaker and often don't live very long.


Of Hermaphrodites.

Q. How are hermaphrodites begotten? A. Nature doth always tend to that which is best, and always intendeth to beget the male and not the female, because the female is only for the male's mate. Therefore the male is sometimes begotten in all its principal parts; and, yet, through the indisposition of the womb and object, and inequality of the seeds, when nature cannot perfect the male, she brings forth the female too. And therefore natural philosophers say, that an hermaphrodite is impotent in the privy parts of a man, as appears by experience.

Q. How are hermaphrodites created? A. Nature always aims for the best outcome, and she primarily intends to create males, since females exist solely to partner with males. Sometimes, a male forms fully developed in all its main aspects; however, when the womb is not suitable and the elements are uneven, and when nature can't fully create a male, she also produces a female. That's why natural philosophers claim that a hermaphrodite is nonfunctional in the male reproductive organs, as can be seen through experience.

Q. Is an hermaphrodite accounted a man or a woman? A. It is to be considered in which member he is fittest for copulation; if he be fittest in the woman's, then he is a woman; if in a man's, then he is a man.

Q. Is a hermaphrodite considered a man or a woman? A. It depends on which part is best suited for intercourse; if it's the female part, then they are a woman; if it's the male part, then they are a man.

Q. Should he be baptized in the name of a man or a woman? A. In the name of a man, because names are given ad placitum, and therefore he should be baptized, according to the worthiest name, because every agent is worthier than its patient.

Q. Should he be baptized in the name of a man or a woman? A. In the name of a man, because names are given ad placitum, and therefore he should be baptized with the most deserving name, since every agent is more valuable than its subject.


Of Monsters.

Q. Doth nature make any monsters? A. She doth; if she did not, then would she be deprived of her end. For of things possible, she doth always propose to bring forth that which is most perfect and best; but in the end, through the evil disposition of the matter, not being able to bring forth that which she intended, she brings forth that which she can. As it happened in Albertus's time, when in a certain village, a cow brought forth a calf, half a man; then the countrymen suspecting a shepherd, would have burnt him with the cow; but Albertus, being skilled in astronomy, said that this did proceed from a certain constellation, and so delivered the shepherd from their hands.

Q. Does nature create any monsters? A. She does; if she didn’t, she wouldn't fulfill her purpose. Among all possible things, she always aims to produce what is most perfect and best; but ultimately, due to the flawed qualities of matter, when she can't create what she intended, she produces what she can. This was evident in Albertus's time, when in a certain village, a cow gave birth to a calf that was half a man. The villagers, suspecting a shepherd, wanted to burn him along with the cow; but Albertus, being knowledgeable in astronomy, explained that this resulted from a particular constellation, thus saving the shepherd from their wrath.

Q. Are they one or two? A. To find out, you must look into the heart, if there be two hearts, there be two men.

Q. Are they one or two? A. To find out, you need to look into the heart; if there are two hearts, there are two men.

Q. Why are some children like their father, some like their mother, some to both and some to neither? A. If the seed of the father wholly overcome that of the mother the child doth resemble the father; but if the mother's predominate, then it is like the mother; but if he be like neither, that doth sometimes happen through the four qualities, sometimes through the influence of some heavenly constellation.

Q. Why do some children resemble their father, some their mother, some both, and some neither? A. If the father's traits completely dominate those of the mother, the child looks like the father; if the mother's traits are stronger, then it resembles the mother. However, if it resembles neither, this can sometimes happen due to the four qualities or the influence of certain astrological factors.

Q. Why are children oftener like the father than the mother? A. It proceeds from the imagination of the mother in the act of copulation, as appeared in a queen who had her imagination on a blackamoor; and in the Ethiopian queen who brought forth a white child, because her imagination was upon a white colour; as is seen in Jacob's skill in casting rods of divers colours into the water, when his sheep went to ram.

Q. Why are children often more like their father than their mother? A. This happens because of the mother's imagination during conception, as seen in a queen who imagined a black man; and in the Ethiopian queen who gave birth to a white child because she was imagining a white color. This is similar to Jacob's technique of using rods of different colors in water when his sheep bred.

Q. Why do children born in the eighth month for the most part die quickly, and why are they called the children of the moon? A. Because the moon is a cold planet, which has dominion over the child, and therefore doth bind it with coldness, which is the cause of its death.

Q. Why do most children born in the eighth month die quickly, and why are they referred to as children of the moon? A. Because the moon is a cold planet that influences the child, and so it binds them with coldness, which is the reason for their death.

Q. Why doth a child cry as soon as it is born? A. Because of the sudden change from heat to cold: which cold doth affect its tenderness. Another reason is, because the child's soft and tender body is wringed and put together coming out of the narrow and strait passage of the matrix, and especially, the brain being moist, and the head being pressed and wrinkled together, is the cause that some humours distil by the eyes, which are the cause of tears and weeping.

Q. Why does a baby cry as soon as it is born? A. Because of the sudden change from warmth to cold, which affects its delicate nature. Another reason is that the baby's soft and tender body is squeezed and pushed through the narrow passage of the womb, and particularly, the brain being wet, and the head being compressed and wrinkled, causes some fluids to leak from the eyes, resulting in tears and crying.

Q. Why doth the child put its fingers into its mouth as soon as it cometh into the world? A. Because that coming out of the womb it cometh out of a hot bath, and entering into the cold, puts them into its mouth for want of heat.

Q. Why does the baby put its fingers in its mouth as soon as it comes into the world? A. Because after leaving the womb, it comes out of a warm environment and, upon entering the cold air, puts its fingers in its mouth to seek warmth.


Of the Child in the Womb.

Q. How is the child engendered in the womb? A. The first six days the seed hath this colour of milk, but in the six following a red colour, which is near unto the disposition of the flesh; and then it is changed into a thick substance of blood. But in the twelve days following, this substance becomes so thick and round that it is capable of receiving shape and form.

Q. How is the child conceived in the womb? A. For the first six days, the seed has a milky color, but in the next six days, it takes on a reddish color, which is closer to the texture of flesh; then it transforms into a thick substance of blood. After the following twelve days, this substance becomes so thick and round that it’s capable of taking shape and form.

Q. Doth the child in the womb void excrements or make water? No. Because it hath not the first digestion which is in the stomach. It receives no food by the mouth, but by the navel; therefore, makes no urine but sweats, which is but little, and is received in a skin in the matrix, which at the birth is cast out.

Q. Does the child in the womb pass stool or urinate? No. Because it doesn’t have the first digestion, which occurs in the stomach. It receives no food through the mouth, but through the navel; therefore, it doesn't produce urine but sweats, which is very little and is collected in a membrane in the uterus, which is expelled at birth.


Of Abortion and Untimely Birth.

Q. Why do women that eat unwholesome meats, easily miscarry? A. Because they breed putrefied seed, which the mind abhorring doth cast it out of the womb as unfit for the shape which is adapted to receive the soul.

Q. Why do women who eat unhealthy meats easily miscarry? A. Because they produce corrupted seed, which the mind rejects and expels from the womb as unsuitable for the form that is meant to receive the soul.

Q. Why doth wrestling and leaping cause the casting of the child, as some subtle women do on purpose? A. The vapour is burning, and doth easily hurt the tender substance of the child, entering in at the pores of the matrix.

Q. Why do wrestling and jumping cause a miscarriage, as some cunning women do on purpose? A. The heat is intense and can easily damage the delicate tissue of the fetus, entering through the pores of the womb.

Q. Why doth much joy cause a woman to miscarry? A. Because in the time of joy, a woman is destitute of heat, and so a miscarriage doth follow.

Q. Why does a lot of joy cause a woman to miscarry? A. Because during times of joy, a woman lacks heat, and so a miscarriage follows.

Q. Why do women easily miscarry when they are first with child, viz., the first, second or third month? A. As apples and pears easily fall at first, because the knots and ligaments are weak, so it is with a child in the womb.

Q. Why do women easily miscarry when they are first pregnant, specifically in the first, second, or third month? A. Just as apples and pears easily drop early on because the knots and ligaments are weak, the same is true for a child in the womb.

Q. Why is it hard to miscarry in the third, fourth, fifth and sixth month? A. Because the ligaments are stronger and well fortified.

Q. Why is it difficult to have a miscarriage in the third, fourth, fifth, and sixth months? A. Because the ligaments are stronger and well-supported.


Of Divers Matters.

Q. Why has not a man a tail like a beast? A. Because man is a noble creature, whose property is to sit; which a beast, having a tail, cannot.

Q. Why doesn’t a man have a tail like an animal? A. Because man is a noble being, whose nature is to sit; which an animal, having a tail, cannot do.

Q. Why does hot water freeze sooner than cold? A. Hot water is thinner, and gives better entrance to the frost.

Q. Why does hot water freeze sooner than cold? A. Hot water is less dense, which allows it to cool down faster in the presence of frost.

Q. Why is every living creature dull after copulation? A. By reason that the act is filthy and unclean; and so every living creature abhors it. When men do think upon it, they are ashamed and sad.

Q. Why does every living creature feel dull after sex? A. Because the act is dirty and unclean; thus, every living creature dislikes it. When people think about it, they feel ashamed and sad.

Q. Why cannot drunken men judge of taste as well as sober men? A. Because the tongue, being full of pores and spongy, receives more moisture into it, and more in drunken men than in sober; therefore, the tongue, through often drinking, is full of bad humours, and so the faculty of tasting is rendered out of order; also, through the thickening of the taste itself, drink taken by drunkards is not presently felt. And by this may also be understood why drunkards have not a perfect speech.

Q. Why can't drunk people judge taste as well as sober people? A. Because the tongue, being full of pores and spongy, absorbs more moisture, especially in drunk people compared to sober people; therefore, the tongue, from frequent drinking, is filled with bad substances, which messes up the ability to taste; also, because the taste itself becomes dulled, drunkards don’t feel the effects of what they drink immediately. This also helps explain why drunk people don't speak clearly.

Q. Why have melancholy beasts long ears? A. The ears proceed from a dry and cold substance, called gristle, which is apt to become bone; and because melancholy beasts do abound with this kind of substance, they have long ears.

Q. Why do sad animals have long ears? A. Their ears come from a dry and cold material called gristle, which can turn into bone; and because sad animals are filled with this type of material, they end up with long ears.

Q. Why do hares sleep with their eyes open? A. 1. They have their eyes standing out, and their eyelids short, therefore, never quite shut. 2. They are timorous, and as a safe-guard to themselves, sleep with their eyes open.

Q. Why do hares sleep with their eyes open? A. 1. Their eyes are prominent, and their eyelids are short, so they never fully close. 2. They are fearful, and as a way to protect themselves, they sleep with their eyes open.

Q. Why do not crows feed their young till they be nine days old? A. Because seeing them of another colour, they think they are of another kind.

Q. Why don't crows feed their young until they are nine days old? A. Because when they see them in a different color, they think they are a different kind.

Q. Why are sheep and pigeons mild? A. They want galls, the cause of anger.

Q. Why are sheep and pigeons calm? A. They seek to avoid anger.

Q. Why have birds their stones inward? A. Because if outward, they would hinder their flying and lightness.

Q. Why do birds have their stones inside? A. Because if they were outside, they would hinder their flying and make them heavier.

Q. How comes it that birds do not piss? A. Because that superfluity which would be converted into urine, is turned into feathers.

Q. Why don't birds urinate? A. Because the excess that would turn into urine is transformed into feathers.

Q. Why do we hear better in the night than by day? A. Because there is a greater quietness in the night than in the day, for the sun doth not exhale the vapours by night, but it doth in the day, therefore the moon is more fit than in the day; and the moon being fit, the motion is better received, which is said to be caused by a sound.

Q. Why do we hear better at night than during the day? A. Because it’s quieter at night than in the daytime. The sun doesn’t release vapors at night like it does during the day, which makes the night more suited for sound. And with the moon being more suited, sounds travel better, which is said to improve how we perceive them.

Q. For what reason doth a man laugh sooner when touched in the armpits than in any other part of the body? A. Because there is in that place a meeting of many sinews, and the mean we touch, which is the flesh, is more subtle than in other parts, and therefore of finer feeling. When a man is moderately and gently touched there the spirits that are dispersed run into the face and causes laughter.

Q. Why does a man laugh more quickly when touched in the armpits than in any other part of the body? A. Because that area has a lot of nerves, and the skin we touch there is more sensitive than in other areas, making it easier to feel. When a man is touched lightly and gently there, the energy that's spread throughout the body rushes to the face and causes laughter.

Q. Why do some women love white men and some black men? A. 1. Some have weak sight, and such delight in black, because white doth hurt the sight more than black. 2. Because like delight in like; but some women are of a hot nature, and such are delighted with black, because blackness followeth heat; and others are of a cold nature, and those are delighted with white, because cold produces white.

Q. Why do some women love white men and some black men? A. 1. Some have poor vision and find black more enjoyable because white is harsher on the eyes than black. 2. It’s about attraction to similar things; some women have a passionate nature and are drawn to black, since black is associated with heat; while others have a colder nature and are attracted to white, as cold creates whiteness.

Q. Why do men incline to sleep after labour? A. Because, through continual moving, the heat is dispersed to the external parts of the body, which, after labour, is gathered together in the internal parts, there to digest; and from digestion, vapours arise from the heart to the brain, which stop the passage by which the natural heat should be dispersed to the external part; and then, the external parts being cold and thick, by reason of the coldness of the brain sleep is easily procured. By this it appeareth that such as eat and drink too much, do sleep much and long, because there are great store of humours and vapours bred in such persons which cannot be consumed and digested by the natural heat.

Q. Why do men tend to sleep after working? A. Because, through constant movement, heat is spread to the outside of the body, which, after working, is concentrated inside to aid digestion; and during digestion, vapors rise from the heart to the brain, blocking the pathways that usually allow natural heat to disperse to the outside. As a result, the outer parts become cold and dense, and due to the coldness of the brain, sleep easily follows. This shows that those who eat and drink too much tend to sleep a lot and for long periods, because such individuals have an excess of fluids and vapors that cannot be processed and digested by natural heat.

Q. Why are such as sleep much, evil disposed and ill-coloured? A. Because in too much sleep moisture is gathered together, which cannot be consumed, and so it doth covet to go out through the superficial parts of the body, and especially it resorts to the face, and therefore is the cause of bad colours, as appeareth in such as are phlegmatic and who desire more sleep than others.

Q. Why do some people sleep a lot and have a bad demeanor and poor complexion? A. Because too much sleep gathers moisture in the body that can't be used up, which then seeks to escape through the surface of the skin, particularly on the face. This is why it causes a dull complexion, as seen in those who are phlegmatic and crave more sleep than others.

Q. Why do some imagine in their sleep that they eat and drink sweet things? A. Because the phlegm drawn up by the jaws doth distil and drop to the throat; and this phlegm is sweet after a sore sweat, and that seemeth so to them.

Q. Why do some people dream that they eat and drink sweet things? A. Because the mucus pulled up by the jaws drips down to the throat; and this mucus tastes sweet after a hard sweat, which makes it seem that way to them.

Q. Why do some dream in their sleep that they are in the water and drowned, and some that they were in the water and not drowned; especially such as are phlegmatic? A. Because when the phlegmatic substance doth turn to the high parts of the body, then many think they are in the water and drowned; but when that substance draweth into the internal parts, then they think they escape. Another reason may be, overmuch repletion and drunkenness: and therefore, when men are overmuch filled with meat, the fumes and vapours ascend and gather together, and they think they are drowned and strangled; but if they cannot ascend so high then they seem to escape.

Q. Why do some people dream that they are in water and drowning, while others dream they were in water but not drowning, especially those who are calm? A. Because when the calmness rises to the upper parts of the body, many feel like they are in water and drowning; but when that calmness moves to the internal parts, then they feel they escape. Another reason could be overeating and drinking too much: when people overeat, the fumes and vapors rise and collect, making them feel like they are drowning and suffocating; but if those vapors can't rise high enough, they feel like they get away.

Q. May a man procure a dream by an external cause? A. It may be done. If a man speak softly in another man's ear and awake him not, then of his stirring of the spirits there are thunderings and buzzings in the head, which cause dreamings.

Q. Can a person induce a dream through external means? A. Yes, it can happen. If someone whispers softly in another person's ear and doesn't wake them up, then from that stirring of the spirits, there can be rumblings and buzzing in the head, which leads to dreaming.

Q. How many humours are there in a man's body? A. Four, whereof every one hath its proper place. The first is choler, called by physicians flava bilis, which is placed in the liver. The second is melancholy, called atra bilis, whose seat is in the spleen. The third is phlegm, whose place is in the head. The fourth is blood, whose place is in the heart.

Q. How many humours are there in a man's body? A. Four, each with its own specific location. The first is choler, known by doctors as flava bilis, which is found in the liver. The second is melancholy, referred to as atra bilis, which is situated in the spleen. The third is phlegm, located in the head. The fourth is blood, which is found in the heart.

Q. What condition and quality hath a man of a sanguine complexion? A. It is fair and beautiful; hath his hair for the most part smooth; is bold; retaineth that which he hath conceived; is shame-faced, given to music, a lover of sciences, liberal, courteous, and not desirous of revenge.

Q. What condition and quality does a man with a sanguine complexion have? A. He is fair and attractive; usually has smooth hair; is confident; holds on to what he has thought; is modest, appreciates music, loves knowledge, is generous, polite, and not inclined to seek revenge.

Q. What properties do follow those of a phlegmatic complexion? A. They are dull of wit, their hair never curls, they are seldom very thirsty, much given to sleep, dream of things belonging to water, are fearful, covetous, given to heap up riches, and are weak in the act of venery.

Q. What characteristics are associated with a phlegmatic temperament? A. They tend to be slow-witted, their hair is typically straight, they rarely feel thirsty, they're often sleepy, and they dream about water-related things. They tend to be fearful and greedy, wanting to accumulate wealth, and they are not very strong in sexual matters.

Q. What are the properties of a choleric man? A. He is brown in complexion, unquiet, his veins hidden, eateth little and digesteth less, dreameth of dark and confused things, is sad, fearful, exceedingly covetous, and incontinent.

Q. What are the characteristics of a choleric person? A. They have a darker complexion, are restless, have hidden veins, eat little and digest even less, dream of dark and confusing things, are sad, anxious, overly greedy, and lack self-control.

Q. What dreams do follow these complexions? A. Pleasant, merry dreams do follow the sanguine; fearful dreams, the melancholic; the choleric dream of children fighting and fire; the phlegmatic dream of water. This is the reason why a man's complexion is said to be known by his dreams.

Q. What dreams follow these temperaments? A. Cheerful, happy dreams follow the sanguine; scary dreams follow the melancholic; the choleric dreams involve children fighting and fire; the phlegmatic dreams revolve around water. This is why a person's temperament is said to be reflected in their dreams.

Q. What is the reason that if you cover an egg over with salt, and let it lie in it a few days, all the meat within is consumed? A. A great dryness of the salt consumes the substance of the egg.

Q. Why does covering an egg with salt and leaving it for a few days result in all the contents being consumed? A. The extreme dryness of the salt absorbs the substance of the egg.

Q. Why is the melancholic complexion the worst? A. Because it proceeds from the dregs of the blood, is an enemy to mirth and bringeth on aged appearance and death, being cold and dry.

Q. Why is the melancholic complexion the worst? A. Because it comes from the dregs of the blood, is an enemy to joy, and leads to an aged appearance and death, being cold and dry.

Q. What is the cause that some men die joyful, and some in extreme grief? A. Over-great joy doth overmuch heat the internal parts of the body; and overmuch grief doth drown and suffocate the heart, which failing, a man dieth.

Q. What causes some men to die joyfully, while others die in deep sadness? A. Excessive joy can overheat the body's internal organs, while excessive grief can overwhelm and suffocate the heart, leading to its failure and the person's death.

Q. Why hath a man so much hair on his head? A. The hair on his head proceeds from the vapours which arise from the stomach, and ascend to the head, and also of the superfluities which are in the brain; and those two passing through the pores of the head are converted into hair, by reason of the heat and dryness of the head. And because man's body is full of humours, and he hath more brains than any other living creatures.

Q. Why does a man have so much hair on his head? A. The hair on his head comes from the vapors that rise from the stomach and move up to the head, as well as from the excess substances in the brain; these two combine as they pass through the pores of the head and turn into hair because of the heat and dryness of the head. Also, since a man's body is full of humors, he has more brain matter than any other living creatures.

Q. How many ways is the brain purged and other hidden places of the body? A. Four; the watery and gross humours are purged by the eyes, melancholy by the ears, choler by the nose, and phlegm by the hair.

Q. How many ways does the brain and other hidden parts of the body get rid of things? A. Four; the watery and thick fluids are released through the eyes, sadness through the ears, anger through the nose, and mucus through the hair.

Q. What is the reason that such as are very fat in their youth, are in danger of dying on a sudden? A. Such have very small and close veins, by reason of their fatness, so that the air and the breath can hardly have free course in them; and thereupon the natural heat wanting the refreshment of air, is put out, and as it were, quenched.

Q. Why are people who are very overweight in their youth at risk of sudden death? A. They have very small and narrow veins due to their excess fat, making it difficult for air and breath to flow freely through them. As a result, their natural heat, lacking the cooling refreshment of air, diminishes and essentially gets extinguished.

Q. Why do garlic and onions grow after they are gathered? A. It proceedeth from the humidity that is in them.

Q. Why do garlic and onions continue to grow after they are harvested? A. It's due to the moisture within them.

Q. Why do men feel cold sooner than women? A. Because men, being more hot than women, have their pores more open, and therefore it doth sooner enter into them than women.

Q. Why do men feel cold sooner than women? A. Because men, being warmer than women, have their pores more open, and so the cold affects them faster than it does women.

Q. Why are not old men so subject to the plague as young men and children? A. They are cold, and their pores are not so open as in youth; and therefore the infecting air doth not penetrate so soon by reason of their coldness.

Q. Why are older men less affected by the plague compared to young men and children? A. They are colder, and their pores aren’t as open as in youth; therefore, the infectious air doesn’t penetrate as quickly due to their coldness.

Q. Why do we cast water in a man's face when he swooneth? A. Because through the coldness of water the heat may run to the heart, and so give strength.

Q. Why do we splash water on a man's face when he faints? A. Because the coldness of the water can help the heat rush to the heart, which gives strength.

Q. Why are those waters best and most delicate which run towards the rising sun? A. Because they are soonest stricken with the sunbeams, and made pure and subtle, the sun having them under it, and by that means taking off the coldness and gross vapours which they gather from the ground they run through.

Q. Why are the waters that flow towards the rising sun the best and most delicate? A. Because they are warmed by the sun's rays the fastest, becoming pure and refined as the sun shines on them, and in doing so, it removes the coldness and heavy vapors they collect from the land they pass through.

Q. Why have women such weak and small voices? A. Because their instruments and organs of speaking, by reason of their coldness, are small and narrow; and therefore, receiving but little air, cause the voice to be effeminate.

Q. Why do women have such weak and small voices? A. Because their speaking tools and organs, due to their coldness, are small and narrow; and as a result, receiving little air, make the voice sound feminine.

Q. Whereof doth it proceed that want of sleep doth weaken the brain and body? A. Much watching doth engender choler, the which being hot both dry up and lessen the humours which serve the brain, the head, and other parts of the body.

Q. What causes the lack of sleep to weaken the brain and body? A. Too much wakefulness creates anger, which, being hot, both dries up and reduces the fluids that support the brain, head, and other parts of the body.

Q. Wherefore doth vinegar so readily staunch blood? A. From its cold virtue, for all cold is naturally binding, and vinegar being cold, hath the like property.

Q. Why does vinegar stop blood so effectively? A. Because of its cold nature, as all cold things are naturally binding, and since vinegar is cold, it shares this property.

Q. Why is sea-water salter in summer than in winter? A. From the heat of the sun, seeing by experiment that a salt thing being heated becometh more salt.

Q. Why is sea-water saltier in summer than in winter? A. Because of the heat from the sun, since experiments show that when a salty substance is heated, it becomes saltier.

Q. Why do men live longer in hot regions than in cold? A. Because they may be more dry, and by that means the natural heat is better preserved in them than in cold countries.

Q. Why do men live longer in hot regions than in cold? A. Because they tend to be drier, which helps them retain their natural heat better than in cold countries.

Q. Why is well-water seldom or ever good? A. All water which standeth still in the spring and is never heated by the sunbeams, is very heavy, and hath much matter in it, and therefore wanting the heat of the sun, is naught.

Q. Why is well water rarely good? A. Any water that stands still in the spring and is never warmed by the sun is very heavy and contains a lot of impurities, and for that reason, lacking the sun's heat, is not good.

Q. Why do men sleep better and more at ease on the right side than on the left? A. Because when they be on the left side, the lungs do lie upon and cover the heart, which is on that side under the pap; now the heart, the fountain of life, being thus occupied and hindered with the lungs, cannot exercise its own proper operation, as being overmuch heated with the lungs lying upon it, and therefore wanting the refreshment of the air which the lungs do give it, like the blowing of a pair of bellows, is choked and suffocated, but by lying on the right side, those inconveniences are avoided.

Q. Why do men sleep better and more comfortably on their right side than on their left? A. Because when they lie on their left side, the lungs rest on and cover the heart, which is located on that side beneath the breast. The heart, being the source of life, gets hindered by the lungs, which can cause it to overheat. This overheat prevents the heart from doing its job properly, as it lacks the fresh air that the lungs usually provide, similar to how blowing into a pair of bellows works. This leads to it being choked and suffocated, but when lying on the right side, those issues are avoided.

Q. What is the reason that old men sneeze with great difficulty? A. Because that through their coldness their arteries are very narrow and close, and therefore the heat is not of force to expel the cold.

Q. What is the reason that older men sneeze with great difficulty? A. Because their coldness causes their arteries to be very narrow and constricted, so the heat isn’t strong enough to push out the cold.

Q. Why doth a drunken man think that all things about him do turn round? A. Because the spirits which serve the sight are mingled with vapours and fumes, arising from the liquors he has drunk; the overmuch heat causeth the eye to be in continual motion, and the eye being round, causeth all things about it to seem to go round.

Q. Why does a drunk man think everything around him is spinning? A. Because the substances that affect his vision are mixed with vapors and fumes from the drinks he has consumed; the excessive heat causes his eye to move constantly, and since the eye is round, it makes everything around it appear to be spinning.

Q. Wherefore doth it proceed, that bread which is made with salt is lighter than that which is made without it, considering that salt is very heavy of itself? A. Although bread is very heavy of itself, yet the salt dries it and makes it light, by reason of the heat which it hath; and the more heat there is in it, the better the bread is, and the lighter and more wholesome for the body.

Q. Why is bread made with salt lighter than bread made without it, since salt itself is quite heavy? A. Even though bread is heavy, the salt dries it out and makes it lighter because of the heat it generates; and the more heat there is, the better the bread turns out, making it lighter and healthier for the body.

Q. Why is not new bread good for the stomach? A. Because it is full of moistness, and thick, hot vapours, which do corrupt the blood, and hot bread is blacker than cold, because heat is the mother of blackness, and because the vapours are not gone out of it.

Q. Why isn't fresh bread good for the stomach? A. Because it’s full of moisture and thick, hot steam, which can spoil the blood. Hot bread is darker than cold bread because heat leads to darkness, and that steam hasn’t escaped yet.

Q. Why do lettuces make a man sleep? A. Because they engender gross vapours.

Q. Why do lettuces make a person sleepy? A. Because they create thick vapors.

Q. Why do the dregs of wine and oil go to the bottom, and those of honey swim uppermost? A. Because the dregs of wine and oil are earthly, and therefore go to the bottom; but honey is a liquid that cometh from the stomach and belly of the bee; and is there in some sort putrefied and made subtle; on which account the dregs are most light and hot, and therefore go uppermost.

Q. Why do the leftover bits of wine and oil settle at the bottom, while the leftover bits of honey float on top? A. Because the leftovers from wine and oil are heavier, so they sink; but honey is a substance that comes from the bee's stomach and belly, and it undergoes a sort of transformation, becoming lighter and warmer, which is why the leftovers rise to the surface.

Q. Why do cats' and wolves' eyes shine in the night, and not in the day? A. The eyes of these beasts are by nature more crystalline than the eyes of other beasts, and therefore do so shine in darkness; but the brightness of the sun doth hinder them from being seen in the day-time.

Q. Why do cats' and wolves' eyes shine at night but not during the day? A. Their eyes are naturally more crystalline than those of other animals, which is why they shine in the dark; however, the brightness of the sun prevents them from being seen during the day.

Q. What is the reason that some men, if they see others dance, do the like with their hands and feet, or by other gestures of the body? A. Because the sight having carried and represented unto the mind that action, and judging the same to be pleasant and delightful, and therefore the imagination draweth the like of it in conceit and stirs up the body by the gestures.

Q. Why do some men, when they see others dance, mimic them with their hands and feet or through other body movements? A. It's because seeing that action sparks the mind, and it judges the action to be enjoyable and pleasurable. As a result, the imagination recreates it in thought and motivates the body to imitate those gestures.

Q. Why does much sleep cause some to grow fat and some lean? A. Those who are of ill complexion, when they sleep, do consume and digest the superfluities of what they have eaten, and therefore become fat. But such as are of good complexion, when they sleep are more cold, and digest less.

Q. Why does a lot of sleep make some people gain weight while others lose it? A. People with poor complexion tend to consume and digest the excess of what they've eaten while sleeping, which is why they gain weight. In contrast, those with a good complexion are cooler during sleep and digest less.

Q. How much, and from what cause do we suffer hunger better than thirst? A. When the stomach hath nothing else to consume, it consumeth the phlegm and humours which it findeth most ready and most at hand; and therefore we suffer hunger better than thirst, because the heat hath nothing to refresh itself with.

Q. Why do we endure hunger better than thirst? A. When the stomach has nothing else to digest, it uses the mucus and fluids it finds most readily available; that's why we handle hunger better than thirst, because the heat has nothing to cool itself down with.

Q. Why doth the hair fall after a great sickness? A. Where the sickness is long, as in the ague, the humours of the head are dried up through overmuch heat, and, therefore, wanting nourishment, the hair falls.

Q. Why does hair fall out after a serious illness? A. When the illness lasts a long time, like in the case of a fever, the fluids in the head become dried up from excessive heat, and as a result, lacking nourishment, the hair falls out.

Q. Why doth the hair of the eyebrows grow long in old men? A. Because through their age the bones are thin through want of heat, and therefore the hair doth grow there, by reason of the rheum of the eye.

Q. Why do the eyebrows grow long in older men? A. Because as they age, the bones become thinner due to a lack of warmth, and as a result, the hair grows there because of the moisture from the eye.

Q. Whereof proceedeth gaping? A. Of gross vapours, which occupy the vital spirits of the head, and of the coldness of the senses causing sleepiness.

Q. What causes gaping? A. It comes from thick vapors that affect the vital spirits of the head, along with the coldness of the senses leading to sleepiness.

Q. What is the reason that some flowers do open with the sun rising, and shut with the sun setting? A. Cold doth close and shut, as hath been said, but the heat of the sun doth open and enlarge. Some compare the sun to the soul of the body; for as the soul giveth life, so the sun doth give life, and vivificate all things; but cold bringeth death, withering and decaying all things.

Q. Why do some flowers bloom with the rising sun and close with the setting sun? A. Cold causes them to close, as mentioned before, but the warmth of the sun causes them to open and expand. Some liken the sun to the soul of the body; just as the soul gives life, the sun gives life and invigorates everything; but cold brings death, withering and decaying all things.

Q. Why doth grief cause men to grow old and grey? A. Age is nothing else but dryness and want of humours in the body; grief then causeth alteration, and heat dryness; age and greyness follow immediately.

Q. Why does grief make people grow old and gray? A. Age is simply a result of dryness and a lack of fluids in the body; therefore, grief causes changes, which lead to heat and dryness; age and grayness come right after.

Q. Why are gelded beasts weaker than such as are not gelded? A. Because they have less heat, and by that means less force and strength.

Q. Why are neutered animals weaker than those that are not neutered? A. Because they have less energy, which results in less power and strength.


THE PROBLEMS OF
MARCUS ANTONINUS SANCTIPERTIAS


Q. Why is it esteemed, in the judgment of the most wise, the hardest thing to know a man's self? A. Because nothing can be known that is of so great importance to man for the regulation of his conduct in life. Without this knowledge, man is like the ship without either compass or rudder to conduct her to port, and is tossed by every passion and prejudice to which his natural constitution is subjected. To know the form and perfection of man's self, according to the philosophers, is a task too hard; and a man, says Plato, is nothing, or if he be anything, he is nothing, but his soul.

Q. Why is it considered, by the wisest, to be the hardest thing to know oneself? A. Because nothing is as important for a person to manage their behavior in life. Without this knowledge, a person is like a ship without a compass or rudder to guide it to harbor and is tossed about by every passion and prejudice inherent in their nature. According to philosophers, understanding the true nature and essence of oneself is an extremely difficult task; and Plato says that a person is nothing, or if they are anything, they are only their soul.

Q. Why is a man, though endowed with reason, the most unjust of all living creatures? A. Because only man is desirous of honour; and so it happens that every one covets to seem good, and yet naturally shuns labour, though he attain no virtue by it.

Q. Why is a man, even though he has reason, the most unfair of all living beings? A. Because only man seeks honor; and as a result, everyone wants to appear good, yet naturally avoids effort, even though he gains no virtue from it.

Q. Why doth immoderate copulation do more hurt than immoderate letting of blood? A. The seed is full of nutriment, and better prepared for the nurture of the body, than the blood; for the blood is nourished by the seed.

Q. Why does excessive intercourse cause more harm than excessive bleeding? A. The seed is rich in nutrients and better suited for nourishing the body than blood, since blood is nourished by the seed.

Q. What is the reason that those that have long yards cannot beget children? A. The seed, in going a long distance, doth lose the spirit, and therefore becomes cold and unfit.

Q. Why can't people with long yards have children? A. The seed, traveling a long distance, loses its vitality and becomes cold and unfit.

Q. Why do such as are corpulent cast forth but little seed in the act of copulation, and are often barren? A. Because the seed of such goeth to nourish the body. For the same reason corpulent women have but few menses.

Q. Why do people who are overweight produce very little seed during sex and are often unable to conceive? A. Because their seed goes to nourish their bodies. For the same reason, overweight women have fewer menstrual cycles.

Q. How come women to be prone to venery in the summer time and men in the winter? A. In summer the man's testicles hang down and are feebler than in winter, or because hot natures become more lively in the cold season; for a man is hot and dry, and a woman cold and moist; and therefore in summer the strength of men decays, and that of women increases, and they grow livelier by the benefit of the contrary quality.

Q. Why are women more likely to be interested in sex in the summer and men in the winter? A. In summer, a man's testicles hang lower and are weaker than in winter, or because hot natures become more active in the cold season; a man is hot and dry, and a woman is cold and moist; therefore, in summer, men's strength diminishes while women's increases, and they become more energized due to the influence of these opposing qualities.

Q. Why is man the proudest of all living creatures? A. By reason of his great knowledge; or, as philosophers say, all intelligent beings having understanding, nothing remains that escapes man's knowledge in particular; or it is because he hath rule over all earthly creatures, and all things seem to be brought under his dominion.

Q. Why is man the proudest of all living creatures? A. Because of his vast knowledge; or, as philosophers say, all intelligent beings having understanding, nothing escapes man's knowledge in particular; or it's because he has control over all earthly creatures, and everything seems to be under his dominion.

Q. Why have beasts their hearts in the middle of their breasts, and man his inclining to the left? A. To moderate the cold on that side.

Q. Why do animals have their hearts in the center of their chests, while humans have theirs leaning to the left? A. To help regulate the cold on that side.

Q. Why doth the woman love the man best who has got her maidenhead? A. By reason of shame-facedness; Plato saith, shame-facedness doth follow love, or, because it is the beginning of great pleasure, which doth bring a great alteration in the whole body, whereby the powers of the mind are much delighted, and stick and rest immoveable in the same.

Q. Why does a woman love the man best who has taken her virginity? A. Because of modesty; Plato says that modesty follows love, or because it is the start of great pleasure, which brings a significant change in the whole body, causing the mind's faculties to be greatly pleased and to remain fixed and unchanging in that state.

Q. How come hairy people to be more lustful than any other? A. Because they are said to have greater store of excrements and seed as philosophers assert.

Q. Why are hairy people considered to be more lustful than others? A. It's said that they have a larger quantity of waste and semen, as some philosophers claim.

Q. What is the cause that the suffocation of the matrix, which happens to women through strife and contention, is more dangerous than the detaining of the flowers? A. Because the more perfect an excrement is in its natural disposition, the worse it is when it is altered from that disposition, and drawn to the contrary quality; as is seen in vinegar, which is sharpest when it is made of the best wine. And so it happens that the more men love one another the more they fall into variance and discord.

Q. Why is the suffocation of the matrix, which happens to women through conflict and struggle, more dangerous than the detention of the flowers? A. Because the more refined something is in its natural state, the worse it becomes when it is changed from that state and drawn toward the opposite quality; as seen in vinegar, which is sharpest when made from the finest wine. Thus, the more men love each other, the more they tend to fall into disagreement and conflict.

Q. How come women's bodies to be looser, softer and less than man's; and why do they want hair? A. By reason of their menses; for with them their superfluities go away, which would produce hair; and thereby the flesh is filled, consequently the veins are more hid in women than in men.

Q. Why are women's bodies looser, softer, and less firm than men's, and why do they have hair? A. It's due to their menstrual cycle; during this time, they lose excess fluids that would promote hair growth, resulting in fuller flesh, which makes their veins less visible compared to men's.

Q. What is the reason that when we think upon a horrible thing, we are stricken with fear? A. Because the conceit or imagination of things has force and virtue. For Plato saith, the fancy of things has some affinity with things themselves; for the image and representation of cold and heat is such as the nature of things are. Or it is this, because when we comprehend any dreadful matter, the blood runneth to the internal parts; and therefore the external parts are cold and shake with fear.

Q. What is the reason that when we think about something terrifying, we feel fear? A. Because our thoughts and imagination have power and influence. Plato says that our imagination has a connection to reality; the way we perceive cold and heat closely resembles the nature of those things. Alternatively, it could be that when we grasp a frightening concept, our blood rushes to our core, causing our external body to feel cold and tremble with fear.

Q. Why doth a radish root help digestion and yet itself remaineth undigested? A. Because the substance consisteth of divers parts; for there are some thin parts in it, which are fit to digest meat, the which being dissolved, there doth remain some thick and close substance in it, which the heat cannot digest.

Q. Why does a radish root help digestion but itself remain undigested? A. Because its substance is made up of different parts; some thin parts are suitable for digesting food, and when those dissolve, there are thicker, denser parts left that the heat can’t digest.

Q. Why do such as cleave wood, cleave it easier in the length than athwart? A. Because in the wood there is a grain, whereby, if it be cut in length, in the very cutting, one part naturally separateth from another.

Q. Why is it easier to split wood along the grain than across it? A. Because wood has a grain that, when cut along its length, causes one part to naturally separate from another during the cutting process.

Q. What is the reason, that if a spear be stricken on the end, the sound cometh sooner to one who standeth near, than to him who striketh? A. Because, as hath been said, there is a certain long grain in wood, directly forward, filled with air, but on the other side there is none, and therefore a beam or spear being stricken on the end, the air which is hidden receiveth a sound in the aforesaid grain which serveth for its passage; and, seeing the sound cannot go easily out of it is carried into the ear of him who is opposite; as those passages do not go from side to side, a sound cannot be distinctly heard there.

Q. Why does the sound of a spear striking its tip reach a nearby person faster than it reaches the person doing the striking? A. As mentioned, there is a certain long grain in wood that runs forward and is filled with air, but on the other side, there is none. When a beam or spear is struck on the end, the air inside that grain carries the sound along its path. Since the sound can't easily escape, it travels to the ear of the person standing opposite. Because the passages don't allow sound to travel side to side, it can’t be heard distinctly from there.

Q. Why are the thighs and calves of the legs of men flesh, seeing the legs of beasts are not so? A. Because men only go upright; and therefore nature hath given the lower parts corpulency, and taken it away from the upper; and thus she hath made the buttocks, the thighs, and calves of the legs fleshy.

Q. Why are the thighs and calves of men's legs fleshy, while those of animals are not? A. Because men walk upright; thus nature has given the lower parts more flesh and taken it away from the upper parts. That's why the buttocks, thighs, and calves of men's legs are fleshy.

Q. Why are the sensible powers in the heart; yet if the hinder part of the brain be hurt, the memory suffereth by it; if the forepart, the imagination; if the middle, the cogitative part? A. It is because the brain is appointed by nature to cool the blood of the heart; whereof it is, that in divers of its parts it serveth the powers and instruments with their heart, for every action of the soul doth not proceed from one measure of heat.

Q. Why are the cognitive functions associated with the heart, yet if the back part of the brain is damaged, memory is affected; if the front, then imagination; and if the middle, the reasoning ability? A. It's because nature designed the brain to help cool the blood from the heart; thus, in various parts, it supports the functions and abilities of the heart, as every action of the mind doesn’t come from a single level of warmth.


THE PROBLEMS OF
ALEXANDER APHRODISEUS


Q. Why doth the sun make a man black and dirt white, wax soft and dirt hard? A. By reason of the disposition of the substance that doth suffer. All humours, phlegm excepted, when heated above measure, do seem black about the skin; and dirt, being full either of saltpetre, or salt liquor, when the sun hath consumed its dregs and filth, doth become white again. When the sun hath stirred up and drawn the humidity of the wax, it is softened; but in the dirt, the sun doth consume the humidity, which is very much and makes it hard.

Q. Why does the sun make a person dark and dirt white, soften wax, and harden dirt? A. Because of the way the substances react. All fluids, except phlegm, when heated too much, seem dark near the skin; and dirt, which is full of either saltpeter or salty liquid, becomes white again when the sun has burned off its impurities. When the sun heats the wax and draws out its moisture, it becomes soft; but in the case of dirt, the sun removes the moisture, which is quite abundant, causing it to harden.

Q. Why are round ulcers hard to be cured? A. Because they are bred of a sharp choler, which eats and gnaws; and because it doth run, dropping and gnawing, it makes a round ulcer; for which reason it requires dry medicines, as physicians assert.

Q. Why are round ulcers difficult to heal? A. Because they are caused by a sharp bile that eats away at tissue; and since it flows, constantly licking and gnawing, it creates a round ulcer. For this reason, doctors say it needs drying treatments.

Q. Why is honey sweet to all men, but to such as have jaundice? A. Because they have much bitter choler all over their bodies, which abounds in the tongue; whence it happens when they eat honey the humours are stirred, and the taste itself, by the bitterness of choler, causes an imagination that the honey is bitter.

Q. Why is honey sweet to everyone, but bitter to those with jaundice? A. Because they have a lot of bitter bile throughout their bodies, which is concentrated on the tongue; as a result, when they eat honey, the bile interacts, and the bitterness distorts their perception, making them think the honey is bitter.

Q. Why doth water cast on serpents, cause them to fly? A. Because they are dry and cold by nature, having but little blood, and therefore fly from excessive coldness.

Q. Why does water thrown on snakes make them flee? A. Because they are naturally dry and cold, having very little blood, and so they escape from extreme cold.

Q. Why doth an egg break if roasted, and not if boiled? A. When moisture comes near the fire, it is heated very much, and so breeds wind, which being put up in little room, forces its way out, and breaks the shell: the like happens in tubs or earthen vessels when new wine is put into them; too much phlegm breaks the shell of an egg in roasting; it is the same with earthen pots too much heated; wherefore some people wet an egg when they intend to roast it. Hot water, by its softness, doth dissipate its humidity by little and little, and dissolves it through the thinness and passages of the shell.

Q. Why does an egg break when roasted but not when boiled? A. When moisture gets close to the fire, it heats up a lot, creating steam, which, when confined in a small space, pushes its way out and breaks the shell. The same thing happens in barrels or clay pots when new wine is added; excessive pressure causes the shell of a roasting egg to crack. It’s similar with clay pots that get too hot; that’s why some people wet an egg before roasting it. Hot water, being gentle, gradually evaporates its moisture and allows it to escape through the thin areas of the shell.

Q. Why do men wink in the act of copulation, and find a little alteration in all other senses? A. Because, being overcome by the effect of that pleasure, they do comprehend it the better.

Q. Why do men wink during sex and notice a slight change in all their other senses? A. Because, being overwhelmed by the pleasure, they actually understand it better.

Q. Why have children gravel breeding in their bladders, and old men in their kidneys and veins? A. Because children have straight passages in their kidneys, and an earthly thick humour is thrust with violence by the urine to the bladder, which hath wide conduits or passages, that give room for the urine and humour whereof gravel is engendered, which waxes thick, and seats itself, as the manner of it is. In old men it is the reverse, for they have wide passages of the veins, back and kidneys, that the urine may pass away, and the earthly humour congeal and sink down; the colour of the gravel shows the humour whereof the stone comes.

Q. Why do children develop gravel in their bladders, while old men have it in their kidneys and veins? A. Because children have straight passages in their kidneys, which allows thick, earthy substances to be forcefully pushed by the urine into the bladder, where the wider openings can accommodate both the urine and the substances that create gravel. This gravel thickens and settles, as is its nature. In contrast, old men have wider openings in their veins, back, and kidneys that enable urine to flow out, causing the thick, earthy substances to congeal and sink. The color of the gravel indicates the type of substance from which the stone is formed.

Q. Why is it, if the stone do congeal and wax hard through heat, we use not contrary things to dissolve it by coldness, but light things, as parsley, fennel and the like? A. It is thought, to fall out by an excessive scorching heat, by which the stones do crumble into sand, as in the manner of earthen vessels, which, when they are overheated or roasted, turn to sand. And by this means it happens that small stones are avoided, together with sand, in making water. Sometimes cold drink thrusts out the stone, the kidneys being stretched and casting it out by a great effort; thus easing the belly of its burden. Besides, it often happens that immoderate heat of the kidneys, or of the veins of the back (through which the stone doth grow) is quenched with coldness.

Q. Why is it that when a stone hardens due to heat, we use light things like parsley and fennel rather than something cold to dissolve it? A. It’s believed that excessive heat causes the stones to break down into sand, similar to how earthenware becomes sand when overheated or roasted. This process helps avoid small stones and sand when urinating. Sometimes, cold drinks can push out the stone, as the kidneys stretch and force it out with significant effort, relieving the belly of its load. Additionally, it can often happen that excessive heat in the kidneys or back veins (where the stone develops) is cooled down with something cold.

Q. Why is the curing of an ulcer or bile in the kidneys or bladder very hard? A. Because the urine being sharp, doth ulcerate the sore. Ulcers are worse to cure in the bladder than in the kidneys, because urine stays in the former, but runs away from the latter.

Q. Why is it really difficult to heal an ulcer or inflammation in the kidneys or bladder? A. Because the urine is acidic, which irritates the sore. Ulcers are harder to treat in the bladder than in the kidneys because urine collects in the bladder, but it flows away from the kidneys.

Q. Why do chaff and straw keep water hot, but make snow cold? A. Because the nature of chaff wants a manifest quantity; seeing, therefore that of its own nature, it can easily be mingled, and consumed by that which it is annexed onto, it easily assumes the same nature, and being put into hot things, it is easily hot, heats again, and keeps hot; and on the contrary, being made cold by the snow, and making the snow cold it keeps in its coldness.

Q. Why do chaff and straw keep things hot, but make snow cold? A. Because chaff wants a clear amount; since it can easily mix and be consumed by whatever it’s added to, it easily takes on the same properties. When placed in something hot, it gets hot, retains that heat, and keeps things warm. Conversely, when it gets cold from the snow, it cools the snow down and maintains that coldness.

Q. Why have we oftentimes a pain in making water? A. Because sharp choler issuing out, and pricking the bladder of the urine, doth provoke and stir up the whole body to ease the part offended, and to expel the humour moderately. This doth happen most of all unto children, because they have moist excrements by reason of their often drinking.

Q. Why do we often feel pain when urinating? A. Because sharp bile comes out and irritates the bladder, causing the whole body to respond and try to relieve the affected area and expel the excess fluid. This mainly happens to children because they have moist waste due to drinking frequently.

Q. Why have some medicines of one kind contrary effects, as experience proves; for mastich doth expel, dissolve and also knit; and vinegar cools and heats? A. Because there are some small invisible bodies in them, not in confusion, but by interposition; as sand moistened doth clog together and seem to be but one body, though indeed there are many small bodies in sand. And since this is so, it is not absurd that the contrary qualities and virtues should be hidden in mastich, and that nature hath given that virtue to these bodies.

Q. Why do some medicines of the same type have opposite effects, as experience shows? For instance, mastic can expel, dissolve, and also bind; and vinegar can cool and heat. A. This is because there are tiny invisible particles in them that, while not mixed together, are layered; like how damp sand can clump together and appear as a single mass, even though there are many tiny grains in the sand. Since this is the case, it’s not unreasonable that opposite qualities and properties can be contained in mastic, and that nature has granted these particles those effects.

Q. Why do nurses rock and move their children when they would rock them to sleep? A. To the end that the humours being scattered by moving, may move the brains; but those of more years cannot endure this.

Q. Why do nurses rock and move their children when they would rock them to sleep? A. So that the movement helps to settle their moods, which can calm their minds; but older children can’t handle this as well.

Q. Why doth oil, being drunk, cause one to vomit, and especially yellow choler? A. Because being light, and ascending upwards it provoketh the nutriment in the stomach, and lifteth it up; and so, the stomach being grieved, summoneth the ejective virtue to vomit, and especially choler, because that is light and consisteth of subtle parts, and therefore the sooner carried upward; for when it is mingled with any moist thing, it runneth into the highest room.

Q. Why does drinking oil cause vomiting, especially yellow bile? A. Because it's light and rises, it irritates the food in the stomach and pushes it upward. As a result, the stomach, feeling discomfort, activates its ability to vomit, particularly bile, which is light and made up of fine particles, making it rise more quickly. When it mixes with anything wet, it flows to the highest point.

Q. Why doth not oil mingle with moist things? A. Because, being pliant, soft and thick in itself, it cannot be divided into parts, and so cannot be mingled; neither if it be put on the earth can it enter into it.

Q. Why doesn't oil mix with wet things? A. Because it’s flexible, soft, and thick on its own, it can't break into parts, so it can't mix; also, if it's placed on the ground, it can't penetrate it.

Q. Why are water and oil frozen in cold weather, and wine and vinegar not? A. Because that oil being without quality, and fit to be compounded with anything, is cold quickly and so extremely that it is most cold. Water being cold of nature, doth easily freeze when it is made colder than its own nature. Wine being hot, and of subtle parts, suffereth no freezing.

Q. Why do water and oil freeze in cold weather, but wine and vinegar do not? A. Because oil, lacking specific qualities and able to mix with anything, gets cold quickly and to a very low temperature. Water, being naturally cold, can easily freeze when it gets colder than its natural state. Wine, being warm and made up of fine particles, does not freeze.

Q. Why do contrary things in quality bring forth the same effect? A. That which is moist is hardened and bound alike by heat and cold. Snow and liquid do freeze with cold; a plaster and gravel in the bladder are made dry with heat. The effect indeed is the same, but by two divers actions; the heat doth consume and eat the abundance of moisture; but the cold stopping and shutting with its over much thickness, doth wring out the filthy humidity, like as a sponge wrung with the hand doth cast out the water which it hath in the pores and small passages.

Q. Why do opposite qualities produce the same effect? A. Both moisture and dryness can be hardened and bound by heat and cold. Snow and liquids freeze when it’s cold; a plaster and gravel in the bladder dry out when it’s heated. The result is indeed the same, but it comes from two different processes: heat consumes and removes excess moisture, while cold, by its extreme thickness, squeezes out the dirty moisture, just like a sponge being wrung out releases the water trapped in its pores and small openings.

Q. Why doth a shaking or quivering seize us oftentimes when any fearful matter doth happen, as a great noise or a crack made, the sudden downfall of water, or the fall of a large tree? A. Because that oftentimes the humours being digested and consumed by time and made thin and weak, all the heat vehemently, suddenly and sharply flying into the inward part of the body, consumeth the humours which cause the disease. So treacle hath this effect, and many such like, which are hot and dry when taken after connexion.

Q. Why do we often shake or tremble when something scary happens, like a loud noise, a sudden rush of water, or a large tree falling? A. It’s because sometimes the fluids in our body are digested and weakened over time, so when a shock occurs, all the heat rushes sharply into the inner part of the body, affecting the fluids that cause the illness. Treacle has this effect, among many other hot and dry substances when taken after connection.

Q. Why do steel glasses shine so clearly? A. Because they are lined in the inside with white lead, whose nature is shining, and being put to glass, which is lucid and transparent, doth shine much more; and casts its beams through its passages, and without the body of the glass; and by that means the glass is very shining and clear.

Q. Why do steel glasses shine so brightly? A. Because they are lined on the inside with white lead, which is naturally shiny, and when combined with glass, which is clear and transparent, it shines even more; it sends its rays through its passages and out of the glass itself, making the glass very shiny and clear.

Q. Why do we see ourselves in glasses and clear water? A. Because the quality of the sight, passing into the bright bodies by reflection, doth return again on the beam of the eyes, as the image of him who looketh on it.

Q. Why do we see our reflection in glasses and clear water? A. Because the quality of the sight, which enters the bright surfaces by reflection, returns again to the eyes like the image of the person looking at it.

Q. What is the reason that if you cast a stone in standing water which is near the surface of the earth, it causes many circles, and not if the water be deep in the earth? A. Because the stone, with the vehemence of the cast, doth agitate the water in every part of it, until it come to the bottom; and if there be a very great vehemence in the throw, the circle is still greater, the stone going down to the bottom causing many circles. For, first of all, it doth divide the outermost and superficial parts of the water in many parts, and so, always going down to the bottom, again dividing the water, it maketh another circle, and this is done successively until the stone resteth; and because the vehemence of the stone is slackened, still as it goes down, of necessity the last circle is less than the first, because by that and also by its force the water is divided.

Q. Why does throwing a stone into shallow standing water create multiple circles, but not when the water is deep underground? A. It's because the force of the throw disturbs the water at every level until it reaches the bottom. If the throw is very powerful, the circles created are even larger, as the stone sinks to the bottom, generating multiple circles. Initially, it breaks apart the surface layer of the water in several sections, and as it continues down, it divides the water again, creating another circle, and this process repeats until the stone comes to a stop. Since the stone's force decreases as it sinks, the last circle is necessarily smaller than the first, due to both its diminishing force and the water being disturbed.

Q. Why are such as are deaf by nature, dumb? A. Because they cannot speak and express that which they never hear. Some physicians do say, that there is one knitting and uniting of sinews belonging to the like disposition. But such as are dumb by accident are not deaf at all, for then there ariseth a local passion.

Q. Why are people who are naturally deaf also mute? A. Because they cannot speak and express what they have never heard. Some doctors say that there is a connection among the nerves related to this condition. But those who are mute due to an accident are not deaf at all, because that results from a specific issue.

Q. Why doth itching arise when an ulcer doth wax whole and phlegm ceases? A. Because the part which is healed and made sound doth pursue the relic of the humours which remained there against nature, and which was the cause of the bile, and so going out through the skin, and dissolving itself, doth originally cause the itch.

Q. Why does itching occur when an ulcer is healing and phlegm stops? A. Because the area that is healing and returning to health seeks the remnants of the humors that remained there against nature, which caused the bile, and as they exit through the skin and dissolve, they ultimately cause the itch.

Q. How comes a man to sneeze oftener and more vehemently than a beast? A. Because he uses more meats and drinks, and of more different sorts, and that more than is requisite; the which, when he cannot digest as he would, he doth gather together much air and spirit, by reason of much humidity; the spirits then very subtle, ascending into the head, often force a man to void them, and so provoke sneezing. The noise caused thereby proceeds from a vehement spirit or breath passing through the conduit of the nostrils, as belching doth from the stomach or farting by the fundament, the voice by the throat, and a sound by the ear.

Q. Why does a man sneeze more often and more vigorously than an animal? A. Because he eats and drinks more various kinds and in larger quantities than necessary; when he can't digest these as he should, he accumulates a lot of air and moisture. The spirits then become very subtle, rising to the head, often forcing a man to release them, which provokes sneezing. The sound produced comes from a strong breath passing through the nostrils, similar to belching from the stomach or farting from the backside, the voice from the throat, and a sound from the ear.

Q. How come the hair and nails of dead people to grow? A. Because the flesh rotting, withering and falling away, that which was hidden about the root of the hair doth now appear as growing. Some say that it grows indeed, because carcasses are dissolved in the beginning to many excrements and superfluities by putrefaction. These going out at the uppermost parts of the body by some passages, do increase the growth of the hair.

Q. Why do the hair and nails of dead people seem to grow? A. Because the flesh is decaying, shrinking, and falling away, what was hidden around the root of the hair now appears as growth. Some say it actually grows because the body breaks down initially into many waste products through decay. These substances exit the upper parts of the body through various openings, which contributes to the appearance of hair growth.

Q. Why does not the hair of the feet soon grow grey? A. For this reason, because that through great motion they disperse and dissolve the superfluous phlegm that breeds greyness. The hair of the secrets grows very late, because of the place, and because that in carnal copulation it dissolves the phlegm also.

Q. Why doesn't the hair on the feet turn gray quickly? A. It's because through a lot of movement, they break down and get rid of the excess phlegm that causes graying. The hair in private areas takes a long time to change color due to their location, and because during sexual activities, it also helps to dissolve the phlegm.

Q. Why, if you put hot burnt barley upon a horse's sore, is the hair which grows upon the sore not white, but like the other hair? A. Because it hath the force of expelling; and doth drive away and dissolve the phlegm, as well as all other unprofitable matter that is gathered together through the weakness of the parts, or condity of the sore.

Q. Why, when you put hot burnt barley on a horse's sore, does the hair that grows on the sore not turn white, but remain the same as the other hair? A. Because it has the ability to expel and drives away and breaks down the phlegm, along with any other unnecessary matter that has built up due to the weakness of the area or condition of the sore.

Q. Why doth the hair never grow on an ulcer or bile? A. Because man hath a thick skin, as is seen by the thickness of his hair; and if the scar be thicker than the skin itself, it stops the passages from whence the hair should grow. Horses have thinner skins, as is plain by their hair; therefore all passages are not stopped in their wounds and sores; and after the excrements which were gathered together have broken a passage through those small pores the hair doth grow.

Q. Why doesn’t hair grow on an ulcer or sore? A. Because humans have thick skin, as shown by the thickness of their hair. If the scar is thicker than the skin itself, it blocks the openings where hair should grow. Horses have thinner skin, evident from their hair; therefore, not all openings are blocked in their wounds and sores. After the waste that has gathered has broken a passage through those small pores, hair does grow.

Q. Why is Fortune painted with a double forehead, the one side bald and the other hairy? A. The baldness signifies adversity, and hairiness prosperity, which we enjoy when it pleaseth her.

Q. Why is Fortune depicted with a double forehead, one side bald and the other hairy? A. The bald side represents adversity, and the hairy side represents prosperity, which we experience when it pleases her.

Q. Why have some commended flattery? A. Because flattery setteth forth before our eyes what we ought to be, though not what we are.

Q. Why have some praised flattery? A. Because flattery shows us what we should be, even if it’s not what we actually are.

Q. Wherefore should virtue be painted girded? A. To show that virtuous men should not be slothful, but diligent and always in action.

Q. Why should virtue be depicted as wearing a girdle? A. To indicate that virtuous people should not be lazy, but rather diligent and always active.

Q. Why did the ancients say it was better to fall into the hands of a raven than a flatterer? A. Because ravens do not eat us till we be dead, but flatterers devour us alive.

Q. Why did the ancients say it was better to fall into the hands of a raven than a flatterer? A. Because ravens don’t eat us until we’re dead, but flatterers consume us while we’re still alive.

Q. Why have choleric men beards before others? A. Because they are hot, and their pores large.

Q. Why do choleric men have beards before others? A. Because they are hot-tempered, and their pores are large.

Q. How comes it that such as have the hiccups do ease themselves by holding their breath? A. The breath retained doth heat the interior parts of the body, and the hiccups proceeds from cold.

Q. Why do people with hiccups feel better when they hold their breath? A. Holding your breath warms up the inside of your body, and hiccups are caused by cold.

Q. How comes it that old men remember well what they have seen and done in their youth, and forget such things as they see and do in their old age? A. Things learned in youth take deep root and habitude in a person, but those learned in age are forgotten because the senses are then weakened.

Q. Why do old men remember well what they saw and did in their youth, but forget the things they see and do in their old age? A. The things learned in youth take deep root and become habits, but those learned in old age are forgotten because the senses are weakened then.

Q. What kind of covetousness is best? A. That of time when employed as it ought to be.

Q. What kind of desire is best? A. The desire for time when it’s used as it should be.

Q. Why is our life compared to a play? A. Because the dishonest do occupy the place of the honest, and the worst sort the room of the good.

Q. Why is our life compared to a play? A. Because dishonest people take the place of honest ones, and the worst among us occupy the space meant for the good.

Q. Why do dolphins, when they appear above the water, denote a storm or tempest approaching? A. Because at the beginning of a tempest there do arise from the bottom of the sea, certain hot exhalations and vapours which heat the dolphins, causing them to rise up for cold air.

Q. Why do dolphins, when they come up for air, signal that a storm or tempest is coming? A. Because at the start of a storm, certain warm gases and vapors rise from the bottom of the sea, warming the dolphins and making them come up for cooler air.

Q. Why did the Romans call Fabius Maximus the target of the people, and Marcellus the sword? A. Because the one adapted himself to the service of the commonwealth, and the other was very eager to revenge the injuries of his country; and yet they were in the senate joined together, because the gravity of the one would moderate the courage and boldness of the other.

Q. Why did the Romans call Fabius Maximus the target of the people, and Marcellus the sword? A. Because one adapted himself to the service of the common good, while the other was very eager to avenge the wrongs done to his country; yet they were united in the senate, as the seriousness of one would balance the courage and boldness of the other.

Q. Why doth the shining of the moon hurt the head? A. Because it moves the humours of the brain, and cannot afterwards dissolve them.

Q. Why does the light of the moon hurt the head? A. Because it stirs up the fluids in the brain and can't dissolve them afterwards.

Q. If water do not nourish, why do men drink it? A. Because water causeth the nutriment to spread through the body.

Q. If water doesn't nourish, why do people drink it? A. Because water helps the nutrients spread throughout the body.

Q. Why is sneezing good? A. Because it purgeth the brain as milk is purged by the cough.

Q. Why is sneezing good? A. Because it clears the brain just like coughing clears the milk.

Q. Why is hot water lighter than cold? A. Because boiling water has less ventosity and is more light and subtle, the earthly and heavy substance being separated from it.

Q. Why is hot water lighter than cold? A. Because boiling water has less density and is lighter and more refined, with the heavy and dense particles separated from it.

Q. How comes marsh and pond water to be bad? A. By reason they are phlegmatic, and do corrupt in summer; the fineness of water is turned into vapours, and the earthiness doth remain.

Q. Why is marsh and pond water bad? A. Because they are stagnant and become foul in the summer; the clarity of the water turns into vapors, and the sediment remains.

Q. Why are studious and learned men soonest bald? A. It proceeds from a weakness of the spirits, or because warmth of digestion cause phlegm to abound in them.

Q. Why do studious and knowledgeable men go bald the fastest? A. It comes from a weakness of the mind, or because the warmth of digestion leads to an excess of phlegm in them.

Q. Why doth much watching make the brain feeble? A. Because it increases choler, which dries and extenuates the body.

Q. Why does staying up too late make the brain weak? A. Because it raises the body's heat, which dries out and weakens the body.

Q. Why are boys apt to change their voices about fourteen years of age? A. Because that then nature doth cause a great and sudden change of voice; experience proves this to be true; for at that time we may see that women's paps do grow great, do hold and gather milk, and also those places that are above their hips, in which the young fruit would remain. Likewise men's breasts and shoulders, which then can bear great and heavy burdens; also their stones in which their seed may increase and abide, and in their privy members, to let out the seed with ease. Further all the body is made bigger and dilated, as the alteration and change of every part doth testify, and the harshness of the voice and hoarseness; for the rough artery, the wind pipe, being made wide in the beginning, and the exterior and outward part being unequal to the throat, the air going out the rough, unequal and uneven pipe doth then become unequal and sharp, and after, hoarse, something like unto the voice of a goat, wherefore it has its name called Bronchus. The same doth also happen to them unto whose rough artery distillation doth follow; it happens by reason of the drooping humidity that a slight small skin filled unequally causes the uneven going forth of the spirit and air. Understand, that the windpipe of goats is such by reason of the abundance of humidity. The like doth happen unto all such as nature hath given a rough artery, as unto cranes. After the age of fourteen they leave off that voice, because the artery is made wider and reacheth its natural evenness and quality.

Q. Why do boys tend to change their voices around the age of fourteen? A. Because at that age, nature causes a significant and sudden change in voice; experience shows this is true. During this time, we can see that women’s breasts grow larger, fill with milk, and also the areas above their hips, where young life would develop. Similarly, men's chests and shoulders adapt to bear heavier loads; their testicles develop to store and produce sperm, and their genitals are designed for releasing sperm easily. Additionally, the entire body grows larger and expands, as evidenced by the changes in every part, including the roughness and harshness of the voice. The trachea, initially wide, and the uneven external structure of the throat, cause the air to pass through a rough, uneven pipeline, resulting in a sharp and hoarse sound, similar to a goat's bleat, which is why it’s called Bronchus. The same change occurs in those whose trachea experiences a similar roughness; this happens due to moisture creating an uneven thin membrane that disrupts the airflow. Understand that the windpipe of goats is shaped this way because of excessive humidity. The same occurs in all beings with a rough trachea, such as cranes. After the age of fourteen, boys lose that voice as the trachea widens and reaches its natural smoothness and function.

Q. Why do hard dens, hollow and high places, send back the likeness and sound of the voice? A. Because that in such places also by reflection do return back the image of a sound, for the voice doth beat the air, and the air the place, which the more it is beaten the more it doth bear, and therefore doth cause the more vehement sound of the voice; moist places, and as it were, soft, yielding to the stroke, and dissolving it, give no sound again; for according to the quantity of the stroke, the quality and quantity of the voice is given, which is called an echo. Some do idly fable that she is a goddess; some say that Pan was in love with her, which without doubt is false. He was some wise man, who did first desire to search out the cause of the voice, and as they who love, and cannot enjoy that love, are grieved, so in like manner was he very sorry until he found out the solution of that cause; as Endymion also, who first found out the course of the moon, watching all night, and observing her course, and searching her motion, did sleep in the daytime, and that she came to him when he was asleep, because she did give the philosopher the solution of the course herself. They say also that he was a shepherd, because that in the desert and high places, he did mark the course of the moon. And they gave him also the pipe because that the high places are blown with wind, or else because he sought out the consonancy of figures. Prometheus also, being a wise man, sought the course of the star, which is called the eagle in the firmament, his nature and place; and when he was, as it were, wasted with the desire of learning, then at last he rested, when Hercules did resolve unto him all doubts with his wisdom.

Q. Why do hard surfaces, hollow areas, and high places reflect sound and the likeness of a voice? A. It's because these places reflect sound; when the voice hits the air, it intensity affects the space, and the more it’s impacted, the more sound it produces. Moist and soft places absorb the sound, so they don’t echo back. The strength of the sound influences the echo, which is what we call an echo. Some people mistakenly believe she's a goddess; others say that Pan was in love with her, which is definitely not true. He was actually a wise person who wanted to understand the cause of sound, and like those who love but cannot fulfill that desire, he felt regret until he figured it out. Similar to Endymion, who discovered the moon's path by staying awake at night to observe her movements, and who only met her in his dreams because she revealed her course to him. They also say he was a shepherd because, in the high and deserted areas, he tracked the moon’s journey. They gave him a pipe likely because the high places are windy, or maybe because he explored the harmony of sound. Prometheus, also knowledgeable, studied the path of the star known as the eagle in the sky, its nature and position; and when he was almost overwhelmed by his thirst for knowledge, he finally found rest when Hercules solved all his questions with his wisdom.

Q. Why do not swine cry when they are carried with their snouts upwards? A. Because that of all other beasts they bend more to the earth. They delight in filth, and that they seek, and therefore in the sudden change of their face, they be as it were strangers, and being amazed with so much light do keep that silence; some say the windpipe doth close together by reason of the straitness of it.

Q. Why don't pigs squeal when they are carried with their snouts up? A. Because, more than any other animals, they are closer to the ground. They love dirt and actively seek it, so when their faces suddenly change position, they seem confused and overwhelmed by the light, which is why they stay silent; some say the windpipe closes up due to the tightness of it.

Q. Why do swine delight in dirt? A. As physicians do say, they are naturally delighted with it, because they have a great liver, in which desire it, as Aristotle saith, the wideness of their snout is the case, for he that hath smelling which doth dissolve itself, and as it were strive with stench.

Q. Why do pigs like dirt? A. As doctors say, they naturally enjoy it because they have a large liver. Aristotle says that this is due to the width of their snouts, as those with a keen sense of smell tend to be affected by strong odors.

Q. Why do many beasts when they see their friends, and a lion and a bull beat their sides when they are angry? A. Because they have the marrow of their backs reaching to the tail, which hath the force of motion in it, the imagination acknowledging that which is known to them, as it were with the hand, as happens to men, doth force them to move their tails. This doth manifestly show some secret force to be within them, which doth acknowledge what they ought. In the anger of lions and bulls, nature doth consent to the mind, and causeth it to be greatly moved, as men do sometimes when they are angry, beating their hands on other parts; when the mind cannot be revenged on that which doth hurt, it presently seeks out some other source, and cures the malady with a stroke or blow.

Q. Why do many animals, when they see their friends, and a lion and a bull, pound their sides when they are angry? A. Because they have the marrow in their backs extending to the tail, which provides them with movement. Their imagination recognizes what they know, almost as if physically acknowledging it, which causes them to move their tails. This clearly indicates some hidden force within them that understands what they should do. In the anger of lions and bulls, nature aligns with the mind, causing it to be highly stirred, just like people sometimes do when they're angry, hitting their hands against other parts of their bodies. When the mind can't retaliate against what hurts it, it immediately seeks an alternative outlet and eases the frustration with a strike or blow.

Q. How come steel glasses to be better for the sight than any other kind? A. Because steel is hard, and doth present unto us more substantially the air that receiveth the light.

Q. Why are steel glasses better for sight than any other kind? A. Because steel is tough, and it gives us a clearer representation of the air that lets in the light.

Q. How doth love show its greater force by making the fool to become wise, or the wise to become a fool? A. In attributing wisdom to him that has it not; for it is harder to build than to pull down; and ordinarily love and folly are but an alteration of the mind.

Q. How does love demonstrate its greater power by turning a fool into a wise person or a wise person into a fool? A. By giving wisdom to those who lack it; it's more challenging to create than to destroy, and usually, love and foolishness are just changes in perception.

Q. How comes much labour and fatigue to be bad for the sight? A. Because it dries the blood too much.

Q. Why does excessive work and fatigue harm the eyesight? A. Because it dries out the blood too much.

Q. Why is goat's milk reckoned best for the stomach? A. Because it is thick, not slimy, and they feed on wood and boughs rather than on grass.

Q. Why is goat's milk considered the best for the stomach? A. Because it is thick, not slimy, and goats eat wood and branches instead of grass.

Q. Why do grief and vexation bring grey hairs? A. Because they dry, which bringeth on greyness.

Q. Why do grief and annoyance cause grey hairs? A. Because they dry you out, which leads to greyness.

Q. How come those to have most mercy who have the thickest blood? A. Because the blood which is fat and thick makes the spirits firm and constant, wherein consists the force of all creatures.

Q. Why do those with the thickest blood show the most mercy? A. Because thick and fatty blood makes the spirits strong and steady, and that’s what gives strength to all living beings.

Q. Whether it is hardest, to obtain a person's love, or to keep it when obtained? A. It is hardest to keep it, by reason of the inconstancy of man, who is quickly angry, and soon weary of a thing; hard to be gained and slippery to keep.

Q. Is it harder to win someone's love or to maintain it once you've got it? A. It's harder to maintain it because of people's inconsistency; they can get angry quickly and lose interest just as fast. It's tough to win and even harder to hold onto.

Q. Why do serpents shun the herb rue? A. Because they are cold, dry and full of sinews, and that herb is of a contrary nature.

Q. Why do snakes avoid the herb rue? A. Because they are cold, dry, and full of sinews, while that herb has the opposite qualities.

Q. Why is a capon better to eat than a cock? A. Because a capon loses not his moisture by treading of the hens.

Q. Why is a capon better to eat than a rooster? A. Because a capon doesn't lose its moisture from mating with hens.

Q. Why is our smell less in winter than in summer? A. Because the air is thick, and less moveable.

Q. Why do we smell less in winter than in summer? A. Because the air is denser and less mobile.

Q. Why does hair burn so quickly? A. Because it is dry and cold.

Q. Why does hair catch fire so fast? A. Because it's dry and cold.

Q. Why is love compared to a labyrinth? A. Because the entry and coming in is easy, and the going out almost impossible or hard.

Q. Why is love compared to a maze? A. Because getting in is easy, but getting out is almost impossible or very difficult.


PART IV
DISPLAYING THE SECRETS OF
NATURE
RELATING TO
PHYSIOGNOMY


CHAPTER I


SECTION 1.—Of Physiognomy, showing what it is, and whence it is derived.

Physiognomy is an ingenious science, or knowledge of nature, by which the inclinations and dispositions of every creature are understood, and because some of the members are uncompounded, and entire of themselves, as the tongue, the heart, etc., and some are of a mixed nature, as the eyes, the nose and others, we therefore say that there are signs which agree and live together, which inform a wise man how to make his judgment before he be too rash to deliver it to the world.

Physiognomy is a clever science, or understanding of nature, that helps us comprehend the tendencies and characteristics of every being. Some body parts are simple and complete on their own, like the tongue and the heart, while others are a mix, like the eyes and the nose. Because of this, we can say that there are signs that align and coexist, which guide a wise person in making a judgment before impulsively sharing it with the world.

Nor is it to be esteemed a foolish or idle art, seeing it is derived from the superior bodies; for there is no part of the face of man but what is under the peculiar influence or government, not only of the seven planets but also of the twelve signs of Zodiac; and the dispositions, vices, virtues and fatality, either of a man or woman are plainly foretold, if the person pretending to the knowledge thereof be an artist, which, that my readers may hereby attain it I shall set these things in a clearer light.

Nor should this be considered a silly or useless skill, since it comes from the higher powers; every part of a person's face is influenced by not only the seven planets but also the twelve signs of the Zodiac. The traits, flaws, strengths, and fate of both men and women can be clearly predicted if the person claiming to have this knowledge is skilled in it. To help my readers understand it better, I will clarify these points.

The reader should remember that the forehead is governed by Mars; the right eye is under the domination of Sol; the left is ruled by the Moon; the right ear is under Jupiter; the left, Saturn, the rule of the nose is claimed by Venus, which, by the way, is one reason that in all unlawful venereal encounters, the nose is too subject to bear the scars that are gotten in those wars; and nimble Mercury, the significator of eloquence claims the dominion of the mouth, and that very justly.

The reader should keep in mind that the forehead is influenced by Mars; the right eye is ruled by the Sun; the left eye is ruled by the Moon; the right ear is governed by Jupiter; the left ear, by Saturn. Venus claims control over the nose, which is one reason why, in all unlawful sexual encounters, the nose often bears the scars from those battles. Additionally, quick-witted Mercury, representing eloquence, has rightful dominion over the mouth.

Thus have the seven planets divided the face among them, but not with so absolute a way but that the twelve signs of the Zodiac do also come in with a part (see the engraving) and therefore the sign Cancer presides in the upper part of the forehead, and Leo attends upon the right eyebrow, as Saggittarius does upon the right eye, and Libra upon the right ear, upon the left eyebrow you will find Aquarius; and Gemini and Aries taking care of the left ear; Taurus rules in the middle of the forehead, and Capricorn the chin; Scorpio takes upon him the protection of the nose; Virgo claims the precedence of the right cheek, Pisces the left. And thus the face of man is cantoned out amongst the signs and planets; which being carefully attended to, will sufficiently inform the artist how to pass a judgment. For according to the sign or planet ruling so also is the judgment to be of the part ruled, which all those that have understanding know easily how to apply.

Thus, the seven planets have divided the face among themselves, but not in such an absolute way that the twelve signs of the Zodiac don’t also play a part (see the engraving). For instance, the sign Cancer governs the upper part of the forehead, Leo is associated with the right eyebrow, Sagittarius with the right eye, and Libra with the right ear. On the left side, Aquarius occupies the left eyebrow, while Gemini and Aries take care of the left ear. Taurus rules the center of the forehead, Capricorn looks after the chin, Scorpio protects the nose, Virgo is in charge of the right cheek, and Pisces rules the left cheek. This outlines how the face of a person is divided among the signs and planets; paying close attention to this will guide the artist in making a judgment. According to the sign or planet that rules, the judgment about that corresponding part should be made, which anyone knowledgeable can easily understand how to apply.

In the judgment that is to be made from physiognomy, there is a great difference betwixt a man and a woman; the reason is, because in respect of the whole composition men more fully comprehend it than women do, as may evidently appear by the manner and method we shall give. Wherefore the judgments which we shall pass in every chapter do properly concern a man, as comprehending the whole species, and but improperly the woman, as being but a part thereof, and derived from the man, and therefore, whoever is called to give judgment on such a face, ought to be wary about all the lines and marks that belong to it, respect being also had to the sex, for when we behold a man whose face is like unto a woman's and we pass a judgment upon it, having diligently observed it, and not on the face only, but on other parts of the body, as hands, etc., in like manner we also behold the face of a woman, who in respect to her flesh and blood is like unto a man, and in the disposure also of the greatest part of the body. But does physiognomy give the same judgment on her, as it does of a man that is like unto her? By no means, but far otherwise, in regard that the conception of the woman is much different from that of a man, even in those respects which are said to be common. Now in those common respects two parts are attributed to a man, and a third part to a woman.

In judging based on physical appearance, there's a significant difference between men and women. This is because men typically grasp the overall makeup better than women, as we will clearly show in our method. Thus, the assessments we will make in each chapter primarily relate to men, encompassing the entire species, and only secondarily to women, who are merely a part of it and derived from men. Therefore, anyone tasked with assessing a particular face should be careful to consider all its features and characteristics, taking gender into account. When we look at a man whose face resembles a woman's and we evaluate it, we do so by closely examining not just the face but other parts of the body as well, like the hands. Similarly, we also consider a woman's face, which in terms of body structure and flesh is like a man's. But does physical appearance convey the same judgment about her as it does about a man who resembles her? Not at all; in fact, it's quite the opposite because the way women are conceived is very different from how men are, even in aspects that are said to be shared. In those shared aspects, two characteristics are attributed to men and a third one to women.

Wherefore it being our intention to give you an exact account, according to the rule of physiognomy of all and every part of the members of the body, we will begin with the head, as it hath relation only to man and woman, and not to any other creature, that the work may be more obvious to every reader.

Wherever it is our goal to provide you with a detailed account, based on the principles of physiognomy, of all parts of the body, we will start with the head, as it relates only to humans and not to any other creatures, making the work clearer for every reader.


CHAPTER II

Of the Judgment of Physiognomy.

On the Judgment of Physiognomy.


Hair that hangs down without curling, if it be of a fair complexion, thin and soft withal, signifies a man to be naturally faint-hearted, and of a weak body, but of a quiet and harmless disposition. Hair that is big, and thick and short withal, denotes a man to be of a strong constitution, secure, bold, deceitful and for the most part, unquiet and vain, lusting after beauty, and more foolish than wise, though fortune may favour him. He whose hair is partly curled and partly hanging down, is commonly wise or a very great fool, or else as very a knave as he is a fool. He whose hair grows thick on his temples and his brow, one may certainly at first sight conclude that such a man is by nature simple, vain, luxurious, lustful, credulous, clownish in his speech and conversation and dull in his apprehension. He whose hair not only curls very much, but bushes out, and stands on end, if the hair be white or of a yellowish colour, he is by nature proud and bold, dull of apprehension, soon angry, and a lover of venery, and given to lying, malicious and ready to do any mischief. He whose hair arises in the corners of the temples, and is gross and rough withal, is a man highly conceited of himself, inclined to malice, but cunningly conceals it, is very courtly and a lover of new fashions. He who hath much hair, that is to say, whose hair is thick all over his head, is naturally vain and very luxurious, of a good digestion, easy of belief, and slow of performance, of a weak memory and for the most part unfortunate. He whose hair is of a reddish complexion, is for the most part, if not always, proud, deceitful, detracting and full of envy. He whose hair is extraordinarily fair, is for the most part a man fit for the most praiseworthy enterprises, a lover of honour, and much more inclined to do good than evil; laborious and careful to perform whatsoever is committed to his care, secret in carrying on any business, and fortunate. Hair of a yellowish colour shows a man to be good conditioned, and willing to do anything, fearful, shamefaced and weak of body, but strong in the abilities of the mind, and more apt to remember, than to avenge an injury. He whose hair is of a brownish colour, and curled not too much nor too little, is a well-disposed man, inclined to that which is good, a lover of peace, cleanliness and good manners. He whose hair turns grey or hoary in the time of his youth, is generally given to women, vain, false, unstable, and talkative. [Note. That whatever signification the hair has in men, it has the same in women also.]

Hair that falls straight without curling, especially if it's light-colored, thin, and soft, indicates a man who is naturally timid, physically weak, but has a calm and harmless nature. Hair that is big, thick, and short suggests a man with a strong build, confident, bold, deceitful, and often restless and vain, desiring beauty and generally more foolish than wise, even if he experiences good fortune. A man with hair that is partly curly and partly straight is often either very wise or a complete fool, or he’s a clever trickster and a fool at the same time. If a man’s hair is thick at the temples and forehead, it can be guessed at first glance that he is naturally simple, vain, indulgent, lustful, gullible, clumsy in speech and conversation, and slow to understand. A man whose hair curls a lot and stands up, especially if it’s white or yellowish, is typically proud, bold, dull-witted, quick to anger, passionate, deceitful, malicious, and ready to cause trouble. If a man's hair is bushy and rough around the temples, he is often very self-important, inclined to malice but cleverly hides it, courteous, and a fan of new trends. A man with a thick head of hair is generally vain and indulgent, has a good digestion, is easy to convince, slow to act, has a poor memory, and is usually unlucky. A man with red hair is often, if not always, proud, deceitful, envious, and gossipy. A man with exceptionally fair hair tends to be suited for particularly admirable pursuits, values honor, and is much more likely to do good than harm; he works hard and is careful in fulfilling responsibilities, discreet in his dealings, and fortunate. Hair that is yellowish suggests a man who is in good health, eager to take on tasks, timid, shy, and physically weak, but mentally sharp, more inclined to remember than to retaliate. A man with brown hair that is neither too curly nor too straight is generally well-disposed, inclined towards good, a lover of peace, cleanliness, and good manners. A man whose hair turns grey or white in his youth is usually drawn to women, vain, untrustworthy, fickle, and talkative. [Note: Any interpretation of hair in men applies equally to women.]

The forehead that riseth in a round, signifies a man liberally merry, of a good understanding, and generally inclined to virtue. He whose forehead is fleshy, and the bone of the brow jutting out, and without wrinkles, is a man much inclined to suits of law, contentious, vain, deceitful, and addicted to follow ill courses. He whose forehead is very low and little, is of a good understanding, magnanimous, but extremely bold and confident, and a great pretender to love and honour. He whose forehead seems sharp, and pointed up in the corners of his temples, so that the bone seems to jut forth a little, is a man naturally weak and fickle, and weak in the intellectuals. He whose brow upon the temples is full of flesh, is a man of a great spirit, proud, watchful and of a gross understanding. He whose brow is full of wrinkles, and has as it were a seam coming down the middle of the forehead, so that a man may think he has two foreheads, is one that is of a great spirit, a great wit, void of deceit, and yet of a hard fortune. He who has a full, large forehead, and a little round withal, destitute of hair, or at least that has little on it is bold, malicious, full of choler and apt to transgress beyond all bounds, and yet of a good wit and very apprehensive. He whose forehead is long and high and jutting forth, and whose face is figured, almost sharp and peaked towards the chin, is one reasonably honest, but weak and simple, and of a hard fortune.

The forehead that rises in a round shape indicates a man who is cheerful, understanding, and generally inclined toward virtue. A man with a fleshy forehead and prominent brow bones, and no wrinkles, tends to be litigious, contentious, vain, deceitful, and likely to pursue bad paths. A man with a very low and small forehead is understanding, noble, but extremely bold and confident, and tends to pretend to love and honor. A man whose forehead appears sharp and pointed at the corners of his temples, making his bones seem to stick out a bit, is naturally weak, fickle, and lacks intellectual depth. A man with fleshy temples has a strong spirit, is proud, watchful, and has a superficial understanding. A man whose brow is full of wrinkles, with a seam down the middle of his forehead—making it seem like he has two foreheads—has a strong spirit, great wit, is straightforward, and often faces tough luck. A man with a full, large forehead that is somewhat round, lacking hair or having little, is bold, malicious, quick-tempered, prone to excess, yet clever and very perceptive. A man with a long, high, and jutting forehead, whose face is somewhat sharp and pointed towards the chin, is fairly honest but weak, simple, and likely to have a difficult life.

Those eyebrows that are much arched, whether in man or woman, and which by frequent motion elevate themselves, show the person to be proud, high-spirited, vain-glorious, bold and threatening, a lover of beauty, and indifferently inclined to either good or evil. He whose eyelids bend down when he speaks to another or when he looks upon him, and who has a kind of skulking look, is by nature a penurious wretch, close in all his actions, of a very few words, but full of malice in his heart. He whose eyebrows are thick, and have but little hair upon them, is but weak in his intellectuals, and too credulous, very sincere, sociable, and desirous of good company. He whose eyebrows are folded, and the hair thick and bending downwards, is one that is clownish and unlearned, heavy, suspicious, miserable, envious, and one that will cheat and cozen you if he can. He whose eyebrows have but short hair and of a whitish colour is fearful and very easy of belief, and apt to undertake anything. Those, on the other side, whose eyebrows are black, and the hair of them thin, will do nothing without great consideration, and are bold and confident of the performance of what they undertake; neither are they apt to believe anything without reason for so doing.

Those arched eyebrows, whether on a man or woman, which often raise with movement, indicate a proud, spirited, vain, bold, and threatening personality, someone who loves beauty and is indifferent to good or evil. A person whose eyelids droop when speaking to or looking at others, and who has a sneaky demeanor, is naturally miserly, secretive, and few in words, but filled with malice in their heart. Someone with thick eyebrows and little hair suggests a lack of intelligence, being overly trusting, very sincere, sociable, and eager for good company. If eyebrows are furrowed, thick, and droop downwards, that person tends to be uncultured, heavy, suspicious, miserable, envious, and likely to cheat you if possible. Those with short, pale eyebrows are typically fearful, easily deceived, and prone to take on challenges. Conversely, those with black, thin eyebrows tend to think carefully before acting, showing boldness and confidence in their endeavors, and they aren't easily swayed without good reason.

If the space between the eyebrows be of more than the ordinary distance, it shows the person to be hard-hearted, envious, close, cunning, apprehensive, greedy of novelties, of a vain fortune, addicted to cruelty more than love. But those men whose eyebrows are at a lesser distance from each other, are for the most part of a dull understanding; yet subtle enough in their dealings, and of an uncommon boldness, which is often attended with great felicity; but that which is most commendable in them is, that they are most sure and constant in their friendship.

If the space between the eyebrows is wider than usual, it indicates that the person is hard-hearted, envious, secretive, clever, suspicious, and overly fond of new things, with a penchant for cruelty rather than love. On the other hand, those with eyebrows that are closer together tend to have a dull understanding, but they're clever enough in their dealings and possess an uncommon boldness, which often leads to success. However, the most commendable quality in them is their reliability and steadfastness in friendship.

Great and full eyes in either man or woman, show the person to be for the most part slothful, bold, envious, a bad concealer of secrets, miserable, vain, given to lying, and yet a bad memory, slow in invention, weak in his intellectuals, and yet very much conceited of that little knack of wisdom he thinks himself master of. He whose eyes are hollow in his head, and therefore discerns well at a great distance, is one that is suspicious, malicious, furious, perverse in his conversation, of an extraordinary memory, bold, cruel, and false, both in words and deeds, threatening, vicious, luxurious, proud, envious and treacherous; but he whose eyes are, as it were, starting out of his head, is a simple, foolish person, shameless, very fertile and easy to be persuaded either to vice or virtue. He who looks studiously and acutely, with his eyes and eyelids downwards, denotes thereby to be of a malicious nature, very treacherous, false, unfaithful, envious, miserable, impious towards God, and dishonest towards men. He whose eyes are small and conveniently round, is bashful and weak, very credulous, liberal to others, and even in his conversation. He whose eyes look asquint, is thereby denoted to be a deceitful person, unjust, envious, furious, a great liar, and as the effect of all that is miserable. He who hath a wandering eye and which is rolling up and down, is for the most part a vain, simple, deceitful, lustful, treacherous, or high-minded man, an admirer of the fair sex, and one easy to be persuaded to virtue or vice. He or she whose eyes are twinkling, and which move forward or backward, show the person to be luxurious, unfaithful and treacherous, presumptuous, and hard to believe anything that is spoken. If a person has any greenness mingled with the white of his eye, such is commonly silly, and often very false, vain and deceitful, unkind to his friends, a great concealer of his own secrets, and very choleric. Those whose eyes are every way rolling up and down, or they who seldom move their eyes, and when they do, as it were, draw their eyes inwardly and accurately fasten them upon some object, such are by their inclinations very malicious, vain-glorious, slothful, unfaithful, envious, false and contentious. They whose eyes are addicted to blood-shot, are naturally proud, disdainful, cruel, without shame, perfidious and much inclined to superstition. But he whose eyes are neither too little nor too big, and inclined to black, do signify a man mild, peaceable, honest, witty, and of a good understanding; and one that, when need requires, will be serviceable to his friends.

Great, wide eyes in either men or women often indicate that the person is mostly lazy, bold, envious, a poor keeper of secrets, miserable, vain, prone to lying, and has a bad memory. They are slow in coming up with ideas, lack intellectual strength, yet are very conceited about the little bit of wisdom they think they possess. A person with hollow eyes sees well from a distance; they tend to be suspicious, malicious, angry, difficult to converse with, have an incredible memory, and are bold, cruel, and dishonest in both words and actions. They can be threatening, vicious, indulgent, prideful, envious, and treacherous. Someone whose eyes seem to pop out of their head is often naive and foolish, shameless, easily swayed toward either vice or virtue. A person who looks carefully and intently with their eyes and eyelids lowered tends to be malicious, treacherous, unfaithful, envious, miserable, impious toward God, and dishonest toward others. If someone has small, round eyes, they're likely shy, weak, gullible, generous to others, and open in conversation. Someone with squinty eyes is seen as deceitful, unjust, envious, angry, a great liar, and ultimately miserable. A person with a wandering eye that rolls around typically appears vain, simple, deceitful, lustful, treacherous, or overly proud, often admiring the opposite sex and easily influenced toward virtue or vice. Those whose eyes are sparkling and shifting show that the person tends to be indulgent, unfaithful, treacherous, presumptuous, and hard to believe in what they say. If someone has a hint of green in the whites of their eyes, they are commonly silly, often deceitful, vain, unkind to friends, great at hiding their own secrets, and quick-tempered. People whose eyes roll around a lot or rarely move, and when they do seem to draw inward and focus intently, tend to be malicious, vain, lazy, unfaithful, envious, false, and argumentative. Those with bloodshot eyes are often proud, disdainful, cruel, shameless, deceitful, and inclined toward superstition. However, someone whose eyes are neither too small nor too big and lean toward black tends to be mild, peaceable, honest, witty, and intelligent, and will be helpful to friends when needed.

A long and thin nose, denotes a man bold, furious, angry, vain, easy to be persuaded either to good or evil, weak and credulous. A long nose extended, the tip of it bending downwards, shows the person to be wise, discreet, secret and officious, honest, faithful and one that will not be over-reached in bargaining.

A long, narrow nose indicates a man who is bold, fiery, angry, vain, easily swayed towards either good or evil, weak, and gullible. A long nose that extends with a downward curve at the tip suggests that the person is wise, discreet, secretive, helpful, honest, loyal, and someone who won't be taken advantage of in negotiations.

A bottle-nose is what denotes a man to be impetuous in the obtaining of his desires, also a vain, false, luxurious, weak and uncertain man; apt to believe and easy to be persuaded. A broad nose in the middle, and less towards the end, denotes a vain, talkative person, a liar, and one of hard fortune. He who hath a long and great nose is an admirer of the fair sex, and well accomplished for the wars of Venus, but ignorant of the knowledge of anything that is good, extremely addicted to vice; assiduous in the obtaining what he desires, and very secret in the prosecution of it; and though very ignorant, would fain be thought very knowing.

A bottle-nose marks a person as impulsive in pursuing their desires, as well as vain, deceitful, extravagant, weak, and uncertain; someone who is quick to believe and easily swayed. A broad nose in the middle that narrows towards the end suggests a vain, chatty person, a liar, and someone who faces tough times. A long and prominent nose indicates someone who admires women, is well-suited for romantic pursuits, but lacks understanding of true goodness; they are deeply indulged in vices, dedicated to getting what they want, and very discreet about their efforts; despite their ignorance, they like to appear knowledgeable.

A nose very sharp on the tip of it, and neither too long nor too short, too thick nor too thin, denotes the person, if a man, to be of a fretful disposition, always pining and peevish; and if a woman, a scold, or contentious, wedded to her own humours, of a morose and dogged carriage, and if married, a plague to her husband. A nose very round at the end of it, and having but little nostrils, shows the person to be munificent and liberal, true to his trust, but withal, very proud, credulous and vain. A nose very long and thin at the end of it, and something round, withal, signifies one bold in his discourse, honest in his dealings, patient in receiving, and slow in offering injuries, but yet privately malicious. He whose nose is naturally more red than any other part of his face, is thereby denoted to be covetous, impious, luxurious, and an enemy to goodness. A nose that turns up again, and is long and full at the tip of it, shows the person that has it to be bold, proud, covetous, envious, luxurious, a liar and deceiver, vain, glorious, unfortunate and contentious. He whose nose riseth high in the middle, is prudent and polite, and of great courage, honourable in his actions, and true to his word. A nose big at the end shows a person to be of a peaceable disposition, industrious and faithful, and of a good understanding. A very wide nose, with wide nostrils, denotes a man dull of apprehension, and inclined more to simplicity than wisdom, and withal vain, contentious and a liar.

A nose that’s sharply pointed at the tip, not too long or short, and neither too thick nor thin, indicates that if a man has it, he’s likely to be irritable, always longing for something and grumpy; if it’s a woman, she tends to be argumentative, stubbornly attached to her own moods, gloomy, and if married, a burden to her husband. A nose that’s very round at the tip and has small nostrils suggests the person is generous and trustworthy, but also quite proud, gullible, and vain. A nose that’s long and thin at the tip, yet slightly rounded, indicates someone who is bold in conversation, honest in business, patient in receiving insults, and slow to give them, though still secretly spiteful. If someone’s nose is naturally redder than the rest of their face, it signals they are greedy, immoral, indulgent, and opposed to goodness. A nose that turns up and is long and full at the tip shows that person to be bold, proud, greedy, envious, indulgent, a liar and deceiver, vain, boastful, unfortunate, and contentious. A nose that rises high in the middle indicates a person who is sensible, polite, courageous, honorable in their actions, and reliable. A nose that’s wide at the tip suggests someone who is peaceable, hardworking, loyal, and intelligent. A very wide nose with broad nostrils signifies a person who is dull-witted, leaning more towards simplicity than wisdom, and at the same time vain, argumentative, and dishonest.

When the nostrils are close and thin, they denote a man to have but little testicles, and to be very desirous of the enjoyment of women, but modest in his conversation. But he whose nostrils are great and wide, is usually well hung and lustful; but withal of an envious, bold and treacherous disposition and though dull of understanding, yet confident enough.

When a person's nostrils are small and narrow, it suggests that he has small testicles and a strong desire for sexual experiences with women, yet he's humble in how he talks. On the other hand, someone with large and broad nostrils is typically well-endowed and lustful but also has an envious, arrogant, and deceitful nature. Even if he lacks intelligence, he is still quite confident.

A great and wide mouth shows a man to be bold, warlike, shameless and stout, a great liar and as great a talker, also a great eater, but as to his intellectuals, he is very dull, being for the most part very simple.

A big, wide mouth makes a person seem bold, aggressive, shameless, and tough; a big liar and an even bigger talker, as well as a big eater. But when it comes to his intelligence, he's pretty dull, mostly just simple.

A little mouth shows the person to be of a quiet and pacific temper, somewhat reticent, but faithful, secret, modest, bountiful, and but a little eater.

A small mouth indicates that a person has a calm and peaceful nature, is somewhat reserved, but also loyal, discreet, humble, generous, and eats only a little.

He whose mouth smells of a bad breath, is one of a corrupted liver and lungs, is oftentimes vain, wanton, deceitful, of indifferent intellect, envious, covetous, and a promise-breaker. He that has a sweet breath, is the contrary.

Someone with bad breath often has issues with their liver and lungs, and they tend to be vain, reckless, deceitful, not very bright, envious, greedy, and likely to break promises. On the other hand, a person with sweet breath is the opposite.

The lips, when they are very big and blubbering, show a person to be credulous, foolish, dull and stupid, and apt to be enticed to anything. Lips of a different size denote a person to be discreet, secret in all things, judicious and of a good wit, but somewhat hasty. To have lips, well coloured and more thin than thick, shows a person to be good-humoured in all things and more easily persuaded to good than evil. To have one lip bigger than the other, shows a variety of fortunes, and denotes the party to be of a dull, sluggish temper, but of a very indifferent understanding, as being much addicted to folly.

The lips, when they are very large and puffy, make a person seem gullible, foolish, dull, and slow-witted, likely to be tempted by anything. Lips of a different size suggest a person who is discreet, secretive about everything, sensible, and witty, but a bit impulsive. Having well-colored lips that are thinner than thick indicates a person who is good-natured overall and more easily influenced towards good than bad. If one lip is bigger than the other, it suggests a mix of fortunes and indicates that the person has a dull, slow temperament but is of mediocre understanding, often prone to foolishness.

When the teeth are small, and but weak in performing their office, and especially if they are short and few, though they show the person to be of a weak constitution, yet they denote him to be of a meek disposition, honest, faithful and secret in whatsoever he is intrusted with. To have some teeth longer and shorter than others, denotes a person to be of a good apprehension, but bold, disdainful, envious and proud. To have the teeth very long, and growing sharp towards the end, if they are long in chewing, and thin, denotes the person to be envious, gluttonous, bold, shameless, unfaithful and suspicious. When the teeth look very brown or yellowish, whether they be long or short, it shows the person to be of a suspicious temper, envious, deceitful and turbulent. To have teeth strong and close together, shows the person to be of a long life, a desirer of novelties, and things that are fair and beautiful, but of a high spirit, and one that will have his humour in all things; he loves to hear news, and to repeat it afterwards, and is apt to entertain anything on his behalf. To have teeth thin and weak, shows a weak, feeble man, and one of a short life, and of a weak apprehension; but chaste, shame-faced, tractable and honest.

When teeth are small and weak in their function, especially if they are short and sparse, it may indicate that the person has a weak constitution, but it also shows they have a gentle nature, are honest, loyal, and discreet with whatever they are entrusted. Having some teeth longer and shorter than others suggests the person is perceptive but also bold, contemptuous, envious, and proud. If the teeth are very long and sharp at the ends, and they are thin and used for chewing, it indicates the person is envious, greedy, bold, shameless, untrustworthy, and suspicious. When the teeth appear very brown or yellowish, whether long or short, it signifies a person with a suspicious temperament, envious, deceitful, and turbulent. To have strong, closely set teeth suggests a long life, a desire for new experiences and beautiful things, a strong spirit, and a need to have things their way; they enjoy hearing news and sharing it later, and they are open to anything that serves their interests. To have thin and weak teeth suggests a weak, frail person with a short life and limited understanding, yet they are chaste, modest, yielding, and honest.

A tongue to be too swift of speech shows a man to be downright foolish, or at best but a very vain wit. A stammering tongue, or one that stumbles in the mouth, signifies a man of a weak understanding, and of a wavering mind, quickly in a rage, and soon pacified. A very thick and rough tongue denotes a man to be apprehensive, subtle and full of compliments, yet vain and deceitful, treacherous, and prone to impiety. A thin tongue shows a man of wisdom and sound judgment, very ingenious and of an affable disposition, yet somewhat timorous and too credulous.

A tongue that speaks too quickly reveals a person to be foolish or, at best, just very self-absorbed. A stuttering tongue or one that trips over words indicates someone with a weak understanding, an indecisive mind, quick to anger but also quick to calm down. A very thick and rough tongue suggests a person who is observant, clever, and full of flattery, yet also vain, deceitful, treacherous, and inclined to immorality. A thin tongue indicates a wise person with good judgment, very creative and friendly, but also somewhat timid and overly gullible.

A great and full voice in either sex shows them to be of a great spirit, confident, proud and wilful. A faint and weak voice, attended with but little breath, shows a person to be of good understanding, a nimble fancy, a little eater, but weak of body, and of a timorous disposition. A loud and shrill voice, which sounds clearly denotes a person provident, sagacious, true and ingenious, but withal capricious, vain, glorious and too credulous. A strong voice when a man sings denotes him to be of a strong constitution, and of a good understanding, a nimble fancy, a little eater, but weak of body, and of a timorous disposition.

A strong, full voice in anyone shows that they have a strong spirit, confidence, pride, and determination. A faint, weak voice, along with shallow breaths, indicates a person who is perceptive, quick-witted, a light eater, but frail and easily startled. A loud, clear, and high-pitched voice suggests a person who is practical, insightful, genuine, and creative, but also unpredictable, vain, showy, and overly trusting. A robust voice when someone sings signals that they have a strong constitution, good insight, a quick mind, and are a light eater, but are still frail and timid.

A strong voice when a man sings, denotes him to be of a strong constitution, and of a good understanding, neither too penurious nor too prodigal, also ingenious and an admirer of the fair sex. A weak and trembling voice shows the owner of it to be envious, suspicious, slow in business, feeble and fearful. A loud, shrill and unpleasant voice, signifies one bold and valiant, but quarrelsome and injurious and altogether wedded to his own humours, and governed by his own counsels. A rough and hoarse voice, whether in speaking or singing, declares one to be a dull and heavy person, of much guts and little brains. A full and yet mild voice, and pleasing to the hearer, shows the person to be of a quiet and peaceable disposition (which is a great virtue and rare to be found in a woman), and also very thrifty and secret, not prone to anger, but of a yielding temper. A voice beginning low or in the bass, and ending high in the treble, denotes a person to be violent, angry, bold and secure.

A strong voice when a man sings indicates that he has a robust constitution and good sense, being neither too stingy nor too extravagant, and also creative and appreciative of women. A weak and shaky voice reveals the person to be envious, suspicious, slow in their work, and generally timid. A loud, shrill, and unpleasant voice signifies someone who is bold and daring, yet argumentative and harmful, completely absorbed in their own preferences and led by their own judgment. A rough and hoarse voice, whether in speaking or singing, shows someone to be dull and heavy, with a lot of guts but little intelligence. A full yet gentle voice that is pleasing to listen to indicates a person is calm and peaceful (which is a great virtue and rare in a woman), as well as very thrifty and discreet, not easily angered, but rather adaptable. A voice that starts low or in the bass and ends high in the treble suggests a person who is violent, angry, bold, and self-assured.

A thick and full chin abounding with too much flesh, shows a man inclined to peace, honest and true to his trust, but slow in invention, and easy to be drawn either to good or evil. A peaked chin and reasonably full of flesh, shows a person to be of a good understanding, a high spirit and laudable conversation. A double chin shows a peaceable disposition, but dull of apprehension, vain, credulous, a great supplanter, and secret in all his actions. A crooked chin, bending upwards, and peaked for want of flesh, is by the rules of physiognomy, according to nature, a very bad man, being proud, imprudent, envious, threatening, deceitful, prone to anger and treachery, and a great thief.

A thick and full chin with too much flesh indicates a man who is peaceful, honest, and trustworthy, but slow to come up with new ideas and easily swayed towards good or bad. A pointed chin that isn’t overly full suggests someone who is intelligent, ambitious, and good at conversation. A double chin indicates a peaceful nature, but also a lack of quick thinking, vanity, gullibility, a tendency to undermine others, and secretive behavior. A crooked chin that curves upwards and is pointed due to lack of flesh, according to the principles of physiognomy, suggests a very bad person who is proud, foolish, envious, threatening, deceitful, quick to anger and betrayal, and likely a thief.

The hair of young men usually begins to grow down upon their chins at fifteen years of age, and sometimes sooner. These hairs proceed from the superfluity of heat, the fumes whereof ascend to their chin, like smoke to the funnel of a chimney; and because it cannot find an open passage by which it may ascend higher, it vents itself forth in the hairs which are called the beard. There are very few, or almost no women at all, that have hairs on their cheeks; and the reason is, that those humours which cause hair to grow on the cheeks of a man are by a woman evacuated in the monthly courses, which they have more or less, according to the heat or coldness of their constitution, and the age and motion of the moon, of which we have spoken at large in the first part of this book. Yet sometimes women of a hot constitution have hair to be seen on their cheeks, but more commonly on their lips, or near their mouths, where the heat most aboundeth. And where this happens, such women are much addicted to the company of men, and of a strong and manly constitution. A woman who hath little hair on her cheeks, or about her mouth and lips, is of a good complexion, weak constitution, shamefaced, mild and obedient, whereas a woman of a more hot constitution is quite otherwise. But in a man, a beard well composed and thick of hair, signifies a man of good nature, honest, loving, sociable and full of humanity; on the contrary, he that hath but a little beard, is for the most part proud, pining, peevish and unsociable. They who have no beards, have always shrill and a strange kind of squeaking voices, and are of a weak constitution, which is apparent in the case of eunuchs, who, after they are deprived of their virility are transformed from the nature of men into the condition of women.

The hair of young men usually starts to grow on their chins around the age of fifteen, sometimes even earlier. These hairs come from excess heat, which rises to their chins like smoke up a chimney; since it can’t go any higher, it expresses itself in what we call a beard. Very few women have hair on their cheeks at all because the substances that cause beard growth in men are expelled from women during their monthly cycles, which varies with their own heat or coldness, their age, and the phases of the moon, as we discussed in detail in the first part of this book. However, sometimes women with a hotter constitution do have hair on their cheeks, but more often near their lips or mouths, where heat is more prevalent. When this occurs, such women tend to be very interested in the company of men and have a strong, masculine presence. A woman with little hair on her cheeks, around her mouth, and lips has a good complexion, a weak constitution, and tends to be shy, gentle, and obedient, while a woman with a hotter constitution is quite the opposite. In men, a well-groomed, thick beard usually indicates a good-natured, honest, loving, sociable, and humane person; conversely, a man with little facial hair is often proud, moody, irritable, and unsociable. Those without beards typically have high-pitched, squeaky voices, and are of a weaker constitution, which is evident in eunuchs who, after losing their virility, change from the nature of men to that of women.

Great and thick ears are a certain sign of a foolish person, or a bad memory and worse understanding. But small and thin ears show a person to be of a good wit, grave, sweet, thrifty, modest, resolute, of a good memory, and one willing to serve his friend. He whose ears are longer than ordinary, is thereby signified to be a bold man, uncivil, vain, foolish, serviceable to another more than to himself, and a man of small industry, but of a great stomach.

Big and thick ears are a clear sign of a foolish person, or someone who has a bad memory and poor understanding. On the other hand, small and thin ears indicate a person with good intelligence, seriousness, charm, thriftiness, modesty, determination, a good memory, and a willingness to help their friends. A person whose ears are longer than usual is seen as bold, rude, vain, foolish, more useful to others than to themselves, and someone who lacks drive but has big ambitions.

A face apt to sweat on every motion, shows a person to be of a very hot constitution, vain and luxurious, of a good stomach, but of a bad understanding, and a worse conversation. A very fleshy face shows the person to be of a fearful disposition, but a merry heart, and withal bountiful and discreet, easy to be entreated, and apt to believe everything. A lean face, by the rules of physiognomy, denotes the person to be of a good understanding, but somewhat capricious and disdainful in his conversation. A little and round face, shows a person to be simple, very fearful, of a bad memory, and a clownish disposition. A plump face, full of carbuncles, shows a man to be a great drinker of wine, vain, daring, and soon intoxicated. A face red or high coloured, shows a man much inclined to choler, and one that will be soon angry and not easily pacified. A long and lean face, shows a man to be both bold, injurious and deceitful. A face every way of a due proportion, denotes an ingenious person, one fit for anything and very much inclined to what is good. One of a broad, full, fat face is, by the rules of physiognomy, of a dull, lumpish, heavy constitution, and that for one virtue has three vices. A plain, flat face, without any rising shows a person to be very wise, loving and courtly in his carriage, faithful to his friend and patient in adversity. A face sinking down a little, with crosses in it, inclining to leanness, denotes a person to be very laborious, but envious, deceitful, false, quarrelsome, vain and silly, and of a dull and clownish behaviour. A face of a handsome proportion, and more inclining to fat than lean, shows a person just in his actions, true to his word, civil, and respectful in his behaviour, of an indifferent understanding, and of an extraordinary memory. A crooked face, long and lean, denotes a man endued with as bad qualities as the face is with ill features. A face broad about the brows, and sharper and less as it grows towards the chin, shows a man simple and foolish in managing his affairs, vain in his discourse, envious in his nature, deceitful, quarrelsome and rude in his conversation. A face well-coloured, full of good features, and of an exact symmetry, and a just proportion in all its parts, and which is delightful to look upon, is commonly the index of a fairer mind and shows a person to be well disposed; but withal declares that virtue is not so impregnably seated there, but that by strong temptations (especially by the fair sex) it may be supplanted and overcome by vice. A pale complexion, shows the person not only to be fickle, but very malicious, treacherous, false, proud, presumptuous, and extremely unfaithful. A face well-coloured, shows the person to be of a praiseworthy disposition and a sound complexion, easy of belief, and respectful to his friend, ready to do a courtesy, and very easy to be drawn to anything.

A face that tends to sweat with every movement indicates that a person has a very hot constitution, is vain and indulgent, has a good appetite, but lacks understanding and has poor conversational skills. A very fleshy face suggests that the person is timid but has a cheerful nature, is generous and wise, easy to persuade, and gullible. According to physiognomy, a lean face indicates a person with good judgment, but who can be somewhat unpredictable and disdainful in conversation. A small, round face implies that someone is simple-minded, very fearful, has a poor memory, and has a rustic demeanor. A plump face full of pimples suggests a man who drinks a lot of wine, is vain, bold, and easily gets drunk. A red or flushed face indicates a person prone to anger, who will become upset quickly and isn't easily calmed down. A long, thin face suggests a man who is bold, harmful, and deceitful. A face that is well-proportioned indicates an intelligent person, suited for various tasks and inclined towards good deeds. A broad, full, fat face, according to physiognomy, suggests a dull, sluggish nature, where one virtue comes with three vices. A flat, plain face without any prominent features indicates someone who is very wise, loving, polite, loyal to friends, and patient in tough times. A face that slightly sinks in, marked with lines, and leans toward thinness, suggests a person who is hardworking but envious, deceitful, false, confrontational, vain, and foolish, with a dull and rustic demeanor. A face that is attractively proportioned and leans more toward being fat than lean indicates a person who is just in their actions, truthful, polite, and respectful, with average understanding and an exceptional memory. A crooked, long, thin face indicates a man with as many bad qualities as there are flaws in his features. A face that is broad at the forehead and narrows toward the chin suggests someone who is simple and foolish in managing their affairs, vain in conversation, envious by nature, deceitful, quarrelsome, and rude. A well-colored face with good features, perfect symmetry, and balanced proportions that is pleasant to look at typically reflects a kind heart and shows the person is well-disposed; however, it also suggests that virtue isn't perfectly secure there and can be easily overcome by strong temptations, especially from the opposite sex. A pale complexion suggests a person is not only fickle but also very malicious, treacherous, false, proud, presumptuous, and extremely untrustworthy. A well-colored face indicates a person with commendable traits and a healthy complexion, easy to believe, respectful to friends, eager to help, and very willing to be drawn into anything.

A great head, and round, withal, denotes the person to be secret, and of great application in carrying on business, and also ingenious and of a large imaginative faculty and invention; and likewise laborious, constant and honest. The head whose gullet stands forth and inclines towards the earth, signifies a person thrifty, wise, peaceable, secret, of a retired temper, and constant in the management of his affairs. A long head and face, and great, withal, denotes a vain, foolish, idle and weak person, credulous and very envious. To have one's head always shaking and moving from side to side, denotes a shallow, weak person, unstable in all his actions, given to lying, a great deceiver, a great talker, and prodigal in all his fortunes. A big head and broad face, shows a man to be very courageous, a great hunter after women, very suspicious, bold and shameless. He who hath a very big head, but not so proportionate as it ought to be to the body, if he hath a short neck and crooked gullet is generally a man of apprehension, wise, secret, ingenious, of sound judgment, faithful, true and courteous to all. He who hath a little head, and long, slender throat, is for the most part a man very weak, yet apt to learn, but unfortunate in his actions. And so much shall suffice with respect to judgment from the head and face.

A large, round head suggests that a person is secretive, dedicated to their work, inventive, and imaginative; they are also hardworking, consistent, and honest. A head with a prominent throat that leans forward indicates a person who is thrifty, wise, peaceful, discreet, and steady in managing their affairs. A long, large head and face usually suggest someone who is vain, foolish, lazy, weak, gullible, and very envious. If someone constantly shakes their head or moves it from side to side, it indicates a shallow, weak person who is unstable in their actions, prone to lying, deceitful, a big talker, and wasteful with their resources. A big head and broad face suggest a person who is very brave, a great pursuer of women, suspicious, bold, and shameless. If someone has a very large head that is not proportionate to their body, along with a short neck and crooked throat, they are generally a person with insight, wise, discreet, clever, of sound judgment, trustworthy, and courteous to everyone. A small head with a long, slender neck typically signifies someone who is very weak, yet quick to learn but often unlucky in their endeavors. And that concludes our insights regarding judgment based on the head and face.


CHAPTER III

Of Judgments drawn from several other parts of Man's Body.

Of Judgments drawn from various parts of a person's Body.


In the body of man the head and feet are the principal parts, being the index which heaven has laid open to every one's view to make a judgment therefrom, therefore I have been the larger in my judgment from the several parts thereof. But as to the other parts, I shall be much more brief as not being so obvious to the eyes of men; yet I would proceed in order.

In the human body, the head and feet are the main parts, serving as the indicators that the universe has revealed for everyone to see and make judgments from. That's why I've spent more time discussing those areas in my analysis. However, for the other parts, I'll be much shorter since they're not as easily noticed. Still, I will continue in order.

The throat, if it be white, whether it be fat or lean, shows a man to be vain-glorious, timorous, wanton, and very much subject to choler. If the throat be so thin and lean that the veins appear, it shows a man to be weak, slow, and a dull and heavy constitution.

The throat, if it's pale, whether it's thick or thin, indicates that a person is vain, fearful, reckless, and very prone to anger. If the throat is so thin that the veins are visible, it suggests that the person is weak, sluggish, and has a dull and heavy constitution.

A long neck shows one to have a long and slender foot, and that the person is stiff and inflexible either to good or evil. A short neck shows one to be witty and ingenious, but deceitful and inconstant, well skilled in the use of arms, and yet cares not to use them, but is a great lover of peace and quietness.

A long neck indicates a long and slender foot, suggesting that the person is rigid and unyielding, whether in good or bad ways. A short neck suggests that someone is clever and resourceful but also dishonest and unpredictable, skilled with weapons yet prefers not to use them, prioritizing peace and tranquility instead.

A lean shoulder bone, signifies a man to be weak, timorous, peaceful, not laborious, and yet fit for any employment. He whose shoulder bones are of a great bigness is commonly, by the rule of physiognomy, a strong man, faithful but unfortunate; somewhat dull of understanding, very laborious, a great eater and drinker, and one equally contented in all conditions. He whose shoulder bone seems to be smooth, is by the rule of nature, modest in his look, and temperate in all his actions, both at bed and board. He whose shoulder bone bends, and is crooked inwardly, is commonly a dull person and deceitful.

A lean shoulder bone indicates a man who is weak, timid, peaceful, not very hardworking, but still suitable for any job. A person with large shoulder bones is usually, according to the principles of physiognomy, a strong man who is faithful but unlucky; somewhat slow-witted, very industrious, a big eater and drinker, and one who is content in all circumstances. A person with a smooth shoulder bone tends to be modest in appearance and moderate in all his actions, both in bed and at the table. A person whose shoulder bone is bent and crooked inwardly is often dull and deceitful.

Long arms, hanging down and touching the knees, though such arms are rarely seen, denotes a man liberal, but withal vain-glorious, proud and inconstant. He whose arms are very short in respect to the stature of his body, is thereby signified to be a man of high and gallant spirit, of a graceful temper, bold and warlike. He whose arms are full of bones, sinews and flesh, is a great desirer of novelties and beauties, and one that is very credulous and apt to believe anything. He whose arms are very hairy, whether they be lean or fat, is for the most part a luxurious person, weak in body and mind, very suspicious and malicious withal. He whose arms have no hair on them at all, is of a weak judgment, very angry, vain, wanton, credulous, easily deceived himself, yet a great deceiver of others, no fighter, and very apt to betray his dearest friends.

Long arms that hang down and touch the knees, though rarely seen, indicate a man who is generous yet vain, proud, and unreliable. A man with very short arms in relation to his body is seen as having a noble and spirited character, graceful, bold, and ready for battle. If a man’s arms are muscular and well-defined, he is typically eager for new experiences and pleasures, easily convinced, and quick to believe anything. A man with very hairy arms, whether lean or plump, tends to be indulgent, weak both physically and mentally, and often suspicious and malevolent. If a man has completely hairless arms, he is likely to have poor judgment, be easily angered, arrogant, reckless, gullible, easily fooled, yet also adept at deceiving others. He is not a fighter and is very prone to betraying his closest friends.


CHAPTER IV

Of Palmistry, showing the various Judgments drawn from the Hand.

About Palmistry, showing the different judgments made from the hand.


Being engaged in this fourth part to show what judgment may be drawn, according to physiognomy, from the several parts of the body, and coming in order to speak of the hands, it has put me under the necessity of saying something about palmistry, which is a judgment made of the conditions, inclinations, and fortunes of men and women, from the various lines and characters nature has imprinted in their hands, which are almost as serious as the hands that have them.

Being engaged in this fourth part to show what conclusions can be drawn from physiognomy regarding different parts of the body, and now proceeding to discuss the hands, I feel compelled to mention palmistry. This is a practice that interprets the conditions, inclinations, and fortunes of people based on the various lines and markings that nature has etched into their hands, which are nearly as significant as the hands themselves.

The reader should remember that one of the lines of the hand, and which indeed is reckoned the principal, is called the line of life; this line encloses the thumb, separating it from the hollow of the hand. The next to it, which is called the natural line, takes its beginning from the rising of the forefinger, near the line of life, and reaches to the table line, and generally makes a triangle. The table line, commonly called the line of fortune, begins under the little finger, and ends near the middle finger. The girdle of Venus, which is another line so called begins near the first joint of the little finger, and ends between the fore-finger and the middle finger. The line of death is that which plainly appears in a counter line to that of life, and is called the sister line, ending usually as the other ends; for when the line of life is ended, death comes, and it can go no farther. There are lines in the fleshy parts, as in the ball of the thumb, which is called the mount of Venus; under each of the fingers are also mounts, which are governed by several planets; and the hollow of the hand is called the plain of Mars.

The reader should remember that one of the lines on the hand, which is considered the most important, is called the line of life. This line surrounds the thumb and separates it from the palm. Next to it is the natural line, which starts from the base of the forefinger, close to the line of life, and extends to the table line, generally forming a triangle. The table line, often called the line of fortune, begins under the little finger and ends near the middle finger. The girdle of Venus, another line, starts near the first joint of the little finger and ends between the forefinger and the middle finger. The line of death is clearly visible as a counter line to the line of life and is referred to as the sister line, ending in the same way as the line of life does; when the line of life ends, death follows, and it can progress no further. There are lines in the fleshy areas, like the ball of the thumb, known as the mount of Venus; beneath each finger are also mounts that correspond to various planets, and the palm is referred to as the plain of Mars.

I proceed to give judgment from these several lines:—In palmistry, the left hand is chiefly to be regarded, because therein the lines are most visible, and have the strictest communication with the heart and brain. In the next place, observe the line of life, and if it be fair, extended to its full length, and not broken with an intermixture of cross lines, it shows long life and health, and it is the same if a double line appears, as there sometimes does. When the stars appear in this line, it is a signification of great losses and calamities; if on it there be the figures of two O's or a Q, it threatens the person with blindness; if it wraps itself about the table line, then does it promise wealth and honour to be attended by prudence and industry. If the line be cut and jagged at the upper end, it denotes much sickness; if this line be cut by any lines coming from the mount of Venus, it declares the person to be unfortunate in love and business also, and threatens him with sudden death. A cross below the line of life and the table line, shows the person to be very liberal and charitable, one of a noble spirit. Let us now see the signification of the table line.

I’m going to share my judgment based on these lines: In palmistry, the left hand is the one to pay attention to, because that’s where the lines are most clear and closely connected to the heart and brain. Next, take a look at the line of life. If it's clear, long, and not interrupted by other crossing lines, it indicates a long life and good health, and this is also true if there’s a double line, which can sometimes occur. If stars appear on this line, it signifies significant losses and misfortunes; if there are two O's or a Q on it, it threatens the person with possible blindness. If the line curves around the table line, it suggests that wealth and honor will come, provided there is prudence and hard work. If the line is cut and jagged at the top, it indicates frequent illness; if it's crossed by lines coming from the mount of Venus, it suggests the person will face misfortune in love and business as well, and could be at risk of sudden death. A cross below the line of life and the table line shows that the person is very generous and charitable, with a noble spirit. Now, let's look at what the table line signifies.

The table line, when broad and of a lively colour, shows a healthful constitution, and a quiet contented mind, and a courageous spirit, but if it has crosses towards the little finger, it threatens the party with much affliction by sickness. If the line be double, or divided into three parts at any of the extremities, it shows the person to be of a generous temper, and of a good fortune to support it; but if this line be forked at the end, it threatens the person shall suffer by jealousies and doubts, and loss of riches gotten by deceit. If three points such as these *** are found in it, they denote the person prudent and liberal, a lover of learning, and of a good temper, if it spreads towards the fore and middle finger and ends blunt, it denotes preferment. Let us now see what is signified by the middle line. This line has in it oftentimes (for there is scarce a hand in which it varies not) divers very significant characters. Many small lines between this and the table line threaten the party with sickness, and also gives him hopes of recovery. A half cross branching into this line, declares the person shall have honour, riches, and good success in all his undertakings. A half moon denotes cold and watery distempers; but a sun or star upon this line, denotes prosperity and riches; this line, double in a woman, shows she will have several husbands, but no children.

The life line, when it's broad and colorful, indicates a healthy constitution, a calm and content mind, and a courageous spirit. However, if it has crosses near the little finger, it warns the individual of significant illness. If the line is double or divided into three parts at either end, it suggests the person has a generous nature and good fortune to match; but if this line is forked at the end, it warns that the person may face jealousy, doubts, and loss of wealth gained through deceit. If three dots like these *** are present, they signify that the person is wise and generous, a lover of learning, and of a kind disposition. If the line extends towards the index and middle fingers and ends bluntly, it indicates advancement. Now, let’s explore what the middle line signifies. This line often contains various very significant markings (for there is hardly a hand in which it doesn’t vary). Many small lines between this and the life line suggest impending illness but also provide hope for recovery. A half cross branching into this line indicates that the person will achieve honor, wealth, and success in all endeavors. A half moon signifies cold and watery ailments; however, a sun or star on this line suggests prosperity and wealth. This line, if double in a woman’s palm, indicates she will have multiple husbands but no children.

The line of Venus, if it happens to be cut or divided near the forefinger, threatens ruin to the party, and that it shall befall him by means of lascivious women and bad company. Two crosses upon the line, one being on the forefinger and the other bending towards the little finger, show the party to be weak, and inclined to modesty and virtue, indeed it generally denotes modesty in women; and therefore those who desire such, usually choose them by this standard.

The line of Venus, if it’s cut or divided near the forefinger, suggests disaster for the person, likely due to seductive women and bad influences. Two crosses on the line, one near the forefinger and the other leaning towards the little finger, indicate that the person is weak and tends to be modest and virtuous; it typically signifies modesty in women. Consequently, those who seek such qualities often use this as their criteria.

The liver line, if it be straight and crossed by other lines, shows the person to be of a sound judgment, and a piercing understanding, but if it be winding, crooked and bending outward, it draws deceit and flattery, and the party is not to be trusted. If it makes a triangle or quadrangle, it shows the person to be of a noble descent, and ambitious of honour and promotion. If it happens that this line and the middle line begin near each other, it denotes a person to be weak in his judgment, if a man; but if a woman, in danger by hard labour.

The liver line, if it’s straight and crossed by other lines, indicates that the person has good judgment and sharp understanding. However, if it’s winding, crooked, and bending outward, it suggests deceit and flattery, indicating that the person cannot be trusted. If it forms a triangle or rectangle, it signifies that the person comes from a noble background and aspires to honor and advancement. If this line and the middle line start close to each other, it suggests that a man may lack good judgment, while a woman may be at risk from hard work.

The plain of Mars being in the hollow of the hand, most of the lines pass through it, which renders it very significant. This plain being crooked and distorted, threatens the party to fall by his enemies. When the lines beginning at the wrist are long within the plain, reaching to the brawn of the hand, that shows the person to be much given to quarrelling, often in broils and of a hot and fiery spirit, by which he suffers much damage. If deep and long crosses be in the middle of the plain, it shows the party shall obtain honour by martial exploits; but if it be a woman, she shall have several husbands and easy labour with her children.

The plain of Mars is located in the palm, and most of the lines go through it, making it quite significant. Since this plain is crooked and distorted, it suggests that the person may fall victim to their enemies. If the lines coming from the wrist are long and extend into the plain, reaching towards the meat of the hand, it indicates that the person is prone to arguments, often gets into fights, and has a hot temper, which leads to a lot of trouble. If there are deep and long crosses in the middle of the plain, it shows that the person will gain honor through military accomplishments; however, if it’s a woman, she will have multiple husbands and will have an easy time during childbirth.

The line of Death is fatal, when crosses or broken lines appear in it; for they threaten the person with sickness and a short life. A clouded moon appearing therein, threatens a child-bed woman with death. A bloody spot in the line, denotes a violent death. A star like a comet, threatens ruin by war, and death by pestilence. But if a bright sun appears therein, it promises long life and prosperity.

The line of Death is critical; when it has crosses or broken lines, it indicates that the person may face illness and a short lifespan. If a clouded moon appears on it, it warns a woman in childbirth of death. A bloody mark on the line signifies a violent death. A star that resembles a comet suggests calamity from war and death from disease. However, if a bright sun is present, it signifies long life and prosperity.

As for the lines of the wrist being fair, they denote good fortune; but if crossed and broken, the contrary.

As for the lines on the wrist being clear, they indicate good luck; but if they are crossed and broken, the opposite is true.


CHAPTER V

Judgments according to Physiognomy, drawn from the several parts of the Body, from the Hands to the Feet.

Judgments based on Physiognomy, taken from various parts of the Body, from the Hands to the Feet.


A large and full breast, shows a man valiant and courageous, but withal proud and hard to deal with, quickly angry, and very apprehensive of an injury; he whose breast is narrow, and which riseth a little in the middle of it, is, by the best rule of physiognomy, of a clear spirit, of a great understanding, good in counsel, very faithful, clean both in mind and body, yet as an enemy to this, he is soon angry, and inclined long to keep it. He whose breast is somewhat hairy, is very luxurious, and serviceable to another. He who hath no hair upon his breast, is a man weak by nature, of a slender capacity and very timorous, but of a laudable life and conversation, inclined to peace, and much retired to himself.

A large, full chest suggests a man who is brave and bold, but also proud and difficult to deal with, quick to anger, and very sensitive to feeling hurt. In contrast, a narrow chest that rises slightly in the middle indicates a person with a clear mind, great intelligence, sound judgment, and strong loyalty, who is clean in both thought and appearance; however, despite these qualities, he can also become angry easily and tends to hold grudges. A man with a somewhat hairy chest tends to be indulgent and helpful to others. On the other hand, a man with no hair on his chest is naturally weak, has a limited capacity, and is quite timid, yet he leads a respectable life and is inclined towards peace, often keeping to himself.

The back of the chin bone, if the flesh be anything hairy and lean, and higher than any other part that is behind, signifies a man shameless, beastly and withal malicious. He whose back is large, big and fat, is thereby denoted to be a strong and stout man, but of a heavy disposition, vain, slow and full of deceit.

The back of the jawbone, if the flesh is somewhat hairy and thin, and higher than any other part behind it, indicates that a man is shameless, beastly, and also malicious. A person whose back is large, thick, and fat is therefore seen as a strong and robust man, but with a heavy attitude, vain, slow, and full of deceit.

He or she whose belly is soft over all the body, is weak, lustful, and fearful upon little or no occasion, of a good understanding, and an excellent invention, but little eaters, faithful, but of various fortune, and meet with more adversity than prosperity. He whose flesh is rough and hard, is a man of strong constitution and very bold, but vain, proud and of a cruel temper. A person whose skin is smooth, fat and white, is a person, curious, vain-glorious, timorous, shame-faced, malicious, false, and too wise to believe all he hears.

Someone whose belly is soft all over is weak, easily tempted, and fearful for little or no reason. They have good judgment and great creativity, but they don’t eat much. They are loyal but often face more challenges than successes. On the other hand, someone whose flesh is rough and hard is strong and very courageous, but also vain, proud, and cruel. A person with smooth, plump, and pale skin tends to be curious, boastful, timid, easily embarrassed, spiteful, dishonest, and too smart to believe everything they hear.

A thigh, full of strong, bristly hair, and the hair inclined to curl, signifies one lustful, licentious, and fit for copulation. Thighs with but little hair, and those soft and slender, show the person to be reasonably chaste, and one that has no great desire to coition, and who will have but few children.

A thigh, covered in thick, rough hair that tends to curl, indicates someone who is lustful, promiscuous, and ready for sex. Thighs with little hair, and those that are soft and slim, suggest the person is fairly chaste, has little desire for intercourse, and will likely have few children.

The legs of both men and women have a fleshy substance behind, which are called calves, which nature hath given them (as in our book of living creatures we have observed), in lieu of those long tails which other creatures have pendant behind. Now a great calf, and he whose legs are of great bone, and hair withal, denotes the person to be strong, bold, secure, dull in understanding and slow in business, inclined to procreation, and for the most part fortunate in his undertakings. Little legs, and but little hair on them, show the person to be weak, fearful, of a quick understanding, and neither luxurious at bed nor board. He whose legs do much abound with hair, shows he has great store in another place, and that he is lustful and luxurious, strong, but unstable in his resolution, and abounding with ill humours.

The legs of both men and women have a soft area behind them, known as calves, which nature has provided (as we've noted in our book of living beings), instead of the long tails that other creatures have hanging behind. Now, a person with large calves, and legs that are heavily built and hairy, is typically strong, bold, confident, somewhat slow-witted, and not very quick in business, inclined towards procreation, and usually successful in their endeavors. On the other hand, small legs with little hair indicate that a person is weak, fearful, quick-witted, and not indulgent in bed or at the table. A person with a lot of hair on their legs suggests they have plenty in another area, and that they are lustful and indulgent, strong but inconsistent in their decisions, and prone to unpleasant moods.

The feet of either men or women, if broad and thick with flesh, and long in figure, especially if the skin feels hard, they are by nature of a strong constitution, and gross nutriment, but of weak intellect, which renders the understanding vain. But feet that are thin and lean, and of a soft skin, show the person to be but weak of body, but of a strong understanding and an excellent wit.

The feet of either men or women, if they are broad and thick with flesh, and long in shape, especially if the skin feels hard, indicate a naturally strong constitution and rich nutrition, but a weak intellect, which makes the mind shallow. However, feet that are thin and lean, with soft skin, suggest that the person is physically weak but possesses strong understanding and sharp wit.

The soles of the feet do administer plain and evident signs, whereby the disposition and constitution of men and women may be known, as do the palms of their hands, as being full of lines, by which lines all the fortunes and misfortunes of men and women may be known, and their manners and inclinations made plainly to appear. But this in general we may take notice, as that many long lines and strokes do presage great affliction, and a very troublesome life, attended with much grief and toil, care, poverty, and misery; but short lines, if they are thick and full of cross lines, are yet worse in every degree. Those, the skin of whose soles is very thick and gross, are, for the most part, able, strong and venturous. Whereas, on the contrary, those the skin of whose soles of their feet is thin, are generally weak and timorous.

The soles of the feet show clear signs that reveal the character and makeup of men and women, just like the palms of their hands, which are marked with lines. These lines indicate all the fortunes and misfortunes people may face, and can clearly display their habits and tendencies. In general, we should note that long and deep lines suggest significant suffering and a very difficult life filled with grief, hard work, worry, poverty, and hardship. However, short lines that are thick and have many intersecting lines are even worse in every way. Typically, people with thick and tough skin on their soles tend to be capable, strong, and adventurous. In contrast, those with thin skin on the soles of their feet are usually weak and timid.

I shall now, before I conclude (having given an account of what judgments may be made by observing the several parts of the body, from the crown of the head to the soles of the feet), give an account of what judgments may be drawn by the rule of physiognomy from things extraneous which are found upon many, and which indeed to them are parts of the body, but are so far from being necessary parts that they are the deformity and burden of it, and speak of the habits of the body, as they distinguish persons.

I will now, before I finish (having explained what judgments can be made by observing the various parts of the body, from the top of the head to the bottoms of the feet), discuss what judgments can be made according to the principles of physiognomy based on external factors found on many people. These things may seem like parts of the body, but they are far from essential; instead, they are often seen as deformities and burdens, revealing the habits of the body and distinguishing individuals.


Of Crooked and Deformed Persons.

A crooked breast and shoulder, or the exuberance of flesh in the body either of man or woman, signifies the person to be extremely parsimonious and ingenious, and of a great understanding, but very covetous and scraping after the things of the world, attended also with a very bad memory, being also very deceitful and malicious; they are seldom in a medium, but either virtuous or extremely vicious. But if the person deformed hath an excrescence on his breast instead of on the back, he is for the most part of a double heart, and very mischievous.

A crooked chest and shoulder, or an abundance of flesh on the body of either a man or a woman, indicates that the person is very stingy and clever, with a great mind, but also very greedy and grasping when it comes to worldly things. They usually have a poor memory and tend to be deceitful and spiteful; they are rarely balanced, swinging between being virtuous or extremely immoral. However, if a deformed person has a growth on their chest instead of on their back, they are generally two-faced and quite harmful.


Of the divers Manners of going, and particular Posture both of Men and Women.

He or she that goes slowly, making great steps as they go, are generally persons of bad memory, and dull of apprehension, given to loitering, and not apt to believe what is told them. He who goes apace, and makes short steps, is most successful in all his undertakings, swift in his imagination, and humble in the disposition of his affairs. He who makes wide and uneven steps, and sidelong withal, is one of a greedy, sordid nature, subtle, malicious, and willing to do evil.

The person who moves slowly, taking big steps, usually has a poor memory and is slow to understand, prone to dawdling, and not quick to trust what they hear. The one who moves quickly and takes short steps tends to succeed in their pursuits, has a quick imagination, and is humble in managing their affairs. Those who take large, unsteady steps and move sideways are typically greedy, selfish, cunning, malicious, and willing to do harm.


Of the Gait or Motion in Men and Women.

Every man hath a certain gait or motion, and so in like manner hath every woman; for a man to be shaking his head, or using any light motion with his hands or feet, whether he stands or sits, or speaks, is always accompanied with an extravagant motion, unnecessary, superfluous and unhandsome. Such a man, by the rule of physiognomy is vain, unwise, unchaste, a detractor, unstable and unfaithful. He or she whose motion is not much when discoursing with any one, is for the most part wise and well bred, and fit for any employment, ingenious and apprehensive, frugal, faithful and industrious in business. He whose posture is forwards and backwards, or, as it were, whisking up and down, mimical, is thereby denoted to be a vain, silly person, of a heavy and dull wit, and very malicious. He whose motion is lame and limping, or otherwise imperfect, or that counterfeits an imperfection is denoted to be envious, malicious, false and detracting.

Every person has a certain way of moving, and the same goes for every woman. When a man shakes his head or makes any unnecessary movements with his hands or feet, whether he is standing, sitting, or talking, it usually comes across as over the top, excessive, and unattractive. According to the study of facial features and body language, such a man is seen as vain, unwise, immoral, a gossip, unreliable, and disloyal. On the other hand, someone who doesn't move much when talking to others is often considered wise, well-mannered, and suitable for any role; they are clever, perceptive, economical, trustworthy, and hardworking. A person who fidgets or constantly shifts positions is generally viewed as vain, foolish, dull-witted, and quite spiteful. If someone's movements are awkward or they pretend to have a disability, they are typically seen as envious, malicious, dishonest, and slanderous.


Judgment drawn from the Stature of Man.

Physiognomy draws several judgments also from the stature of man, which take as followeth; if a man be upright and straight, inclined rather to leanness than fat, it shows him to be bold, cruel, proud, clamorous, hard to please, and harder to be reconciled when displeased, very frugal, deceitful, and in many things malicious. To be of tall stature and corpulent with it, denotes him to be not only handsome but valiant also, but of no extraordinary understanding, and which is worst of all, ungrateful and trepanning. He who is extremely tall and very lean and thin is a projecting man, that designs no good to himself, and suspects every one to be as bad as himself, importunate to obtain what he desires, and extremely wedded to his own humour. He who is thick and short, is vain, envious, suspicious, and very shallow of apprehension, easy of belief, but very long before he will forget an injury. He who is lean and short but upright withal, is, by the rules of physiognomy, wise and ingenious, bold and confident, and of a good understanding, but of a deceitful heart. He who stoops as he goes, not so much by age as custom, is very laborious, a retainer of secrets, but very incredulous and not easy to believe every vain report he hears. He that goes with his belly stretching forth, is sociable, merry, and easy to be persuaded.

Physiognomy makes several judgments based on a person's stature, which are as follows: if a man is upright and straight, leaning more towards being lean than fat, it suggests he is bold, cruel, proud, loud, hard to please, and even harder to reconcile with when displeased, very frugal, deceitful, and often malicious in many ways. A tall and heavy-set man not only appears handsome but is also brave, though he tends to lack extraordinary intelligence, and worst of all, he can be ungrateful and deceptive. A man who is extremely tall and very lean tends to be overly ambitious, has no good intentions for himself, and suspects everyone else of being just as bad, is insistent in getting what he wants, and is extremely set in his own ways. A short and stocky man is often vain, envious, suspicious, and has a shallow understanding; he is gullible but takes a long time to forget an injury. A lean and short man who stands up straight is, according to physiognomy, wise and clever, bold and confident, with good understanding but a deceitful heart. A man who stoops as he walks, not due to age but habit, is very hard-working, a keeper of secrets, but very skeptical and not easily fooled by every rumor he hears. A man who walks with his belly sticking out is sociable, cheerful, and easily persuaded.


CHAPTER VI

Of the Power of the Celestial Bodies over Men and Women.

Of the Power of Celestial Bodies over People.


Having spoken thus largely of Physiognomy, and the judgment given thereby concerning the dispositions and inclinations of men and women, it will be convenient here to show how all these things come to pass; and how it is that the secret inclinations and future fate of men and women may be known from the consideration of the several parts of the bodies. They arise from the power and dominion of superior powers to understand the twelve signs of the Zodiac, whose signs, characters and significations are as follows:—

Having talked a lot about Physiognomy and the judgments made about the personalities and tendencies of men and women, it’s helpful to explain how all of this works; and how one can understand the hidden desires and future outcomes of individuals by looking at the different parts of their bodies. These insights come from the ability to interpret the twelve signs of the Zodiac, whose signs, symbols, and meanings are as follows:—

Aries, the Ram, which governs the head and face.

Aries, the Ram, which rules the head and face.

Taurus, the Bull, which governs the neck.

Taurus, the Bull, which rules over the neck.

Gemini, the Twins, which governs the hands and arms.

Gemini, the Twins, which rules the hands and arms.

Cancer, the Crab, governs the breast and stomach.

Cancer, the Crab, is in charge of the breast and stomach.

Leo, the Lion, governs the back and heart

Leo, the Lion, rules the back and heart.

Virgo, the Virgin, governs the belly and bowels.

Virgo, the Virgin, rules over the stomach and intestines.

Libra, the Balance, governs the veins and loins.

Libra, the Balance, controls the veins and lower back.

Scorpio, the Scorpion, governs the secret parts.

Scorpio, the Scorpion, controls the hidden aspects.

Sagittary, the Centaur, governs the thighs.

Sagittarius, the Centaur, rules the thighs.

Capricorn, the Goat, governs the knees.

Capricorn, the Goat, rules the knees.

Aquarius, the Water-Bearer, governs the legs and ankles.

Aquarius, the Water-Bearer, rules the legs and ankles.

Pisces, the Fish, governs the feet.

Pisces, the Fish, rules the feet.

It is here furthermore necessary to let the reader know, that the ancients have divided the celestial sphere into twelve parts, according to the number of these signs, which are termed houses; as in the first house, Aries, in the second Taurus, in the third Gemini, etc. And besides their assigning the twelve signs of the twelve houses, they allot to each house its proper business.

It’s important to inform the reader that the ancients divided the celestial sphere into twelve parts, based on the number of these signs, called houses. In the first house, there’s Aries; in the second, Taurus; in the third, Gemini; and so on. In addition to assigning the twelve signs to the twelve houses, they also assigned each house its specific responsibilities.

To the first house they give the signification of life.

To the first house, they signify life.

The second house has the signification of wealth, substances, or riches.

The second house represents wealth, assets, or riches.

The third is the mansion of brethren.

The third is the house of brothers.

The fourth, the house of parentage.

The fourth house, the house of family background.

The fifth is the house of children.

The fifth is the house of kids.

The sixth is the house of sickness or disease.

The sixth house represents illness or health issues.

The seventh is the house of wedlock, and also of enemies, because oftentimes a wife or husband proves the worst enemy.

The seventh house represents marriage but also enemies, because sometimes a wife or husband can be the worst enemy.

The eighth is the house of death.

The eighth house represents death.

The ninth is the house of religion.

The ninth is the house of faith.

The tenth is the signification of honours.

The tenth represents the meaning of honors.

The eleventh of friendship.

The 11th of friendship.

The twelfth is the house of affliction and woe.

The twelfth is the house of suffering and sorrow.

Now, astrologically speaking, a house is a certain place in the heaven or firmament, divided by certain degrees, through which the planets have their motion, and in which they have their residence and are situated. And these houses are divided by thirty degrees, for every sign has so many degrees. And these signs or houses are called the houses of such and such planets as make their residence therein, and are such as delight in them, and as they are deposited in such and such houses are said to be either dignified or debilitated. For though the planets in their several revolutions go through all the houses, yet there are some houses which they are more properly said to delight in. As for instance, Aries and Scorpio are the houses of Mars; Taurus and Libra of Venus; Gemini and Virgo of Mercury; Sagittarius and Pisces are the houses of Jupiter; Capricorn and Aquarius are the houses of Saturn; Leo is the house of the Sun; and Cancer is the house of the Moon.

Now, in astrological terms, a house refers to a specific area in the sky or firmament, divided into degrees, where the planets move and reside. Each house spans thirty degrees since each sign contains that many degrees. These signs or houses are identified as the homes of specific planets that reside there and take pleasure in those houses. Depending on where they are placed, planets are considered either dignified or debilitated. Although the planets move through all the houses during their orbits, there are certain houses where they are known to thrive. For example, Aries and Scorpio are the houses of Mars; Taurus and Libra are the houses of Venus; Gemini and Virgo are the houses of Mercury; Sagittarius and Pisces are the houses of Jupiter; Capricorn and Aquarius are the houses of Saturn; Leo is the house of the Sun; and Cancer is the house of the Moon.

Now to sum up the whole, and show how this concerns Physiognomy, is this:—as the body of man, as we have shown, is not only governed by the signs and planets, but every part is appropriated to one or another of them, so according to the particular influence of each sign and planet, so governing is the disposition, inclination, and nature of the person governed. For such and such tokens and marks do show a person to be born under such and such a planet; so according to the nature, power and influences of the planets, is the judgment to be made of that person. By which the reader may see that the judgments drawn from physiognomy are grounded upon a certain verity.

To sum it all up and explain how this relates to Physiognomy: the human body, as we've shown, is not only influenced by the signs and planets, but each part corresponds to one or another of them. Therefore, depending on the specific influence of each sign and planet, the disposition, tendencies, and nature of the person are governed accordingly. Certain signs and features indicate that a person was born under a specific planet; thus, judgments about that person should be based on the nature, power, and influences of the planets. This demonstrates that the judgments made from physiognomy are based on a certain truth.


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!